The Woman in White

by
Wilkie Collins





THE STORY BEGUN BY WALTER HARTRIGHT
(of Clement's Inn, Teacher of Drawing)


This is the story of what a Woman's patience can endure, and what
a Man's resolution can achieve.

If the machinery of the Law could be depended on to fathom every
case of suspicion, and to conduct every process of inquiry, with
moderate assistance only from the lubricating influences of oil of
gold, the events which fill these pages might have claimed their
share of the public attention in a Court of Justice.

But the Law is still, in certain inevitable cases, the pre-engaged
servant of the long purse; and the story is left to be told, for
the first time, in this place.  As the Judge might once have heard
it, so the Reader shall hear it now.  No circumstance of
importance, from the beginning to the end of the disclosure, shall
be related on hearsay evidence.  When the writer of these
introductory lines (Walter Hartright by name) happens to be more
closely connected than others with the incidents to be recorded,
he will describe them in his own person.  When his experience
fails, he will retire from the position of narrator; and his task
will be continued, from the point at which he has left it off, by
other persons who can speak to the circumstances under notice from
their own knowledge, just as clearly and positively as he has
spoken before them.

Thus, the story here presented will be told by more than one pen,
as the story of an offence against the laws is told in Court by
more than one witness--with the same object, in both cases, to
present the truth always in its most direct and most intelligible
aspect; and to trace the course of one complete series of events,
by making the persons who have been most closely connected with
them, at each successive stage, relate their own experience, word
for word.

Let Walter Hartright, teacher of drawing, aged twenty-eight years,
be heard first.



II


It was the last day of July.  The long hot summer was drawing to a
close; and we, the weary pilgrims of the London pavement, were
beginning to think of the cloud-shadows on the corn-fields, and
the autumn breezes on the sea-shore.

For my own poor part, the fading summer left me out of health, out
of spirits, and, if the truth must be told, out of money as well. 
During the past year I had not managed my professional resources
as carefully as usual; and my extravagance now limited me to the
prospect of spending the autumn economically between my mother's
cottage at Hampstead and my own chambers in town.

The evening, I remember, was still and cloudy; the London air was
at its heaviest; the distant hum of the street-traffic was at its
faintest; the small pulse of the life within me, and the great
heart of the city around me, seemed to be sinking in unison,
languidly and more languidly, with the sinking sun.  I roused
myself from the book which I was dreaming over rather than
reading, and left my chambers to meet the cool night air in the
suburbs.  It was one of the two evenings in every week which I was
accustomed to spend with my mother and my sister.  So I turned my
steps northward in the direction of Hampstead.

Events which I have yet to relate make it necessary to mention in
this place that my father had been dead some years at the period
of which I am now writing; and that my sister Sarah and I were the
sole survivors of a family of five children.  My father was a
drawing-master before me.  His exertions had made him highly
successful in his profession; and his affectionate anxiety to
provide for the future of those who were dependent on his labours
had impelled him, from the time of his marriage, to devote to the
insuring of his life a much larger portion of his income than most
men consider it necessary to set aside for that purpose.  Thanks
to his admirable prudence and self-denial my mother and sister
were left, after his death, as independent of the world as they
had been during his lifetime.  I succeeded to his connection, and
had every reason to feel grateful for the prospect that awaited me
at my starting in life.

The quiet twilight was still trembling on the topmost ridges of
the heath; and the view of London below me had sunk into a black
gulf in the shadow of the cloudy night, when I stood before the
gate of my mother's cottage.  I had hardly rung the bell before
the house door was opened violently; my worthy Italian friend,
Professor Pesca, appeared in the servant's place; and darted out
joyously to receive me, with a shrill foreign parody on an English
cheer.

On his own account, and, I must be allowed to add, on mine also,
the Professor merits the honour of a formal introduction. 
Accident has made him the starting-point of the strange family
story which it is the purpose of these pages to unfold.

I had first become acquainted with my Italian friend by meeting
him at certain great houses where he taught his own language and I
taught drawing.  All I then knew of the history of his life was,
that he had once held a situation in the University of Padua; that
he had left Italy for political reasons (the nature of which he
uniformly declined to mention to any one); and that he had been
for many years respectably established in London as a teacher of
languages.

Without being actually a dwarf--for he was perfectly well
proportioned from head to foot--Pesca was, I think, the smallest
human being I ever saw out of a show-room.  Remarkable anywhere,
by his personal appearance, he was still further distinguished
among the rank and file of mankind by the harmless eccentricity of
his character.  The ruling idea of his life appeared to be, that
he was bound to show his gratitude to the country which had
afforded him an asylum and a means of subsistence by doing his
utmost to turn himself into an Englishman.  Not content with
paying the nation in general the compliment of invariably carrying
an umbrella, and invariably wearing gaiters and a white hat, the
Professor further aspired to become an Englishman in his habits
and amusements, as well as in his personal appearance.  Finding us
distinguished, as a nation, by our love of athletic exercises, the
little man, in the innocence of his heart, devoted himself
impromptu to all our English sports and pastimes whenever he had
the opportunity of joining them; firmly persuaded that he could
adopt our national amusements of the field by an effort of will 
precisely as he had adopted our national gaiters and our national
white hat.

I had seen him risk his limbs blindly at a fox-hunt and in a
cricket-field; and soon afterwards I saw him risk his life, just
as blindly, in the sea at Brighton.

We had met there accidentally, and were bathing together.  If we
had been engaged in any exercise peculiar to my own nation I
should, of course, have looked after Pesca carefully; but as
foreigners are generally quite as well able to take care of
themselves in the water as Englishmen, it never occurred to me
that the art of swimming might merely add one more to the list of
manly exercises which the Professor believed that he could learn
impromptu.  Soon after we had both struck out from shore, I
stopped, finding my friend did not gain on me, and turned round to
look for him.  To my horror and amazement, I saw nothing between
me and the beach but two little white arms which struggled for an
instant above the surface of the water, and then disappeared from
view.  When I dived for him, the poor little man was lying quietly
coiled up at the bottom, in a hollow of shingle, looking by many
degrees smaller than I had ever seen him look before.  During the
few minutes that elapsed while I was taking him in, the air
revived him, and he ascended the steps of the machine with my
assistance.  With the partial recovery of his animation came the
return of his wonderful delusion on the subject of swimming.  As
soon as his chattering teeth would let him speak, he smiled
vacantly, and said he thought it must have been the Cramp.

When he had thoroughly recovered himself, and had joined me on the
beach, his warm Southern nature broke through all artificial
English restraints in a moment.  He overwhelmed me with the
wildest expressions of affection--exclaimed passionately, in his
exaggerated Italian way, that he would hold his life henceforth at
my disposal--and declared that he should never be happy again
until he had found an opportunity of proving his gratitude by
rendering me some service which I might remember, on my side, to
the end of my days.

I did my best to stop the torrent of his tears and protestations
by persisting in treating the whole adventure as a good subject
for a joke; and succeeded at last, as I imagined, in lessening
Pesca's overwhelming sense of obligation to me.  Little did I
think then--little did I think afterwards when our pleasant
holiday had drawn to an end--that the opportunity of serving me
for which my grateful companion so ardently longed was soon to
come; that he was eagerly to seize it on the instant; and that by
so doing he was to turn the whole current of my existence into a
new channel, and to alter me to myself almost past recognition.

Yet so it was.  If I had not dived for Professor Pesca when he lay
under water on his shingle bed, I should in all human probability
never have been connected with the story which these pages will
relate--I should never, perhaps, have heard even the name of the
woman who has lived in all my thoughts, who has possessed herself
of all my energies, who has become the one guiding influence that
now directs the purpose of my life.



III


Pesca's face and manner, on the evening when we confronted each
other at my mother's gate, were more than sufficient to inform me
that something extraordinary had happened.  It was quite useless,
however, to ask him for an immediate explanation.  I could only
conjecture, while he was dragging me in by both hands, that
(knowing my habits) he had come to the cottage to make sure of
meeting me that night, and that he had some news to tell of an
unusually agreeable kind.

We both bounced into the parlour in a highly abrupt and
undignified manner.  My mother sat by the open window laughing and
fanning herself.  Pesca was one of her especial favourites and his
wildest eccentricities were always pardonable in her eyes.  Poor
dear soul! from the first moment when she found out that the
little Professor was deeply and gratefully attached to her son,
she opened her heart to him unreservedly, and took all his
puzzling foreign peculiarities for granted, without so much as
attempting to understand any one of them.

My sister Sarah, with all the advantages of youth, was, strangely
enough, less pliable.  She did full justice to Pesca's excellent
qualities of heart; but she could not accept him implicitly, as my
mother accepted him, for my sake.  Her insular notions of
propriety rose in perpetual revolt against Pesca's constitutional
contempt for appearances; and she was always more or less
undisguisedly astonished at her mother's familiarity with the
eccentric little foreigner.  I have observed, not only in my
sister's case, but in the instances of others, that we of the
young generation are nothing like so hearty and so impulsive as
some of our elders.  I constantly see old people flushed and
excited by the prospect of some anticipated pleasure which
altogether fails to ruffle the tranquillity of their serene
grandchildren.  Are we, I wonder, quite such genuine boys and
girls now as our seniors were in their time? Has the great advance
in education taken rather too long a stride; and are we in these
modern days, just the least trifle in the world too well brought
up?

Without attempting to answer those questions decisively, I may at
least record that I never saw my mother and my sister together in
Pesca's society, without finding my mother much the younger woman
of the two.  On this occasion, for example, while the old lady was
laughing heartily over the boyish manner in which we tumbled into
the parlour, Sarah was perturbedly picking up the broken pieces of
a teacup, which the Professor had knocked off the table in his
precipitate advance to meet me at the door.

"I don't know what would have happened, Walter," said my mother,
"if you had delayed much longer.  Pesca has been half mad with
impatience, and I have been half mad with curiosity.  The
Professor has brought some wonderful news with him, in which he
says you are concerned; and he has cruelly refused to give us the
smallest hint of it till his friend Walter appeared."

"Very provoking: it spoils the Set," murmured Sarah to herself,
mournfully absorbed over the ruins of the broken cup.

While these words were being spoken, Pesca, happily and fussily
unconscious of the irreparable wrong which the crockery had
suffered at his hands, was dragging a large arm-chair to the
opposite end of the room, so as to command us all three, in the
character of a public speaker addressing an audience.  Having
turned the chair with its back towards us, he jumped into it on
his knees, and excitedly addressed his small congregation of three
from an impromptu pulpit.

"Now, my good dears," began Pesca (who always said "good dears"
when he meant "worthy friends"), "listen to me.  The time has
come--I recite my good news--I speak at last."

"Hear, hear!" said my mother, humouring the joke.

"The next thing he will break, mamma," whispered Sarah, "will be
the back of the best arm-chair."

"I go back into my life, and I address myself to the noblest of
created beings," continued Pesca, vehemently apostrophising my
unworthy self over the top rail of the chair.  "Who found me dead
at the bottom of the sea (through Cramp); and who pulled me up to
the top; and what did I say when I got into my own life and my own
clothes again?"

"Much more than was at all necessary," I answered as doggedly as
possible; for the least encouragement in connection with this
subject invariably let loose the Professor's emotions in a flood
of tears.

"I said," persisted Pesca, "that my life belonged to my dear
friend, Walter, for the rest of my days--and so it does.  I said
that I should never be happy again till I had found the
opportunity of doing a good Something for Walter--and I have never
been contented with myself till this most blessed day.  Now,"
cried the enthusiastic little man at the top of his voice, "the
overflowing happiness bursts out of me at every pore of my skin,
like a perspiration; for on my faith, and soul, and honour, the
something is done at last, and the only word to say now is--Right-
all-right!"

It may be necessary to explain here that Pesca prided himself on
being a perfect Englishman in his language, as well as in his
dress, manners, and amusements.  Having picked up a few of our
most familiar colloquial expressions, he scattered them about over
his conversation whenever they happened to occur to him, turning
them, in his high relish for their sound and his general ignorance
of their sense, into compound words and repetitions of his own,
and always running them into each other, as if they consisted of
one long syllable.

"Among the fine London Houses where I teach the language of my
native country," said the Professor, rushing into his long-
deferred explanation without another word of preface, "there is
one, mighty fine, in the big place called Portland.  You all know
where that is? Yes, yes--course-of-course.  The fine house, my
good dears, has got inside it a fine family.  A Mamma, fair and
fat; three young Misses, fair and fat; two young Misters, fair and
fat; and a Papa, the fairest and the fattest of all, who is a
mighty merchant, up to his eyes in gold--a fine man once, but
seeing that he has got a naked head and two chins, fine no longer
at the present time.  Now mind! I teach the sublime Dante to the
young Misses, and ah!--my-soul-bless-my-soul!--it is not in human
language to say how the sublime Dante puzzles the pretty heads of
all three! No matter--all in good time--and the more lessons the
better for me.  Now mind! Imagine to yourselves that I am teaching
the young Misses to-day, as usual.  We are all four of us down
together in the Hell of Dante.  At the Seventh Circle--but no
matter for that: all the Circles are alike to the three young
Misses, fair and fat,--at the Seventh Circle, nevertheless, my
pupils are sticking fast; and I, to set them going again, recite,
explain, and blow myself up red-hot with useless enthusiasm, when--
a creak of boots in the passage outside, and in comes the golden
Papa, the mighty merchant with the naked head and the two chins.--
Ha! my good dears, I am closer than you think for to the business,
now. Have you been patient so far? or have you said to yourselves,
'Deuce-what-the-deuce! Pesca is long-winded to-night?'"

We declared that we were deeply interested.  The Professor went
on:

"In his hand, the golden Papa has a letter; and after he has made
his excuse for disturbing us in our Infernal Region with the
common mortal Business of the house, he addresses himself to the
three young Misses, and begins, as you English begin everything in
this blessed world that you have to say, with a great O.  'O, my
dears,' says the mighty merchant, 'I have got here a letter from
my friend, Mr.----'(the name has slipped out of my mind; but no
matter; we shall come back to that; yes, yes--right-all-right). 
So the Papa says, 'I have got a letter from my friend, the Mister;
and he wants a recommend from me, of a drawing-master, to go down
to his house in the country.'  My-soul-bless-my-soul! when I heard
the golden Papa say those words, if I had been big enough to reach
up to him, I should have put my arms round his neck, and pressed
him to my bosom in a long and grateful hug! As it was, I only
bounced upon my chair.  My seat was on thorns, and my soul was on
fire to speak but I held my tongue, and let Papa go on.  'Perhaps
you know,' says this good man of money, twiddling his friend's
letter this way and that, in his golden fingers and thumbs,
'perhaps you know, my dears, of a drawing-master that I can
recommend?'  The three young Misses all look at each other, and
then say (with the indispensable great O to begin) "O, dear no,
Papa! But here is Mr. Pesca'  At the mention of myself I can hold
no longer--the thought of you, my good dears, mounts like blood to
my head--I start from my seat, as if a spike had grown up from the
ground through the bottom of my chair--I address myself to the
mighty merchant, and I say (English phrase) 'Dear sir, I have the
man! The first and foremost drawing-master of the world! Recommend
him by the post to-night, and send him off, bag and baggage
(English phrase again--ha!), send him off, bag and baggage, by the
train to-morrow!'  'Stop, stop,' says Papa; 'is he a foreigner, or
an Englishman?'  'English to the bone of his back,' I answer. 
'Respectable?' says Papa.  'Sir,' I say (for this last question of
his outrages me, and I have done being familiar with him--'Sir!
the immortal fire of genius burns in this Englishman's bosom, and,
what is more, his father had it before him!'  'Never mind,' says
the golden barbarian of a Papa, 'never mind about his genius, Mr.
Pesca.  We don't want genius in this country, unless it is
accompanied by respectability--and then we are very glad to have
it, very glad indeed.  Can your friend produce testimonials--
letters that speak to his character?'  I wave my hand negligently. 
'Letters?' I say.  'Ha! my-soul-bless-my-soul! I should think so,
indeed! Volumes of letters and portfolios of testimonials, if you
like!' 'One or two will do,' says this man of phlegm and money. 
'Let him send them to me, with his name and address.  And--stop,
stop, Mr. Pesca--before you go to your friend, you had better take
a note.' 'Bank-note!' I say, indignantly.  'No bank-note, if you
please, till my brave Englishman has earned it first.'  'Bank-
note!' says Papa, in a great surprise, 'who talked of bank-note? I
mean a note of the terms--a memorandum of what he is expected to
do.  Go on with your lesson, Mr. Pesca, and I will give you the
necessary extract from my friend's letter.' Down sits the man of
merchandise and money to his pen, ink, and paper; and down I go
once again into the Hell of Dante, with my three young Misses
after me.  In ten minutes' time the note is written, and the boots
of Papa are creaking themselves away in the passage outside.  From
that moment, on my faith, and soul, and honour, I know nothing
more! The glorious thought that I have caught my opportunity at
last, and that my grateful service for my dearest friend in the
world is as good as done already, flies up into my head and makes
me drunk.  How I pull my young Misses and myself out of our
Infernal Region again, how my other business is done afterwards,
how my little bit of dinner slides itself down my throat, I know
no more than a man in the moon.  Enough for me, that here I am,
with the mighty merchant's note in my hand, as large as life, as
hot as fire, and as happy as a king! Ha! ha! ha! right-right-
right-all-right!" Here the Professor waved the memorandum of terms
over his head, and ended his long and voluble narrative with his
shrill Italian parody on an English cheer.

My mother rose the moment he had done, with flushed cheeks and
brightened eyes.  She caught the little man warmly by both hands.

"My dear, good Pesca," she said, "I never doubted your true
affection for Walter--but I am more than ever persuaded of it
now!"

"I am sure we are very much obliged to Professor Pesca, for
Walter's sake," added Sarah.  She half rose, while she spoke, as
if to approach the armchair, in her turn; but, observing that
Pesca was rapturously kissing my, mother's hands, looked serious,
and resumed her seat.  "If the familiar little man treats my
mother in that way, how will he treat ME?" Faces sometimes tell
truth; and that was unquestionably the thought in Sarah's mind, as
she sat down again.

Although I myself was gratefully sensible of the kindness of
Pesca's motives, my spirits were hardly so much elevated as they
ought to have been by the prospect of future employment now placed
before me.  When the Professor had quite done with my mother's
hand, and when I had warmly thanked him for his interference on my
behalf, I asked to be allowed to look at the note of terms which
his respectable patron had drawn up for my inspection.

Pesca handed me the paper, with a triumphant flourish of the hand.

"Read!" said the little man majestically.  "I promise you my
friend, the writing of the golden Papa speaks with a tongue of
trumpets for itself."

The note of terms was plain, straightforward, and comprehensive,
at any rate.  It informed me,

First, That Frederick Fairlie, Esquire, of Limmeridge House. 
Cumberland, wanted to engage the services of a thoroughly
competent drawing-master, for a period of four months certain.

Secondly, That the duties which the master was expected to perform
would be of a twofold kind.  He was to superintend the instruction
of two young ladies in the art of painting in water-colours; and
he was to devote his leisure time, afterwards, to the business of
repairing and mounting a valuable collection of drawings, which
had been suffered to fall into a condition of total neglect.

Thirdly, That the terms offered to the person who should undertake
and properly perform these duties were four guineas a week; that
he was to reside at Limmeridge House; and that he was to be
treated there on the footing of a gentleman.

Fourthly, and lastly, That no person need think of applying for
this situation unless he could furnish the most unexceptionable
references to character and abilities.  The references were to be
sent to Mr. Fairlie's friend in London, who was empowered to
conclude all necessary arrangements.  These instructions were
followed by the name and address of Pesca's employer in Portland
Place--and there the note, or memorandum, ended.

The prospect which this offer of an engagement held out was
certainly an attractive one.  The employment was likely to be both
easy and agreeable; it was proposed to me at the autumn time of
the year when I was least occupied; and the terms, judging by my
personal experience in my profession, were surprisingly liberal. 
I knew this; I knew that I ought to consider myself very fortunate
if I succeeded in securing the offered employment--and yet, no
sooner had I read the memorandum than I felt an inexplicable
unwillingness within me to stir in the matter.  I had never in the
whole of my previous experience found my duty and my inclination
so painfully and so unaccountably at variance as I found them now.

"Oh, Walter, your father never had such a chance as this!" said my
mother, when she had read the note of terms and had handed it back
to me.

"Such distinguished people to know," remarked Sarah, straightening
herself in the chair; "and on such gratifying terms of equality
too!"

"Yes, yes; the terms, in every sense, are tempting enough," I
replied impatiently.  "But before I send in my testimonials, I
should like a little time to consider----"

"Consider!" exclaimed my mother.  "Why, Walter, what is the matter
with you?"

"Consider!" echoed my sister.  "What a very extraordinary thing to
say, under the circumstances!"

"Consider!" chimed in the Professor.  "What is there to consider
about? Answer me this! Have you not been complaining of your
health, and have you not been longing for what you call a smack of
the country breeze? Well! there in your hand is the paper that
offers you perpetual choking mouthfuls of country breeze for four
months' time.  Is it not so? Ha! Again--you want money.  Well! Is
four golden guineas a week nothing? My-soul-bless-my-soul! only
give it to me--and my boots shall creak like the golden Papa's,
with a sense of the overpowering richness of the man who walks in
them! Four guineas a week, and, more than that, the charming
society of two young misses! and, more than that, your bed, your
breakfast, your dinner, your gorging English teas and lunches and
drinks of foaming beer, all for nothing--why, Walter, my dear good
friend--deuce-what-the-deuce!--for the first time in my life I
have not eyes enough in my head to look, and wonder at you!"

Neither my mother's evident astonishment at my behaviour, nor
Pesca's fervid enumeration of the advantages offered to me by the
new employment, had any effect in shaking my unreasonable
disinclination to go to Limmeridge House.  After starting all the
petty objections that I could think of to going to Cumberland, and
after hearing them answered, one after another, to my own complete
discomfiture, I tried to set up a last obstacle by asking what was
to become of my pupils in London while I was teaching Mr.
Fairlie's young ladies to sketch from nature.  The obvious answer
to this was, that the greater part of them would be away on their
autumn travels, and that the few who remained at home might be
confided to the care of one of my brother drawing-masters, whose
pupils I had once taken off his hands under similar circumstances. 
My sister reminded me that this gentleman had expressly placed his
services at my disposal, during the present season, in case I
wished to leave town; my mother seriously appealed to me not to
let an idle caprice stand in the way of my own interests and my
own health; and Pesca piteously entreated that I would not wound
him to the heart by rejecting the first grateful offer of service
that he had been able to make to the friend who had saved his
life.

The evident sincerity and affection which inspired these
remonstrances would have influenced any man with an atom of good
feeling in his composition.  Though I could not conquer my own
unaccountable perversity, I had at least virtue enough to be
heartily ashamed of it, and to end the discussion pleasantly by
giving way, and promising to do all that was wanted of me.

The rest of the evening passed merrily enough in humorous
anticipations of my coming life with the two young ladies in
Cumberland.  Pesca, inspired by our national grog, which appeared
to get into his head, in the most marvellous manner, five minutes
after it had gone down his throat, asserted his claims to be
considered a complete Englishman by making a series of speeches in
rapid succession, proposing my mother's health, my sister's
health, my health, and the healths, in mass, of Mr. Fairlie and
the two young Misses, pathetically returning thanks himself,
immediately afterwards, for the whole party.  "A secret, Walter,"
said my little friend confidentially, as we walked home together. 
"I am flushed by the recollection of my own eloquence.  My soul
bursts itself with ambition.  One of these days I go into your
noble Parliament.  It is the dream of my whole life to be
Honourable Pesca, M.P.!"

The next morning I sent my testimonials to the Professor's
employer in Portland Place.  Three days passed, and I concluded,
with secret satisfaction, that my papers had not been found
sufficiently explicit.  On the fourth day, however, an answer
came.  It announced that Mr. Fairlie accepted my services, and
requested me to start for Cumberland immediately.  All the
necessary instructions for my journey were carefully and clearly
added in a postscript.

I made my arrangements, unwillingly enough, for leaving London
early the next day.  Towards evening Pesca looked in, on his way
to a dinner-party, to bid me good-bye.

"I shall dry my tears in your absence," said the Professor gaily,
"with this glorious thought.  It is my auspicious hand that has
given the first push to your fortune in the world.  Go, my friend!
When your sun shines in Cumberland (English proverb), in the name
of heaven make your hay.  Marry one of the two young Misses;
become Honourable Hartright, M.P.; and when you are on the top of
the ladder remember that Pesca, at the bottom, has done it all!"

I tried to laugh with my little friend over his parting jest, but
my spirits were not to be commanded.  Something jarred in me
almost painfully while he was speaking his light farewell words.

When I was left alone again nothing remained to be done but to
walk to the Hampstead cottage and bid my mother and Sarah good-
bye.



IV


The heat had been painfully oppressive all day, and it was now a
close and sultry night.

My mother and sister had spoken so many last words, and had begged
me to wait another five minutes so many times, that it was nearly
midnight when the servant locked the garden-gate behind me.  I
walked forward a few paces on the shortest way back to London,
then stopped and hesitated.

The moon was full and broad in the dark blue starless sky, and the
broken ground of the heath looked wild enough in the mysterious
light to be hundreds of miles away from the great city that lay
beneath it.  The idea of descending any sooner than I could help
into the heat and gloom of London repelled me.  The prospect of
going to bed in my airless chambers, and the prospect of gradual
suffocation, seemed, in my present restless frame of mind and
body, to be one and the same thing.  I determined to stroll home
in the purer air by the most roundabout way I could take; to
follow the white winding paths across the lonely heath; and to
approach London through its most open suburb by striking into the
Finchley Road, and so getting back, in the cool of the new
morning, by the western side of the Regent's Park.

I wound my way down slowly over the heath, enjoying the divine
stillness of the scene, and admiring the soft alternations of
light and shade as they followed each other over the broken ground
on every side of me.  So long as I was proceeding through this
first and prettiest part of my night walk my mind remained
passively open to the impressions produced by the view; and I
thought but little on any subject--indeed, so far as my own
sensations were concerned, I can hardly say that I thought at all.

But when I had left the heath and had turned into the by-road,
where there was less to see, the ideas naturally engendered by the
approaching change in my habits and occupations gradually drew
more and more of my attention exclusively to themselves.  By the
time I had arrived at the end of the road I had become completely
absorbed in my own fanciful visions of Limmeridge House, of Mr.
Fairlie, and of the two ladies whose practice in the art of water-
colour painting I was so soon to superintend.

I had now arrived at that particular point of my walk where four
roads met--the road to Hampstead, along which I had returned, the
road to Finchley, the road to West End, and the road back to
London.  I had mechanically turned in this latter direction, and
was strolling along the lonely high-road--idly wondering, I
remember, what the Cumberland young ladies would look like--when,
in one moment, every drop of blood in my body was brought to a
stop by the touch of a hand laid lightly and suddenly on my
shoulder from behind me.

I turned on the instant, with my fingers tightening round the
handle of my stick.

There, in the middle of the broad bright high-road--there, as if
it had that moment sprung out of the earth or dropped from the
heaven--stood the figure of a solitary Woman, dressed from head to
foot in white garments, her face bent in grave inquiry on mine,
her hand pointing to the dark cloud over London, as I faced her.

I was far too seriously startled by the suddenness with which this
extraordinary apparition stood before me, in the dead of night and
in that lonely place, to ask what she wanted.  The strange woman
spoke first.

"Is that the road to London?" she said.

I looked attentively at her, as she put that singular question to
me.  It was then nearly one o'clock.  All I could discern
distinctly by the moonlight was a colourless, youthful face,
meagre and sharp to look at about the cheeks and chin; large,
grave, wistfully attentive eyes; nervous, uncertain lips; and
light hair of a pale, brownish-yellow hue.  There was nothing
wild, nothing immodest in her manner: it was quiet and self-
controlled, a little melancholy and a little touched by suspicion;
not exactly the manner of a lady, and, at the same time, not the
manner of a woman in the humblest rank of life.  The voice, little
as I had yet heard of it, had something curiously still and
mechanical in its tones, and the utterance was remarkably rapid. 
She held a small bag in her hand: and her dress--bonnet, shawl,
and gown all of white--was, so far as I could guess, certainly not
composed of very delicate or very expensive materials.  Her figure
was slight, and rather above the average height--her gait and
actions free from the slightest approach to extravagance.  This
was all that I could observe of her in the dim light and under the
perplexingly strange circumstances of our meeting.  What sort of a
woman she was, and how she came to be out alone in the high-road,
an hour after midnight, I altogether failed to guess.  The one
thing of which I felt certain was, that the grossest of mankind
could not have misconstrued her motive in speaking, even at that
suspiciously late hour and in that suspiciously lonely place.

"Did you hear me?" she said, still quietly and rapidly, and
without the least fretfulness or impatience.  "I asked if that was
the way to London."

"Yes," I replied, "that is the way: it leads to St. John's Wood
and the Regent's Park.  You must excuse my not answering you
before.  I was rather startled by your sudden appearance in the
road; and I am, even now, quite unable to account for it."

"You don't suspect me of doing anything wrong, do you? have done
nothing wrong.  I have met with an accident--I am very unfortunate
in being here alone so late.  Why do you suspect me of doing
wrong?"

She spoke with unnecessary earnestness and agitation, and shrank
back from me several paces.  I did my best to reassure her.

"Pray don't suppose that I have any idea of suspecting you," I
said, "or any other wish than to be of assistance to you, if I
can.  I only wondered at your appearance in the road, because it
seemed to me to be empty the instant before I saw you."

She turned, and pointed back to a place at the junction of the
road to London and the road to Hampstead, where there was a gap in
the hedge.

"I heard you coming," she said, "and hid there to see what sort of
man you were, before I risked speaking.  I doubted and feared
about it till you passed; and then I was obliged to steal after
you, and touch you."

Steal after me and touch me? Why not call to me? Strange, to say
the least of it.

"May I trust you?" she asked.  "You don't think the worse of me
because I have met with an accident?" She stopped in confusion;
shifted her bag from one hand to the other; and sighed bitterly.

The loneliness and helplessness of the woman touched me.  The
natural impulse to assist her and to spare her got the better of
the judgment, the caution, the worldly tact, which an older,
wiser, and colder man might have summoned to help him in this
strange emergency.

"You may trust me for any harmless purpose," I said.  "If it
troubles you to explain your strange situation to me, don't think
of returning to the subject again.  I have no right to ask you for
any explanations.  Tell me how I can help you; and if I can, I
will."

"You are very kind, and I am very, very thankful to have met you."
The first touch of womanly tenderness that I had heard from her
trembled in her voice as she said the words; but no tears
glistened in those large, wistfully attentive eyes of hers, which
were still fixed on me.  "I have only been in London once before,"
she went on, more and more rapidly, "and I know nothing about that
side of it, yonder.  Can I get a fly, or a carriage of any kind?
Is it too late? I don't know.  If you could show me where to get a
fly--and if you will only promise not to interfere with me, and to
let me leave you, when and how I please--I have a friend in London
who will be glad to receive me--I want nothing else--will you
promise?"

She looked anxiously up and down the road; shifted her bag again
from one hand to the other; repeated the words, "Will you
promise?" and looked hard in my face, with a pleading fear and
confusion that it troubled me to see.

What could I do? Here was a stranger utterly and helplessly at my
mercy--and that stranger a forlorn woman.  No house was near; no
one was passing whom I could consult; and no earthly right existed
on my part to give me a power of control over her, even if I had
known how to exercise it.  I trace these lines, self-
distrustfully, with the shadows of after-events darkening the very
paper I write on; and still I say, what could I do?

What I did do, was to try and gain time by questioning her.  "Are
you sure that your friend in London will receive you at such a
late hour as this?" I said.

"Quite sure.  Only say you will let me leave you when and how I
please--only say you won't interfere with me.  Will you promise?"

As she repeated the words for the third time, she came close to me
and laid her hand, with a sudden gentle stealthiness, on my bosom--
a thin hand; a cold hand (when I removed it with mine) even on
that sultry night.  Remember that I was young; remember that the
hand which touched me was a woman's.

"Will you promise?"

"Yes."

One word! The little familiar word that is on everybody's lips,
every hour in the day.  Oh me! and I tremble, now, when I write
it.

We set our faces towards London, and walked on together in the
first still hour of the new day--I, and this woman, whose name,
whose character, whose story, whose objects in life, whose very
presence by my side, at that moment, were fathomless mysteries to
me.  It was like a dream.  Was I Walter Hartright? Was this the
well-known, uneventful road, where holiday people strolled on
Sundays? Had I really left, little more than an hour since, the
quiet, decent, conventionally domestic atmosphere of my mother's
cottage? I was too bewildered--too conscious also of a vague sense
of something like self-reproach--to speak to my strange companion
for some minutes.  It was her voice again that first broke the
silence between us.

"I want to ask you something," she said suddenly.  "Do you know
many people in London?"

"Yes, a great many."

"Many men of rank and title?" There was an unmistakable tone of
suspicion in the strange question.  I hesitated about answering
it.

"Some," I said, after a moment's silence.

"Many"--she came to a full stop, and looked me searchingly in the
face--"many men of the rank of Baronet?"

Too much astonished to reply, I questioned her in my turn.

"Why do you ask?"

"Because I hope, for my own sake, there is one Baronet that you
don't know."

"Will you tell me his name?"

"I can't--I daren't--I forget myself when I mention it." She spoke
loudly and almost fiercely, raised her clenched hand in the air,
and shook it passionately; then, on a sudden, controlled herself
again, and added, in tones lowered to a whisper "Tell me which of
them YOU know."

I could hardly refuse to humour her in such a trifle, and I
mentioned three names.  Two, the names of fathers of families
whose daughters I taught; one, the name of a bachelor who had once
taken me a cruise in his yacht, to make sketches for him.

"Ah! you DON'T know him," she said, with a sigh of relief.  "Are
you a man of rank and title yourself?"

"Far from it.  I am only a drawing-master."

As the reply passed my lips--a little bitterly, perhaps--she took
my arm with the abruptness which characterised all her actions.

"Not a man of rank and title," she repeated to herself.  "Thank
God! I may trust HIM."

I had hitherto contrived to master my curiosity out of
consideration for my companion; but it got the better of me now.

"I am afraid you have serious reason to complain of some man of
rank and title?" I said.  "I am afraid the baronet, whose name you
are unwilling to mention to me, has done you some grievous wrong?
Is he the cause of your being out here at this strange time of
night?"

"Don't ask me: don't make me talk of it," she answered.  "I'm not
fit now.  I have been cruelly used and cruelly wronged.  You will
be kinder than ever, if you will walk on fast, and not speak to
me.  I sadly want to quiet myself, if I can."

We moved forward again at a quick pace; and for half an hour, at
least, not a word passed on either side.  From time to time, being
forbidden to make any more inquiries, I stole a look at her face. 
It was always the same; the lips close shut, the brow frowning,
the eyes looking straight forward, eagerly and yet absently.  We
had reached the first houses, and were close on the new Wesleyan
college, before her set features relaxed and she spoke once more.

"Do you live in London?" she said.

"Yes." As I answered, it struck me that she might have formed some
intention of appealing to me for assistance or advice, and that I
ought to spare her a possible disappointment by warning her of my
approaching absence from home.  So I added, "But to-morrow I shall
be away from London for some time.  I am going into the country."

"Where?" she asked.  "North or south?"

"North--to Cumberland."

"Cumberland!" she repeated the word tenderly.  "Ah! wish I was
going there too.  I was once happy in Cumberland."

I tried again to lift the veil that hung between this woman and
me.

"Perhaps you were born," I said, "in the beautiful Lake country."

"No," she answered.  "I was born in Hampshire; but I once went to
school for a little while in Cumberland.  Lakes? I don't remember
any lakes.  It's Limmeridge village, and Limmeridge House, I
should like to see again."

It was my turn now to stop suddenly.  In the excited state of my
curiosity, at that moment, the chance reference to Mr. Fairlie's
place of residence, on the lips of my strange companion, staggered
me with astonishment.

"Did you hear anybody calling after us?" she asked, looking up and
down the road affrightedly, the instant I stopped.

"No, no.  I was only struck by the name of Limmeridge House.  I
heard it mentioned by some Cumberland people a few days since."

"Ah! not my people.  Mrs. Fairlie is dead; and her husband is
dead; and their little girl may be married and gone away by this
time.  I can't say who lives at Limmeridge now.  If any more are
left there of that name, I only know I love them for Mrs.
Fairlie's sake."

She seemed about to say more; but while she was speaking, we came
within view of the turnpike, at the top of the Avenue Road.  Her
hand tightened round my arm, and she looked anxiously at the gate
before us.

"Is the turnpike man looking out?" she asked.

He was not looking out; no one else was near the place when we
passed through the gate.  The sight of the gas-lamps and houses
seemed to agitate her, and to make her impatient.

"This is London," she said.  "Do you see any carriage I can get? I
am tired and frightened.  I want to shut myself in and be driven
away."

I explained to her that we must walk a little further to get to a
cab-stand, unless we were fortunate enough to meet with an empty
vehicle; and then tried to resume the subject of Cumberland.  It
was useless.  That idea of shutting herself in, and being driven
away, had now got full possession of her mind.  She could think
and talk of nothing else.

We had hardly proceeded a third of the way down the Avenue Road
when I saw a cab draw up at a house a few doors below us, on the
opposite side of the way.  A gentleman got out and let himself in
at the garden door.  I hailed the cab, as the driver mounted the
box again.  When we crossed the road, my companion's impatience
increased to such an extent that she almost forced me to run.

"It's so late," she said.  "I am only in a hurry because it's so
late."

"I can't take you, sir, if you're not going towards Tottenham
Court Road," said the driver civilly, when I opened the cab door. 
"My horse is dead beat, and I can't get him no further than the
stable."

"Yes, yes.  That will do for me.  I'm going that way--I'm going
that way." She spoke with breathless eagerness, and pressed by me
into the cab.

I had assured myself that the man was sober as well as civil
before I let her enter the vehicle.  And now, when she was seated
inside, I entreated her to let me see her set down safely at her
destination.

"No, no, no," she said vehemently.  "I'm quite safe, and quite
happy now.  If you are a gentleman, remember your promise.  Let
him drive on till I stop him.  Thank you--oh! thank you, thank
you!"

My hand was on the cab door.  She caught it in hers, kissed it,
and pushed it away.  The cab drove off at the same moment--I
started into the road, with some vague idea of stopping it again,
I hardly knew why--hesitated from dread of frightening and
distressing her--called, at last, but not loudly enough to attract
the driver's attention.  The sound of the wheels grew fainter in
the distance--the cab melted into the black shadows on the road--
the woman in white was gone.



Ten minutes or more had passed.  I was still on the same side of
the way; now mechanically walking forward a few paces; now
stopping again absently.  At one moment I found myself doubting
the reality of my own adventure; at another I was perplexed and
distressed by an uneasy sense of having done wrong, which yet left
me confusedly ignorant of how I could have done right.  I hardly
knew where I was going, or what I meant to do next; I was
conscious of nothing but the confusion of my own thoughts, when I
was abruptly recalled to myself--awakened, I might almost say--by
the sound of rapidly approaching wheels close behind me.

I was on the dark side of the road, in the thick shadow of some
garden trees, when I stopped to look round.  On the opposite and
lighter side of the way, a short distance below me, a policeman
was strolling along in the direction of the Regent's Park.

The carriage passed me--an open chaise driven by two men.

"Stop!" cried one.  "There's a policeman.  Let's ask him."

The horse was instantly pulled up, a few yards beyond the dark
place where I stood.

"Policeman!" cried the first speaker.  "Have you seen a woman pass
this way?"

"What sort of woman, sir?"

"A woman in a lavender-coloured gown----"

"No, no," interposed the second man.  "The clothes we gave her
were found on her bed.  She must have gone away in the clothes she
wore when she came to us.  In white, policeman.  A woman in
white."

"I haven't seen her, sir."

"If you or any of your men meet with the woman, stop her, and send
her in careful keeping to that address.  I'll pay all expenses,
and a fair reward into the bargain."

The policeman looked at the card that was handed down to him.

"Why are we to stop her, sir? What has she done?"

"Done! She has escaped from my Asylum.  Don't forget; a woman in
white.  Drive on."



V


"She has escaped from my Asylum!"

I cannot say with truth that the terrible inference which those
words suggested flashed upon me like a new revelation.  Some of
the strange questions put to me by the woman in white, after my
ill-considered promise to leave her free to act as she pleased,
had suggested the conclusion either that she was naturally flighty
and unsettled, or that some recent shock of terror had disturbed
the balance of her faculties.  But the idea of absolute insanity
which we all associate with the very name of an Asylum, had, I can
honestly declare, never occurred to me, in connection with her.  I
had seen nothing, in her language or her actions, to justify it at
the time; and even with the new light thrown on her by the words
which the stranger had addressed to the policeman, I could see
nothing to justify it now.

What had I done? Assisted the victim of the most horrible of all
false imprisonments to escape; or cast loose on the wide world of
London an unfortunate creature, whose actions it was my duty, and
every man's duty, mercifully to control?  I turned sick at heart
when the question occurred to me, and when I felt self-
reproachfully that it was asked too late.

In the disturbed state of my mind, it was useless to think of
going to bed, when I at last got back to my chambers in Clement's
Inn.  Before many hours elapsed it would be necessary to start on
my journey to Cumberland.  I sat down and tried, first to sketch,
then to read--but the woman in white got between me and my pencil,
between me and my book.  Had the forlorn creature come to any
harm? That was my first thought, though I shrank selfishly from
confronting it.  Other thoughts followed, on which it was less
harrowing to dwell.  Where had she stopped the cab? What had
become of her now? Had she been traced and captured by the men in
the chaise? Or was she still capable of controlling her own
actions; and were we two following our widely parted roads towards
one point in the mysterious future, at which we were to meet once
more?

It was a relief when the hour came to lock my door, to bid
farewell to London pursuits, London pupils, and London friends,
and to be in movement again towards new interests and a new life. 
Even the bustle and confusion at the railway terminus, so
wearisome and bewildering at other times, roused me and did me
good.



My travelling instructions directed me to go to Carlisle, and then
to diverge by a branch railway which ran in the direction of the
coast.  As a misfortune to begin with, our engine broke down
between Lancaster and Carlisle.  The delay occasioned by this
accident caused me to be too late for the branch train, by which I
was to have gone on immediately.  I had to wait some hours; and
when a later train finally deposited me at the nearest station to
Limmeridge House, it was past ten, and the night was so dark that
I could hardly see my way to the pony-chaise which Mr. Fairlie had
ordered to be in waiting for me.

The driver was evidently discomposed by the lateness of my
arrival.  He was in that state of highly respectful sulkiness
which is peculiar to English servants.  We drove away slowly
through the darkness in perfect silence.  The roads were bad, and
the dense obscurity of the night increased the difficulty of
getting over the ground quickly.  It was, by my watch, nearly an
hour and a half from the time of our leaving the station before I
heard the sound of the sea in the distance, and the crunch of our
wheels on a smooth gravel drive.  We had passed one gate before 
entering the drive, and we passed another before we drew up at the
house.  I was received by a solemn man-servant out of livery, was
informed that the family had retired for the night, and was then
led into a large and lofty room where my supper was awaiting me,
in a forlorn manner, at one extremity of a lonesome mahogany
wilderness of dining-table.

I was too tired and out of spirits to eat or drink much,
especially with the solemn servant waiting on me as elaborately as
if a small dinner party had arrived at the house instead of a
solitary man.  In a quarter of an hour I was ready to be taken up
to my bedchamber.  The solemn servant conducted me into a prettily
furnished room--said, "Breakfast at nine o'clock, sir"--looked all
round him to see that everything was in its proper place, and
noiselessly withdrew.

"What shall I see in my dreams to-night?" I thought to myself, as
I put out the candle; "the woman in white? or the unknown
inhabitants of this Cumberland mansion?" It was a strange
sensation to be sleeping in the house, like a friend of the
family, and yet not to know one of the inmates, even by sight!



VI


When I rose the next morning and drew up my blind, the sea opened
before me joyously under the broad August sunlight, and the
distant coast of Scotland fringed the horizon with its lines of
melting blue.

The view was such a surprise, and such a change to me, after my
weary London experience of brick and mortar landscape, that I
seemed to burst into a new life and a new set of thoughts the
moment I looked at it.  A confused sensation of having suddenly
lost my familiarity with the past, without acquiring any
additional clearness of idea in reference to the present or the
future, took possession of my mind.  Circumstances that were but a
few days old faded back in my memory, as if they had happened
months and months since.  Pesca's quaint announcement of the means
by which he had procured me my present employment; the farewell
evening I had passed with my mother and sister; even my mysterious
adventure on the way home from Hampstead--had all become like
events which might have occurred at some former epoch of my
existence.  Although the woman in white was still in my mind, the
image of her seemed to have grown dull and faint already.

A little before nine o'clock, I descended to the ground-floor of
the house.  The solemn man-servant of the night before met me
wandering among the passages, and compassionately showed me the
way to the breakfast-room.

My first glance round me, as the man opened the door, disclosed a
well-furnished breakfast-table, standing in the middle of a long
room, with many windows in it.  I looked from the table to the
window farthest from me, and saw a lady standing at it, with her
back turned towards me.  The instant my eyes rested on her, I was
struck by the rare beauty of her form, and by the unaffected grace
of her attitude.  Her figure was tall, yet not too tall; comely
and well-developed, yet not fat; her head set on her shoulders
with an easy, pliant firmness; her waist, perfection in the eyes
of a man, for it occupied its natural place, it filled out its
natural circle, it was visibly and delightfully undeformed by
stays.  She had not heard my entrance into the room; and I allowed
myself the luxury of admiring her for a few moments, before I
moved one of the chairs near me, as the least embarrassing means
of attracting her attention.  She turned towards me immediately. 
The easy elegance of every movement of her limbs and body as soon
as she began to advance from the far end of the room, set me in a
flutter of expectation to see her face clearly.  She left the
window--and I said to myself, The lady is dark.  She moved forward
a few steps--and I said to myself, The lady is young.  She
approached nearer--and I said to myself (with a sense of surprise
which words fail me to express), The lady is ugly!

Never was the old conventional maxim, that Nature cannot err, more
flatly contradicted--never was the fair promise of a lovely figure
more strangely and startlingly belied by the face and head that
crowned it.  The lady's complexion was almost swarthy, and the
dark down on her upper lip was almost a moustache.  She had a
large, firm, masculine mouth and jaw; prominent, piercing,
resolute brown eyes; and thick, coal-black hair, growing unusually
low down on her forehead.  Her expression--bright, frank, and
intelligent--appeared, while she was silent, to be altogether
wanting in those feminine attractions of gentleness and
pliability, without which the beauty of the handsomest woman alive
is beauty incomplete.  To see such a face as this set on shoulders
that a sculptor would have longed to model--to be charmed by the
modest graces of action through which the symmetrical limbs
betrayed their beauty when they moved, and then to be almost
repelled by the masculine form and masculine look of the features
in which the perfectly shaped figure ended--was to feel a
sensation oddly akin to the helpless discomfort familiar to us all
in sleep, when we recognise yet cannot reconcile the anomalies and
contradictions of a dream.

"Mr. Hartright?" said the lady interrogatively, her dark face
lighting up with a smile, and softening and growing womanly the
moment she began to speak.  "We resigned all hope of you last
night, and went to bed as usual.  Accept my apologies for our
apparent want of attention; and allow me to introduce myself as
one of your pupils.  Shall we shake hands? I suppose we must come
to it sooner or later--and why not sooner?"

These odd words of welcome were spoken in a clear, ringing,
pleasant voice.  The offered hand--rather large, but beautifully
formed--was given to me with the easy, unaffected self-reliance of
a highly-bred woman.  We sat down together at the breakfast-table
in as cordial and customary a manner as if we had known each other
for years, and had met at Limmeridge House to talk over old times
by previous appointment.

"I hope you come here good-humouredly determined to make the best
of your position," continued the lady.  "You will have to begin
this morning by putting up with no other company at breakfast than
mine.  My sister is in her own room, nursing that essentially
feminine malady, a slight headache; and her old governness, Mrs.
Vesey, is charitably attending on her with restorative tea.  My
uncle, Mr. Fairlie, never joins us at any of our meals: he is an
invalid, and keeps bachelor state in his own apartments.  There is
nobody else in the house but me.  Two young ladies have been
staying here, but they went away yesterday, in despair; and no
wonder.  All through their visit (in consequence of Mr. Fairlie's
invalid condition) we produced no such convenience in the house as
a flirtable, danceable, small-talkable creature of the male sex;
and the consequence was, we did nothing but quarrel, especially at
dinner-time.  How can you expect four women to dine together alone
every day, and not quarrel? We are such fools, we can't entertain
each other at table.  You see I don't think much of my own sex,
Mr. Hartright--which will you have, tea or coffee?--no woman does
think much of her own sex, although few of them confess it as
freely as I do.  Dear me, you look puzzled.  Why? Are you
wondering what you will have for breakfast? or are you surprised
at my careless way of talking? In the first case, I advise you, as
a friend, to have nothing to do with that cold ham at your elbow,
and to wait till the omelette comes in.  In the second case, I
will give you some tea to compose your spirits, and do all a woman
can (which is very little, by-the-bye) to hold my tongue."

She handed me my cup of tea, laughing gaily.  Her light flow of
talk, and her lively familiarity of manner with a total stranger,
were accompanied by an unaffected naturalness and an easy inborn
confidence in herself and her position, which would have secured
her the respect of the most audacious man breathing.  While it was
impossible to be formal and reserved in her company, it was more
than impossible to take the faintest vestige of a liberty with
her, even in thought.  I felt this instinctively, even while I
caught the infection of her own bright gaiety of spirits--even
while I did my best to answer her in her own frank, lively way.

"Yes, yes," she said, when I had suggested the only explanation I
could offer, to account for my perplexed looks, "I understand. 
You are such a perfect stranger in the house, that you are puzzled
by my familiar references to the worthy inhabitants.  Natural
enough: I ought to have thought of it before.  At any rate, I can
set it right now.  Suppose I begin with myself, so as to get done
with that part of the subject as soon as possible? My name is
Marian Halcombe; and I am as inaccurate as women usually are, in
calling Mr. Fairlie my uncle, and Miss Fairlie my sister.  My
mother was twice married: the first time to Mr. Halcombe, my
father; the second time to Mr. Fairlie, my half-sister's father. 
Except that we are both orphans, we are in every respect as unlike
each other as possible.  My father was a poor man, and Miss
Fairlie's father was a rich man.  I have got nothing, and she has
a fortune.  I am dark and ugly, and she is fair and pretty. 
Everybody thinks me crabbed and odd (with perfect justice); and
everybody thinks her sweet-tempered and charming (with more
justice still).  In short, she is an angel; and I am----  Try
some of that marmalade, Mr. Hartright, and finish the sentence, in
the name of female propriety, for yourself.  What am I to tell you
about Mr. Fairlie? Upon my honour, I hardly know.  He is sure to
send for you after breakfast, and you can study him for yourself. 
In the meantime, I may inform you, first, that he is the late Mr.
Fairlie's younger brother; secondly, that he is a single man; and
thirdly, that he is Miss Fairlie's guardian.  I won't live without
her, and she can't live without me; and that is how I come to be
at Limmeridge House.  My sister and I are honestly fond of each
other; which, you will say, is perfectly unaccountable, under the
circumstances, and I quite agree with you--but so it is.  You must
please both of us, Mr. Hartright, or please neither of us: and,
what is still more trying, you will be thrown entirely upon our
society.  Mrs. Vesey is an excellent person, who possesses all the
cardinal virtues, and counts for nothing; and Mr. Fairlie is too
great an invalid to be a companion for anybody.  I don't know what
is the matter with him, and the doctors don't know what is the
matter with him, and he doesn't know himself what is the matter
with him.  We all say it's on the nerves, and we none of us know
what we mean when we say it.  However, I advise you to humour his
little peculiarities, when you see him to-day.  Admire his
collection of coins, prints, and water-colour drawings, and you
will win his heart.  Upon my word, if you can be contented with a
quiet country life, I don't see why you should not get on very
well here.  From breakfast to lunch, Mr. Fairlie's drawings will
occupy you.  After lunch, Miss Fairlie and I shoulder our sketch-
books, and go out to misrepresent Nature, under your directions. 
Drawing is her favourite whim, mind, not mine.  Women can't draw--
their minds are too flighty, and their eyes are too inattentive. 
No matter--my sister likes it; so I waste paint and spoil paper,
for her sake, as composedly as any woman in England.  As for the
evenings, I think we can help you through them.  Miss Fairlie
plays delightfully.  For my own poor part, I don't know one note
of music from the other; but I can match you at chess, backgammon,
ecarte, and (with the inevitable female drawbacks) even at
billiards as well.  What do you think of the programme? Can you
reconcile yourself to our quiet, regular life? or do you mean to
be restless, and secretly thirst for change and adventure, in the
humdrum atmosphere of Limmeridge House?"

She had run on thus far, in her gracefully bantering way, with no
other interruptions on my part than the unimportant replies which
politeness required of me.  The turn of the expression, however,
in her last question, or rather the one chance word, "adventure,"
lightly as it fell from her lips, recalled my thoughts to my
meeting with the woman in white, and urged me to discover the
connection which the stranger's own reference to Mrs. Fairlie
informed me must once have existed between the nameless fugitive
from the Asylum, and the former mistress of Limmeridge House.

"Even if I were the most restless of mankind," I said, "I should
be in no danger of thirsting after adventures for some time to
come.  The very night before I arrived at this house, I met with
an adventure; and the wonder and excitement of it, I can assure
you, Miss Halcombe, will last me for the whole term of my stay in
Cumberland, if not for a much longer period."

"You don't say so, Mr. Hartright! May I hear it?"

"You have a claim to hear it.  The chief person in the adventure
was a total stranger to me, and may perhaps be a total stranger to
you; but she certainly mentioned the name of the late Mrs. Fairlie
in terms of the sincerest gratitude and regard."

"Mentioned my mother's name! You interest me indescribably.  Pray
go on."

I at once related the circumstances under which I had met the
woman in white, exactly as they had occurred; and I repeated what
she had said to me about Mrs. Fairlie and Limmeridge House, word
for word.

Miss Halcombe's bright resolute eyes looked eagerly into mine,
from the beginning of the narrative to the end.  Her face
expressed vivid interest and astonishment, but nothing more.  She
was evidently as far from knowing of any clue to the mystery as I
was myself.

"Are you quite sure of those words referring to my mother?" she
asked.

"Quite sure," I replied.  "Whoever she may be, the woman was once
at school in the village of Limmeridge, was treated with especial
kindness by Mrs. Fairlie, and, in grateful remembrance of that
kindness, feels an affectionate interest in all surviving members
of the family.  She knew that Mrs. Fairlie and her husband were
both dead; and she spoke of Miss Fairlie as if they had known each
other when they were children."

"You said, I think, that she denied belonging to this place?"

"Yes, she told me she came from Hampshire."

"And you entirely failed to find out her name?"

"Entirely."

"Very strange.  I think you were quite justified, Mr. Hartright,
in giving the poor creature her liberty, for she seems to have
done nothing in your presence to show herself unfit to enjoy it. 
But I wish you had been a little more resolute about finding out
her name.  We must really clear up this mystery, in some way.  You
had better not speak of it yet to Mr. Fairlie, or to my sister. 
They are both of them, I am certain, quite as ignorant of who the
woman is, and of what her past history in connection with us can
be, as I am myself.  But they are also, in widely different ways,
rather nervous and sensitive; and you would only fidget one and
alarm the other to no purpose.  As for myself, I am all aflame
with curiosity, and I devote my whole energies to the business of
discovery from this moment.  When my mother came here, after her
second marriage, she certainly established the village school just
as it exists at the present time.  But the old teachers are all
dead, or gone elsewhere; and no enlightenment is to be hoped for
from that quarter.  The only other alternative I can think of----"

At this point we were interrupted by the entrance of the servant,
with a message from Mr. Fairlie, intimating that he would be glad
to see me, as soon as I had done breakfast.

"Wait in the hall," said Miss Halcombe, answering the servant for
me, in her quick, ready way.  "Mr. Hartright will come out
directly.  I was about to say," she went on, addressing me again,
"that my sister and I have a large collection of my mother's
letters, addressed to my father and to hers.  In the absence of
any other means of getting information, I will pass the morning in
looking over my mother's correspondence with Mr. Fairlie.  He was
fond of London, and was constantly away from his country home; and
she was accustomed, at such times, to write and report to him how
things went on at Limmeridge.  Her letters are full of references
to the school in which she took so strong an interest; and I think
it more than likely that I may have discovered something when we
meet again.  The luncheon hour is two, Mr. Hartright.  I shall
have the pleasure of introducing you to my sister by that time,
and we will occupy the afternoon in driving round the
neighbourhood and showing you all our pet points of view.  Till
two o'clock, then, farewell."

She nodded to me with the lively grace, the delightful refinement
of familiarity, which characterised all that she did and all that
she said; and disappeared by a door at the lower end of the room. 
As soon as she had left me, I turned my steps towards the hall,
and followed the servant, on my way, for the first time, to the
presence of Mr. Fairlie.



VII


My conductor led me upstairs into a passage which took us back to
the bedchamber in which I had slept during the past night; and
opening the door next to it, begged me to look in.

"I have my master's orders to show you your own sitting-room,
sir," said the man, "and to inquire if you approve of the
situation and the light."

I must have been hard to please, indeed, if I had not approved of
the room, and of everything about it.  The bow-window looked out
on the same lovely view which I had admired, in the morning, from
my bedroom.  The furniture was the perfection of luxury and
beauty; the table in the centre was bright with gaily bound books,
elegant conveniences for writing, and beautiful flowers; the
second table, near the window, was covered with all the necessary
materials for mounting water-colour drawings, and had a little
easel attached to it, which I could expand or fold up at will; the
walls were hung with gaily tinted chintz; and the floor was spread
with Indian matting in maize-colour and red.  It was the prettiest
and most luxurious little sitting-room I had ever seen; and I
admired it with the warmest enthusiasm.

The solemn servant was far too highly trained to betray the
slightest satisfaction.  He bowed with icy deference when my terms
of eulogy were all exhausted, and silently opened the door for me
to go out into the passage again.

We turned a corner, and entered a long second passage, ascended a
short flight of stairs at the end, crossed a small circular upper
hall, and stopped in front of a door covered with dark baize.  The
servant opened this door, and led me on a few yards to a second;
opened that also, and disclosed two curtains of pale sea-green
silk hanging before us; raised one of them noiselessly; softly
uttered the words, "Mr. Hartright," and left me.

I found myself in a large, lofty room, with a magnificent carved
ceiling, and with a carpet over the floor, so thick and soft that
it felt like piles of velvet under my feet.  One side of the room
was occupied by a long bookcase of some rare inlaid wood that was
quite new to me.  It was not more than six feet high, and the top
was adorned with statuettes in marble, ranged at regular distances
one from the other.  On the opposite side stood two antique
cabinets; and between them, and above them, hung a picture of the
Virgin and Child, protected by glass, and bearing Raphael's name
on the gilt tablet at the bottom of the frame.  On my right hand
and on my left, as I stood inside the door, were chiffoniers and
little stands in buhl and marquetterie, loaded with figures in
Dresden china, with rare vases, ivory ornaments, and toys and
curiosities that sparkled at all points with gold, silver, and
precious stones.  At the lower end of the room, opposite to me,
the windows were concealed and the sunlight was tempered by large
blinds of the same pale sea-green colour as the curtains over the
door.  The light thus produced was deliciously soft, mysterious,
and subdued; it fell equally upon all the objects in the room; it
helped to intensify the deep silence, and the air of profound
seclusion that possessed the place; and it surrounded, with an
appropriate halo of repose, the solitary figure of the master of
the house, leaning back, listlessly composed, in a large easy-
chair, with a reading-easel fastened on one of its arms, and a
little table on the other.

If a man's personal appearance, when he is out of his dressing-
room, and when he has passed forty, can be accepted as a safe
guide to his time of life--which is more than doubtful--Mr.
Fairlie's age, when I saw him, might have been reasonably computed
at over fifty and under sixty years.  His beardless face was thin,
worn, and transparently pale, but not wrinkled; his nose was high
and hooked; his eyes were of a dim greyish blue, large, prominent,
and rather red round the rims of the eyelids; his hair was scanty,
soft to look at, and of that light sandy colour which is the last
to disclose its own changes towards grey.  He was dressed in a
dark frock-coat, of some substance much thinner than cloth, and in
waistcoat and trousers of spotless white.  His feet were
effeminately small, and were clad in buff-coloured silk stockings,
and little womanish bronze-leather slippers.  Two rings adorned
his white delicate hands, the value of which even my inexperienced
observation detected to be all but priceless.  Upon the whole, he
had a frail, languidly-fretful, over-refined look--something
singularly and unpleasantly delicate in its association with a
man, and, at the same time, something which could by no
possibility have looked natural and appropriate if it had been
transferred to the personal appearance of a woman.  My morning's
experience of Miss Halcombe had predisposed me to be pleased with
everybody in the house; but my sympathies shut themselves up
resolutely at the first sight of Mr. Fairlie.

On approaching nearer to him, I discovered that he was not so
entirely without occupation as I had at first supposed.  Placed
amid the other rare and beautiful objects on a large round table
near him, was a dwarf cabinet in ebony and silver, containing
coins of all shapes and sizes, set out in little drawers lined
with dark purple velvet.  One of these drawers lay on the small
table attached to his chair; and near it were some tiny jeweller's
brushes, a wash-leather "stump," and a little bottle of liquid,
all waiting to be used in various ways for the removal of any
accidental impurities which might be discovered on the coins.  His
frail white fingers were listlessly toying with something which
looked, to my uninstructed eyes, like a dirty pewter medal with
ragged edges, when I advanced within a respectful distance of his
chair, and stopped to make my bow.

"So glad to possess you at Limmeridge, Mr. Hartright," he said in
a querulous, croaking voice, which combined, in anything but an
agreeable manner, a discordantly high tone with a drowsily languid
utterance.  "Pray sit down.  And don't trouble yourself to move
the chair, please.  In the wretched state of my nerves, movement
of any kind is exquisitely painful to me.  Have you seen your
studio? Will it do?"

"I have just come from seeing the room, Mr. Fairlie; and I assure
you----"

He stopped me in the middle of the sentence, by closing his eyes,
and holding up one of his white hands imploringly.  I paused in
astonishment; and the croaking voice honoured me with this
explanation--

"Pray excuse me.  But could you contrive to speak in a lower key?
In the wretched state of my nerves, loud sound of any kind is
indescribable torture to me.  You will pardon an invalid? I only
say to you what the lamentable state of my health obliges me to
say to everybody.  Yes.  And you really like the room?"

"I could wish for nothing prettier and nothing more comfortable,"
I answered, dropping my voice, and beginning to discover already
that Mr. Fairlie's selfish affectation and Mr. Fairlie's wretched
nerves meant one and the same thing.

"So glad.  You will find your position here, Mr. Hartright,
properly recognised.  There is none of the horrid English
barbarity of feeling about the social position of an artist in
this house.  So much of my early life has been passed abroad, that
I have quite cast my insular skin in that respect.  I wish I could
say the same of the gentry--detestable word, but I suppose I must
use it--of the gentry in the neighbourhood. They are sad Goths in
Art, Mr. Hartright.  People, I do assure you, who would have
opened their eyes in astonishment, if they had seen Charles the
Fifth pick up Titian's brush for him.  Do you mind putting this
tray of coins back in the cabinet, and giving me the next one to
it? In the wretched state of my nerves, exertion of any kind is
unspeakably disagreeable to me.  Yes.  Thank you."

As a practical commentary on the liberal social theory which he
had just favoured me by illustrating, Mr. Fairlie's cool request
rather amused me.  I put back one drawer and gave him the other,
with all possible politeness.  He began trifling with the new set
of coins and the little brushes immediately; languidly looking at
them and admiring them all the time he was speaking to me.

"A thousand thanks and a thousand excuses.  Do you like coins?
Yes.  So glad we have another taste in common besides our taste
for Art.  Now, about the pecuniary arrangements between us--do
tell me--are they satisfactory?"

"Most satisfactory, Mr. Fairlie."

"So glad.  And--what next? Ah! I remember.  Yes.  In reference to
the consideration which you are good enough to accept for giving
me the benefit of your accomplishments in art, my steward will
wait on you at the end of the first week, to ascertain your
wishes.  And--what next? Curious, is it not? I had a great deal
more to say: and I appear to have quite forgotten it.  Do you mind
touching the bell? In that corner.  Yes.  Thank you."

I rang; and a new servant noiselessly made his appearance--a
foreigner, with a set smile and perfectly brushed hair--a valet
every inch of him.

"Louis," said Mr. Fairlie, dreamily dusting the tips of his
fingers with one of the tiny brushes for the coins, "I made some
entries in my tablettes this morning.  Find my tablettes.  A
thousand pardons, Mr. Hartright, I'm afraid I bore you."

As he wearily closed his eyes again, before I could answer, and as
he did most assuredly bore me, I sat silent, and looked up at the
Madonna and Child by Raphael.  In the meantime, the valet left the
room, and returned shortly with a little ivory book.  Mr. Fairlie,
after first relieving himself by a gentle sigh, let the book drop
open with one hand, and held up the tiny brush with the other, as
a sign to the servant to wait for further orders.

"Yes.  Just so!" said Mr. Fairlie, consulting the tablettes.
"Louis, take down that portfolio." He pointed, as he spoke, to
several portfolios placed near the window, on mahogany stands. 
"No.  Not the one with the green back--that contains my Rembrandt
etchings, Mr. Hartright.  Do you like etchings? Yes? So glad we
have another taste in common.  The portfolio with the red back,
Louis.  Don't drop it! You have no idea of the tortures I should
suffer, Mr. Hartright, if Louis dropped that portfolio.  Is it
safe on the chair? Do YOU think it safe, Mr. Hartright? Yes? So
glad.  Will you oblige me by looking at the drawings, if you
really think they are quite safe.  Louis, go away.  What an ass
you are.  Don't you see me holding the tablettes? Do you suppose I
want to hold them? Then why not relieve me of the tablettes
without being told? A thousand pardons, Mr. Hartright; servants
are such asses, are they not? Do tell me--what do you think of the
drawings? They have come from a sale in a shocking state--I
thought they smelt of horrid dealers' and brokers' fingers when I
looked at them last.  CAN you undertake them?"

Although my nerves were not delicate enough to detect the odour of
plebeian fingers which had offended Mr. Fairlie's nostrils, my
taste was sufficiently educated to enable me to appreciate the
value of the drawings, while I turned them over.  They were, for
the most part, really fine specimens of English water-colour art;
and they had deserved much better treatment at the hands of their
former possessor than they appeared to have received.

"The drawings," I answered, "require careful straining and
mounting; and, in my opinion, they are well worth----"

"I beg your pardon," interposed Mr. Fairlie.  "Do you mind my
closing my eyes while you speak? Even this light is too much for
them.  Yes?"

"I was about to say that the drawings are well worth all the time
and trouble----"

Mr. Fairlie suddenly opened his eyes again, and rolled them with
an expression of helpless alarm in the direction of the window.

"I entreat you to excuse me, Mr. Hartright," he said in a feeble
flutter.  "But surely I hear some horrid children in the garden--
my private garden--below?"

"I can't say, Mr. Fairlie.  I heard nothing myself."

"Oblige me--you have been so very good in humouring my poor
nerves--oblige me by lifting up a corner of the blind.  Don't let
the sun in on me, Mr. Hartright! Have you got the blind up? Yes?
Then will you be so very kind as to look into the garden and make
quite sure?"

I complied with this new request.  The garden was carefully walled
in, all round.  Not a human creature, large or small, appeared in
any part of the sacred seclusion.  I reported that gratifying fact
to Mr. Fairlie.

"A thousand thanks.  My fancy, I suppose.  There are no children,
thank Heaven, in the house; but the servants (persons born without
nerves) will encourage the children from the village.  Such brats--
oh, dear me, such brats! Shall I confess it, Mr. Hartright?--I
sadly want a reform in the construction of children.  Nature's
only idea seems to be to make them machines for the production of
incessant noise.  Surely our delightful Raffaello's conception is
infinitely preferable?"

He pointed to the picture of the Madonna, the upper part of which
represented the conventional cherubs of Italian Art, celestially
provided with sitting accommodation for their chins, on balloons
of buff-coloured cloud.

"Quite a model family!" said Mr. Fairlie, leering at the cherubs. 
"Such nice round faces, and such nice soft wings, and--nothing
else.  No dirty little legs to run about on, and no noisy little
lungs to scream with.  How immeasurably superior to the existing
construction! I will close my eyes again, if you will allow me. 
And you really can manage the drawings? So glad.  Is there
anything else to settle? if there is, I think I have forgotten it. 
Shall we ring for Louis again?"

Being, by this time, quite as anxious, on my side, as Mr. Fairlie
evidently was on his, to bring the interview to a speedy
conclusion, I thought I would try to render the summoning of the
servant unnecessary, by offering the requisite suggestion on my
own responsibility.

"The only point, Mr. Fairlie, that remains to be discussed," I
said, "refers, I think, to the instruction in sketching which I am
engaged to communicate to the two young ladies."

"Ah! just so," said Mr. Fairlie.  "I wish I felt strong enough to
go into that part of the arrangement--but I don't.  The ladies who
profit by your kind services, Mr. Hartright, must settle, and
decide, and so on, for themselves.  My niece is fond of your
charming art.  She knows just enough about it to be conscious of
her own sad defects.  Please take pains with her.  Yes.  Is there
anything else? No.  We quite understand each other--don't we? I
have no right to detain you any longer from your delightful
pursuit--have I? So pleasant to have settled everything--such a
sensible relief to have done business.  Do you mind ringing for
Louis to carry the portfolio to your own room?"

"I will carry it there myself, Mr. Fairlie, if you will allow me."

"Will you really? Are you strong enough? How nice to be so strong!
Are you sure you won't drop it? So glad to possess you at
Limmeridge, Mr. Hartright.  I am such a sufferer that I hardly
dare hope to enjoy much of your society.  Would you mind taking
great pains not to let the doors bang, and not to drop the
portfolio? Thank you.  Gently with the curtains, please--the
slightest noise from them goes through me like a knife.  Yes. GOOD
morning!"

When the sea-green curtains were closed, and when the two baize
doors were shut behind me, I stopped for a moment in the little
circular hall beyond, and drew a long, luxurious breath of relief. 
It was like coming to the surface of the water after deep diving,
to find myself once more on the outside of Mr. Fairlie's room.

As soon as I was comfortably established for the morning in my
pretty little studio, the first resolution at which I arrived was
to turn my steps no more in the direction of the apartments
occupied by the master of the house, except in the very improbable
event of his honouring me with a special invitation to pay him
another visit.  Having settled this satisfactory plan of future
conduct in reference to Mr. Fairlie, I soon recovered the serenity
of temper of which my employer's haughty familiarity and impudent
politeness had, for the moment, deprived me.  The remaining hours
of the morning passed away pleasantly enough, in looking over the
drawings, arranging them in sets, trimming their ragged edges, and
accomplishing the other necessary preparations in anticipation of
the business of mounting them.  I ought, perhaps, to have made
more progress than this; but, as the luncheon-time drew near, I
grew restless and unsettled, and felt unable to fix my attention
on work, even though that work was only of the humble manual kind.

At two o'clock I descended again to the breakfast-room, a little
anxiously.  Expectations of some interest were connected with my
approaching reappearance in that part of the house.  My
introduction to Miss Fairlie was now close at hand; and, if Miss
Halcombe's search through her mother's letters had produced the
result which she anticipated, the time had come for clearing up
the mystery of the woman in white.



VIII


When I entered the room, I found Miss Halcombe and an elderly lady
seated at the luncheon-table.

The elderly lady, when I was presented to her, proved to be Miss
Fairlie's former governess, Mrs. Vesey, who had been briefly
described to me by my lively companion at the breakfast-table, as
possessed of "all the cardinal virtues, and counting for nothing."
I can do little more than offer my humble testimony to the
truthfulness of Miss Halcombe's sketch of the old lady's
character.  Mrs. Vesey looked the personification of human
composure and female amiability.  A calm enjoyment of a calm
existence beamed in drowsy smiles on her plump, placid face.  Some
of us rush through life, and some of us saunter through life. 
Mrs. Vesey SAT through life.  Sat in the house, early and late;
sat in the garden; sat in unexpected window-seats in passages; sat
(on a camp-stool) when her friends tried to take her out walking;
sat before she looked at anything, before she talked of anything,
before she answered Yes, or No, to the commonest question--always
with the same serene smile on her lips, the same vacantly-
attentive turn of the head, the same snugly-comfortable position
of her hands and arms, under every possible change of domestic
circumstances.  A mild, a compliant, an unutterably tranquil and
harmless old lady, who never by any chance suggested the idea that
she had been actually alive since the hour of her birth.  Nature
has so much to do in this world, and is engaged in generating such
a vast variety of co-existent productions, that she must surely be
now and then too flurried and confused to distinguish between the
different processes that she is carrying on at the same time. 
Starting from this point of view, it will always remain my private
persuasion that Nature was absorbed in making cabbages when Mrs.
Vesey was born, and that the good lady suffered the consequences
of a vegetable preoccupation in the mind of the Mother of us all.

"Now, Mrs. Vesey," said Miss Halcombe, looking brighter, sharper,
and readier than ever, by contrast with the undemonstrative old
lady at her side, "what will you have? A cutlet?"

Mrs. Vesey crossed her dimpled hands on the edge of the table,
smiled placidly, and said, "Yes, dear."

"What is that opposite Mr. Hartright? Boiled chicken, is it not? I
thought you liked boiled chicken better than cutlet, Mrs. Vesey?"

Mrs. Vesey took her dimpled hands off the edge of the table and
crossed them on her lap instead; nodded contemplatively at the
boiled chicken, and said, "Yes, dear."

"Well, but which will you have, to-day? Shall Mr. Hartright give
you some chicken? or shall I give you some cutlet?"

Mrs. Vesey put one of her dimpled hands back again on the edge of
the table; hesitated drowsily, and said, "Which you please, dear."

"Mercy on me! it's a question for your taste, my good lady, not
for mine.  Suppose you have a little of both? and suppose you
begin with the chicken, because Mr. Hartright looks devoured by
anxiety to carve for you."

Mrs. Vesey put the other dimpled hand back on the edge of the
table; brightened dimly one moment; went out again the next; bowed
obediently, and said, "If you please, sir."

Surely a mild, a compliant, an unutterably tranquil and harmless
old lady! But enough, perhaps, for the present, of Mrs. Vesey.



All this time, there were no signs of Miss Fairlie.  We finished
our luncheon; and still she never appeared.  Miss Halcombe, whose
quick eye nothing escaped, noticed the looks that I cast, from
time to time, in the direction of the door.

"I understand you, Mr. Hartright," she said; "you are wondering
what has become of your other pupil.  She has been downstairs, and
has got over her headache; but has not sufficiently recovered her
appetite to join us at lunch.  If you will put yourself under my
charge, I think I can undertake to find her somewhere in the
garden."

She took up a parasol lying on a chair near her, and led the way
out, by a long window at the bottom of the room, which opened on
to the lawn.  It is almost unnecessary to say that we left Mrs.
Vesey still seated at the table, with her dimpled hands still
crossed on the edge of it; apparently settled in that position for
the rest of the afternoon.

As we crossed the lawn, Miss Halcombe looked at me significantly,
and shook her head.

"That mysterious adventure of yours," she said, "still remains
involved in its own appropriate midnight darkness.  I have been
all the morning looking over my mother's letters, and I have made
no discoveries yet.  However, don't despair, Mr. Hartright.  This
is a matter of curiosity; and you have got a woman for your ally. 
Under such conditions success is certain, sooner or later.  The
letters are not exhausted.  I have three packets still left, and
you may confidently rely on my spending the whole evening over
them."

Here, then, was one of my anticipations of the morning still
unfulfilled.  I began to wonder, next, whether my introduction to
Miss Fairlie would disappoint the expectations that I had been
forming of her since breakfast-time.

"And how did you get on with Mr. Fairlie?" inquired Miss Halcombe,
as we left the lawn and turned into a shrubbery.  "Was he
particularly nervous this morning? Never mind considering about
your answer, Mr. Hartright.  The mere fact of your being obliged
to consider is enough for me.  I see in your face that he WAS
particularly nervous; and, as I am amiably unwilling to throw you
into the same condition, I ask no more."

We turned off into a winding path while she was speaking, and
approached a pretty summer-house, built of wood, in the form of a
miniature Swiss chalet.  The one room of the summer-house, as we
ascended the steps of the door, was occupied by a young lady.  She
was standing near a rustic table, looking out at the inland view
of moor and hill presented by a gap in the trees, and absently
turning over the leaves of a little sketch-book that lay at her
side.  This was Miss Fairlie.

How can I describe her? How can I separate her from my own
sensations, and from all that has happened in the later time? How
can I see her again as she looked when my eyes first rested on
her--as she should look, now, to the eyes that are about to see
her in these pages?

The water-colour drawing that I made of Laura Fairlie, at an after
period, in the place and attitude in which I first saw her, lies
on my desk while I write.  I look at it, and there dawns upon me
brightly, from the dark greenish-brown background of the summer-
house, a light, youthful figure, clothed in a simple muslin dress,
the pattern of it formed by broad alternate stripes of delicate
blue and white.  A scarf of the same material sits crisply and
closely round her shoulders, and a little straw hat of the natural
colour, plainly and sparingly trimmed with ribbon to match the
gown, covers her head, and throws its soft pearly shadow over the
upper part of her face.  Her hair is of so faint and pale a brown--
not flaxen, and yet almost as light; not golden, and yet almost
as glossy--that it nearly melts, here and there, into the shadow
of the hat.  It is plainly parted and drawn back over her ears,
and the line of it ripples naturally as it crosses her forehead. 
The eyebrows are rather darker than the hair; and the eyes are of
that soft, limpid, turquoise blue, so often sung by the poets, so
seldom seen in real life.  Lovely eyes in colour, lovely eyes in
form--large and tender and quietly thoughtful--but beautiful above
all things in the clear truthfulness of look that dwells in their
inmost depths, and shines through all their changes of expression
with the light of a purer and a better world.  The charm--most
gently and yet most distinctly expressed--which they shed over the
whole face, so covers and transforms its little natural human
blemishes elsewhere, that it is difficult to estimate the relative
merits and defects of the other features.  It is hard to see that
the lower part of the face is too delicately refined away towards
the chin to be in full and fair proportion with the upper part;
that the nose, in escaping the aquiline bend (always hard and
cruel in a woman, no matter how abstractedly perfect it may be),
has erred a little in the other extreme, and has missed the ideal
straightness of line; and that the sweet, sensitive lips are
subject to a slight nervous contraction, when she smiles, which
draws them upward a little at one corner, towards the cheek.  It
might be possible to note these blemishes in another woman's face
but it is not easy to dwell on them in hers, so subtly are they
connected with all that is individual and characteristic in her
expression, and so closely does the expression depend for its full
play and life, in every other feature, on the moving impulse of
the eyes.

Does my poor portrait of her, my fond, patient labour of long and
happy days, show me these things? Ah, how few of them are in the
dim mechanical drawing, and how many in the mind with which I
regard it! A fair, delicate girl, in a pretty light dress,
trifling with the leaves of a sketch-book, while she looks up from
it with truthful, innocent blue eyes--that is all the drawing can
say; all, perhaps, that even the deeper reach of thought and pen
can say in their language, either.  The woman who first gives
life, light, and form to our shadowy conceptions of beauty, fills
a void in our spiritual nature that has remained unknown to us
till she appeared.  Sympathies that lie too deep for words, too
deep almost for thoughts, are touched, at such times, by other
charms than those which the senses feel and which the resources of
expression can realise.  The mystery which underlies the beauty of
women is never raised above the reach of all expression until it
has claimed kindred with the deeper mystery in our own souls. 
Then, and then only, has it passed beyond the narrow region on
which light falls, in this world, from the pencil and the pen.

Think of her as you thought of the first woman who quickened the
pulses within you that the rest of her sex had no art to stir. 
Let the kind, candid blue eyes meet yours, as they met mine, with
the one matchless look which we both remember so well.  Let her
voice speak the music that you once loved best, attuned as sweetly
to your ear as to mine.  Let her footstep, as she comes and goes,
in these pages, be like that other footstep to whose airy fall
your own heart once beat time.  Take her as the visionary nursling
of your own fancy; and she will grow upon you, all the more
clearly, as the living woman who dwells in mine.

Among the sensations that crowded on me, when my eyes first looked
upon her--familiar sensations which we all know, which spring to
life in most of our hearts, die again in so many, and renew their
bright existence in so few--there was one that troubled and
perplexed me: one that seemed strangely inconsistent and
unaccountably out of place in Miss Fairlie's presence.

Mingling with the vivid impression produced by the charm of her
fair face and head, her sweet expression, and her winning
simplicity of manner, was another impression, which, in a shadowy
way, suggested to me the idea of something wanting.  At one time
it seemed like something wanting in HER: at another, like
something wanting in myself, which hindered me from understanding
her as I ought.  The impression was always strongest in the most
contradictory manner, when she looked at me; or, in other words,
when I was most conscious of the harmony and charm of her face,
and yet, at the same time, most troubled by the sense of an
incompleteness which it was impossible to discover.  Something
wanting, something wanting--and where it was, and what it was, I
could not say.

The effect of this curious caprice of fancy (as I thought it then)
was not of a nature to set me at my ease, during a first interview
with Miss Fairlie.  The few kind words of welcome which she spoke
found me hardly self-possessed enough to thank her in the
customary phrases of reply.  Observing my hesitation, and no doubt
attributing it, naturally enough, to some momentary shyness on my
part, Miss Halcombe took the business of talking, as easily and
readily as usual, into her own hands.

"Look there, Mr. Hartright," she said, pointing to the sketch-book
on the table, and to the little delicate wandering hand that was
still trifling with it.  "Surely you will acknowledge that your
model pupil is found at last? The moment she hears that you are in
the house, she seizes her inestimable sketch-book looks universal
Nature straight in the face, and longs to begin!"

Miss Fairlie laughed with a ready good-humour, which broke out as
brightly as if it had been part of the sunshine above us, over her
lovely face.

"I must not take credit to myself where no credit is due," she
said, her clear, truthful blue eyes looking alternately at Miss
Halcombe and at me.  "Fond as I am of drawing, I am so conscious
of my own ignorance that I am more afraid than anxious to begin. 
Now I know you are here, Mr. Hartright, I find myself looking over
my sketches, as I used to look over my lessons when I was a little
girl, and when I was sadly afraid that I should turn out not fit
to be heard."

She made the confession very prettily and simply, and, with
quaint, childish earnestness, drew the sketch-book away close to
her own side of the table.  Miss Halcombe cut the knot of the
little embarrassment forthwith, in her resolute, downright way.

"Good, bad, or indifferent," she said, "the pupil's sketches must
pass through the fiery ordeal of the master's judgment--and
there's an end of it.  Suppose we take them with us in the
carriage, Laura, and let Mr. Hartright see them, for the first
time, under circumstances of perpetual jolting and interruption?
If we can only confuse him all through the drive, between Nature
as it is, when he looks up at the view, and Nature as it is not
when he looks down again at our sketch-books, we shall drive him
into the last desperate refuge of paying us compliments, and shall
slip through his professional fingers with our pet feathers of
vanity all unruffled."

"I hope Mr. Hartright will pay ME no compliments," said Miss
Fairlie, as we all left the summer-house.

"May I venture to inquire why you express that hope?" I asked.

"Because I shall believe all that you say to me," she answered
simply.

In those few words she unconsciously gave me the key to her whole
character: to that generous trust in others which, in her nature,
grew innocently out of the sense of her own truth.  I only knew it
intuitively then.  I know it by experience now.

We merely waited to rouse good Mrs. Vesey from the place which she
still occupied at the deserted luncheon-table, before we entered
the open carriage for our promised drive.  The old lady and Miss
Halcombe occupied the back seat, and Miss Fairlie and I sat
together in front, with the sketch-book open between us, fairly
exhibited at last to my professional eyes.  All serious criticism
on the drawings, even if I had been disposed to volunteer it, was
rendered impossible by Miss Halcombe's lively resolution to see
nothing but the ridiculous side of the Fine Arts, as practised by
herself, her sister, and ladies in general.  I can remember the
conversation that passed far more easily than the sketches that I
mechanically looked over.  That part of the talk, especially, in
which Miss Fairlie took any share, is still as vividly impressed
on my memory as if I had heard it only a few hours ago.

Yes! let me acknowledge that on this first day I let the charm of
her presence lure me from the recollection of myself and my
position.  The most trifling of the questions that she put to me,
on the subject of using her pencil and mixing her colours; the
slightest alterations of expression in the lovely eyes that looked
into mine with such an earnest desire to learn all that I could
teach, and to discover all that I could show, attracted more of my
attention than the finest view we passed through, or the grandest
changes of light and shade, as they flowed into each other over
the waving moorland and the level beach.  At any time, and under
any circumstances of human interest, is it not strange to see how
little real hold the objects of the natural world amid which we
live can gain on our hearts and minds? We go to Nature for comfort
in trouble, and sympathy in joy, only in books.  Admiration of
those beauties of the inanimate world, which modern poetry so
largely and so eloquently describes, is not, even in the best of
us, one of the original instincts of our nature.  As children, we
none of us possess it.  No uninstructed man or woman possesses it. 
Those whose lives are most exclusively passed amid the ever-
changing wonders of sea and land are also those who are most
universally insensible to every aspect of Nature not directly
associated with the human interest of their calling.  Our capacity
of appreciating the beauties of the earth we live on is, in truth,
one of the civilised accomplishments which we all learn as an Art;
and, more, that very capacity is rarely practised by any of us
except when our minds are most indolent and most unoccupied.  How
much share have the attractions of Nature ever had in the
pleasurable or painful interests and emotions of ourselves or our
friends? What space do they ever occupy in the thousand little
narratives of personal experience which pass every day by word of
mouth from one of us to the other? All that our minds can compass,
all that our hearts can learn, can be accomplished with equal
certainty, equal profit, and equal satisfaction to ourselves, in
the poorest as in the richest prospect that the face of the earth
can show.  There is surely a reason for this want of inborn
sympathy between the creature and the creation around it, a reason
which may perhaps be found in the widely-differing destinies of
man and his earthly sphere.  The grandest mountain prospect that
the eye can range over is appointed to annihilation.  The smallest
human interest that the pure heart can feel is appointed to
immortality.

We had been out nearly three hours, when the carriage again passed
through the gates of Limmeridge House.

On our way back I had let the ladies settle for themselves the
first point of view which they were to sketch, under my
instructions, on the afternoon of the next day.  When they
withdrew to dress for dinner, and when I was alone again in my
little sitting-room, my spirits seemed to leave me on a sudden.  I
felt ill at ease and dissatisfied with myself, I hardly knew why. 
Perhaps I was now conscious for the first time of having enjoyed
our drive too much in the character of a guest, and too little in
the character of a drawing-master.  Perhaps that strange sense of
something wanting, either in Miss Fairlie or in myself, which had
perplexed me when I was first introduced to her, haunted me still. 
Anyhow, it was a relief to my spirits when the dinner-hour called
me out of my solitude, and took me back to the society of the
ladies of the house.

I was struck, on entering the drawing-room, by the curious
contrast, rather in material than in colour, of the dresses which
they now wore.  While Mrs. Vesey and Miss Halcombe were richly
clad (each in the manner most becoming to her age), the first in
silver-grey, and the second in that delicate primrose-yellow
colour which matches so well with a dark complexion and black
hair, Miss Fairlie was unpretendingly and almost poorly dressed in
plain white muslin.  It was spotlessly pure: it was beautifully
put on; but still it was the sort of dress which the wife or
daughter of a poor man might have worn, and it made her, so far as
externals went, look less affluent in circumstances than her own
governess.  At a later period, when I learnt to know more of Miss
Fairlie's character, I discovered that this curious contrast, on
the wrong side, was due to her natural delicacy of feeling and
natural intensity of aversion to the slightest personal display of
her own wealth.  Neither Mrs. Vesey nor Miss Halcombe could ever
induce her to let the advantage in dress desert the two ladies who
were poor, to lean to the side of the one lady who was rich.

When the dinner was over we returned together to the drawing-room. 
Although Mr. Fairlie (emulating the magnificent condescension of
the monarch who had picked up Titian's brush for him) had
instructed his butler to consult my wishes in relation to the wine
that I might prefer after dinner, I was resolute enough to resist
the temptation of sitting in solitary grandeur among bottles of my
own choosing, and sensible enough to ask the ladies' permission to
leave the table with them habitually, on the civilised foreign
plan, during the period of my residence at Limmeridge House.

The drawing-room, to which we had now withdrawn for the rest of
the evening, was on the ground-floor, and was of the same shape
and size as the breakfast-room.  Large glass doors at the lower
end opened on to a terrace, beautifully ornamented along its whole
length with a profusion of flowers.  The soft, hazy twilight was
just shading leaf and blossom alike into harmony with its own
sober hues as we entered the room, and the sweet evening scent of
the flowers met us with its fragrant welcome through the open
glass doors.  Good Mrs. Vesey (always the first of the party to
sit down) took possession of an arm-chair in a corner, and dozed
off comfortably to sleep.  At my request Miss Fairlie placed
herself at the piano.  As I followed her to a seat near the
instrument, I saw Miss Halcombe retire into a recess of one of the
side windows, to proceed with the search through her mother's 
letters by the last quiet rays of the evening light.

How vividly that peaceful home-picture of the drawing-room comes
back to me while I write! From the place where I sat I could see
Miss Halcombe's graceful figure, half of it in soft light, half in
mysterious shadow, bending intently over the letters in her lap;
while, nearer to me, the fair profile of the player at the piano
was just delicately defined against the faintly-deepening
background of the inner wall of the room.  Outside, on the
terrace, the clustering flowers and long grasses and creepers
waved so gently in the light evening air, that the sound of their
rustling never reached us.  The sky was without a cloud, and the
dawning mystery of moonlight began to tremble already in the
region of the eastern heaven.  The sense of peace and seclusion
soothed all thought and feeling into a rapt, unearthly repose; and
the balmy quiet, that deepened ever with the deepening light,
seemed to hover over us with a gentler influence still, when there
stole upon it from the piano the heavenly tenderness of the music
of Mozart.  It was an evening of sights and sounds never to
forget.

We all sat silent in the places we had chosen--Mrs. Vesey still
sleeping, Miss Fairlie still playing, Miss Halcombe still reading--
till the light failed us.  By this time the moon had stolen round
to the terrace, and soft, mysterious rays of light were slanting
already across the lower end of the room.  The change from the
twilight obscurity was so beautiful that we banished the lamps, by
common consent, when the servant brought them in, and kept the
large room unlighted, except by the glimmer of the two candles at
the piano.

For half an hour more the music still went on.  After that the
beauty of the moonlight view on the terrace tempted Miss Fairlie
out to look at it, and I followed her.  When the candles at the
piano had been lighted Miss Halcombe had changed her place, so as
to continue her examination of the letters by their assistance. 
We left her, on a low chair, at one side of the instrument, so
absorbed over her reading that she did not seem to notice when we
moved.

We had been out on the terrace together, just in front of the
glass doors, hardly so long as five minutes, I should think; and
Miss Fairlie was, by my advice, just tying her white handkerchief
over her head as a precaution against the night air--when I heard
Miss Halcombe's voice--low, eager, and altered from its natural
lively tone--pronounce my name.

"Mr. Hartright," she said, "will you come here for a minute? I
want to speak to you."

I entered the room again immediately.  The piano stood about half-
way down along the inner wall.  On the side of the instrument
farthest from the terrace Miss Halcombe was sitting with the
letters scattered on her lap, and with one in her hand selected
from them, and held close to the candle.  On the side nearest to
the terrace there stood a low ottoman, on which I took my place. 
In this position I was not far from the glass doors, and I could
see Miss Fairlie plainly, as she passed and repassed the opening
on to the terrace, walking slowly from end to end of it in the
full radiance of the moon.

"I want you to listen while I read the concluding passages in this
letter," said Miss Halcombe.  "Tell me if you think they throw any
light upon your strange adventure on the road to London.  The
letter is addressed by my mother to her second husband, Mr.
Fairlie, and the date refers to a period of between eleven and
twelve years since.  At that time Mr. and Mrs. Fairlie, and my
half-sister Laura, had been living for years in this house; and I
was away from them completing my education at a school in Paris."

She looked and spoke earnestly, and, as I thought, a little
uneasily as well.  At the moment when she raised the letter to the
candle before beginning to read it, Miss Fairlie passed us on the
terrace, looked in for a moment, and seeing that we were engaged,
slowly walked on.

Miss Halcombe began to read as follows:--


"'You will be tired, my dear Philip, of hearing perpetually about
my schools and my scholars.  Lay the blame, pray, on the dull
uniformity of life at Limmeridge, and not on me.  Besides, this
time I have something really interesting to tell you about a new
scholar.

"'You know old Mrs. Kempe at the village shop.  Well, after years
of ailing, the doctor has at last given her up, and she is dying
slowly day by day.  Her only living relation, a sister, arrived
last week to take care of her.  This sister comes all the way from
Hampshire--her name is Mrs. Catherick.  Four days ago Mrs.
Catherick came here to see me, and brought her only child with
her, a sweet little girl about a year older than our darling
Laura----'"


As the last sentence fell from the reader's lips, Miss Fairlie
passed us on the terrace once more.  She was softly singing to
herself one of the melodies which she had been playing earlier in
the evening.  Miss Halcombe waited till she had passed out of
sight again, and then went on with the letter--


"'Mrs. Catherick is a decent, well-behaved, respectable woman;
middle-aged, and with the remains of having been moderately, only
moderately, nice-looking.  There is something in her manner and in
her appearance, however, which I can't make out.  She is reserved
about herself to the point of down-right secrecy, and there is a
look in her face--I can't describe it--which suggests to me that
she has something on her mind.  She is altogether what you would
call a walking mystery.  Her errand at Limmeridge House, however,
was simple enough.  When she left Hampshire to nurse her sister,
Mrs. Kempe, through her last illness, she had been obliged to
bring her daughter with her, through having no one at home to take
care of the little girl.  Mrs. Kempe may die in a week's time, or
may linger on for months; and Mrs. Catherick's object was to ask
me to let her daughter, Anne, have the benefit of attending my
school, subject to the condition of her being removed from it to
go home again with her mother, after Mrs. Kempe's death.  I
consented at once, and when Laura and I went out for our walk, we
took the little girl (who is just eleven years old) to the school
that very day.'"


Once more Miss Fairlie's figure, bright and soft in its snowy
muslin dress--her face prettily framed by the white folds of the
handkerchief which she had tied under her chin--passed by us in
the moonlight.  Once more Miss Halcombe waited till she was out of
sight, and then went on--


"'I have taken a violent fancy, Philip, to my new scholar, for a
reason which I mean to keep till the last for the sake of
surprising you.  Her mother having told me as little about the
child as she told me of herself, I was left to discover (which I
did on the first day when we tried her at lessons) that the poor
little thing's intellect is not developed as it ought to be at her
age.  Seeing this I had her up to the house the next day, and
privately arranged with the doctor to come and watch her and
question her, and tell me what he thought.  His opinion is that
she will grow out of it.  But he says her careful bringing-up at
school is a matter of great importance just now, because her
unusual slowness in acquiring ideas implies an unusual tenacity in
keeping them, when they are once received into her mind.  Now, my
love, you must not imagine, in your off-hand way, that I have been
attaching myself to an idiot.  This poor little Anne Catherick is
a sweet, affectionate, grateful girl, and says the quaintest,
prettiest things (as you shall judge by an instance), in the most
oddly sudden, surprised, half-frightened way.  Although she is
dressed very neatly, her clothes show a sad want of taste in
colour and pattern.  So I arranged, yesterday, that some of our
darling Laura's old white frocks and white hats should be altered
for Anne Catherick, explaining to her that little girls of her
complexion looked neater and better all in white than in anything
else.  She hesitated and seemed puzzled for a minute, then flushed
up, and appeared to understand.  Her little hand clasped mine
suddenly.  She kissed it, Philip, and said (oh, so earnestly!), "I
will always wear white as long as I live.  It will help me to
remember you, ma'am, and to think that I am pleasing you still,
when I go away and see you no more." This is only one specimen of
the quaint things she says so prettily.  Poor little soul! She
shall have a stock of white frocks, made with good deep tucks, to
let out for her as she grows----'"


Miss Halcombe paused, and looked at me across the piano.

"Did the forlorn woman whom you met in the high-road seem young?"
she asked.  "Young enough to be two- or three-and-twenty?"

"Yes, Miss Halcombe, as young as that."

"And she was strangely dressed, from head to foot, all in white?"

"All in white."

While the answer was passing my lips Miss Fairlie glided into view
on the terrace for the third time.  Instead of proceeding on her
walk, she stopped, with her back turned towards us, and, leaning
on the balustrade of the terrace, looked down into the garden
beyond.  My eyes fixed upon the white gleam of her muslin gown and
head-dress in the moonlight, and a sensation, for which I can find
no name--a sensation that quickened my pulse, and raised a
fluttering at my heart--began to steal over me.

"All in white?" Miss Halcombe repeated.  "The most important
sentences in the letter, Mr. Hartright, are those at the end,
which I will read to you immediately.  But I can't help dwelling a
little upon the coincidence of the white costume of the woman you
met, and the white frocks which produced that strange answer from
my mother's little scholar.  The doctor may have been wrong when
he discovered the child's defects of intellect, and predicted that
she would 'grow out of them.' She may never have grown out of
them, and the old grateful fancy about dressing in white, which
was a serious feeling to the girl, may be a serious feeling to the
woman still."

I said a few words in answer--I hardly know what.  All my
attention was concentrated on the white gleam of Miss Fairlie's
muslin dress.

"Listen to the last sentences of the letter," said Miss Halcombe. 
"I think they will surprise you."

As she raised the letter to the light of the candle, Miss Fairlie
turned from the balustrade, looked doubtfully up and down the
terrace, advanced a step towards the glass doors, and then
stopped, facing us.

Meanwhile Miss Halcombe read me the last sentences to which she
had referred--


"'And now, my love, seeing that I am at the end of my paper, now
for the real reason, the surprising reason, for my fondness for
little Anne Catherick.  My dear Philip, although she is not half
so pretty, she is, nevertheless, by one of those extraordinary
caprices of accidental resemblance which one sometimes sees, the
living likeness, in her hair, her complexion, the colour of her
eyes, and the shape of her face----'"


I started up from the ottoman before Miss Halcombe could pronounce
the next words.  A thrill of the same feeling which ran through me
when the touch was laid upon my shoulder on the lonely high-road
chilled me again.

There stood Miss Fairlie, a white figure, alone in the moonlight;
in her attitude, in the turn of her head, in her complexion, in
the shape of her face, the living image, at that distance and
under those circumstances, of the woman in white! The doubt which
had troubled my mind for hours and hours past flashed into
conviction in an instant.  That "something wanting" was my own
recognition of the ominous likeness between the fugitive from the
asylum and my pupil at Limmeridge House.

"You see it!" said Miss Halcombe.  She dropped the useless letter,
and her eyes flashed as they met mine.  "You see it now, as my
mother saw it eleven years since!"

"I see it--more unwillingly than I can say.  To associate that
forlorn, friendless, lost woman, even by an accidental likeness
only, with Miss Fairlie, seems like casting a shadow on the future
of the bright creature who stands looking at us now.  Let me lose
the impression again as soon as possible.  Call her in, out of the
dreary moonlight--pray call her in!"

"Mr. Hartright, you surprise me.  Whatever women may be, I thought
that men, in the nineteenth century, were above superstition."

"Pray call her in!"

"Hush, hush! She is coming of her own accord.  Say nothing in her
presence.  Let this discovery of the likeness be kept a secret
between you and me.  Come in, Laura, come in, and wake Mrs. Vesey
with the piano.  Mr. Hartright is petitioning for some more music,
and he wants it, this time, of the lightest and liveliest kind."



IX


So ended my eventful first day at Limmeridge House.

Miss Halcombe and I kept our secret.  After the discovery of the
likeness no fresh light seemed destined to break over the mystery
of the woman in white.  At the first safe opportunity Miss
Halcombe cautiously led her half-sister to speak of their mother,
of old times, and of Anne Catherick.  Miss Fairlie's recollections
of the little scholar at Limmeridge were, however, only of the
most vague and general kind.  She remembered the likeness between
herself and her mother's favourite pupil, as something which had
been supposed to exist in past times; but she did not refer to the
gift of the white dresses, or to the singular form of words in
which the child had artlessly expressed her gratitude for them. 
She remembered that Anne had remained at Limmeridge for a few
months only, and had then left it to go back to her home in
Hampshire; but she could not say whether the mother and daughter
had ever returned, or had ever been heard of afterwards.  No
further search, on Miss Halcombe's part, through the few letters
of Mrs. Fairlie's writing which she had left unread, assisted in
clearing up the uncertainties still left to perplex us.  We had
identified the unhappy woman whom I had met in the night-time with
Anne Catherick--we had made some advance, at least, towards
connecting the probably defective condition of the poor creature's
intellect with the peculiarity of her being dressed all in white,
and with the continuance, in her maturer years, of her childish
gratitude towards Mrs. Fairlie--and there, so far as we knew at
that time, our discoveries had ended.


The days passed on, the weeks passed on, and the track of the
golden autumn wound its bright way visibly through the green
summer of the trees.  Peaceful, fast-flowing, happy time! my story
glides by you now as swiftly as you once glided by me.  Of all the
treasures of enjoyment that you poured so freely into my heart,
how much is left me that has purpose and value enough to be
written on this page? Nothing but the saddest of all confessions
that a man can make--the confession of his own folly.

The secret which that confession discloses should be told with
little effort, for it has indirectly escaped me already.  The poor
weak words, which have failed to describe Miss Fairlie, have
succeeded in betraying the sensations she awakened in me.  It is
so with us all.  Our words are giants when they do us an injury,
and dwarfs when they do us a service.

I loved her.

Ah! how well I know all the sadness and all the mockery that is
contained in those three words.  I can sigh over my mournful
confession with the tenderest woman who reads it and pities me.  I
can laugh at it as bitterly as the hardest man who tosses it from
him in contempt.  I loved her! Feel for me, or despise me, I
confess it with the same immovable resolution to own the truth.

Was there no excuse for me? There was some excuse to be found,
surely, in the conditions under which my term of hired service was
passed at Limmeridge House.

My morning hours succeeded each other calmly in the quiet and
seclusion of my own room.  I had just work enough to do, in
mounting my employer's drawings, to keep my hands and eyes
pleasurably employed, while my mind was left free to enjoy the
dangerous luxury of its own unbridled thoughts.  A perilous
solitude, for it lasted long enough to enervate, not long enough
to fortify me.  A perilous solitude, for it was followed by
afternoons and evenings spent, day after day and week after week
alone in the society of two women, one of whom possessed all the
accomplishments of grace, wit, and high-breeding, the other all
the charms of beauty, gentleness, and simple truth, that can
purify and subdue the heart of man.  Not a day passed, in that
dangerous intimacy of teacher and pupil, in which my hand was not
close to Miss Fairlie's; my cheek, as we bent together over her
sketch-book, almost touching hers.  The more attentively she
watched every movement of my brush, the more closely I was
breathing the perfume of her hair, and the warm fragrance of her
breath.  It was part of my service to live in the very light of
her eyes--at one time to be bending over her, so close to her
bosom as to tremble at the thought of touching it; at another, to
feel her bending over me, bending so close to see what I was
about, that her voice sank low when she spoke to me, and her
ribbons brushed my cheek in the wind before she could draw them
back.

The evenings which followed the sketching excursions of the
afternoon varied, rather than checked, these innocent, these 
inevitable familiarities.  My natural fondness for the music which
she played with such tender feeling, such delicate womanly taste,
and her natural enjoyment of giving me back, by the practice of
her art, the pleasure which I had offered to her by the practice
of mine, only wove another tie which drew us closer and closer to
one another.  The accidents of conversation; the simple habits
which regulated even such a little thing as the position of our
places at table; the play of Miss Halcombe's ever-ready raillery,
always directed against my anxiety as teacher, while it sparkled
over her enthusiasm as pupil; the harmless expression of poor Mrs.
Vesey's drowsy approval, which connected Miss Fairlie and me as
two model young people who never disturbed her--every one of these
trifles, and many more, combined to fold us together in the same
domestic atmosphere, and to lead us both insensibly to the same
hopeless end.

I should have remembered my position, and have put myself secretly
on my guard.  I did so, but not till it was too late.  All the
discretion, all the experience, which had availed me with other
women, and secured me against other temptations, failed me with
her.  It had been my profession, for years past, to be in this
close contact with young girls of all ages, and of all orders of
beauty.  I had accepted the position as part of my calling in
life; I had trained myself to leave all the sympathies natural to
my age in my employer's outer hall, as coolly as I left my
umbrella there before I went upstairs.  I had long since learnt to
understand, composedly and as a matter of course, that my
situation in life was considered a guarantee against any of my
female pupils feeling more than the most ordinary interest in me,
and that I was admitted among beautiful and captivating women much
as a harmless domestic animal is admitted among them.  This
guardian experience I had gained early; this guardian experience
had sternly and strictly guided me straight along my own poor
narrow path, without once letting me stray aside, to the right
hand or to the left.  And now I and my trusty talisman were parted
for the first time.  Yes, my hardly-earned self-control was as
completely lost to me as if I had never possessed it; lost to me,
as it is lost every day to other men, in other critical
situations, where women are concerned.  I know, now, that I should
have questioned myself from the first.  I should have asked why
any room in the house was better than home to me when she entered
it, and barren as a desert when she went out again--why I always
noticed and remembered the little changes in her dress that I had
noticed and remembered in no other woman's before--why I saw her,
heard her, and touched her (when we shook hands at night and
morning) as I had never seen, heard, and touched any other woman
in my life? I should have looked into my own heart, and found this
new growth springing up there, and plucked it out while it was
young.  Why was this easiest, simplest work of self-culture always
too much for me? The explanation has been written already in the
three words that were many enough, and plain enough, for my
confession.  I loved her.

The days passed, the weeks passed; it was approaching the third
month of my stay in Cumberland.  The delicious monotony of life in
our calm seclusion flowed on with me, like a smooth stream with a
swimmer who glides down the current.  All memory of the past, all
thought of the future, all sense of the falseness and hopelessness
of my own position, lay hushed within me into deceitful rest. 
Lulled by the Syren-song that my own heart sung to me, with eyes
shut to all sight, and ears closed to all sound of danger, I
drifted nearer and nearer to the fatal rocks.  The warning that
aroused me at last, and startled me into sudden, self-accusing
consciousness of my own weakness, was the plainest, the truest,
the kindest of all warnings, for it came silently from HER.

We had parted one night as usual.  No word had fallen from my
lips, at that time or at any time before it, that could betray me,
or startle her into sudden knowledge of the truth.  But when we
met again in the morning, a change had come over her--a change
that told me all.

I shrank then--I shrink still--from invading the innermost
sanctuary of her heart, and laying it open to others, as I have
laid open my own.  Let it be enough to say that the time when she
first surprised my secret was, I firmly believe, the time when she
first surprised her own, and the time, also, when she changed
towards me in the interval of one night.  Her nature, too truthful
to deceive others, was too noble to deceive itself.  When the
doubt that I had hushed asleep first laid its weary weight on her
heart, the true face owned all, and said, in its own frank, simple
language--I am sorry for him; I am sorry for myself.

It said this, and more, which I could not then interpret.  I
understood but too well the change in her manner, to greater
kindness and quicker readiness in interpreting all my wishes,
before others--to constraint and sadness, and nervous anxiety to
absorb herself in the first occupation she could seize on,
whenever we happened to be left together alone.  I understood why
the sweet sensitive lips smiled so rarely and so restrainedly now,
and why the clear blue eyes looked at me, sometimes with the pity
of an angel, sometimes with the innocent perplexity of a child. 
But the change meant more than this.  There was a coldness in her
hand, there was an unnatural immobility in her face, there was in
all her movements the mute expression of constant fear and
clinging self-reproach.  The sensations that I could trace to
herself and to me, the unacknowledged sensations that we were
feeling in common, were not these.  There were certain elements of
the change in her that were still secretly drawing us together,
and others that were, as secretly, beginning to drive us apart.

In my doubt and perplexity, in my vague suspicion of something
hidden which I was left to find by my own unaided efforts, I
examined Miss Halcombe's looks and manner for enlightenment. 
Living in such intimacy as ours, no serious alteration could take
place in any one of us which did not sympathetically affect the
others.  The change in Miss Fairlie was reflected in her half-
sister.  Although not a word escaped Miss Halcombe which hinted at
an altered state of feeling towards myself, her penetrating eyes
had contracted a new habit of always watching me.  Sometimes the
look was like suppressed anger, sometimes like suppressed dread,
sometimes like neither--like nothing, in short, which I could
understand.  A week elapsed, leaving us all three still in this
position of secret constraint towards one another.  My situation,
aggravated by the sense of my own miserable weakness and
forgetfulness of myself, now too late awakened in me, was becoming
intolerable.  I felt that I must cast off the oppression under
which I was living, at once and for ever--yet how to act for the
best, or what to say first, was more than I could tell.

From this position of helplessness and humiliation I was rescued
by Miss Halcombe.  Her lips told me the bitter, the necessary, the
unexpected truth; her hearty kindness sustained me under the shock
of hearing it; her sense and courage turned to its right use an
event which threatened the worst that could happen, to me and to
others, in Limmeridge House.



X


It was on a Thursday in the week, and nearly at the end of the
third month of my sojourn in Cumberland.

In the morning, when I went down into the breakfast-room at the
usual hour, Miss Halcombe, for the first time since I had known
her, was absent from her customary place at the table.

Miss Fairlie was out on the lawn.  She bowed to me, but did not
come in.  Not a word had dropped from my lips, or from hers, that
could unsettle either of us--and yet the same unacknowledged sense
of embarrassment made us shrink alike from meeting one another
alone.  She waited on the lawn, and I waited in the breakfast-
room, till Mrs. Vesey or Miss Halcombe came in.  How quickly I
should have joined her: how readily we should have shaken hands,
and glided into our customary talk, only a fortnight ago.

In a few minutes Miss Halcombe entered.  She had a preoccupied
look, and she made her apologies for being late rather absently.

"I have been detained," she said, "by a consultation with Mr.
Fairlie on a domestic matter which he wished to speak to me
about."

Miss Fairlie came in from the garden, and the usual morning
greeting passed between us.  Her hand struck colder to mine than
ever.  She did not look at me, and she was very pale.  Even Mrs.
Vesey noticed it when she entered the room a moment after.

"I suppose it is the change in the wind," said the old lady.  "The
winter is coming--ah, my love, the winter is coming soon!"

In her heart and in mine it had come already!

Our morning meal--once so full of pleasant good-humoured
discussion of the plans for the day--was short and silent.  Miss
Fairlie seemed to feel the oppression of the long pauses in the
conversation, and looked appealingly to her sister to fill them
up.  Miss Halcombe, after once or twice hesitating and checking
herself, in a most uncharacteristic manner, spoke at last.

"I have seen your uncle this morning, Laura," she said.  "He
thinks the purple room is the one that ought to be got ready, and
he confirms what I told you.  Monday is the day--not Tuesday."

While these words were being spoken Miss Fairlie looked down at
the table beneath her.  Her fingers moved nervously among the
crumbs that were scattered on the cloth.  The paleness on her
cheeks spread to her lips, and the lips themselves trembled
visibly.  I was not the only person present who noticed this. 
Miss Halcombe saw it, too, and at once set us the example of
rising from table.

Mrs. Vesey and Miss Fairlie left the room together.  The kind
sorrowful blue eyes looked at me, for a moment, with the prescient
sadness of a coming and a long farewell.  I felt the answering
pang in my own heart--the pang that told me I must lose her soon,
and love her the more unchangeably for the loss.

I turned towards the garden when the door had closed on her.  Miss
Halcombe was standing with her hat in her hand, and her shawl over
her arm, by the large window that led out to the lawn, and was
looking at me attentively.

"Have you any leisure time to spare," she asked, "before you begin
to work in your own room?"

"Certainly, Miss Halcombe.  I have always time at your service."

"I want to say a word to you in private, Mr. Hartright.  Get your
hat and come out into the garden.  We are not likely to be
disturbed there at this hour in the morning."

As we stepped out on to the lawn, one of the under-gardeners--a
mere lad--passed us on his way to the house, with a letter in his
hand.  Miss Halcombe stopped him.

"Is that letter for me?" she asked.

"Nay, miss; it's just said to be for Miss Fairlie," answered the
lad, holding out the letter as he spoke.

Miss Halcombe took it from him and looked at the address.

"A strange handwriting," she said to herself.  "Who can Laura's
correspondent be? Where did you get this?" she continued,
addressing the gardener.

"Well, miss," said the lad, "I just got it from a woman."

"What woman?"

"A woman well stricken in age."

"Oh, an old woman.  Any one you knew?"

"I canna' tak' it on mysel' to say that she was other than a
stranger to me."

"Which way did she go?"

"That gate," said the under-gardener, turning with great
deliberation towards the south, and embracing the whole of that
part of England with one comprehensive sweep of his arm.

"Curious," said Miss Halcombe; "I suppose it must be a begging-
letter.  There," she added, handing the letter back to the lad,
"take it to the house, and give it to one of the servants.  And
now, Mr. Hartright, if you have no objection, let us walk this
way."

She led me across the lawn, along the same path by which I had
followed her on the day after my arrival at Limmeridge.

At the little summer-house, in which Laura Fairlie and I had first
seen each other, she stopped, and broke the silence which she had
steadily maintained while we were walking together.

"What I have to say to you I can say here."

With those words she entered the summer-house, took one of the
chairs at the little round table inside, and signed to me to take
the other.  I suspected what was coming when she spoke to me in
the breakfast-room; I felt certain of it now.

"Mr. Hartright," she said, "I am going to begin by making a frank
avowal to you.  I am going to say--without phrase-making, which I
detest, or paying compliments, which I heartily despise--that I
have come, in the course of your residence with us, to feel a
strong friendly regard for you.  I was predisposed in your favour
when you first told me of your conduct towards that unhappy woman
whom you met under such remarkable circumstances.  Your management
of the affair might not have been prudent, but it showed the self-
control, the delicacy, and the compassion of a man who was
naturally a gentleman.  It made me expect good things from you,
and you have not disappointed my expectations."

She paused--but held up her hand at the same time, as a sign that
she awaited no answer from me before she proceeded.  When I
entered the summer-house, no thought was in me of the woman in
white.  But now, Miss Halcombe's own words had put the memory of
my adventure back in my mind.  It remained there throughout the
interview--remained, and not without a result.

"As your friend," she proceeded, "I am going to tell you, at once,
in my own plain, blunt, downright language, that I have discovered
your secret--without help or hint, mind, from any one else.  Mr.
Hartright, you have thoughtlessly allowed your-self to form an
attachment--a serious and devoted attachment I am afraid--to my
sister Laura.  I don't put you to the pain of confessing it in so
many words, because I see and know that you are too honest to deny
it.  I don't even blame you--I pity you for opening your heart to
a hopeless affection.  You have not attempted to take any
underhand advantage--you have not spoken to my sister in secret. 
You are guilty of weakness and want of attention to your own best
interests, but of nothing worse.  If you had acted, in any single
respect, less delicately and less modestly, I should have told you
to leave the house without an instant's notice, or an instant's
consultation of anybody.  As it is, I blame the misfortune of your
years and your position--I don't blame YOU.  Shake hands--I have
given you pain; I am going to give you more, but there is no help
for it--shake hands with your friend, Marian Halcombe, first."

The sudden kindness--the warm, high-minded, fearless sympathy
which met me on such mercifully equal terms, which appealed with
such delicate and generous abruptness straight to my heart, my
honour, and my courage, overcame me in an instant.  I tried to
look at her when she took my hand, but my eves were dim.  I tried
to thank her, but my voice failed me.

"Listen to me," she said, considerately avoiding all notice of my
loss of self-control.  "Listen to me, and let us get it over at
once.  It is a real true relief to me that I am not obliged, in
what I have now to say, to enter into the question--the hard and
cruel question as I think it--of social inequalities. 
Circumstances which will try you to the quick, spare me the
ungracious necessity of paining a man who has lived in friendly
intimacy under the same roof with myself by any humiliating
reference to matters of rank and station.  You must leave
Limmeridge House, Mr. Hartright, before more harm is done.  It is
my duty to say that to you; and it would be equally my duty to say
it, under precisely the same serious necessity, if you were the
representative of the oldest and wealthiest family in England. 
You must leave us, not because you are a teacher of drawing----"

She waited a moment, turned her face full on me, and reaching
across the table, laid her hand firmly on my arm.

"Not because you are a teacher of drawing," she repeated, "but
because Laura Fairlie is engaged to be married."

The last word went like a bullet to my heart.  My arm lost all
sensation of the hand that grasped it.  I never moved and never
spoke.  The sharp autumn breeze that scattered the dead leaves at
our feet came as cold to me, on a sudden, as if my own mad hopes
were dead leaves too, whirled away by the wind like the rest. 
Hopes! Betrothed, or not betrothed, she was equally far from me. 
Would other men have remembered that in my place? Not if they had
loved her as I did.

The pang passed, and nothing but the dull numbing pain of it
remained.  I felt Miss Halcombe's hand again, tightening its hold
on my arm--I raised my head and looked at her.  Her large black
eyes were rooted on me, watching the white change on my face,
which I felt, and which she saw.

"Crush it!" she said.  "Here, where you first saw her, crush it!
Don't shrink under it like a woman.  Tear it out; trample it under
foot like a man!"

The suppressed vehemence with which she spoke, the strength which
her will--concentrated in the look she fixed on me, and in the
hold on my arm that she had not yet relinquished--communicated to
mine, steadied me.  We both waited for a minute in silence.  At
the end of that time I had justified her generous faith in my
manhood--I had, outwardly at least, recovered my self-control.

"Are you yourself again?"

"Enough myself, Miss Halcombe, to ask your pardon and hers. 
Enough myself to be guided by your advice, and to prove my
gratitude in that way, if I can prove it in no other."

"You have proved it already," she answered, "by those words.  Mr.
Hartright, concealment is at an end between us.  I cannot affect
to hide from you what my sister has unconsciously shown to me. 
You must leave us for her sake, as well as for your own.  Your
presence here, your necessary intimacy with us, harmless as it has
been, God knows, in all other respects, has unsteadied her and
made her wretched.  I, who love her better than my own life--I,
who have learnt to believe in that pure, noble, innocent nature as
I believe in my religion--know but too well the secret misery of
self-reproach that she has been suffering since the first shadow
of a feeling disloyal to her marriage engagement entered her heart
in spite of her.  I don't say--it would be useless to attempt to
say it after what has happened--that her engagement has ever had a
strong hold on her affections.  It is an engagement of honour, not
of love; her father sanctioned it on his deathbed, two years
since; she herself neither welcomed it nor shrank from it--she was
content to make it.  Till you came here she was in the position of
hundreds of other women, who marry men without being greatly
attracted to them or greatly repelled by them, and who learn to
love them (when they don't learn to hate!) after marriage, instead
of before.  I hope more earnestly than words can say--and you
should have the self-sacrificing courage to hope too--that the new
thoughts and feelings which have disturbed the old calmness and
the old content have not taken root too deeply to be ever removed. 
Your absence (if I had less belief in your honour, and your
courage, and your sense, I should not trust to them as I am
trusting now) your absence will help my efforts, and time will
help us all three.  It is something to know that my first
confidence in you was not all misplaced.  It is something to know
that you will not be less honest, less manly, less considerate
towards the pupil whose relation to yourself you have had the
misfortune to forget, than towards the stranger and the outcast
whose appeal to you was not made in vain."

Again the chance reference to the woman in white! Was there no
possibility of speaking of Miss Fairlie and of me without raising
the memory of Anne Catherick, and setting her between us like a
fatality that it was hopeless to avoid?

"Tell me what apology I can make to Mr. Fairlie for breaking my
engagement," I said.  "Tell me when to go after that apology is
accepted.  I promise implicit obedience to you and to your
advice."

"Time is every way of importance," she answered.  "You heard me
refer this morning to Monday next, and to the necessity of setting
the purple room in order.  The visitor whom we expect on Monday----"

I could not wait for her to be more explicit.  Knowing what I knew
now, the memory of Miss Fairlie's look and manner at the
breakfast-table told me that the expected visitor at Limmeridge
House was her future husband.  I tried to force it back; but
something rose within me at that moment stronger than my own will,
and I interrupted Miss Halcombe.

"Let me go to-day," I said bitterly.  "The sooner the better."

"No, not to-day," she replied.  "The only reason you can assign to
Mr. Fairlie for your departure, before the end of your engagement,
must be that an unforeseen necessity compels you to ask his
permission to return at once to London.  You must wait till to-
morrow to tell him that, at the time when the post comes in,
because he will then understand the sudden change in your plans,
by associating it with the arrival of a letter from London.  It is
miserable and sickening to descend to deceit, even of the most
harmless kind--but I know Mr. Fairlie, and if you once excite his
suspicions that you are trifling with him, he will refuse to
release you.  Speak to him on Friday morning: occupy yourself
afterwards (for the sake of your own interests with your employer)
in leaving your unfinished work in as little confusion as
possible, and quit this place on Saturday.  It will be time enough
then, Mr. Hartright, for you, and for all of us."

Before I could assure her that she might depend on my acting in
the strictest accordance with her wishes, we were both startled by
advancing footsteps in the shrubbery.  Some one was coming from
the house to seek for us! I felt the blood rush into my cheeks and
then leave them again.  Could the third person who was fast
approaching us, at such a time and under such circumstances, be
Miss Fairlie?

It was a relief--so sadly, so hopelessly was my position towards
her changed already--it was absolutely a relief to me, when the
person who had disturbed us appeared at the entrance of the
summer-house, and proved to be only Miss Fairlie's maid.

"Could I speak to you for a moment, miss?" said the girl, in
rather a flurried, unsettled manner.

Miss Halcombe descended the steps into the shrubbery, and walked
aside a few paces with the maid.

Left by myself, my mind reverted, with a sense of forlorn
wretchedness which it is not in any words that I can find to
describe, to my approaching return to the solitude and the despair
of my lonely London home.  Thoughts of my kind old mother, and of
my sister, who had rejoiced with her so innocently over my
prospects in Cumberland--thoughts whose long banishment from my
heart it was now my shame and my reproach to realise for the first
time--came back to me with the loving mournfulness of old,
neglected friends.  My mother and my sister, what would they feel
when I returned to them from my broken engagement, with the
confession of my miserable secret--they who had parted from me so
hopefully on that last happy night in the Hampstead cottage!

Anne Catherick again! Even the memory of the farewell evening with
my mother and my sister could not return to me now unconnected
with that other memory of the moonlight walk back to London.  What
did it mean? Were that woman and I to meet once more? It was
possible, at the least.  Did she know that I lived in London? Yes;
I had told her so, either before or after that strange question of
hers, when she had asked me so distrustfully if I knew many men of
the rank of Baronet.  Either before or after--my mind was not calm
enough, then, to remember which.

A few minutes elapsed before Miss Halcombe dismissed the maid and
came back to me.  She, too, looked flurried and unsettled now.

"We have arranged all that is necessary, Mr. Hartright," she said. 
"We have understood each other, as friends should, and we may go
back at once to the house.  To tell you the truth, I am uneasy
about Laura.  She has sent to say she wants to see me directly,
and the maid reports that her mistress is apparently very much
agitated by a letter that she has received this morning--the same
letter, no doubt, which I sent on to the house before we came
here."

We retraced our steps together hastily along the shrubbery path. 
Although Miss Halcombe had ended all that she thought it necessary
to say on her side, I had not ended all that I wanted to say on
mine.  From the moment when I had discovered that the expected
visitor at Limmeridge was Miss Fairlie's future husband, I had
felt a bitter curiosity, a burning envious eagerness, to know who
he was.  It was possible that a future opportunity of putting the
question might not easily offer, so I risked asking it on our way
back to the house.

"Now that you are kind enough to tell me we have understood each
other, Miss Halcombe," I said, "now that you are sure of my
gratitude for your forbearance and my obedience to your wishes,
may I venture to ask who"--(I hesitated--I had forced myself to
think of him, but it was harder still to speak of him, as her
promised husband)--"who the gentleman engaged to Miss Fairlie is?"

Her mind was evidently occupied with the message she had received
from her sister.  She answered in a hasty, absent way--

"A gentleman of large property in Hampshire."

Hampshire! Anne Catherick's native place.  Again, and yet again,
the woman in white.  There WAS a fatality in it.

"And his name?" I said, as quietly and indifferently as I could.

"Sir Percival Glyde."

SIR--Sir Percival! Anne Catherick's question--that suspicious
question about the men of the rank of Baronet whom I might happen
to know--had hardly been dismissed from my mind by Miss Halcombe's
return to me in the summer-house, before it was recalled again by
her own answer.  I stopped suddenly, and looked at her.

"Sir Percival Glyde," she repeated, imagining that I had not heard
her former reply.

"Knight, or Baronet?" I asked, with an agitation that I could hide
no longer.

She paused for a moment, and then answered, rather coldly--

"Baronet, of course."



XI


Not a word more was said, on either side, as we walked back to the
house.  Miss Halcombe hastened immediately to her sister's room,
and I withdrew to my studio to set in order all of Mr. Fairlie's
drawings that I had not yet mounted and restored before I resigned
them to the care of other hands.  Thoughts that I had hitherto
restrained, thoughts that made my position harder than ever to
endure, crowded on me now that I was alone.

She was engaged to be married, and her future husband was Sir
Percival Glyde.  A man of the rank of Baronet, and the owner of
property in Hampshire.

There were hundreds of baronets in England, and dozens of
landowners in Hampshire.  Judging by the ordinary rules of
evidence, I had not the shadow of a reason, thus far, for 
connecting Sir Percival Glyde with the suspicious words of inquiry
that had been spoken to me by the woman in white.  And yet, I did
connect him with them.  Was it because he had now become
associated in my mind with Miss Fairlie, Miss Fairlie being, in
her turn, associated with Anne Catherick, since the night when I
had discovered the ominous likeness between them? Had the events
of the morning so unnerved me already that I was at the mercy of
any delusion which common chances and common coincidences might
suggest to my imagination? Impossible to say.  I could only feel
that what had passed between Miss Halcombe and myself, on our way
from the summer-house, had affected me very strangely.  The
foreboding of some undiscoverable danger lying hid from us all in
the darkness of the future was strong on me.  The doubt whether I
was not linked already to a chain of events which even my
approaching departure from Cumberland would be powerless to snap
asunder--the doubt whether we any of us saw the end as the end
would really be--gathered more and more darkly over my mind. 
Poignant as it was, the sense of suffering caused by the miserable
end of my brief, presumptuous love seemed to be blunted and
deadened by the still stronger sense of something obscurely
impending, something invisibly threatening, that Time was holding
over our heads.

I had been engaged with the drawings little more than half an
hour, when there was a knock at the door.  It opened, on my
answering; and, to my surprise, Miss Halcombe entered the room.

Her manner was angry and agitated.  She caught up a chair for
herself before I could give her one, and sat down in it, close at
my side.

"Mr. Hartright," she said, "I had hoped that all painful subjects
of conversation were exhausted between us, for to-day at least. 
But it is not to be so.  There is some underhand villainy at work
to frighten my sister about her approaching marriage.  You saw me
send the gardener on to the house, with a letter addressed, in a
strange handwriting, to Miss Fairlie?"

"Certainly."

"The letter is an anonymous letter--a vile attempt to injure Sir
Percival Glyde in my sister's estimation.  It has so agitated and
alarmed her that I have had the greatest possible difficulty in
composing her spirits sufficiently to allow me to leave her room
and come here.  I know this is a family matter on which I ought
not to consult you, and in which you can feel no concern or
interest----"

"I beg your pardon, Miss Halcombe.  I feel the strongest possible
concern and interest in anything that affects Miss Fairlie's
happiness or yours."

"I am glad to hear you say so.  You are the only person in the
house, or out of it, who can advise me.  Mr. Fairlie, in his state
of health and with his horror of difficulties and mysteries of all
kinds, is not to be thought of.  The clergyman is a good, weak
man, who knows nothing out of the routine of his duties; and our
neighbours are just the sort of comfortable, jog-trot
acquaintances whom one cannot disturb in times of trouble and
danger.  What I want to know is this: ought I at once to take such
steps as I can to discover the writer of the letter? or ought I to
wait, and apply to Mr. Fairlie's legal adviser to-morrow? It is a
question--perhaps a very important one--of gaining or losing a
day.  Tell me what you think, Mr. Hartright.  If necessity had not
already obliged me to take you into my confidence under very
delicate circumstances, even my helpless situation would, perhaps,
be no excuse for me.  But as things are I cannot surely be wrong,
after all that has passed between us, in forgetting that you are a
friend of only three months' standing."

She gave me the letter.  It began abruptly, without any
preliminary form of address, as follows--


"Do you believe in dreams? I hope, for your own sake, that you do. 
See what Scripture says about dreams and their fulfilment (Genesis
xl. 8, xli. 25; Daniel iv. 18-25), and take the warning I send you
before it is too late.

"Last night I dreamed about you, Miss Fairlie.  I dreamed that I
was standing inside the communion rails of a church--I on one side
of the altar-table, and the clergyman, with his surplice and his
prayer-book, on the other.

"After a time there walked towards us, down the aisle of the
church, a man and a woman, coming to be married.  You were the
woman.  You looked so pretty and innocent in your beautiful white
silk dress, and your long white lace veil, that my heart felt for
you, and the tears came into my eyes.

"They were tears of pity, young lady, that heaven blesses and
instead of falling from my eyes like the everyday tears that we
all of us shed, they turned into two rays of light which slanted
nearer and nearer to the man standing at the altar with you, till
they touched his breast.  The two rays sprang ill arches like two
rainbows between me and him.  I looked along them, and I saw down
into his inmost heart.

"The outside of the man you were marrying was fair enough to see. 
He was neither tall nor short--he was a little below the middle
size.  A light, active, high-spirited man--about five-and-forty
years old, to look at.  He had a pale face, and was bald over the
forehead, but had dark hair on the rest of his head.  His beard
was shaven on his chin, but was let to grow, of a fine rich brown,
on his cheeks and his upper lip.  His eyes were brown too, and
very bright; his nose straight and handsome and delicate enough to
have done for a woman's.  His hands the same.  He was troubled
from time to time with a dry hacking cough, and when he put up his
white right hand to his mouth, he showed the red scar of an old
wound across the back of it.  Have I dreamt of the right man? You
know best, Miss Fairlie and you can say if I was deceived or not. 
Read next, what I saw beneath the outside--I entreat you, read,
and profit.

"I looked along the two rays of light, and I saw down into his
inmost heart.  It was black as night, and on it were written, in
the red flaming letters which are the handwriting of the fallen
angel, 'Without pity and without remorse.  He has strewn with
misery the paths of others, and he will live to strew with misery
the path of this woman by his side.' I read that, and then the
rays of light shifted and pointed over his shoulder; and there,
behind him, stood a fiend laughing.  And the rays of light shifted
once more, and pointed over your shoulder; and there behind you,
stood an angel weeping.  And the rays of light shifted for the
third time, and pointed straight between you and that man.  They
widened and widened, thrusting you both asunder, one from the
other.  And the clergyman looked for the marriage-service in vain:
it was gone out of the book, and he shut up the leaves, and put it
from him in despair.  And I woke with my eyes full of tears and my
heart beating--for I believe in dreams.

"Believe too, Miss Fairlie--I beg of you, for your own sake,
believe as I do.  Joseph and Daniel, and others in Scripture,
believed in dreams.  Inquire into the past life of that man with
the scar on his hand, before you say the words that make you his
miserable wife.  I don't give you this warning on my account, but
on yours.  I have an interest in your well-being that will live as
long as I draw breath.  Your mother's daughter has a tender place
in my heart--for your mother was my first, my best, my only
friend."


There the extraordinary letter ended, without signature of any
sort.

The handwriting afforded no prospect of a clue.  It was traced on
ruled lines, in the cramped, conventional, copy-book character
technically termed "small hand." It was feeble and faint, and
defaced by blots, but had otherwise nothing to distinguish it.

"That is not an illiterate letter," said Miss Halcombe, "and at
the same time, it is surely too incoherent to be the letter of an
educated person in the higher ranks of life.  The reference to the
bridal dress and veil, and other little expressions, seem to point
to it as the production of some woman.  What do you think, Mr.
Hartright?"

"I think so too.  It seems to me to be not only the letter of a
woman, but of a woman whose mind must be----"

"Deranged?" suggested Miss Halcombe.  "It struck me in that light
too."

I did not answer.  While I was speaking, my eyes rested on the
last sentence of the letter: "Your mother's daughter has a tender
place in my heart--for your mother was my first, my best, my only
friend." Those words and the doubt which had just escaped me as to
the sanity of the writer of the letter, acting together on my
mind, suggested an idea, which I was literally afraid to express
openly, or even to encourage secretly.  I began to doubt whether
my own faculties were not in danger of losing their balance.  It
seemed almost like a monomania to be tracing back everything
strange that happened, everything unexpected that was said, always
to the same hidden source and the same sinister influence.  I
resolved, this time, in defence of my own courage and my own
sense, to come to no decision that plain fact did not warrant, and
to turn my back resolutely on everything that tempted me in the
shape of surmise.

"If we have any chance of tracing the person who has written
this," I said, returning the letter to Miss Halcombe, "there can
be no harm in seizing our opportunity the moment it offers.  I
think we ought to speak to the gardener again about the elderly
woman who gave him the letter, and then to continue our inquiries
in the village.  But first let me ask a question.  You mentioned
just now the alternative of consulting Mr. Fairlie's legal adviser
to-morrow.  Is there no possibility of communicating with him
earlier? Why not to-day?"

"I can only explain," replied Miss Halcombe, "by entering into
certain particulars, connected with my sister's marriage-
engagement, which I did not think it necessary or desirable to
mention to you this morning.  One of Sir Percival Glyde's objects
in coming here on Monday, is to fix the period of his marriage,
which has hitherto been left quite unsettled.  He is anxious that
the event should take place before the end of the year."

"Does Miss Fairlie know of that wish?" I asked eagerly.

"She has no suspicion of it, and after what has happened, I shall
not take the responsibility upon myself of enlightening her.  Sir
Percival has only mentioned his views to Mr. Fairlie, who has told
me himself that he is ready and anxious, as Laura's guardian, to
forward them.  He has written to London, to the family solicitor,
Mr. Gilmore.  Mr. Gilmore happens to be away in Glasgow on
business, and he has replied by proposing to stop at Limmeridge
House on his way back to town.  He will arrive to-morrow, and will
stay with us a few days, so as to allow Sir Percival time to plead
his own cause.  If he succeeds, Mr. Gilmore will then return to
London, taking with him his instructions for my sister's marriage-
settlement.  You understand now, Mr. Hartright, why I speak of
waiting to take legal advice until to-morrow? Mr. Gilmore is the
old and tried friend of two generations of Fairlies, and we can
trust him, as we could trust no one else."

The marriage-settlement! The mere hearing of those two words stung
me with a jealous despair that was poison to my higher and better
instincts.  I began to think--it is hard to confess this, but I
must suppress nothing from beginning to end of the terrible story
that I now stand committed to reveal--I began to think, with a
hateful eagerness of hope, of the vague charges against Sir
Percival Glyde which the anonymous letter contained.  What if
those wild accusations rested on a foundation of truth? What if
their truth could be proved before the fatal words of consent were
spoken, and the marriage-settlement was drawn? I have tried to
think since, that the feeling which then animated me began and
ended in pure devotion to Miss Fairlie's interests, but I have
never succeeded in deceiving myself into believing it, and I must
not now attempt to deceive others.  The feeling began and ended in
reckless, vindictive, hopeless hatred of the man who was to marry
her.

"If we are to find out anything," I said, speaking under the new
influence which was now directing me, "we had better not let
another minute slip by us unemployed.  I can only suggest, once
more, the propriety of questioning the gardener a second time, and
of inquiring in the village immediately afterwards."

"I think I may be of help to you in both cases," said Miss
Halcombe, rising.  "Let us go, Mr. Hartright, at once, and do the
best we can together."

I had the door in my hand to open it for her--but I stopped, on a
sudden, to ask an important question before we set forth.

"One of the paragraphs of the anonymous letter," I said, "contains
some sentences of minute personal description.  Sir Percival
Glyde's name is not mentioned, I know--but does that description
at all resemble him?"

"Accurately--even in stating his age to be forty-five----"

Forty-five; and she was not yet twenty-one! Men of his age married
wives of her age every day--and experience had shown those
marriages to be often the happiest ones.  I knew that--and yet
even the mention of his age, when I contrasted it with hers, added
to my blind hatred and distrust of him.

"Accurately," Miss Halcombe continued, "even to the scar on his
right hand, which is the scar of a wound that he received years
since when he was travelling in Italy.  There can be no doubt that
every peculiarity of his personal appearance is thoroughly well
known to the writer of the letter."

"Even a cough that he is troubled with is mentioned, if I remember
right?"

"Yes, and mentioned correctly.  He treats it lightly himself,
though it sometimes makes his friends anxious about him."

"I suppose no whispers have ever been heard against his
character?"

"Mr. Hartright! I hope you are not unjust enough to let that
infamous letter influence you?"

I felt the blood rush into my cheeks, for I knew that it HAD
influenced me.

"I hope not," I answered confusedly.  "Perhaps I had no right to
ask the question."

"I am not sorry you asked it," she said, "for it enables me to do
justice to Sir Percival's reputation.  Not a whisper, Mr.
Hartright, has ever reached me, or my family, against him.  He has
fought successfully two contested elections, and has come out of
the ordeal unscathed.  A man who can do that, in England, is a man
whose character is established."

I opened the door for her in silence, and followed her out.  She
had not convinced me.  If the recording angel had come down from
heaven to confirm her, and had opened his book to my mortal eyes,
the recording angel would not have convinced me.

We found the gardener at work as usual.  No amount of questioning
could extract a single answer of any importance from the lad's
impenetrable stupidity.  The woman who had given him the letter
was an elderly woman; she had not spoken a word to him, and she
had gone away towards the south in a great hurry.  That was all
the gardener could tell us.

The village lay southward of the house.  So to the village we went
next.



XII


Our inquiries at Limmeridge were patiently pursued in all
directions, and among all sorts and conditions of people.  But
nothing came of them.  Three of the villagers did certainly assure
us that they had seen the woman, but as they were quite unable to
describe her, and quite incapable of agreeing about the exact
direction in which she was proceeding when they last saw her,
these three bright exceptions to the general rule of total
ignorance afforded no more real assistance to us than the mass of
their unhelpful and unobservant neighbours.

The course of our useless investigations brought us, in time, to
the end of the village at which the schools established by Mrs.
Fairlie were situated.  As we passed the side of the building
appropriated to the use of the boys, I suggested the propriety of
making a last inquiry of the schoolmaster, whom we might presume
to be, in virtue of his office, the most intelligent man in the
place.

"I am afraid the schoolmaster must have been occupied with his
scholars," said Miss Halcombe, "just at the time when the woman
passed through the village and returned again.  However, we can
but try."

We entered the playground enclosure, and walked by the schoolroom
window to get round to the door, which was situated at the back of
the building.  I stopped for a moment at the window and looked in.

The schoolmaster was sitting at his high desk, with his back to
me, apparently haranguing the pupils, who were all gathered
together in front of him, with one exception.  The one exception
was a sturdy white-headed boy, standing apart from all the rest on
a stool in a corner--a forlorn little Crusoe, isolated in his own
desert island of solitary penal disgrace.

The door, when we got round to it, was ajar, and the school-
master's voice reached us plainly, as we both stopped for a minute
under the porch.

"Now, boys," said the voice, "mind what I tell you.  If I hear
another word spoken about ghosts in this school, it will be the
worse for all of you.  There are no such things as ghosts, and
therefore any boy who believes in ghosts believes in what can't
possibly be; and a boy who belongs to Limmeridge School, and
believes in what can't possibly be, sets up his back against
reason and discipline, and must be punished accordingly.  You all
see Jacob Postlethwaite standing up on the stool there in
disgrace.  He has been punished, not because he said he saw a
ghost last night, but because he is too impudent and too obstinate
to listen to reason, and because he persists in saying he saw the
ghost after I have told him that no such thing can possibly be. 
If nothing else will do, I mean to cane the ghost out of Jacob 
Postlethwaite, and if the thing spreads among any of the rest of
you, I mean to go a step farther, and cane the ghost out of the
whole school."

"We seem to have chosen an awkward moment for our visit," said
Miss Halcombe, pushing open the door at the end of the
schoolmaster's address, and leading the way in.

Our appearance produced a strong sensation among the boys.  They
appeared to think that we had arrived for the express purpose of
seeing Jacob Postlethwaite caned.

"Go home all of you to dinner," said the schoolmaster, "except
Jacob.  Jacob must stop where he is; and the ghost may bring him
his dinner, if the ghost pleases."

Jacob's fortitude deserted him at the double disappearance of his
schoolfellows and his prospect of dinner.  He took his hands out
of his pockets, looked hard at his knuckles, raised them with
great deliberation to his eyes, and when they got there, ground
them round and round slowly, accompanying the action by short
spasms of sniffing, which followed each other at regular
intervals--the nasal minute guns of juvenile distress.

"We came here to ask you a question, Mr. Dempster." said Miss
Halcombe, addressing the schoolmaster; "and we little expected to
find you occupied in exorcising a ghost.  What does it all mean?
What has really happened?"

"That wicked boy has been frightening the whole school, Miss
Halcombe, by declaring that he saw a ghost yesterday evening,"
answered the master; "and he still persists in his absurd story,
in spite of all that I can say to him."

"Most extraordinary," said Miss Halcombe "I should not have
thought it possible that any of the boys had imagination enough to
see a ghost.  This is a new accession indeed to the hard labour of
forming the youthful mind at Limmeridge, and I heartily wish you
well through it, Mr. Dempster.  In the meantime, let me explain
why you see me here, and what it is I want."

She then put the same question to the schoolmaster which we had
asked already of almost every one else in the village.  It was met
by the same discouraging answer Mr. Dempster had not set eyes on
the stranger of whom we were in search.

"We may as well return to the house, Mr. Hartright," said Miss
Halcombe; "the information we want is evidently not to be found."

She had bowed to Mr. Dempster, and was about to leave the
schoolroom, when the forlorn position of Jacob Postlethwaite,
piteously sniffing on the stool of penitence, attracted her
attention as she passed him, and made her stop good-humouredly to
speak a word to the little prisoner before she opened the door.

"You foolish boy," she said, "why don't you beg Mr. Dempster's
pardon, and hold your tongue about the ghost?"

"Eh!--but I saw t' ghaist," persisted Jacob Postlethwaite, with a
stare of terror and a burst of tears.

"Stuff and nonsense! You saw nothing of the kind.  Ghost indeed!
What ghost----"

"I beg your pardon, Miss Halcombe," interposed the school-master a
little uneasily--"but I think you had better not question the boy. 
The obstinate folly of his story is beyond all belief; and you
might lead him into ignorantly----"

"Ignorantly what?" inquired Miss Halcombe sharply.

"Ignorantly shocking your feelings," said Mr. Dempster, looking
very much discomposed.

"Upon my word, Mr. Dempster, you pay my feelings a great
compliment in thinking them weak enough to be shocked by such an
urchin as that!" She turned with an air of satirical defiance to
little Jacob, and began to question him directly.  "Come!" she
said, "I mean to know all about this.  You naughty boy, when did
you see the ghost?"

"Yestere'en, at the gloaming," replied Jacob.

"Oh! you saw it yesterday evening, in the twilight? And what was
it like?"

"Arl in white--as a ghaist should be," answered the ghost-seer,
with a confidence beyond his years.

"And where was it?"

"Away yander, in t' kirkyard--where a ghaist ought to be."

"As a 'ghaist' should be--where a 'ghaist' ought to be--why, you
little fool, you talk as if the manners and customs of ghosts had
been familiar to you from your infancy! You have got your story at
your fingers' ends, at any rate.  I suppose I shall hear next that
you can actually tell me whose ghost it was?"

"Eh! but I just can," replied Jacob, nodding his head with an air
of gloomy triumph.

Mr. Dempster had already tried several times to speak while Miss
Halcombe was examining his pupil, and he now interposed resolutely
enough to make himself heard.

"Excuse me, Miss Halcombe," he said, "if I venture to say that you
are only encouraging the boy by asking him these questions."

"I will merely ask one more, Mr. Dempster, and then I shall be
quite satisfied.  Well," she continued, turning to the boy, "and
whose ghost was it?"

"T' ghaist of Mistress Fairlie," answered Jacob in a whisper.

The effect which this extraordinary reply produced on Miss
Halcombe fully justified the anxiety which the schoolmaster had
shown to prevent her from hearing it.  Her face crimsoned with
indignation--she turned upon little Jacob with an angry suddenness
which terrified him into a fresh burst of tears--opened her lips
to speak to him--then controlled herself, and addressed the master
instead of the boy.

"It is useless," she said, "to hold such a child as that
responsible for what he says.  I have little doubt that the idea
has been put into his head by others.  If there are people in this
village, Mr. Dempster, who have forgotten the respect and
gratitude due from every soul in it to my mother's memory, I will
find them out, and if I have any influence with Mr. Fairlie, they
shall suffer for it."

"I hope--indeed, I am sure, Miss Halcombe--that you are mistaken,"
said the schoolmaster.  "The matter begins and ends with the boy's
own perversity and folly.  He saw, or thought he saw, a woman in
white, yesterday evening, as he was passing the churchyard; and
the figure, real or fancied, was standing by the marble cross,
which he and every one else in Limmeridge knows to be the monument
over Mrs. Fairlie's grave.  These two circumstances are surely
sufficient to have suggested to the boy himself the answer which
has so naturally shocked you?"

Although Miss Halcombe did not seem to be convinced, she evidently
felt that the schoolmaster's statement of the case was too
sensible to be openly combated.  She merely replied by thanking
him for his attention, and by promising to see him again when her
doubts were satisfied.  This said, she bowed, and led the way out
of the schoolroom.

Throughout the whole of this strange scene I had stood apart,
listening attentively, and drawing my own conclusions.  As soon as
we were alone again, Miss Halcombe asked me if I had formed any
opinion on what I had heard.

"A very strong opinion," I answered; "the boy's story, as I
believe, has a foundation in fact.  I confess I am anxious to see
the monument over Mrs. Fairlie's grave, and to examine the ground
about it."

"You shall see the grave."

She paused after making that reply, and reflected a little as we
walked on.  "What has happened in the schoolroom," she resumed,
"has so completely distracted my attention from the subject of the
letter, that I feel a little bewildered when I try to return to
it.  Must we give up all idea of making any further inquiries, and
wait to place the thing in Mr. Gilmore's hands to-morrow?"

"By no means, Miss Halcombe.  What has happened in the schoolroom
encourages me to persevere in the investigation."

"Why does it encourage you?"

"Because it strengthens a suspicion I felt when you gave me the
letter to read."

"I suppose you had your reasons, Mr. Hartright, for concealing
that suspicion from me till this moment?"

"I was afraid to encourage it in myself.  I thought it was utterly
preposterous--I distrusted it as the result of some perversity in
my own imagination.  But I can do so no longer.  Not only the
boy's own answers to your questions, but even a chance expression
that dropped from the schoolmaster's lips in explaining his story,
have forced the idea back into my mind.  Events may yet prove that
idea to be a delusion, Miss Halcombe; but the belief is strong in
me, at this moment, that the fancied ghost in the churchyard, and
the writer of the anonymous letter, are one and the same person."

She stopped, turned pale, and looked me eagerly in the face.

"What person?"

"The schoolmaster unconsciously told you.  When he spoke of the
figure that the boy saw in the churchyard he called it 'a woman in
white.'"

"Not Anne Catherick?"

"Yes, Anne Catherick."

She put her hand through my arm and leaned on it heavily.

"I don't know why," she said in low tones, "but there is something
in this suspicion of yours that seems to startle and unnerve me. 
I feel----" She stopped, and tried to laugh it off.  "Mr.
Hartright," she went on, "I will show you the grave, and then go
back at once to the house.  I had better not leave Laura too long
alone.  I had better go back and sit with her."

We were close to the churchyard when she spoke.  The church, a
dreary building of grey stone, was situated in a little valley, so
as to be sheltered from the bleak winds blowing over the moorland
all round it.  The burial-ground advanced, from the side of the
church, a little way up the slope of the hill.  It was surrounded
by a rough, low stone wall, and was bare and open to the sky,
except at one extremity, where a brook trickled down the stony
hill-side, and a clump of dwarf trees threw their narrow shadows
over the short, meagre grass.  Just beyond the brook and the
trees, and not far from one of the three stone stiles which
afforded entrance, at various points, to the church-yard, rose the
white marble cross that distinguished Mrs. Fairlie's grave from
the humbler monuments scattered about it.

"I need go no farther with you," said Miss Halcombe, pointing to
the grave.  "You will let me know if you find anything to confirm
the idea you have just mentioned to me.  Let us meet again at the
house."

She left me.  I descended at once to the churchyard, and crossed
the stile which led directly to Mrs. Fairlie's grave.

The grass about it was too short, and the ground too hard, to show
any marks of footsteps.  Disappointed thus far, I next looked
attentively at the cross, and at the square block of marble below
it, on which the inscription was cut.

The natural whiteness of the cross was a little clouded, here and
there, by weather stains, and rather more than one half of the
square block beneath it, on the side which bore the inscription,
was in the same condition.  The other half, however, attracted my
attention at once by its singular freedom from stain or impurity
of any kind.  I looked closer, and saw that it had been cleaned--
recently cleaned, in a downward direction from top to bottom.  The
boundary line between the part that had been cleaned and the part
that had not was traceable wherever the inscription left a blank
space of marble--sharply traceable as a line that had been
produced by artificial means.  Who had begun the cleansing of the
marble, and who had left it unfinished?

I looked about me, wondering how the question was to be solved. 
No sign of a habitation could be discerned from the point at which
I was standing--the burial-ground was left in the lonely
possession of the dead.  I returned to the church, and walked
round it till I came to the back of the building; then crossed the
boundary wall beyond, by another of the stone stiles, and found
myself at the head of a path leading down into a deserted stone
quarry.  Against one side of the quarry a little two-room cottage
was built, and just outside the door an old woman was engaged in
washing.

I walked up to her, and entered into conversation about the church
and burial-ground.  She was ready enough to talk, and almost the
first words she said informed me that her husband filled the two
offices of clerk and sexton.  I said a few words next in praise of
Mrs. Fairlie's monument.  The old woman shook her head, and told
me I had not seen it at its best.  It was her husband's business
to look after it, but he had been so ailing and weak for months
and months past, that he had hardly been able to crawl into church
on Sundays to do his duty, and the monument had been neglected in
consequence.  He was getting a little better now, and in a week or
ten days' time he hoped to be strong enough to set to work and
clean it.

This information--extracted from a long rambling answer in the
broadest Cumberland dialect--told me all that I most wanted to
know.  I gave the poor woman a trifle, and returned at once to
Limmeridge House.

The partial cleansing of the monument had evidently been
accomplished by a strange hand.  Connecting what I had discovered,
thus far, with what I had suspected after hearing the story of the
ghost seen at twilight, I wanted nothing more to confirm my
resolution to watch Mrs. Fairlie's grave, in secret, that evening,
returning to it at sunset, and waiting within sight of it till the
night fell.  The work of cleansing the monument had been left
unfinished, and the person by whom it had been begun might return
to complete it.

On getting back to the house I informed Miss Halcombe of what I
intended to do.  She looked surprised and uneasy while I was
explaining my purpose, but she made no positive objection to the
execution of it.  She only said, "I hope it may end well."

Just as she was leaving me again, I stopped her to inquire, as
calmly as I could, after Miss Fairlie's health.  She was in better
spirits, and Miss Halcombe hoped she might be induced to take a
little walking exercise while the afternoon sun lasted.

I returned to my own room to resume setting the drawings in order. 
It was necessary to do this, and doubly necessary to keep my mind
employed on anything that would help to distract my attention from
myself, and from the hopeless future that lay before me.  From
time to time I paused in my work to look out of window and watch
the sky as the sun sank nearer and nearer to the horizon.  On one
of those occasions I saw a figure on the broad gravel walk under
my window.  It was Miss Fairlie.

I had not seen her since the morning, and I had hardly spoken to
her then.  Another day at Limmeridge was all that remained to me,
and after that day my eyes might never look on her again.  This
thought was enough to hold me at the window.  I had sufficient
consideration for her to arrange the blind so that she might not
see me if she looked up, but I had no strength to resist the
temptation of letting my eyes, at least, follow her as far as they
could on her walk.

She was dressed in a brown cloak, with a plain black silk gown
under it.  On her head was the same simple straw hat which she had
worn on the morning when we first met.  A veil was attached to it
now which hid her face from me.  By her side trotted a little
Italian greyhound, the pet companion of all her walks, smartly
dressed in a scarlet cloth wrapper, to keep the sharp air from his
delicate skin.  She did not seem to notice the dog.  She walked
straight forward, with her head drooping a little, and her arms
folded in her cloak.  The dead leaves, which had whirled in the
wind before me when I had heard of her marriage engagement in the
morning, whirled in the wind before her, and rose and fell and
scattered themselves at her feet as she walked on in the pale
waning sunlight.  The dog shivered and trembled, and pressed
against her dress impatiently for notice and encouragement.  But
she never heeded him.  She walked on, farther and farther away
from me, with the dead leaves whirling about her on the path--
walked on, till my aching eyes could see her no more, and I was
left alone again with my own heavy heart.

In another hour's time I had done my work, and the sunset was at
hand.  I got my hat and coat in the hall, and slipped out of the
house without meeting any one.

The clouds were wild in the western heaven, and the wind blew
chill from the sea.  Far as the shore was, the sound of the surf
swept over the intervening moorland, and beat drearily in my ears
when I entered the churchyard.  Not a living creature was in
sight.  The place looked lonelier than ever as I chose my
position, and waited and watched, with my eyes on the white cross
that rose over Mrs. Fairlie's grave.



XIII


The exposed situation of the churchyard had obliged me to be
cautious in choosing the position that I was to occupy.

The main entrance to the church was on the side next to the
burial-ground, and the door was screened by a porch walled in on
either side.  After some little hesitation, caused by natural
reluctance to conceal myself, indispensable as that concealment
was to the object in view, I had resolved on entering the porch. 
A loophole window was pierced in each of its side walls.  Through 
one of these windows I could see Mrs. Fairlie's grave.  The other
looked towards the stone quarry in which the sexton's cottage was
built.  Before me, fronting the porch entrance, was a patch of
bare burial-ground, a line of low stone wall, and a strip of
lonely brown hill, with the sunset clouds sailing heavily over it
before the strong, steady wind.  No living creature was visible or
audible--no bird flew by me, no dog barked from the sexton's
cottage.  The pauses in the dull beating of the surf were filled
up by the dreary rustling of the dwarf trees near the grave, and
the cold faint bubble of the brook over its stony bed.  A dreary
scene and a dreary hour.  My spirits sank fast as I counted out
the minutes of the evening in my hiding-place under the church
porch.

It was not twilight yet--the light of the setting sun still
lingered in the heavens, and little more than the first half-hour
of my solitary watch had elapsed--when I heard footsteps and a
voice.  The footsteps were approaching from the other side of the
church, and the voice was a woman's.

"Don't you fret, my dear, about the letter," said the voice.  "I
gave it to the lad quite safe, and the lad he took it from me
without a word.  He went his way and I went mine, and not a living
soul followed me afterwards--that I'll warrant."

These words strung up my attention to a pitch of expectation that
was almost painful.  There was a pause of silence, but the
footsteps still advanced.  In another moment two persons, both
women, passed within my range of view from the porch window.  They
were walking straight towards the grave; and therefore they had
their backs turned towards me.

One of the women was dressed in a bonnet and shawl.  The other
wore a long travelling-cloak of a dark-blue colour, with the hood
drawn over her head.  A few inches of her gown were visible below
the cloak.  My heart beat fast as I noted the colour--it was
white.

After advancing about half-way between the church and the grave
they stopped, and the woman in the cloak turned her head towards
her companion.  But her side face, which a bonnet might now have
allowed me to see, was hidden by the heavy, projecting edge of the
hood.

"Mind you keep that comfortable warm cloak on," said the same
voice which I had already heard--the voice of the woman in the
shawl.  "Mrs. Todd is right about your looking too particular,
yesterday, all in white.  I'll walk about a little while you're
here, churchyards being not at all in my way, whatever they may be
in yours.  Finish what you want to do before I come back, and let
us be sure and get home again before night."

With those words she turned about, and retracing her steps,
advanced with her face towards me.  It was the face of an elderly
woman, brown, rugged, and healthy, with nothing dishonest or
suspicious in the look of it.  Close to the church she stopped to
pull her shawl closer round her.

"Queer," she said to herself, "always queer, with her whims and
her ways, ever since I can remember her.  Harmless, though--as
harmless, poor soul, as a little child."

She sighed--looked about the burial-ground nervously--shook her
head, as if the dreary prospect by no means pleased her, and
disappeared round the corner of the church.

I doubted for a moment whether I ought to follow and speak to her
or not.  My intense anxiety to find myself face to face with her
companion helped me to decide in the negative.  I could ensure
seeing the woman in the shawl by waiting near the churchyard until
she came back--although it seemed more than doubtful whether she
could give me the information of which I was in search.  The
person who had delivered the letter was of little consequence. 
The person who had written it was the one centre of interest, and
the one source of information, and that person I now felt
convinced was before me in the churchyard.

While these ideas were passing through my mind I saw the woman in
the cloak approach close to the grave, and stand looking at it for
a little while.  She then glanced all round her, and taking a
white linen cloth or handkerchief from under her cloak, turned
aside towards the brook.  The little stream ran into the
churchyard under a tiny archway in the bottom of the wall, and ran
out again, after a winding course of a few dozen yards, under a
similar opening.  She dipped the cloth in the water, and returned
to the grave.  I saw her kiss the white cross, then kneel down
before the inscription, and apply her wet cloth to the cleansing
of it.

After considering how I could show myself with the least possible
chance of frightening her, I resolved to cross the wall before me,
to skirt round it outside, and to enter the churchyard again by
the stile near the grave, in order that she might see me as I
approached.  She was so absorbed over her employment that she did
not hear me coming until I had stepped over the stile.  Then she
looked up, started to her feet with a faint cry, and stood facing
me in speechless and motionless terror.

"Don't be frightened," I said.  "Surely you remember me?"

I stopped while I spoke--then advanced a few steps gently--then
stopped again--and so approached by little and little till I was
close to her.  If there had been any doubt still left in my mind,
it must have been now set at rest.  There, speaking affrightedly
for itself--there was the same face confronting me over Mrs.
Fairlie's grave which had first looked into mine on the high-road
by night.

"You remember me?" I said.  "We met very late, and I helped you to
find the way to London.  Surely you have not forgotten that?"

Her features relaxed, and she drew a heavy breath of relief.  I
saw the new life of recognition stirring slowly under the death-
like stillness which fear had set on her face.

"Don't attempt to speak to me just yet," I went on.  "Take time to
recover yourself--take time to feel quite certain that I am a
friend."

"You are very kind to me," she murmured.  "As kind now as you were
then."

She stopped, and I kept silence on my side.  I was not granting
time for composure to her only, I was gaining time also for
myself.  Under the wan wild evening light, that woman and I were
met together again, a grave between us, the dead about us, the
lonesome hills closing us round on every side.  The time, the
place, the circumstances under which we now stood face to face in
the evening stillness of that dreary valley--the lifelong 
interests which might hang suspended on the next chance words that
passed between us--the sense that, for aught I knew to the
contrary, the whole future of Laura Fairlie's life might be
determined, for good or for evil, by my winning or losing the
confidence of the forlorn creature who stood trembling by her
mother's grave--all threatened to shake the steadiness and the
self-control on which every inch of the progress I might yet make
now depended.  I tried hard, as I felt this, to possess myself of
all my resources; I did my utmost to turn the few moments for
reflection to the best account.

"Are you calmer now?" I said, as soon as I thought it time to
speak again.  "Can you talk to me without feeling frightened, and
without forgetting that I am a friend?"

"How did you come here?" she asked, without noticing what I had
just said to her.

"Don't you remember my telling you, when we last met, that I was
going to Cumberland? I have been in Cumberland ever since--I have
been staying all the time at Limmeridge House."

"At Limmeridge House!" Her pale face brightened as she repeated
the words, her wandering eyes fixed on me with a sudden interest. 
"Ah, how happy you must have been!" she said, looking at me
eagerly, without a shadow of its former distrust left in her
expression.

I took advantage of her newly-aroused confidence in me to observe
her face, with an attention and a curiosity which I had hitherto
restrained myself from showing, for caution's sake.  I looked at
her, with my mind full of that other lovely face which had so
ominously recalled her to my memory on the terrace by moonlight. 
I had seen Anne Catherick's likeness in Miss Fairlie.  I now saw
Miss Fairlie's likeness in Anne Catherick--saw it all the more
clearly because the points of dissimilarity between the two were
presented to me as well as the points of resemblance.  In the
general outline of the countenance and general proportion of the
features--in the colour of the hair and in the little nervous
uncertainty about the lips--in the height and size of the figure,
and the carriage of the head and body, the likeness appeared even
more startling than I had ever felt it to be yet.  But there the
resemblance ended, and the dissimilarity, in details, began.  The
delicate beauty of Miss Fairlie's complexion, the transparent
clearness of her eyes, the smooth purity of her skin, the tender
bloom of colour on her lips, were all missing from the worn weary
face that was now turned towards mine.  Although I hated myself
even for thinking such a thing, still, while I looked at the woman
before me, the idea would force itself into my mind that one sad
change, in the future, was all that was wanting to make the
likeness complete, which I now saw to be so imperfect in detail. 
If ever sorrow and suffering set their profaning marks on the
youth and beauty of Miss Fairlie's face, then, and then only, Anne
Catherick and she would be the twin-sisters of chance resemblance,
the living reflections of one another.

I shuddered at the thought.  There was something horrible in the
blind unreasoning distrust of the future which the mere passage of
it through my mind seemed to imply.  It was a welcome interruption
to be roused by feeling Anne Catherick's hand laid on my shoulder. 
The touch was as stealthy and as sudden as that other touch which
had petrified me from head to foot on the night when we first met.

"You are looking at me, and you are thinking of something," she
said, with her strange breathless rapidity of utterance.  "What is
it?"

"Nothing extraordinary," I answered.  "I was only wondering how
you came here."

"I came with a friend who is very good to me.  I have only been
here two days."

"And you found your way to this place yesterday?"

"How do you know that?"

"I only guessed it."

She turned from me, and knelt down before the inscription once
more.

"Where should I go if not here?" she said.  "The friend who was
better than a mother to me is the only friend I have to visit at
Limmeridge.  Oh, it makes my heart ache to see a stain on her
tomb! It ought to be kept white as snow, for her sake.  I was
tempted to begin cleaning it yesterday, and I can't help coming
back to go on with it to-day.  Is there anything wrong in that? I
hope not.  Surely nothing can be wrong that I do for Mrs.
Fairlie's sake?"

The old grateful sense of her benefactress's kindness was
evidently the ruling idea still in the poor creature's mind--the
narrow mind which had but too plainly opened to no other lasting
impression since that first impression of her younger and happier
days.  I saw that my best chance of winning her confidence lay in
encouraging her to proceed with the artless employment which she
had come into the burial-ground to pursue.  She resumed it at
once, on my telling her she might do so, touching the hard marble
as tenderly as if it had been a sentient thing, and whispering the
words of the inscription to herself, over and over again, as if
the lost days of her girlhood had returned and she was patiently
learning her lesson once more at Mrs. Fairlie's knees.

"Should you wonder very much," I said, preparing the way as
cautiously as I could for the questions that were to come, "if I
owned that it is a satisfaction to me, as well as a surprise, to
see you here? I felt very uneasy about you after you left me in
the cab."

She looked up quickly and suspiciously.

"Uneasy," she repeated.  "Why?"

"A strange thing happened after we parted that night.  Two men
overtook me in a chaise.  They did not see where I was standing,
but they stopped near me, and spoke to a policeman on the other
side of the way."

She instantly suspended her employment.  The hand holding the damp
cloth with which she had been cleaning the inscription dropped to
her side.  The other hand grasped the marble cross at the head of
the grave.  Her face turned towards me slowly, with the blank look
of terror set rigidly on it once more.  I went on at all hazards--
it was too late now to draw back.

"The two men spoke to the policeman," I said, "and asked him if he
had seen you.  He had not seen you; and then one of the men spoke
again, and said you had escaped from his Asylum."

She sprang to her feet as if my last words had set the pursuers on
her track.

"Stop! and hear the end," I cried.  "Stop! and you shall know how
I befriended you.  A word from me would have told the men which
way you had gone--and I never spoke that word.  I helped your
escape--I made it safe and certain.  Think, try to think.  Try to
understand what I tell you."

My manner seemed to influence her more than my words.  She made an
effort to grasp the new idea.  Her hands shifted the damp cloth
hesitatingly from one to the other, exactly as they had shifted
the little travelling-bag on the night when I first saw her. 
Slowly the purpose of my words seemed to force its way through the
confusion and agitation of her mind.  Slowly her features relaxed,
and her eyes looked at me with their expression gaining in
curiosity what it was fast losing in fear.

"YOU don't think I ought to be back in the Asylum, do you?" she
said.

"Certainly not.  I am glad you escaped from it--I am glad I helped
you."

"Yes, yes, you did help me indeed; you helped me at the hard
part," she went on a little vacantly.  "It was easy to escape, or
I should not have got away.  They never suspected me as they
suspected the others.  I was so quiet, and so obedient, and so
easily frightened.  The finding London was the hard part, and
there you helped me.  Did I thank you at the time? I thank you now
very kindly."

"Was the Asylum far from where you met me? Come! show that you
believe me to be your friend, and tell me where it was."

She mentioned the place--a private Asylum, as its situation
informed me; a private Asylum not very far from the spot where I
had seen her--and then, with evident suspicion of the use to which
I might put her answer, anxiously repeated her former inquiry,
"You don't think I ought to be taken back, do you?"

"Once again, I am glad you escaped--I am glad you prospered well
after you left me," I answered.  "You said you had a friend in
London to go to.  Did you find the friend?"

"Yes.  It was very late, but there was a girl up at needle-work in
the house, and she helped me to rouse Mrs. Clements.  Mrs.
Clements is my friend.  A good, kind woman, but not like Mrs.
Fairlie.  Ah no, nobody is like Mrs. Fairlie!"

"Is Mrs. Clements an old friend of yours? Have you known her a
long time?"

"Yes, she was a neighbour of ours once, at home, in Hampshire, and
liked me, and took care of me when I was a little girl.  Years
ago, when she went away from us, she wrote down in my Prayer-book
for me where she was going to live in London, and she said, 'If
you are ever in trouble, Anne, come to me.  I have no husband
alive to say me nay, and no children to look after, and I will
take care of you.' Kind words, were they not? I suppose I remember
them because they were kind.  It's little enough I remember
besides--little enough, little enough!"

"Had you no father or mother to take care of you?"

"Father?--I never saw him--I never heard mother speak of him. 
Father? Ah, dear! he is dead, I suppose."

"And your mother?"

"I don't get on well with her.  We are a trouble and a fear to
each other."

A trouble and a fear to each other! At those words the suspicion
crossed my mind, for the first time, that her mother might be the
person who had placed her under restraint.

"Don't ask me about mother," she went on.  "I'd rather talk of
Mrs. Clements.  Mrs. Clements is like you, she doesn't think that
I ought to be back in the Asylum, and she is as glad as you are
that I escaped from it.  She cried over my misfortune, and said it
must be kept secret from everybody."

Her "misfortune." In what sense was she using that word? In a
sense which might explain her motive in writing the anonymous
letter? In a sense which might show it to be the too common and
too customary motive that has led many a woman to interpose
anonymous hindrances to the marriage of the man who has ruined
her? I resolved to attempt the clearing up of this doubt before
more words passed between us on either side.

"What misfortune?" I asked.

"The misfortune of my being shut up," she answered, with every
appearance of feeling surprised at my question.  "What other
misfortune could there be?"

I determined to persist, as delicately and forbearingly as
possible.  It was of very great importance that I should be
absolutely sure of every step in the investigation which I now
gained in advance.

"There is another misfortune," I said, "to which a woman may be
liable, and by which she may suffer lifelong sorrow and shame."

"What is it?" she asked eagerly.

"The misfortune of believing too innocently in her own virtue, and
in the faith and honour of the man she loves," I answered.

She looked up at me with the artless bewilderment of a child.  Not
the slightest confusion or change of colour--not the faintest
trace of any secret consciousness of shame struggling to the
surface appeared in her face--that face which betrayed every other
emotion with such transparent clearness.  No words that ever were
spoken could have assured me, as her look and manner now assured
me, that the motive which I had assigned for her writing the
letter and sending it to Miss Fairlie was plainly and distinctly
the wrong one.  That doubt, at any rate, was now set at rest; but
the very removal of it opened a new prospect of uncertainty.  The
letter, as I knew from positive testimony, pointed at Sir Percival
Glyde, though it did not name him.  She must have had some strong
motive, originating in some deep sense of injury, for secretly
denouncing him to Miss Fairlie in such terms as she had employed,
and that motive was unquestionably not to be traced to the loss of
her innocence and her character.  Whatever wrong he might have
inflicted on her was not of that nature.  Of what nature could it
be?

"I don't understand you," she said, after evidently trying hard,
and trying in vain, to discover the meaning of the words I had
last said to her.

"Never mind," I answered.  "Let us go on with what we were talking
about.  Tell me how long you stayed with Mrs. Clements in London,
and how you came here."

"How long?" she repeated.  "I stayed with Mrs. Clements till we
both came to this place, two days ago."

"You are living in the village, then?" I said.  "It is strange I
should not have heard of you, though you have only been here two
days."

"No, no, not in the village.  Three miles away at a farm.  Do you
know the farm? They call it Todd's Corner."

I remembered the place perfectly--we had often passed by it in our
drives.  It was one of the oldest farms in the neighbourhood,
situated in a solitary, sheltered spot, inland at the junction of
two hills.

"They are relations of Mrs. Clements at Todd's Corner," she went
on, "and they had often asked her to go and see them.  She said
she would go, and take me with her, for the quiet and the fresh
air.  It was very kind, was it not? I would have gone anywhere to
be quiet, and safe, and out of the way.  But when I heard that
Todd's Corner was near Limmeridge--oh! I was so happy I would have
walked all the way barefoot to get there, and see the schools and
the village and Limmeridge House again.  They are very good people
at Todd's Corner.  I hope I shall stay there a long time.  There
is only one thing I don't like about them, and don't like about
Mrs. Clements----"

"What is it?"

"They will tease me about dressing all in white--they say it looks
so particular.  How do they know? Mrs. Fairlie knew best.  Mrs.
Fairlie would never have made me wear this ugly blue cloak! Ah!
she was fond of white in her lifetime, and here is white stone
about her grave--and I am making it whiter for her sake.  She
often wore white herself, and she always dressed her little
daughter in white.  Is Miss Fairlie well and happy? Does she wear
white now, as she used when she was a girl?"

Her voice sank when she put the questions about Miss Fairlie, and
she turned her head farther and farther away from me.  I thought I
detected, in the alteration of her manner, an uneasy consciousness
of the risk she had run in sending the anonymous letter, and I
instantly determined so to frame my answer as to surprise her into
owning it.

"Miss Fairlie was not very well or very happy this morning," I
said.

She murmured a few words, but they were spoken so confusedly, and
in such a low tone, that I could not even guess at what they
meant.

"Did you ask me why Miss Fairlie was neither well nor happy this
morning?" I continued.

"No," she said quickly and eagerly--"oh no, I never asked that."

"I will tell you without your asking," I went on.  "Miss Fairlie
has received your letter."

She had been down on her knees for some little time past,
carefully removing the last weather-stains left about the
inscription while we were speaking together.  The first sentence
of the words I had just addressed to her made her pause in her
occupation, and turn slowly without rising from her knees, so as
to face me.  The second sentence literally petrified her.  The
cloth she had been holding dropped from her hands--her lips fell
apart--all the little colour that there was naturally in her face
left it in an instant.

"How do you know?" she said faintly.  "Who showed it to you?" The
blood rushed back into her face--rushed overwhelmingly, as the
sense rushed upon her mind that her own words had betrayed her. 
She struck her hands together in despair.  "I never wrote it," she
gasped affrightedly; "I know nothing about it!"

"Yes," I said, "you wrote it, and you know about it.  It was wrong
to send such a letter, it was wrong to frighten Miss Fairlie.  If
you had anything to say that it was right and necessary for her to
hear, you should have gone yourself to Limmeridge House--you
should have spoken to the young lady with your own lips."

She crouched down over the flat stone of the grave, till her face
was hidden on it, and made no reply.

"Miss Fairlie will be as good and kind to you as her mother was,
if you mean well," I went on.  "Miss Fairlie will keep your
secret, and not let you come to any harm.  Will you see her to-
morrow at the farm? Will you meet her in the garden at Limmeridge
House?"

"Oh, if I could die, and be hidden and at rest with YOU!" Her lips
murmured the words close on the grave-stone, murmured them in
tones of passionate endearment, to the dead remains beneath.  "You
know how I love your child, for your sake! Oh, Mrs. Fairlie! Mrs.
Fairlie! tell me how to save her.  Be my darling and my mother
once more, and tell me what to do for the best."

I heard her lips kissing the stone--I saw her hands beating on it 
passionately.  The sound and the sight deeply affected me.  I
stooped down, and took the poor helpless hands tenderly in mine,
and tried to soothe her.

It was useless.  She snatched her hands from me, and never moved
her face from the stone.  Seeing the urgent necessity of quieting
her at any hazard and by any means, I appealed to the only anxiety
that she appeared to feel, in connection with me and with my
opinion of her--the anxiety to convince me of her fitness to be
mistress of her own actions.

"Come, come," I said gently.  "Try to compose yourself, or you
will make me alter my opinion of you.  Don't let me think that the
person who put you in the Asylum might have had some excuse----"

The next words died away on my lips.  The instant I risked that
chance reference to the person who had put her in the Asylum she
sprang up on her knees.  A most extraordinary and startling change
passed over her.  Her face, at all ordinary times so touching to
look at, in its nervous sensitiveness, weakness, and uncertainty,
became suddenly darkened by an expression of maniacally intense
hatred and fear, which communicated a wild, unnatural force to
every feature.  Her eyes dilated in the dim evening light, like
the eyes of a wild animal.  She caught up the cloth that had
fallen at her side, as if it had been a living creature that she
could kill, and crushed it in both her hands with such convulsive
strength, that the few drops of moisture left in it trickled down
on the stone beneath her.

"Talk of something else," she said, whispering through her teeth. 
"I shall lose myself if you talk of that."

Every vestige of the gentler thoughts which had filled her mind
hardly a minute since seemed to be swept from it now.  It was
evident that the impression left by Mrs. Fairlie's kindness was
not, as I had supposed, the only strong impression on her memory. 
With the grateful remembrance of her school-days at Limmeridge,
there existed the vindictive remembrance of the wrong inflicted on
her by her confinement in the Asylum.  Who had done that wrong?
Could it really be her mother?

It was hard to give up pursuing the inquiry to that final point,
but I forced myself to abandon all idea of continuing it.  Seeing
her as I saw her now, it would have been cruel to think of
anything but the necessity and the humanity of restoring her
composure.

"I will talk of nothing to distress you," I said soothingly.

"You want something," she answered sharply and suspiciously. 
"Don't look at me like that.  Speak to me--tell me what you want."

"I only want you to quiet yourself, and when you are calmer, to
think over what I have said."

"Said?" She paused--twisted the cloth in her hands, back-wards and
forwards, and whispered to herself, "What is it he said?" She
turned again towards me, and shook her head impatiently.  "Why
don't you help me?" she asked, with angry suddenness.

"Yes, yes," I said, "I will help you, and you will soon remember. 
I ask you to see Miss Fairlie to-morrow and to tell her the truth
about the letter."

"Ah! Miss Fairlie--Fairlie--Fairlie----"

The mere utterance of the loved familiar name seemed to quiet her. 
Her face softened and grew like itself again.

"You need have no fear of Miss Fairlie," I continued, "and no fear
of getting into trouble through the letter.  She knows so much
about it already, that you will have no difficulty in telling her
all.  There can be little necessity for concealment where there is
hardly anything left to conceal.  You mention no names in the
letter; but Miss Fairlie knows that the person you write of is Sir
Percival Glyde----"

The instant I pronounced that name she started to her feet, and a
scream burst from her that rang through the churchyard, and made
my heart leap in me with the terror of it.  The dark deformity of
the expression which had just left her face lowered on it once
more, with doubled and trebled intensity.  The shriek at the name,
the reiterated look of hatred and fear that instantly followed,
told all.  Not even a last doubt now remained.  Her mother was
guiltless of imprisoning her in the Asylum.  A man had shut her
up--and that man was Sir Percival Glyde.

The scream had reached other ears than mine.  On one side I heard
the door of the sexton's cottage open; on the other I heard the
voice of her companion, the woman in the shawl, the woman whom she
had spoken of as Mrs. Clements.

"I'm coming! I'm coming!" cried the voice from behind the clump of
dwarf trees.

In a moment more Mrs. Clements hurried into view.

"Who are you?" she cried, facing me resolutely as she set her foot
on the stile.  "How dare you frighten a poor helpless woman like
that?"

She was at Anne Catherick's side, and had put one arm around her,
before I could answer.  "What is it, my dear?" she said.  "What
has he done to you?"

"Nothing," the poor creature answered.  "Nothing.  I'm only
frightened."

Mrs. Clements turned on me with a fearless indignation, for which
I respected her.

"I should be heartily ashamed of myself if I deserved that angry
look," I said.  "But I do not deserve it.  I have unfortunately
startled her without intending it.  This is not the first time she
has seen me.  Ask her yourself, and she will tell you that I am
incapable of willingly harming her or any woman."

I spoke distinctly, so that Anne Catherick might hear and
understand me, and I saw that the words and their meaning had
reached her.

"Yes, yes," she said--"he was good to me once--he helped me----"
She whispered the rest into her friend's ear.

"Strange, indeed!" said Mrs. Clements, with a look of perplexity. 
"It makes all the difference, though.  I'm sorry I spoke so rough
to you, sir; but you must own that appearances looked suspicious
to a stranger.  It's more my fault than yours, for humouring her
whims, and letting her be alone in such a place as this.  Come, my
dear--come home now."

I thought the good woman looked a little uneasy at the prospect of
the walk back, and I offered to go with them until they were both
within sight of home.  Mrs. Clements thanked me civilly, and
declined.  She said they were sure to meet some of the farm-
labourers as soon as they got to the moor.

"Try to forgive me," I said, when Anne Catherick took her friend's
arm to go away.  Innocent as I had been of any intention to
terrify and agitate her, my heart smote me as I looked at the
poor, pale, frightened face.

"I will try," she answered.  "But you know too much--I'm afraid
you'll always frighten me now."

Mrs. Clements glanced at me, and shook her head pityingly.

"Good-night, sir," she said.  "You couldn't help it, I know but I
wish it was me you had frightened, and not her."

They moved away a few steps.  I thought they had left me, but Anne
suddenly stopped, and separated herself from her friend.

"Wait a little," she said.  "I must say good-bye."

She returned to the grave, rested both hands tenderly on the
marble cross, and kissed it.

"I'm better now," she sighed, looking up at me quietly.  "I
forgive you."

She joined her companion again, and they left the burial-ground. 
I saw them stop near the church and speak to the sexton's wife,
who had come from the cottage, and had waited, watching us from a
distance.  Then they went on again up the path that led to the
moor.  I looked after Anne Catherick as she disappeared, till all
trace of her had faded in the twilight--looked as anxiously and
sorrowfully as if that was the last I was to see in this weary
world of the woman in white.



XIV


Half an hour later I was back at the house, and was informing Miss
Halcombe of all that had happened.

She listened to me from beginning to end with a steady, silent
attention, which, in a woman of her temperament and disposition,
was the strongest proof that could be offered of the serious
manner in which my narrative affected her.

"My mind misgives me," was all she said when I had done.  "My mind
misgives me sadly about the future."

"The future may depend," I suggested, "on the use we make of the
present.  It is not improbable that Anne Catherick may speak more
readily and unreservedly to a woman than she has spoken to me.  If
Miss Fairlie----"

"Not to be thought of for a moment," interposed Miss Halcombe, in
her most decided manner.

"Let me suggest, then," I continued, "that you should see Anne
Catherick yourself, and do all you can to win her confidence.  For
my own part, I shrink from the idea of alarming the poor creature
a second time, as I have most unhappily alarmed her already.  Do
you see any objection to accompanying me to the farmhouse to-
morrow?"

"None whatever.  I will go anywhere and do anything to serve
Laura's interests.  What did you say the place was called?"

"You must know it well.  It is called Todd's Corner."

"Certainly.  Todd's Corner is one of Mr. Fairlie's farms.  Our
dairymaid here is the farmer's second daughter.  She goes
backwards and forwards constantly between this house and her
father's farm, and she may have heard or seen something which it
may be useful to us to know.  Shall I ascertain, at once, if the
girl is downstairs?"

She rang the bell, and sent the servant with his message.  He
returned, and announced that the dairymaid was then at the farm. 
She had not been there for the last three days, and the
housekeeper had given her leave to go home for an hour or two that
evening.

"I can speak to her to-morrow," said Miss Halcombe, when the
servant had left the room again.  "In the meantime, let me
thoroughly understand the object to be gained by my interview with
Anne Catherick.  Is there no doubt in your mind that the person
who confined her in the Asylum was Sir Percival Glyde?"

"There is not the shadow of a doubt.  The only mystery that
remains is the mystery of his MOTIVE.  Looking to the great
difference between his station in life and hers, which seems to
preclude all idea of the most distant relationship between them,
it is of the last importance--even assuming that she really
required to be placed under restraint--to know why HE should have
been the person to assume the serious responsibility of shutting
her up----"

"In a private Asylum, I think you said?"

"Yes, in a private Asylum, where a sum of money, which no poor
person could afford to give, must have been paid for her
maintenance as a patient."

"I see where the doubt lies, Mr. Hartright, and I promise you that
it shall be set at rest, whether Anne Catherick assists us to-
morrow or not.  Sir Percival Glyde shall not be long in this house
without satisfying Mr. Gilmore, and satisfying me.  My sister's
future is my dearest care in life, and I have influence enough
over her to give me some power, where her marriage is concerned,
in the disposal of it."

We parted for the night.


After breakfast the next morning, an obstacle, which the events of
the evening before had put out of my memory, interposed to prevent
our proceeding immediately to the farm.  This was my last day at
Limmeridge House, and it was necessary, as soon as the post came
in, to follow Miss Halcombe's advice, and to ask Mr. Fairlie's
permission to shorten my engagement by a month, in consideration
of an unforeseen necessity for my return to London.

Fortunately for the probability of this excuse, so far as
appearances were concerned, the post brought me two letters from
London friends that morning.  I took them away at once to my own
room, and sent the servant with a message to Mr. Fairlie,
requesting to know when I could see him on a matter of business.

I awaited the man's return, free from the slightest feeling of
anxiety about the manner in which his master might receive my
application.  With Mr. Fairlie's leave or without it, I must go. 
The consciousness of having now taken the first step on the dreary
journey which was henceforth to separate my life from Miss
Fairlie's seemed to have blunted my sensibility to every
consideration connected with myself.  I had done with my poor
man's touchy pride--I had done with all my little artist vanities. 
No insolence of Mr. Fairlie's, if he chose to be insolent, could
wound me now.

The servant returned with a message for which I was not
unprepared.  Mr. Fairlie regretted that the state of his health,
on that particular morning, was such as to preclude all hope of
his having the pleasure of receiving me.  He begged, therefore,
that I would accept his apologies, and kindly communicate what I
had to say in the form of a letter.  Similar messages to this had
reached me, at various intervals, during my three months'
residence in the house.  Throughout the whole of that period Mr.
Fairlie had been rejoiced to "possess" me, but had never been well
enough to see me for a second time.  The servant took every fresh
batch of drawings that I mounted and restored back to his master
with my "respects," and returned empty-handed with Mr. Fairlie's
"kind compliments," "best thanks," and "sincere regrets" that the
state of his health still obliged him to remain a solitary
prisoner in his own room.  A more satisfactory arrangement to both
sides could not possibly have been adopted.  It would be hard to
say which of us, under the circumstances, felt the most grateful
sense of obligation to Mr. Fairlie's accommodating nerves.

I sat down at once to write the letter, expressing myself in it as
civilly, as clearly, and as briefly as possible.  Mr. Fairlie did
not hurry his reply.  Nearly an hour elapsed before the answer was
placed in my hands.  It was written with beautiful regularity and
neatness of character, in violet-coloured ink, on note-paper as
smooth as ivory and almost as thick as cardboard, and it addressed
me in these terms--

"Mr. Fairlie's compliments to Mr. Hartright.  Mr. Fairlie is more
surprised and disappointed than he can say (in the present state
of his health) by Mr. Hartright's application.  Mr. Fairlie is not
a man of business, but he has consulted his steward, who is, and
that person confirms Mr. Fairlie's opinion that Mr. Hartright's
request to be allowed to break his engagement cannot be justified
by any necessity whatever, excepting perhaps a case of life and
death.  If the highly-appreciative feeling towards Art and its
professors, which it is the consolation and happiness of Mr.
Fairlie's suffering existence to cultivate, could be easily
shaken, Mr. Hartright's present proceeding would have shaken it. 
It has not done so--except in the instance of Mr. Hartright
himself.

"Having stated his opinion--so far, that is to say, as acute
nervous suffering will allow him to state anything--Mr. Fairlie
has nothing to add but the expression of his decision, in
reference to the highly irregular application that has been made
to him.  Perfect repose of body and mind being to the last degree
important in his case, Mr. Fairlie will not suffer Mr. Hartright
to disturb that repose by remaining in the house under
circumstances of an essentially irritating nature to both sides. 
Accordingly, Mr. Fairlie waives his right of refusal, purely with
a view to the preservation of his own tranquillity--and informs
Mr. Hartright that he may go."

I folded the letter up, and put it away with my other papers.  The
time had been when I should have resented it as an insult--I
accepted it now as a written release from my engagement.  It was
off my mind, it was almost out of my memory, when I went
downstairs to the breakfast-room, and informed Miss Halcombe that
I was ready to walk with her to the farm.

"Has Mr. Fairlie given you a satisfactory answer?" she asked as we
left the house.

"He has allowed me to go, Miss Halcombe."

She looked up at me quickly, and then, for the first time since I
had known her, took my arm of her own accord.  No words could have
expressed so delicately that she understood how the permission to
leave my employment had been granted, and that she gave me her
sympathy, not as my superior, but as my friend.  I had not felt
the man's insolent letter, but I felt deeply the woman's atoning
kindness.

On our way to the farm we arranged that Miss Halcombe was to enter
the house alone, and that I was to wait outside, within call.  We
adopted this mode of proceeding from an apprehension that my
presence, after what had happened in the churchyard the evening
before, might have the effect of renewing Anne Catherick's nervous
dread, and of rendering her additionally distrustful of the
advances of a lady who was a stranger to her.  Miss Halcombe left
me, with the intention of speaking, in the first instance, to the
farmer's wife (of whose friendly readiness to help her in any way
she was well assured), while I waited for her in the near
neighbourhood of the house.

I had fully expected to be left alone for some time.  To my
surprise, however, little more than five minutes had elapsed
before Miss Halcombe returned.

"Does Anne Catherick refuse to see you?" I asked in astonishment.

"Anne Catherick is gone," replied Miss Halcombe.

"Gone?"

"Gone with Mrs. Clements.  They both left the farm at eight
o'clock this morning."

I could say nothing--I could only feel that our last chance of
discovery had gone with them.

"All that Mrs. Todd knows about her guests, I know," Miss Halcombe
went on, "and it leaves me, as it leaves her, in the dark.  They
both came back safe last night, after they left you, and they
passed the first part of the evening with Mr. Todd's family as
usual.  Just before supper-time, however, Anne Catherick startled
them all by being suddenly seized with faintness.  She had had a
similar attack, of a less alarming kind, on the day she arrived at
the farm; and Mrs. Todd had connected it, on that occasion, with
something she was reading at the time in our local newspaper,
which lay on the farm table, and which she had taken up only a
minute or two before."

"Does Mrs. Todd know what particular passage in the newspaper
affected her in that way?" I inquired.

"No," replied Miss Halcombe.  "She had looked it over, and had
seen nothing in it to agitate any one.  I asked leave, however, to
look it over in my turn, and at the very first page I opened I
found that the editor had enriched his small stock of news by
drawing upon our family affairs, and had published my sister's
marriage engagement, among his other announcements, copied from
the London papers, of Marriages in High Life.  I concluded at once
that this was the paragraph which had so strangely affected Anne
Catherick, and I thought I saw in it, also, the origin of the
letter which she sent to our house the next day."

"There can be no doubt in either case.  But what did you hear
about her second attack of faintness yesterday evening?"

"Nothing.  The cause of it is a complete mystery.  There was no
stranger in the room.  The only visitor was our dairymaid, who, as
I told you, is one of Mr. Todd's daughters, and the only
conversation was the usual gossip about local affairs.  They heard
her cry out, and saw her turn deadly pale, without the slightest
apparent reason.  Mrs. Todd and Mrs. Clements took her upstairs,
and Mrs. Clements remained with her.  They were heard talking
together until long after the usual bedtime, and early this
morning Mrs. Clements took Mrs. Todd aside, and amazed her beyond
all power of expression by saying that they must go.  The only
explanation Mrs. Todd could extract from her guest was, that
something had happened, which was not the fault of any one at the
farmhouse, but which was serious enough to make Anne Catherick
resolve to leave Limmeridge immediately.  It was quite useless to
press Mrs. Clements to be more explicit.  She only shook her head,
and said that, for Anne's sake, she must beg and pray that no one
would question her.  All she could repeat, with every appearance
of being seriously agitated herself, was that Anne must go, that
she must go with her, and that the destination to which they might
both betake themselves must be kept a secret from everybody.  I
spare you the recital of Mrs. Todd's hospitable remonstrances and
refusals. It ended in her driving them both to the nearest
station, more than three hours since.  She tried hard on the way
to get them to speak more plainly, but without success; and she
set them down outside the station-door, so hurt and offended by
the unceremonious abruptness of their departure and their
unfriendly reluctance to place the least confidence in her, that
she drove away in anger, without so much as stopping to bid them
good-bye.  That is exactly what has taken place.  Search your own
memory, Mr. Hartright, and tell me if anything happened in the
burial-ground yesterday evening which can at all account for the
extraordinary departure of those two women this morning."

"I should like to account first, Miss Halcombe, for the sudden
change in Anne Catherick which alarmed them at the farmhouse,
hours after she and I had parted, and when time enough had elapsed
to quiet any violent agitation that I might have been unfortunate
enough to cause.  Did you inquire particularly about the gossip
which was going on in the room when she turned faint?"

"Yes.  But Mrs. Todd's household affairs seem to have divided her
attention that evening with the talk in the farmhouse parlour. 
She could only tell me that it was 'just the news,'--meaning, I
suppose, that they all talked as usual about each other."

"The dairymaid's memory may be better than her mother's," I said. 
"It may be as well for you to speak to the girl, Miss Halcombe, as
soon as we get back."

My suggestion was acted on the moment we returned to the house. 
Miss Halcombe led me round to the servants' offices, and we found
the girl in the dairy, with her sleeves tucked up to her
shoulders, cleaning a large milk-pan and singing blithely over her
work.

"I have brought this gentleman to see your dairy, Hannah," said
Miss Halcombe.  "It is one of the sights of the house, and it
always does you credit."

The girl blushed and curtseyed, and said shyly that she hoped she
always did her best to keep things neat and clean.

"We have just come from your father's," Miss Halcombe continued. 
"You were there yesterday evening, I hear, and you found visitors
at the house?"

"Yes, miss."

"One of them was taken faint and ill, I am told.  I suppose
nothing was said or done to frighten her? You were not talking of
anything very terrible, were you?"

"Oh no, miss!" said the girl, laughing.  "We were only talking of
the news."

"Your sisters told you the news at Todd's Corner, I suppose?"

"Yes, miss."

"And you told them the news at Limmeridge House?"

"Yes, miss.  And I'm quite sure nothing was said to frighten the
poor thing, for I was talking when she was taken ill.  It gave me
quite a turn, miss, to see it, never having been taken faint
myself."

Before any more questions could be put to her, she was called away
to receive a basket of eggs at the dairy door.  As she left us I
whispered to Miss Halcombe--

"Ask her if she happened to mention, last night, that visitors
were expected at Limmeridge House."

Miss Halcombe showed me, by a look, that she understood, and put
the question as soon as the dairymaid returned to us.

"Oh yes, miss, I mentioned that," said the girl simply.  "The
company coming, and the accident to the brindled cow, was all the
news I had to take to the farm."

"Did you mention names? Did you tell them that Sir Percival Glyde
was expected on Monday?"

"Yes, miss--I told them Sir Percival Glyde was coming.  I hope
there was no harm in it--I hope I didn't do wrong."

"Oh no, no harm.  Come, Mr. Hartright, Hannah will begin to think
us in the way, if we interrupt her any longer over her work."

We stopped and looked at one another the moment we were alone
again.

"Is there any doubt in your mind, NOW, Miss Halcombe?"

"Sir Percival Glyde shall remove that doubt, Mr. Hartright--or
Laura Fairlie shall never be his wife."



XV


As we walked round to the front of the house a fly from the
railway approached us along the drive.  Miss Halcombe waited on
the door-steps until the fly drew up, and then advanced to shake
hands with an old gentleman, who got out briskly the moment the
steps were let down.  Mr. Gilmore had arrived.

I looked at him, when we were introduced to each other, with an
interest and a curiosity which I could hardly conceal.  This old
man was to remain at Limmeridge House after I had left it, he was
to hear Sir Percival Glyde's explanation, and was to give Miss
Halcombe the assistance of his experience in forming her judgment;
he was to wait until the question of the marriage was set at rest;
and his hand, if that question were decided in the affirmative,
was to draw the settlement which bound Miss Fairlie irrevocably to
her engagement.  Even then, when I knew nothing by comparison with
what I know now, I looked at the family lawyer with an interest
which I had never felt before in the presence of any man breathing
who was a total stranger to me.

In external appearance Mr. Gilmore was the exact opposite of the
conventional idea of an old lawyer.  His complexion was florid--
his white hair was worn rather long and kept carefully brushed--
his black coat, waistcoat, and trousers fitted him with perfect
neatness--his white cravat was carefully tied, and his lavender-
coloured kid gloves might have adorned the hands of a fashionable
clergyman, without fear and without reproach.  His manners were
pleasantly marked by the formal grace and refinement of the old
school of politeness, quickened by the invigorating sharpness and
readiness of a man whose business in life obliges him always to
keep his faculties in good working order.  A sanguine constitution
and fair prospects to begin with--a long subsequent career of
creditable and comfortable prosperity--a cheerful, diligent,
widely-respected old age--such were the general impressions I
derived from my introduction to Mr. Gilmore, and it is but fair to
him to add, that the knowledge I gained by later and better
experience only tended to confirm them.

I left the old gentleman and Miss Halcombe to enter the house
together, and to talk of family matters undisturbed by the
restraint of a stranger's presence.  They crossed the hall on
their way to the drawing-room, and I descended the steps again to
wander about the garden alone.

My hours were numbered at Limmeridge House--my departure the next
morning was irrevocably settled--my share in the investigation
which the anonymous letter had rendered necessary was at an end. 
No harm could be done to any one but myself if I let my heart
loose again, for the little time that was left me, from the cold
cruelty of restraint which necessity had forced me to inflict upon
it, and took my farewell of the scenes which were associated with
the brief dream-time of my happiness and my love.

I turned instinctively to the walk beneath my study-window, where
I had seen her the evening before with her little dog, and
followed the path which her dear feet had trodden so often, till I
came to the wicket gate that led into her rose garden.  The winter
bareness spread drearily over it now.  The flowers that she had
taught me to distinguish by their names, the flowers that I had
taught her to paint from, were gone, and the tiny white paths that
led between the beds were damp and green already.  I went on to
the avenue of trees, where we had breathed together the warm
fragrance of August evenings, where we had admired together the
myriad combinations of shade and sunlight that dappled the ground
at our feet.  The leaves fell about me from the groaning branches,
and the earthy decay in the atmosphere chilled me to the bones.  A
little farther on, and I was out of the grounds, and following the
lane that wound gently upward to the nearest hills.  The old
felled tree by the wayside, on which we had sat to rest, was
sodden with rain, and the tuft of ferns and grasses which I had
drawn for her, nestling under the rough stone wall in front of us,
had turned to a pool of water, stagnating round an island of
draggled weeds.  I gained the summit of the hill, and looked at
the view which we had so often admired in the happier time.  It
was cold and barren--it was no longer the view that I remembered. 
The sunshine of her presence was far from me-the charm of her
voice no longer murmured in my ear.  She had talked to me, on the
spot from which I now looked down, of her father, who was her last
surviving parent--had told me how fond of each other they had
been, and how sadly she missed him still when she entered certain
rooms in the house, and when she took up forgotten occupations and
amusements with which he had been associated.  Was the view that I
had seen, while listening to those words, the view that I saw now,
standing on the hill-top by myself?  I turned and left it--I wound
my way back again, over the moor, and round the sandhills, down to
the beach.  There was the white rage of the surf, and the
multitudinous glory of the leaping waves--but where was the place
on which she had once drawn idle figures with her parasol in the
sand--the place where we had sat together, while she talked to me
about myself and my home, while she asked me a woman's minutely
observant questions about my mother and my sister, and innocently
wondered whether I should ever leave my lonely chambers and have a
wife and a house of my own? Wind and wave had long since smoothed
out the trace of her which she had left in those marks on the
sand, I looked over the wide monotony of the seaside prospect, and
the place in which we two had idled away the sunny hours was as
lost to me as if I had never known it, as strange to me as if I
stood already on a foreign shore.

The empty silence of the beach struck cold to my heart.  I
returned to the house and the garden, where traces were left to
speak of her at every turn.

On the west terrace walk I met Mr. Gilmore.  He was evidently in
search of me, for he quickened his pace when we caught sight of
each other.  The state of my spirits little fitted me for the
society of a stranger; but the meeting was inevitable, and I
resigned myself to make the best of it.

"You are the very person I wanted to see," said the old gentleman. 
"I had two words to say to you, my dear sir; and If you have no
objection I will avail myself of the present opportunity.  To put
it plainly, Miss Halcombe and I have been talking over family
affairs--affairs which are the cause of my being here--and in the
course of our conversation she was naturally led to tell me of
this unpleasant matter connected with the anonymous letter, and of
the share which you have most creditably and properly taken in the
proceedings so far.  That share, I quite understand, gives you an
interest which you might not otherwise have felt, in knowing that
the future management of the investigation which you have begun
will be placed in safe hands.  My dear sir, make yourself quite
easy on that point--it will be placed in MY hands."

"You are, in every way, Mr. Gilmore, much fitter to advise and to
act in the matter than I am.  Is it an indiscretion on my part to
ask if you have decided yet on a course of proceeding?

"So far as it is possible to decide, Mr. Hartright, I have
decided.  I mean to send a copy of the letter, accompanied by a
statement of the circumstances, to Sir Percival Glyde's solicitor
in London, with whom I have some acquaintance.  The letter itself
I shall keep here to show to Sir Percival as soon as he arrives.
The tracing of the two women I have already provided for, by
sending one of Mr. Fairlie's servants--a confidential person--to
the station to make inquiries.  The man has his money and his
directions, and he will follow the women in the event of his
finding any clue.  This is all that can be done until Sir Percival
comes on Monday.  I have no doubt myself that every explanation
which can be expected from a gentleman and a man of honour, he
will readily give.  Sir Percival stands very high, sir--an eminent
position, a reputation above suspicion--I feel quite easy about
results--quite easy, I am rejoiced to assure you.  Things of this
sort happen constantly in my experience.  Anonymous letters--
unfortunate woman--sad state of society.  I don't deny that there
are peculiar complications in this case; but the case itself is,
most unhappily, common--common."

"I am afraid, Mr. Gilmore, I have the misfortune to differ from
you in the view I take of the case."

"Just so, my dear sir--just so.  I am an old man, and I take the
practical view.  You are a young man, and you take the romantic
view.  Let us not dispute about our views.  I live professionally
in an atmosphere of disputation, Mr. Hartright, and I am only too
glad to escape from it, as I am escaping here.  We will wait for
events--yes, yes, yes--we will wait for events.  Charming place
this.  Good shooting? Probably not, none of Mr. Fairlie's land is
preserved, I think.  Charming place, though, and delightful
people.  You draw and paint, I hear, Mr. Hartright? Enviable
accomplishment.  What style?"

We dropped into general conversation, or rather, Mr. Gilmore
talked and I listened.  My attention was far from him, and from
the topics on which he discoursed so fluently.  The solitary walk
of the last two hours had wrought its effect on me--it had set the
idea in my mind of hastening my departure from Limmeridge House. 
Why should I prolong the hard trial of saying farewell by one
unnecessary minute? What further service was required of me by any
one? There was no useful purpose to be served by my stay in
Cumberland--there was no restriction of time in the permission to
leave which my employer had granted to me.  Why not end it there
and then?

I determined to end it.  There were some hours of daylight still
left--there was no reason why my journey back to London should not
begin on that afternoon.  I made the first civil excuse that
occurred to me for leaving Mr. Gilmore, and returned at once to
the house.

On my way up to my own room I met Miss Halcombe on the stairs. 
She saw, by the hurry of my movements and the change in my manner,
that I had some new purpose in view, and asked what had happened.

I told her the reasons which induced me to think of hastening my
departure, exactly as I have told them here.

"No, no," she said, earnestly and kindly, "leave us like a friend--
break bread with us once more.  Stay here and dine, stay here and
help us to spend our last evening with you as happily, as like our
first evenings, as we can.  It is my invitation--Mrs. Vesey's
invitation----" she hesitated a little, and then added, "Laura's
invitation as well."

I promised to remain.  God knows I had no wish to leave even the
shadow of a sorrowful impression with any one of them.

My own room was the best place for me till the dinner bell rang. 
I waited there till it was time to go downstairs.

I had not spoken to Miss Fairlie--I had not even seen her--all
that day.  The first meeting with her, when I entered the drawing-
room, was a hard trial to her self-control and to mine.  She, too,
had done her best to make our last evening renew the golden bygone
time--the time that could never come again.  She had put on the
dress which I used to admire more than any other that she
possessed--a dark blue silk, trimmed quaintly and prettily with
old-fashioned lace; she came forward to meet me with her former
readiness--she gave me her hand with the frank, innocent good-will
of happier days.  The cold fingers that trembled round mine--the
pale cheeks with a bright red spot burning in the midst of them--
the faint smile that struggled to live on her lips and died away
from them while I looked at it, told me at what sacrifice of
herself her outward composure was maintained.  My heart could take
her no closer to me, or I should have loved her then as I had
never loved her yet.

Mr. Gilmore was a great assistance to us.  He was in high good-
humour, and he led the conversation with unflagging spirit.  Miss
Halcombe seconded him resolutely, and I did all I could to follow
her example.  The kind blue eyes, whose slightest changes of
expression I had learnt to interpret so well, looked at me
appealingly when we first sat down to table.  Help my sister--the
sweet anxious face seemed to say--help my sister, and you will
help me.

We got through the dinner, to all outward appearance at least,
happily enough.  When the ladies had risen from table, and Mr.
Gilmore and I were left alone in the dining-room, a new interest
presented itself to occupy our attention, and to give me an
opportunity of quieting myself by a few minutes of needful and
welcome silence.  The servant who had been despatched to trace
Anne Catherick and Mrs. Clements returned with his report, and was
shown into the dining-room immediately.

"Well," said Mr. Gilmore, "what have you found out?"

"I have found out, sir," answered the man, "that both the women
took tickets at our station here for Carlisle."

"You went to Carlisle, of course, when you heard that?"

"I did, sir, but I am sorry to say I could find no further trace
of them."

"You inquired at the railway?"

"Yes, sir."

"And at the different inns?"

"Yes, sir."

"And you left the statement I wrote for you at the police
station?"

"I did, sir."

"Well, my friend, you have done all you could, and I have done all
I could, and there the matter must rest till further notice.  We
have played our trump cards, Mr. Hartright," continued the old
gentleman when the servant had withdrawn.  "For the present, at
least, the women have outmanoeuvred us, and our only resource now
is to wait till Sir Percival Glyde comes here on Monday next. 
Won't you fill your glass again? Good bottle of port, that--sound,
substantial, old wine.  I have got better in my own cellar,
though."

We returned to the drawing-room--the room in which the happiest
evenings of my life had been passed--the room which, after this
last night, I was never to see again.  Its aspect was altered
since the days had shortened and the weather had grown cold.  The
glass doors on the terrace side were closed, and hidden by thick
curtains.  Instead of the soft twilight obscurity, in which we
used to sit, the bright radiant glow of lamplight now dazzled my
eyes.  All was changed--in-doors and out all was changed.

Miss Halcombe and Mr. Gilmore sat down together at the card-table--
Mrs. Vesey took her customary chair.  There was no restraint on
the disposal of THEIR evening, and I felt the restraint on the
disposal of mine all the more painfully from observing it.  I saw
Miss Fairlie lingering near the music-stand.  The time had been
when I might have joined her there.  I waited irresolutely--I knew
neither where to go nor what to do next.  She cast one quick
glance at me, took a piece of music suddenly from the stand, and
came towards me of her own accord.

"Shall I play some of those little melodies of Mozart's which you
used to like so much?" she asked, opening the music nervously, and
looking down at it while she spoke.

Before I could thank her she hastened to the piano.  The chair
near it, which I had always been accustomed to occupy, stood
empty.  She struck a few chords--then glanced round at me--then
looked back again at her music.

"Won't you take your old place?" she said, speaking very abruptly
and in very low tones.

"I may take it on the last night," I answered.

She did not reply--she kept her attention riveted on the music--
music which she knew by memory, which she had played over and over
again, in former times, without the book.  I only knew that she
had heard me, I only knew that she was aware of my being close to
her, by seeing the red spot on the cheek that was nearest to me
fade out, and the face grow pale all over.

"I am very sorry you are going," she said, her voice almost
sinking to a whisper, her eyes looking more and more intently at
the music, her fingers flying over the keys of the piano with a
strange feverish energy which I had never noticed in her before.

"I shall remember those kind words, Miss Fairlie, long after to-
morrow has come and gone."

The paleness grew whiter on her face, and she turned it farther
away from me.

"Don't speak of to-morrow," she said.  "Let the music speak to us
of to-night, in a happier language than ours."

Her lips trembled--a faint sigh fluttered from them, which she
tried vainly to suppress.  Her fingers wavered on the piano--she
struck a false note, confused herself in trying to set it right,
and dropped her hands angrily on her lap.  Miss Halcombe and Mr.
Gilmore looked up in astonishment from the card-table at which
they were playing.  Even Mrs. Vesey, dozing in her chair, woke at
the sudden cessation of the music, and inquired what had happened.

"You play at whist, Mr. Hartright?" asked Miss Halcombe, with her
eyes directed significantly at the place I occupied.

I knew what she meant--I knew she was right, and I rose at once to
go to the card-table.  As I left the piano Miss Fairlie turned a
page of the music, and touched the keys again with a surer hand.

"I WILL play it," she said, striking the notes almost
passionately.  "I WILL play it on the last night."

"Come, Mrs. Vesey," said Miss Halcombe, "Mr. Gilmore and I are
tired of ecarte--come and be Mr. Hartright's partner at whist."

The old lawyer smiled satirically.  His had been the winning hand,
and he had just turned up a king.  He evidently attributed Miss
Halcombe's abrupt change in the card-table arrangements to a
lady's inability to play the losing game.

The rest of the evening passed without a word or a look from her. 
She kept her place at the piano, and I kept mine at the card-
table.  She played unintermittingly--played as if the music was
her only refuge from herself.  Sometimes her fingers touched the
notes with a lingering fondness--a soft, plaintive, dying
tenderness, unutterably beautiful and mournful to hear; sometimes
they faltered and failed her, or hurried over the instrument
mechanically, as if their task was a burden to them.  But still,
change and waver as they might in the expression they imparted to
the music, their resolution to play never faltered.  She only rose
from the piano when we all rose to say Good-night.

Mrs. Vesey was the nearest to the door, and the first to shake
hands with me.

"I shall not see you again, Mr. Hartright," said the old lady.  "I
am truly sorry you are going away.  You have been very kind and
attentive, and an old woman like me feels kindness and attention. 
I wish you happy, sir--I wish you a kind good-bye."

Mr. Gilmore came next.

"I hope we shall have a future opportunity of bettering our
acquaintance, Mr. Hartright.  You quite understand about that
little matter of business being safe in my hands? Yes, yes, of
course.  Bless me, how cold it is! Don't let me keep you at the
door.  Bon voyage, my dear sir--bon voyage, as the French say."

Miss Halcombe followed.

"Half-past seven to-morrow morning," she said--then added in a
whisper, "I have heard and seen more than you think.  Your conduct
to-night has made me your friend for life."

Miss Fairlie came last.  I could not trust myself to look at her
when I took her hand, and when I thought of the next morning.

"My departure must be a very early one," I said.  "I shall be
gone, Miss Fairlie, before you----"

"No, no," she interposed hastily, "not before I am out of my room. 
I shall be down to breakfast with Marian.  I am not so ungrateful,
not so forgetful of the past three months----"

Her voice failed her, her hand closed gently round mine--then
dropped it suddenly.  Before I could say "Good-night" she was
gone.


The end comes fast to meet me--comes inevitably, as the light of
the last morning came at Limmeridge House.

It was barely half-past seven when I went downstairs, but I found
them both at the breakfast-table waiting for me.  In the chill
air, in the dim light, in the gloomy morning silence of the house,
we three sat down together, and tried to eat, tried to talk.  The
struggle to preserve appearances was hopeless and useless, and I
rose to end it.

As I held out my hand, as Miss Halcombe, who was nearest to me,
took it, Miss Fairlie turned away suddenly and hurried from the
room.

"Better so," said Miss Halcombe, when the door had closed--"better
so, for you and for her."

I waited a moment before I could speak--it was hard to lose her,
without a parting word or a parting look.  I controlled myself--I
tried to take leave of Miss Halcombe in fitting terms; but all the
farewell words I would fain have spoken dwindled to one sentence.

"Have I deserved that you should write to me?" was all I could
say.

"You have nobly deserved everything that I can do for you, as long
as we both live.  Whatever the end is you shall know it."

"And if I can ever be of help again, at any future time, long
after the memory of my presumption and my folly is forgotten "

I could add no more.  My voice faltered, my eyes moistened in
spite of me.

She caught me by both hands--she pressed them with the strong,
steady grasp of a man--her dark eyes glittered--her brown
complexion flushed deep--the force and energy of her face glowed
and grew beautiful with the pure inner light of her generosity and
her pity.

"I will trust you--if ever the time comes I will trust you as my
friend and HER friend, as my brother and HER brother." She
stopped, drew me nearer to her--the fearless, noble creature--
touched my forehead, sister-like, with her lips, and called me by
my Christian name.  "God bless you, Walter!" she said.  "Wait here
alone and compose yourself--I had better not stay for both our
sakes--I had better see you go from the balcony upstairs."

She left the room.  I turned away towards the window, where
nothing faced me but the lonely autumn landscape--I turned away to
master myself, before I too left the room in my turn, and left it
for ever.

A minute passed--it could hardly have been more--when I heard the
door open again softly, and the rustling of a woman's dress on the
carpet moved towards me.  My heart beat violently as I turned
round.  Miss Fairlie was approaching me from the farther end of
the room.

She stopped and hesitated when our eyes met, and when she saw that
we were alone.  Then, with that courage which women lose so often
in the small emergency, and so seldom in the great, she came on
nearer to me, strangely pale and strangely quiet, drawing one hand
after her along the table by which she walked, and holding
something at her side in the other, which was hidden by the folds
of her dress.

"I only went into the drawing-room," she said, "to look for this. 
It may remind you of your visit here, and of the friends you leave
behind you.  You told me I had improved very much when I did it,
and I thought you might like----"

She turned her head away, and offered me a little sketch, drawn
throughout by her own pencil, of the summer-house in which we had
first met.  The paper trembled in her hand as she held it out to
me--trembled in mine as I took it from her.

I was afraid to say what I felt--I only answered, "It shall never
leave me--all my life long it shall be the treasure that I prize
most.  I am very grateful for it--very grateful to you, for not
letting me go away without bidding you good-bye."

"Oh!" she said innocently, "how could I let you go, after we have
passed so many happy days together!"

"Those days may never return, Miss Fairlie--my way of life and
yours are very far apart.  But if a time should come, when the
devotion of my whole heart and soul and strength will give you a
moment's happiness, or spare you a moment's sorrow, will you try
to remember the poor drawing-master who has taught you? Miss
Halcombe has promised to trust me--will you promise too?"

The farewell sadness in the kind blue eyes shone dimly through her
gathering tears.

"I promise it," she said in broken tones.  "Oh, don't look at me
like that! I promise it with all my heart."

I ventured a little nearer to her, and held out my hand.

"You have many friends who love you, Miss Fairlie.  Your happy
future is the dear object of many hopes.  May I say, at parting,
that it is the dear object of MY hopes too?"

The tears flowed fast down her cheeks.  She rested one trembling
hand on the table to steady herself while she gave me the other. 
I took it in mine--I held it fast.  My head drooped over it, my
tears fell on it, my lips pressed it--not in love; oh, not in
love, at that last moment, but in the agony and the self-
abandonment of despair.

"For God's sake, leave me!" she said faintly.

The confession of her heart's secret burst from her in those
pleading words.  I had no right to hear them, no right to answer
them--they were the words that banished me, in the name of her
sacred weakness, from the room.  It was all over.  I dropped her
hand, I said no more.  The blinding tears shut her out from my
eyes, and I dashed them away to look at her for the last time. 
One look as she sank into a chair, as her arms fell on the table,
as her fair head dropped on them wearily.  One farewell look, and
the door had closed upon her--the great gulf of separation had
opened between us--the image of Laura Fairlie was a memory of the
past already.


The End of Hartright's Narrative.





THE STORY CONTINUED BY VINCENT GILMORE
(of Chancery Lane, Solicitor)



I


I write these lines at the request of my friend, Mr. Walter
Hartright.  They are intended to convey a description of certain
events which seriously affected Miss Fairlie's interests, and
which took place after the period of Mr. Hartright's departure
from Limmeridge House.

There is no need for me to say whether my own opinion does or does
not sanction the disclosure of the remarkable family story, of
which my narrative forms an important component part.  Mr.
Hartright has taken that responsibility on himself, and
circumstances yet to be related will show that he has amply earned
the right to do so, if he chooses to exercise it.  The plan he has
adopted for presenting the story to others, in the most truthful
and most vivid manner, requires that it should be told, at each
successive stage in the march of events, by the persons who were
directly concerned in those events at the time of their
occurrence.  My appearance here, as narrator, is the necessary
consequence of this arrangement.  I was present during the sojourn
of Sir Percival Glyde in Cumberland, and was personally concerned
in one important result of his short residence under Mr. Fairlie's
roof.  It is my duty, therefore, to add these new links to the
chain of events, and to take up the chain itself at the point
where, for the present only Mr. Hartright has dropped it.


I arrived at Limmeridge House on Friday the second of November.

My object was to remain at Mr. Fairlie's until the arrival of Sir
Percival Glyde.  If that event led to the appointment of any given
day for Sir Percival's union with Miss Fairlie, I was to take the
necessary instructions back with me to London, and to occupy
myself in drawing the lady's marriage-settlement.

On the Friday I was not favoured by Mr. Fairlie with an interview. 
He had been, or had fancied himself to be, an invalid for years
past, and he was not well enough to receive me.  Miss Halcombe was
the first member of the family whom I saw.  She met me at the
house door, and introduced me to Mr. Hartright, who had been
staying at Limmeridge for some time past.

I did not see Miss Fairlie until later in the day, at dinner-time. 
She was not looking well, and I was sorry to observe it.  She is a
sweet lovable girl, as amiable and attentive to every one about
her as her excellent mother used to be--though, personally
speaking, she takes after her father.  Mrs. Fairlie had dark eyes
and hair, and her elder daughter, Miss Halcombe, strongly reminds
me of her.  Miss Fairlie played to us in the evening--not so well
as usual, I thought.  We had a rubber at whist, a mere
profanation, so far as play was concerned, of that noble game.  I
had been favourably impressed by Mr. Hartright on our first
introduction to one another, but I soon discovered that he was not
free from the social failings incidental to his age.  There are
three things that none of the young men of the present generation
can do.  They can't sit over their wine, they can't play at whist,
and they can't pay a lady a compliment.  Mr. Hartright was no
exception to the general rule.  Otherwise, even in those early
days and on that short acquaintance, he struck me as being a
modest and gentlemanlike young man.

So the Friday passed.  I say nothing about the more serious
matters which engaged my attention on that day--the anonymous
letter to Miss Fairlie, the measures I thought it right to adopt
when the matter was mentioned to me, and the conviction I
entertained that every possible explanation of the circumstances
would be readily afforded by Sir Percival Glyde, having all been
fully noticed, as I understand, in the narrative which precedes
this.

On the Saturday Mr. Hartright had left before I got down to
breakfast.  Miss Fairlie kept her room all day, and Miss Halcombe
appeared to me to be out of spirits.  The house was not what it
used to be in the time of Mr. and Mrs. Philip Fairlie.  I took a
walk by myself in the forenoon, and looked about at some of the
places which I first saw when I was staying at Limmeridge to
transact family business, more than thirty years since.  They were
not what they used to be either.

At two o'clock Mr. Fairlie sent to say he was well enough to see
me.  HE had not altered, at any rate, since I first knew him.  His
talk was to the same purpose as usual--all about himself and his
ailments, his wonderful coins, and his matchless Rembrandt
etchings.  The moment I tried to speak of the business that had
brought me to his house, he shut his eyes and said I "upset" him. 
I persisted in upsetting him by returning again and again to the
subject.  All I could ascertain was that he looked on his niece's
marriage as a settled thing, that her father had sanctioned it,
that he sanctioned it himself, that it was a desirable marriage,
and that he should be personally rejoiced when the worry of it was
over.  As to the settlements, if I would consult his niece, and
afterwards dive as deeply as I pleased into my own knowledge of
the family affairs, and get everything ready, and limit his share
in the business, as guardian, to saying Yes, at the right moment--
why, of course he would meet my views, and everybody else's views,
with infinite pleasure.  In the meantime, there I saw him, a
helpless sufferer, confined to his room.  Did I think he looked as
if he wanted teasing? No.  Then why tease him?

I might, perhaps, have been a little astonished at this
extraordinary absence of all self-assertion on Mr. Fairlie's part,
in the character of guardian, if my knowledge of the family
affairs had not been sufficient to remind me that he was a single
man, and that he had nothing more than a life-interest in the
Limmeridge property.  As matters stood, therefore, I was neither
surprised nor disappointed at the result of the interview.  Mr.
Fairlie had simply justified my expectations--and there was an end
of it.

Sunday was a dull day, out of doors and in.  A letter arrived for
me from Sir Percival Glyde's solicitor, acknowledging the receipt
of my copy of the anonymous letter and my accompanying statement
of the case.  Miss Fairlie joined us in the afternoon, looking
pale and depressed, and altogether unlike herself.  I had some
talk with her, and ventured on a delicate allusion to Sir
Percival.  She listened and said nothing.  All other subjects she
pursued willingly, but this subject she allowed to drop.  I began
to doubt whether she might not be repenting of her engagement--
just as young ladies often do, when repentance comes too late.

On Monday Sir Percival Glyde arrived.

I found him to be a most prepossessing man, so far as manners and
appearance were concerned.  He looked rather older than I had
expected, his head being bald over the forehead, and his face
somewhat marked and worn, but his movements were as active and his
spirits as high as a young man's.  His meeting with Miss Halcombe
was delightfully hearty and unaffected, and his reception of me,
upon my being presented to him, was so easy and pleasant that we
got on together like old friends.  Miss Fairlie was not with us
when he arrived, but she entered the room about ten minutes
afterwards.  Sir Percival rose and paid his compliments with
perfect grace.  His evident concern on seeing the change for the
worse in the young lady's looks was expressed with a mixture of
tenderness and respect, with an unassuming delicacy of tone,
voice, and manner, which did equal credit to his good breeding and
his good sense.  I was rather surprised, under these
circumstances, to see that Miss Fairlie continued to be
constrained and uneasy in his presence, and that she took the
first opportunity of leaving the room again.  Sir Percival neither
noticed the restraint in her reception of him, nor her sudden
withdrawal from our society.  He had not obtruded his attentions
on her while she was present, and he did not embarrass Miss
Halcombe by any allusion to her departure when she was gone.  His
tact and taste were never at fault on this or on any other
occasion while I was in his company at Limmeridge House.

As soon as Miss Fairlie had left the room he spared us all
embarrassment on the subject of the anonymous letter, by adverting
to it of his own accord.  He had stopped in London on his way from
Hampshire, had seen his solicitor, had read the documents
forwarded by me, and had travelled on to Cumberland, anxious to
satisfy our minds by the speediest and the fullest explanation
that words could convey.  On hearing him express himself to this
effect, I offered him the original letter, which I had kept for
his inspection.  He thanked me, and declined to look at it, saying
that he had seen the copy, and that he was quite willing to leave
the original in our hands.

The statement itself, on which he immediately entered, was as
simple and satisfactory as I had all along anticipated it would
be.

Mrs. Catherick, he informed us, had in past years laid him under
some obligations for faithful services rendered to his family
connections and to himself.  She had been doubly unfortunate in
being married to a husband who had deserted her, and in having an
only child whose mental faculties had been in a disturbed
condition from a very early age.  Although her marriage had
removed her to a part of Hampshire far distant from the
neighbourhood in which Sir Percival's property was situated, he
had taken care not to lose sight of her--his friendly feeling
towards the poor woman, in consideration of her past services,
having been greatly strengthened by his admiration of the patience
and courage with which she supported her calamities.  In course of
time the symptoms of mental affliction in her unhappy daughter
increased to such a serious extent, as to make it a matter of
necessity to place her under proper medical care.  Mrs. Catherick
herself recognised this necessity, but she also felt the prejudice
common to persons occupying her respectable station, against
allowing her child to be admitted, as a pauper, into a public
Asylum.  Sir Percival had respected this prejudice, as he
respected honest independence of feeling in any rank of life, and
had resolved to mark his grateful sense of Mrs. Catherick's early
attachment to the interests of himself and his family, by
defraying the expense of her daughter's maintenance in a
trustworthy private Asylum.  To her mother's regret, and to his
own regret, the unfortunate creature had discovered the share
which circumstances had induced him to take in placing her under
restraint, and had conceived the most intense hatred and distrust
of him in consequence.  To that hatred and distrust--which had
expressed itself in various ways in the Asylum--the anonymous
letter, written after her escape, was plainly attributable.  If
Miss Halcombe's or Mr. Gilmore's recollection of the document did
not confirm that view, or if they wished for any additional
particulars about the Asylum (the address of which he mentioned,
as well as the names and addresses of the two doctors on whose
certificates the patient was admitted), he was ready to answer any
question and to clear up any uncertainty.  He had done his duty to
the unhappy young woman, by instructing his solicitor to spare no
expense in tracing her, and in restoring her once more to medical
care, and he was now only anxious to do his duty towards Miss
Fairlie and towards her family, in the same plain, straightforward
way.

I was the first to speak in answer to this appeal.  My own course
was plain to me.  It is the great beauty of the Law that it can
dispute any human statement, made under any circumstances, and
reduced to any form.  If I had felt professionally called upon to
set up a case against Sir Percival Glyde, on the strength of his
own explanation, I could have done so beyond all doubt.  But my
duty did not lie in this direction--my function was of the purely
judicial kind.  I was to weigh the explanation we had just heard,
to allow all due force to the high reputation of the gentleman who
offered it, and to decide honestly whether the probabilities, on 
Sir Percival's own showing, were plainly with him, or plainly
against him.  My own conviction was that they were plainly with
him, and I accordingly declared that his explanation was, to my
mind, unquestionably a satisfactory one.

Miss Halcombe, after looking at me very earnestly, said a few
words, on her side, to the same effect--with a certain hesitation
of manner, however, which the circumstances did not seem to me to
warrant.  I am unable to say, positively, whether Sir Percival
noticed this or not.  My opinion is that he did, seeing that he
pointedly resumed the subject, although he might now, with all
propriety, have allowed it to drop.

"If my plain statement of facts had only been addressed to Mr.
Gilmore," he said, "I should consider any further reference to
this unhappy matter as unnecessary.  I may fairly expect Mr.
Gilmore, as a gentleman, to believe me on my word, and when he has
done me that justice, all discussion of the subject between us has
come to an end.  But my position with a lady is not the same.  I
owe to her--what I would concede to no man alive--a PROOF of the
truth of my assertion.  You cannot ask for that proof, Miss
Halcombe, and it is therefore my duty to you, and still more to
Miss Fairlie, to offer it.  May I beg that you will write at once
to the mother of this unfortunate woman--to Mrs. Catherick--to ask
for her testimony in support of the explanation which I have just
offered to you."

I saw Miss Halcombe change colour, and look a little uneasy.  Sir
Percival's suggestion, politely as it was expressed, appeared to
her, as it appeared to me, to point very delicately at the
hesitation which her manner had betrayed a moment or two since.

"I hope, Sir Percival, you don't do me the injustice to suppose
that I distrust you," she said quickly.

"Certainly not, Miss Halcombe.  I make my proposal purely as an
act of attention to YOU.  Will you excuse my obstinacy if I still
venture to press it?"

He walked to the writing-table as he spoke, drew a chair to it,
and opened the paper case.

"Let me beg you to write the note," he said, "as a favour to ME. 
It need not occupy you more than a few minutes.  You have only to
ask Mrs. Catherick two questions.  First, if her daughter was
placed in the Asylum with her knowledge and approval.  Secondly,
if the share I took in the matter was such as to merit the
expression of her gratitude towards myself? Mr. Gilmore's mind is
at ease on this unpleasant subject, and your mind is at ease--pray
set my mind at ease also by writing the note."

"You oblige me to grant your request, Sir Percival, when I would
much rather refuse it."

With those words Miss Halcombe rose from her place and went to the
writing-table.  Sir Percival thanked her, handed her a pen, and
then walked away towards the fireplace.  Miss Fairlie's little
Italian greyhound was lying on the rug.  He held out his hand, and
called to the dog good-humouredly.

"Come, Nina," he said, "we remember each other, don't we?"

The little beast, cowardly and cross-grained, as pet-dogs usually
are, looked up at him sharply, shrank away from his outstretched
hand, whined, shivered, and hid itself under a sofa.  It was
scarcely possible that he could have been put out by such a trifle
as a dog's reception of him, but I observed, nevertheless, that he
walked away towards the window very suddenly.  Perhaps his temper
is irritable at times.  If so, I can sympathise with him.  My
temper is irritable at times too.

Miss Halcombe was not long in writing the note.  When it was done
she rose from the writing-table, and handed the open sheet of
paper to Sir Percival.  He bowed, took it from her, folded it up
immediately without looking at the contents, sealed it, wrote the
address, and handed it back to her in silence.  I never saw
anything more gracefully and more becomingly done in my life.

"You insist on my posting this letter, Sir Percival?" said Miss
Halcombe.

"I beg you will post it," he answered.  "And now that it is
written and sealed up, allow me to ask one or two last questions
about the unhappy woman to whom it refers.  I have read the
communication which Mr. Gilmore kindly addressed to my solicitor,
describing the circumstances under which the writer of the
anonymous letter was identified.  But there are certain points to
which that statement does not refer.  Did Anne Catherick see Miss
Fairlie?"

"Certainly not," replied Miss Halcombe.

"Did she see you?"

"No."

"She saw nobody from the house then, except a certain Mr.
Hartright, who accidentally met with her in the churchyard here?"

"Nobody else."

"Mr. Hartright was employed at Limmeridge as a drawing-master, I
believe? Is he a member of one of the Water-Colour Societies?"

"I believe he is," answered Miss Halcombe.

He paused for a moment, as if he was thinking over the last
answer, and then added--

"Did you find out where Anne Catherick was living, when she was in
this neighbourhood?"

"Yes.  At a farm on the moor, called Todd's Corner."

"It is a duty we all owe to the poor creature herself to trace
her," continued Sir Percival.  "She may have said something at
Todd's Corner which may help us to find her.  I will go there and
make inquiries on the chance.  In the meantime, as I cannot
prevail on myself to discuss this painful subject with Miss
Fairlie, may I beg, Miss Halcombe, that you will kindly undertake
to give her the necessary explanation, deferring it of course
until you have received the reply to that note."

Miss Halcombe promised to comp]y with his request.  He thanked
her, nodded pleasantly, and left us, to go and establish himself
in his own room.  As he opened the door the cross-grained
greyhound poked out her sharp muzzle from under the sofa, and
barked and snapped at him.

"A good morning's work, Miss Halcombe," I said, as soon as we were
alone.  "Here is an anxious day well ended already."

"Yes," she answered; "no doubt.  I am very glad your mind is
satisfied."

"My mind! Surely, with that note in your hand, your mind is at
ease too?"

"Oh yes--how can it be otherwise? I know the thing could not be,"
she went on, speaking more to herself than to me; "but I almost
wish Walter Hartright had stayed here long enough to be present at
the explanation, and to hear the proposal to me to write this
note."

I was a little surprised--perhaps a little piqued also--by these
last words.

"Events, it is true, connected Mr. Hartright very remarkably with
the affair of the letter," I said; "and I readily admit that he
conducted himself, all things considered, with great delicacy and
discretion.  But I am quite at a loss to understand what useful
influence his presence could have exercised in relation to the
effect of Sir Percival's statement on your mind or mine."

"It was only a fancy," she said absently.  "There is no need to
discuss it, Mr. Gilmore.  Your experience ought to be, and is, the
best guide I can desire."

I did not altogether like her thrusting the whole responsibility,
in this marked manner, on my shoulders.  If Mr. Fairlie had done
it, I should not have been surprised.  But resolute, clear-minded
Miss Halcombe was the very last person in the world whom I should
have expected to find shrinking from the expression of an opinion
of her own.

"If any doubts still trouble you," I said, "why not mention them
to me at once? Tell me plainly, have you any reason to distrust
Sir Percival Glyde?"

"None whatever."

"Do you see anything improbable, or contradictory, in his
explanation?"

"How can I say I do, after the proof he has offered me of the
truth of it? Can there be better testimony in his favour, Mr.
Gilmore, than the testimony of the woman's mother?"

"None better.  If the answer to your note of inquiry proves to be
satisfactory, I for one cannot see what more any friend of Sir
Percival's can possibly expect from him."

"Then we will post the note," she said, rising to leave the room,
"and dismiss all further reference to the subject until the answer
arrives.  Don't attach any weight to my hesitation.  I can give no
better reason for it than that I have been over-anxious about
Laura lately--and anxiety, Mr. Gilmore, unsettles the strongest of
us."

She left me abruptly, her naturally firm voice faltering as she
spoke those last words.  A sensitive, vehement, passionate nature--
a woman of ten thousand in these trivial, superficial times.  I
had known her from her earliest years--I had seen her tested, as
she grew up, in more than one trying family crisis, and my long
experience made me attach an importance to her hesitation under
the circumstances here detailed, which I should certainly not have
felt in the case of another woman.  I could see no cause for any
uneasiness or any doubt, but she had made me a little uneasy, and
a little doubtful, nevertheless.  In my youth, I should have
chafed and fretted under the irritation of my own unreasonable
state of mind.  In my age, I knew better, and went out
philosophically to walk it off.



II


We all met again at dinner-time.

Sir Percival was in such boisterous high spirits that I hardly
recognised him as the same man whose quiet tact, refinement, and
good sense had impressed me so strongly at the interview of the
morning.  The only trace of his former self that I could detect
reappeared, every now and then, in his manner towards Miss
Fairlie.  A look or a word from her suspended his loudest laugh,
checked his gayest flow of talk, and rendered him all attention to
her, and to no one else at table, in an instant.  Although he
never openly tried to draw her into the conversation, he never
lost the slightest chance she gave him of letting her drift into
it by accident, and of saying the words to her, under those
favourable circumstances, which a man with less tact and delicacy
would have pointedly addressed to her the moment they occurred to
him.  Rather to my surprise, Miss Fairlie appeared to be sensible
of his attentions without being moved by them.  She was a little
confused from time to time when he looked at her, or spoke to her;
but she never warmed towards him.  Rank, fortune, good breeding,
good looks, the respect of a gentleman, and the devotion of a
lover were all humbly placed at her feet, and, so far as
appearances went, were all offered in vain.

On the next day, the Tuesday, Sir Percival went in the morning
(taking one of the servants with him as a guide) to Todd's Corner. 
His inquiries, as I afterwards heard, led to no results.  On his
return he had an interview with Mr. Fairlie, and in the afternoon
he and Miss Halcombe rode out together.  Nothing else happened
worthy of record.  The evening passed as usual.  There was no
change in Sir Percival, and no change in Miss Fairlie.

The Wednesday's post brought with it an event--the reply from Mrs.
Catherick.  I took a copy of the document, which I have preserved,
and which I may as well present in this place.  It ran as follows--



"MADAM,--I beg to acknowledge the receipt of your letter,
inquiring whether my daughter, Anne, was placed under medical
superintendence with my knowledge and approval, and whether the
share taken in the matter by Sir Percival Glyde was such as to
merit the expression of my gratitude towards that gentleman.  Be
pleased to accept my answer in the affirmative to both those
questions, and believe me to remain, your obedient servant,

                            "JANE ANNE CATHERICK."


Short, sharp, and to the point; in form rather a business-like
letter for a woman to write--in substance as plain a confirmation
as could be desired of Sir Percival Glyde's statement.  This was
my opinion, and with certain minor reservations, Miss Halcombe's
opinion also.  Sir Percival, when the letter was shown to him, did
not appear to be struck by the sharp, short tone of it.  He told
us that Mrs. Catherick was a woman of few words, a clear-headed,
straightforward, unimaginative person, who wrote briefly and
plainly, just as she spoke.

The next duty to be accomplished, now that the answer had been
received, was to acquaint Miss Fairlie with Sir Percival's
explanation.  Miss Halcombe had undertaken to do this, and had
left the room to go to her sister, when she suddenly returned
again, and sat down by the easy-chair in which I was reading the
newspaper.  Sir Percival had gone out a minute before to look at
the stables, and no one was in the room but ourselves.

"I suppose we have really and truly done all we can?" she said,
turning and twisting Mrs. Catherick's letter in her hand.

"If we are friends of Sir Percival's, who know him and trust him,
we have done all, and more than all, that is necessary," I
answered, a little annoyed by this return of her hesitation.  "But
if we are enemies who suspect him----"

"That alternative is not even to be thought of," she interposed. 
"We are Sir Percival's friends, and if generosity and forbearance
can add to our regard for him, we ought to be Sir Percival's
admirers as well.  You know that he saw Mr. Fairlie yesterday, and
that he afterwards went out with me."

"Yes.  I saw you riding away together."

"We began the ride by talking about Anne Catherick, and about the
singular manner in which Mr. Hartright met with her.  But we soon
dropped that subject, and Sir Percival spoke next, in the most
unselfish terms, of his engagement with Laura.  He said he had
observed that she was out of spirits, and he was willing, if not
informed to the contrary, to attribute to that cause the
alteration in her manner towards him during his present visit. 
If, however, there was any more serious reason for the change, he
would entreat that no constraint might be placed on her
inclinations either by Mr. Fairlie or by me.  All he asked, in
that case, was that she would recall to mind, for the last time,
what the circumstances were under which the engagement between
them was made, and what his conduct had been from the beginning of
the courtship to the present time.  If, after due reflection on
those two subjects, she seriously desired that he should withdraw
his pretensions to the honour of becoming her husband--and if she
would tell him so plainly with her own lips--he would sacrifice
himself by leaving her perfectly free to withdraw from the
engagement."

"No man could say more than that, Miss Halcombe.  As to my
experience, few men in his situation would have said as much."

She paused after I had spoken those words, and looked at me with a
singular expression of perplexity and distress.

"I accuse nobody, and I suspect nothing," she broke out abruptly. 
"But I cannot and will not accept the responsibility of persuading
Laura to this marriage."

"That is exactly the course which Sir Percival Glyde has himself
requested you to take," I replied in astonishment.  "He has begged
you not to force her inclinations."

"And he indirectly obliges me to force them, if I give her his
message."

"How can that possibly be?"

"Consult your own knowledge of Laura, Mr. Gilmore.  If I tell her
to reflect on the circumstances of her engagement, I at once
appeal to two of the strongest feelings in her nature--to her love
for her father's memory, and to her strict regard for truth.  You
know that she never broke a promise in her life--you know that she
entered on this engagement at the beginning of her father's fatal
illness, and that he spoke hopefully and happily of her marriage
to Sir Percival Glyde on his deathbed."

I own that I was a little shocked at this view of the case.

"Surely," I said, "you don't mean to infer that when Sir Percival
spoke to you yesterday he speculated on such a result as you have
just mentioned?"

Her frank, fearless face answered for her before she spoke.

"Do you think I would remain an instant in the company of any man
whom I suspected of such baseness as that?" she asked angrily.

I liked to feel her hearty indignation flash out on me in that
way.  We see so much malice and so little indignation in my
profession.

"In that case," I said, "excuse me if I tell you, in our legal
phrase, that you are travelling out of the record.  Whatever the
consequences may be, Sir Percival has a right to expect that your
sister should carefully consider her engagement from every
reasonable point of view before she claims her release from it. 
If that unlucky letter has prejudiced her against him, go at once,
and tell her that he has cleared himself in your eyes and in mine. 
What objection can she urge against him after that? What excuse
can she possibly have for changing her mind about a man whom she
had virtually accepted for her husband more than two years ago?"

"In the eyes of law and reason, Mr. Gilmore, no excuse, I daresay. 
If she still hesitates, and if I still hesitate, you must
attribute our strange conduct, if you like, to caprice in both
cases, and we must bear the imputation as well as we can."

With those words she suddenly rose and left me.  When a sensible
woman has a serious question put to her, and evades it by a
flippant answer, it is a sure sign, in ninety-nine cases out of a
hundred, that she has something to conceal.  I returned to the
perusal of the newspaper, strongly suspecting that Miss Halcombe
and Miss Fairlie had a secret between them which they were keeping
from Sir Percival, and keeping from me.  I thought this hard on
both of us, especially on Sir Percival.

My doubts--or to speak more correctly, my convictions--were
confirmed by Miss Halcombe's language and manner when I saw her
again later in the day.  She was suspiciously brief and reserved
in telling me the result of her interview with her sister.  Miss
Fairlie, it appeared, had listened quietly while the affair of the
letter was placed before her in the right point of view, but when
Miss Halcombe next proceeded to say that the object of Sir
Percival's visit at Limmeridge was to prevail on her to let a day
be fixed for the marriage she checked all further reference to the
subject by begging for time.  If Sir Percival would consent to
spare her for the present, she would undertake to give him his
final answer before the end of the year.  She pleaded for this
delay with such anxiety and agitation, that Miss Halcombe had
promised to use her influence, if necessary, to obtain it, and
there, at Miss Fairlie's earnest entreaty, all further discussion
of the marriage question had ended.

The purely temporary arrangement thus proposed might have been
convenient enough to the young lady, but it proved somewhat
embarrassing to the writer of these lines.  That morning's post
had brought a letter from my partner, which obliged me to return
to town the next day by the afternoon train.  It was extremely
probable that I should find no second opportunity of presenting
myself at Limmeridge House during the remainder of the year.  In
that case, supposing Miss Fairlie ultimately decided on holding to
her engagement, my necessary personal communication with her,
before I drew her settlement, would become something like a
downright impossibility, and we should be obliged to commit to
writing questions which ought always to be discussed on both sides
by word of mouth.  I said nothing about this difficulty until Sir
Percival had been consulted on the subject of the desired delay. 
He was too gallant a gentleman not to grant the request
immediately.  When Miss Halcombe informed me of this I told her
that I must absolutely speak to her sister before I left
Limmeridge, and it was, therefore, arranged that I should see Miss
Fairlie in her own sitting-room the next morning.  She did not
come down to dinner, or join us in the evening.  Indisposition was
the excuse, and I thought Sir Percival looked, as well he might, a
little annoyed when he heard of it.

The next morning, as soon as breakfast was over, I went up to Miss
Fairlie's sitting-room.  The poor girl looked so pale and sad, and
came forward to welcome me so readily and prettily, that the
resolution to lecture her on her caprice and indecision, which I
had been forming all the way upstairs, failed me on the spot.  I
led her back to the chair from which she had risen, and placed
myself opposite to her.  Her cross-grained pet greyhound was in
the room, and I fully expected a barking and snapping reception. 
Strange to say, the whimsical little brute falsified my
expectations by jumping into my lap and poking its sharp muzzle
familiarly into my hand the moment I sat down.

"You used often to sit on my knee when you were a child.  my
dear," I said, "and now your little dog seems determined to
succeed you in the vacant throne.  Is that pretty drawing your
doing?"

I pointed to a little album which lay on the table by her side and
which she had evidently been looking over when I came in.  The
page that lay open had a small water-colour landscape very neatly
mounted on it.  This was the drawing which had suggested my
question--an idle question enough--but how could I begin to talk
of business to her the moment I opened my lips?

"No," she said, looking away from the drawing rather confusedly,
"it is not my doing."

Her fingers had a restless habit, which I remembered in her as a
child, of always playing with the first thing that came to hand
whenever any one was talking to her.  On this occasion they
wandered to the album, and toyed absently about the margin of the
little water-colour drawing.  The expression of melancholy
deepened on her face.  She did not look at the drawing, or look at
me.  Her eyes moved uneasily from object to object in the room,
betraying plainly that she suspected what my purpose was in coming
to speak to her.  Seeing that, I thought it best to get to the
purpose with as little delay as possible.

"One of the errands, my dear, which brings me here is to bid you
good-bye," I began.  "I must get back to London to-day: and,
before I leave, I want to have a word with you on the subject of
your own affairs."

"I am very sorry you are going, Mr. Gilmore," she said, looking at
me kindly.  "It is like the happy old times to have you here.

"I hope I may be able to come back and recall those pleasant
memories once more," I continued; "but as there is some
uncertainty about the future, I must take my opportunity when I
can get it, and speak to you now.  I am your old lawyer and your
old friend, and I may remind you, I am sure, without offence, of
the possibility of your marrying Sir Percival Glyde."

She took her hand off the little album as suddenly as if it had
turned hot and burnt her.  Her fingers twined together nervously
in her lap, her eyes looked down again at the floor, and an
expression of constraint settled on her face which looked almost
like an expression of pain.

"Is it absolutely necessary to speak of my marriage engagement?"
she asked in low tones.

"It is necessary to refer to it," I answered, "but not to dwell on
it.  Let us merely say that you may marry, or that you may not
marry.  In the first case, I must be prepared, beforehand, to draw
your settlement, and I ought not to do that without, as a matter
of politeness, first consulting you.  This may be my only chance
of hearing what your wishes are.  Let us, therefore, suppose the
case of your marrying, and let me inform you, in as few words as
possible, what your position is now, and what you may make it, if
you please, in the future."

I explained to her the object of a marriage-settlement, and then
told her exactly what her prospects were--in the first place, on
her coming of age, and in the second place, on the decease of her
uncle--marking the distinction between the property in which she
had a life-interest only, and the property which was left at her
own control.  She listened attentively, with the constrained
expression still on her face, and her hands still nervously 
clasped together in her lap.

"And now," I said in conclusion, "tell me if you can think of any
condition which, in the case we have supposed, you would wish me
to make for you--subject, of course, to your guardian's approval,
as you are not yet of age."

She moved uneasily in her chair, then looked in my face on a
sudden very earnestly.

"If it does happen," she began faintly, "if I am----"

"If you are married," I added, helping her out.

"Don't let him part me from Marian," she cried, with a sudden
outbreak of energy.  "Oh, Mr. Gilmore, pray make it law that
Marian is to live with me!"

Under other circumstances I might, perhaps, have been amused at
this essentially feminine interpretation of my question, and of
the long explanation which had preceded it.  But her looks and
tones, when she spoke, were of a kind to make me more than
serious--they distressed me.  Her words, few as they were,
betrayed a desperate clinging to the past which boded ill for the
future.

"Your having Marian Halcombe to live with you can easily be
settled by private arrangement," I said.  "You hardly understood
my question, I think.  It referred to your own property--to the
disposal of your money.  Supposing you were to make a will when
you come of age, who would you like the money to go to?"

"Marian has been mother and sister both to me," said the good,
affectionate girl, her pretty blue eyes glistening while she
spoke.  "May I leave it to Marian, Mr. Gilmore?"

"Certainly, my love," I answered.  "But remember what a large sum
it is.  Would you like it all to go to Miss Halcombe?"

She hesitated; her colour came and went, and her hand stole back
again to the little album.

"Not all of it," she said.  "There is some one else besides
Marian----"

She stopped; her colour heightened, and the fingers of the hand
that rested upon the album beat gently on the margin of the
drawing, as if her memory had set them going mechanically with the
remembrance of a favourite tune.

"You mean some other member of the family besides Miss Halcombe?"
I suggested, seeing her at a loss to proceed.

The heightening colour spread to her forehead and her neck, and
the nervous fingers suddenly clasped themselves fast round the
edge of the book.

"There is some one else," she said, not noticing my last words,
though she had evidently heard them; "there is some one else who
might like a little keepsake if--if I might leave it.  There would
be no harm if I should die first----"

She paused again.  The colour that had spread over her cheeks
suddenly, as suddenly left them.  The hand on the album resigned
its hold, trembled a little, and moved the book away from her. 
She looked at me for an instant--then turned her head aside in the
chair.  Her handkerchief fell to the floor as she changed her
position, and she hurriedly hid her face from me in her hands.

Sad! To remember her, as I did, the liveliest, happiest child that
ever laughed the day through, and to see her now, in the flower of
her age and her beauty, so broken and so brought down as this!

In the distress that she caused me I forgot the years that had
passed, and the change they had made in our position towards one
another.  I moved my chair close to her, and picked up her
handkerchief from the carpet, and drew her hands from her face
gently.  "Don't cry, my love," I said, and dried the tears that
were gathering in her eyes with my own hand, as if she had been
the little Laura Fairlie of ten long years ago.

It was the best way I could have taken to compose her.  She laid
her head on my shoulder, and smiled faintly through her tears.

"I am very sorry for forgetting myself," she said artlessly.  "I
have not been well--I have felt sadly weak and nervous lately, and
I often cry without reason when I am alone.  I am better now--I
can answer you as I ought, Mr. Gilmore, I can indeed."

"No, no, my dear," I replied, "we will consider the subject as
done with for the present.  You have said enough to sanction my
taking the best possible care of your interests, and we can settle
details at another opportunity.  Let us have done with business
now, and talk of something else."

I led her at once into speaking on other topics.  In ten minutes'
time she was in better spirits, and I rose to take my leave.

"Come here again," she said earnestly.  "I will try to be worthier
of your kind feeling for me and for my interests if you will only
come again."

Still clinging to the past--that past which I represented to her,
in my way, as Miss Halcombe did in hers! It troubled me sorely to
see her looking back, at the beginning of her career, just as I
look back at the end of mine.

"If I do come again, I hope I shall find you better," I said;
"better and happier.  God bless you, my dear!"

She only answered by putting up her cheek to me to be kissed. 
Even lawyers have hearts, and mine ached a little as I took leave
of her.

The whole interview between us had hardly lasted more than half an
hour--she had not breathed a word, in my presence, to explain the
mystery of her evident distress and dismay at the prospect of her
marriage, and yet she had contrived to win me over to her side of
the question, I neither knew how nor why.  I had entered the room,
feeling that Sir Percival Glyde had fair reason to complain of the
manner in which she was treating him.  I left it, secretly hoping
that matters might end in her taking him at his word and claiming
her release.  A man of my age and experience ought to have known
better than to vacillate in this unreasonable manner.  I can make
no excuse for myself; I can only tell the truth, and say--so it
was.

The hour for my departure was now drawing near.  I sent to Mr.
Fairlie to say that I would wait on him to take leave if he liked,
but that he must excuse my being rather in a hurry.  He sent a
message back, written in pencil on a slip of paper: "Kind love and
best wishes, dear Gilmore.  Hurry of any kind is inexpressibly
injurious to me.  Pray take care of yourself.  Good-bye."

Just before I left I saw Miss Halcombe for a moment alone.

"Have you said all you wanted to Laura?" she asked.

"Yes," I replied.  "She is very weak and nervous--I am glad she
has you to take care of her."

Miss Halcombe's sharp eyes studied my face attentively.

"You are altering your opinion about Laura," she said.  "You are
readier to make allowances for her than you were yesterday."

No sensible man ever engages, unprepared, in a fencing match of
words with a woman.  I only answered--

"Let me know what happens.  I will do nothing till I hear from
you."

She still looked hard in my face.  "I wish it was all over, and
well over, Mr. Gilmore--and so do you." With those words she left
me.

Sir Percival most politely insisted on seeing me to the carriage
door.

"If you are ever in my neighbourhood," he said, "pray don't forget
that I am sincerely anxious to improve our acquaintance.  The 
tried and trusted old friend of this family will be always a
welcome visitor in any house of mine."

A really irresistible man--courteous, considerate, delightfully
free from pride--a gentleman, every inch of him.  As I drove away
to the station I felt as if I could cheerfully do anything to
promote the interests of Sir Percival Glyde--anything in the
world, except drawing the marriage settlement of his wife.



III


A week passed, after my return to London, without the receipt of
any communication from Miss Halcombe.

On the eighth day a letter in her handwriting was placed among the
other letters on my table.

It announced that Sir Percival Glyde had been definitely accepted,
and that the marriage was to take place, as he had originally
desired, before the end of the year.  In all probability the
ceremony would be performed during the last fortnight in December. 
Miss Fairlie's twenty-first birthday was late in March.  She
would, therefore, by this arrangement, become Sir Percival's wife
about three months before she was of age.

I ought not to have been surprised, I ought not to have been
sorry, but I was surprised and sorry, nevertheless.  Some little
disappointment, caused by the unsatisfactory shortness of Miss
Halcombe's letter, mingled itself with these feelings, and
contributed its share towards upsetting my serenity for the day. 
In six lines my correspondent announced the proposed marriage--in
three more, she told me that Sir Percival had left Cumberland to
return to his house in Hampshire, and in two concluding sentences
she informed me, first, that Laura was sadly in want of change and
cheerful society; secondly, that she had resolved to try the
effect of some such change forthwith, by taking her sister away
with her on a visit to certain old friends in Yorkshire.  There
the letter ended, without a word to explain what the circumstances
were which had decided Miss Fairlie to accept Sir Percival Glyde
in one short week from the time when I had last seen her.

At a later period the cause of this sudden determination was fully
explained to me.  It is not my business to relate it imperfectly,
on hearsay evidence.  The circumstances came within the personal
experience of Miss Halcombe, and when her narrative succeeds mine,
she will describe them in every particular exactly as they
happened.  In the meantime, the plain duty for me to perform--
before I, in my turn, lay down my pen and withdraw from the story--
is to relate the one remaining event connected with Miss
Fairlie's proposed marriage in which I was concerned, namely, the
drawing of the settlement.

It is impossible to refer intelligibly to this document without
first entering into certain particulars in relation to the bride's
pecuniary affairs.  I will try to make my explanation briefly and
plainly, and to keep it free from professional obscurities and
technicalities.  The matter is of the utmost importance.  I warn
all readers of these lines that Miss Fairlie's inheritance is a
very serious part of Miss Fairlie's story, and that Mr. Gilmore's
experience, in this particular, must be their experience also, if
they wish to understand the narratives which are yet to come.

Miss Fairlie's expectations, then, were of a twofold kind,
comprising her possible inheritance of real property, or land,
when her uncle died, and her absolute inheritance of personal
property, or money, when she came of age.

Let us take the land first.

In the time of Miss Fairlie's paternal grandfather (whom we will
call Mr. Fairlie, the elder) the entailed succession to the
Limmeridge estate stood thus--

Mr. Fairlie, the elder, died and left three sons, Philip,
Frederick, and Arthur.  As eldest son, Philip succeeded to the
estate, If he died without leaving a son, the property went to the
second brother, Frederick; and if Frederick died also without
leaving a son, the property went to the third brother, Arthur.

As events turned out, Mr. Philip Fairlie died leaving an only
daughter, the Laura of this story, and the estate, in consequence,
went, in course of law, to the second brother, Frederick, a single
man.  The third brother, Arthur, had died many years before the
decease of Philip, leaving a son and a daughter.  The son, at the
age of eighteen, was drowned at Oxford.  His death left Laura, the
daughter of Mr. Philip Fairlie, presumptive heiress to the estate,
with every chance of succeeding to it, in the ordinary course of
nature, on her uncle Frederick's death, if the said Frederick died
without leaving male issue.

Except in the event, then, of Mr. Frederick Fairlie's marrying and
leaving an heir (the two very last things in the world that he was
likely to do), his niece, Laura, would have the property on his
death, possessing, it must be remembered, nothing more than a
life-interest in it.  If she died single, or died childless, the
estate would revert to her cousin, Magdalen, the daughter of Mr.
Arthur Fairlie.  If she married, with a proper settlement--or, in
other words, with the settlement I meant to make for her--the
income from the estate (a good three thousand a year) would,
during her lifetime, be at her own disposal.  If she died before
her husband, he would naturally expect to be left in the enjoyment
of the income, for HIS lifetime.  If she had a son, that son would
be the heir, to the exclusion of her cousin Magdalen.  Thus, Sir
Percival's prospects in marrying Miss Fairlie (so far as his
wife's expectations from real property were concerned) promised
him these two advantages, on Mr. Frederick Fairlie's death: First,
the use of three thousand a year (by his wife's permission, while
she lived, and in his own right, on her death, if he survived
her); and, secondly, the inheritance of Limmeridge for his son, if
he had one.

So much for the landed property, and for the disposal of the
income from it, on the occasion of Miss Fairlie's marriage.  Thus
far, no difficulty or difference of opinion on the lady's
settlement was at all likely to arise between Sir Percival's
lawyer and myself.

The personal estate, or, in other words, the money to which Miss
Fairlie would become entitled on reaching the age of twenty-one
years, is the next point to consider.

This part of her inheritance was, in itself, a comfortable little
fortune.  It was derived under her father's will, and it amounted
to the sum of twenty thousand pounds.  Besides this, she had a
life-interest in ten thousand pounds more, which latter amount was
to go, on her decease, to her aunt Eleanor, her father's only
sister.  It will greatly assist in setting the family affairs
before the reader in the clearest possible light, if I stop here
for a moment, to explain why the aunt had been kept waiting for
her legacy until the death of the niece.

Mr. Philip Fairlie had lived on excellent terms with his sister
Eleanor, as long as she remained a single woman.  But when her
marriage took place, somewhat late in life, and when that marriage
united her to an Italian gentleman named Fosco, or, rather, to an
Italian nobleman--seeing that he rejoiced in the title of Count--
Mr. Fairlie disapproved of her conduct so strongly that he ceased
to hold any communication with her, and even went the length of
striking her name out of his will.  The other members of the
family all thought this serious manifestation of resentment at his
sister's marriage more or less unreasonable.  Count Fosco, though
not a rich man, was not a penniless adventurer either.  He had a
small but sufficient income of his own.  He had lived many years
in England, and he held an excellent position in society.  These
recommendations, however, availed nothing with Mr. Fairlie.  In
many of his opinions he was an Englishman of the old school, and
he hated a foreigner simply and solely because he was a foreigner. 
The utmost that he could be prevailed on to do, in after years--
mainly at Miss Fairlie's intercession--was to restore his sister's
name to its former place in his will, but to keep her waiting for
her legacy by giving the income of the money to his daughter for
life, and the money itself, if her aunt died before her, to her
cousin Magdalen.  Considering the relative ages of the two ladies,
the aunt's chance, in the ordinary course of nature, of receiving
the ten thousand pounds, was thus rendered doubtful in the
extreme; and Madame Fosco resented her brother's treatment of her
as unjustly as usual in such cases, by refusing to see her niece,
and declining to believe that Miss Fairlie's intercession had ever
been exerted to restore her name to Mr. Fairlie's will.

Such was the history of the ten thousand pounds.  Here again no
difficulty could arise with Sir Percival's legal adviser.  The
income would be at the wife's disposal, and the principal would go
to her aunt or her cousin on her death.

All preliminary explanations being now cleared out of the way, I
come at last to the real knot of the case--to the twenty thousand
pounds.

This sum was absolutely Miss Fairlie's own on her completing her
twenty-first year, and the whole future disposition of it
depended, in the first instance, on the conditions I could obtain
for her in her marriage-settlement.  The other clauses contained
in that document were of a formal kind, and need not be recited
here.  But the clause relating to the money is too important to be
passed over.  A few lines will be sufficient to give the necessary
abstract of it.

My stipulation in regard to the twenty thousand pounds was simply
this: The whole amount was to be settled so as to give the income
to the lady for her life--afterwards to Sir Percival for his life--
and the principal to the children of the marriage.  In default of
issue, the principal was to be disposed of as the lady might by
her will direct, for which purpose I reserved to her the right of
making a will.  The effect of these conditions may be thus summed
up.  If Lady Glyde died without leaving children, her half-sister
Miss Halcombe, and any other relatives or friends whom she might
be anxious to benefit, would, on her husband's death, divide among
them such shares of her money as she desired them to have.  If, on
the other hand, she died leaving children, then their interest,
naturally and necessarily, superseded all other interests
whatsoever.  This was the clause--and no one who reads it can
fail, I think, to agree with me that it meted out equal justice to
all parties.

We shall see how my proposals were met on the husband's side.

At the time when Miss Halcombe's letter reached me I was even more
busily occupied than usual.  But I contrived to make leisure for
the settlement.  I had drawn it, and had sent it for approval to
Sir Percival's solicitor, in less than a week from the time when
Miss Halcombe had informed me of the proposed marriage.

After a lapse of two days the document was returned to me, with
notes and remarks of the baronet's lawyer.  His objections, in
general, proved to be of the most trifling and technical kind,
until he came to the clause relating to the twenty thousand
pounds.  Against this there were double lines drawn in red ink,
and the following note was appended to them--

"Not admissible.  The PRINCIPAL to go to Sir Percival Glyde, in
the event of his surviving Lady Glyde, and there being no issue."

That is to say, not one farthing of the twenty thousand pounds was
to go to Miss Halcombe, or to any other relative or friend of Lady
Glyde's.  The whole sum, if she left no children, was to slip into
the pockets of her husband.

The answer I wrote to this audacious proposal was as short and
sharp as I could make it.  "My dear sir.  Miss Fairlie's
settlement.  I maintain the clause to which you object, exactly as
it stands.  Yours truly." The rejoinder came back in a quarter of
an hour.  "My dear sir.  Miss Fairlie's settlement.  I maintain
the red ink to which you object, exactly as it stands.  Yours
truly." In the detestable slang of the day, we were now both "at a
deadlock," and nothing was left for it but to refer to our clients
on either side.

As matters stood, my client--Miss Fairlie not having yet completed
her twenty-first year--Mr. Frederick Fairlie, was her guardian.  I
wrote by that day's post, and put the case before him exactly as
it stood, not only urging every argument I could think of to
induce him to maintain the clause as I had drawn it, but stating
to him plainly the mercenary motive which was at the bottom of the
opposition to my settlement of the twenty thousand pounds.  The
knowledge of Sir Percival's affairs which I had necessarily gained
when the provisions of the deed on HIS side were submitted in due
course to my examination, had but too plainly informed me that the
debts on his estate were enormous, and that his income, though
nominally a large one, was virtually, for a man in his position,
next to nothing.  The want of ready money was the practical
necessity of Sir Percival's existence, and his lawyer's note on
the clause in the settlement was nothing but the frankly selfish
expression of it.

Mr. Fairlie's answer reached me by return of post, and proved to
be wandering and irrelevant in the extreme.  Turned into plain
English, it practically expressed itself to this effect: "Would
dear Gilmore be so very obliging as not to worry his friend and
client about such a trifle as a remote contingency? Was it likely
that a young woman of twenty-one would die before a man of forty
five, and die without children? On the other hand, in such a
miserable world as this, was it possible to over-estimate the
value of peace and quietness? If those two heavenly blessings were
offered in exchange for such an earthly trifle as a remote chance
of twenty thousand pounds, was it not a fair bargain? Surely, yes. 
Then why not make it?"

I threw the letter away in disgust.  Just as it had fluttered to
the ground, there was a knock at my door, and Sir Percival s
solicitor, Mr. Merriman, was shown in.  There are many varieties
of sharp practitioners in this world, but I think the hardest of
all to deal with are the men who overreach you under the disguise
of inveterate good-humour.  A fat, well fed, smiling, friendly man
of business is of all parties to a bargain the most hopeless to
deal with.  Mr. Merriman was one of this class.

"And how is good Mr. Gilmore?" he began, all in a glow with the
warmth of his own amiability.  "Glad to see you, sir, in such
excellent health.  I was passing your door, and I thought I would
look in in case you might have something to say to me.  Do--now
pray do let us settle this little difference of ours by word of
mouth, if we can! Have you heard from your client yet?"

"Yes.  Have you heard from yours?"

"My dear, good sir! I wish I had heard from him to any purpose--I
wish, with all my heart, the responsibility was off my shoulders;
but he is obstinate--or let me rather say, resolute--and he won't
take it off.  'Merriman, I leave details to you.  Do what you
think right for my interests, and consider me as having personally
withdrawn from the business until it is all over.' Those were Sir
Percival's words a fortnight ago, and all I can get him to do now
is to repeat them.  I am not a hard man, Mr. Gilmore, as you know. 
Personally and privately, I do assure you, I should like to sponge
out that note of mine at this very moment.  But if Sir Percival
won't go into the matter, if Sir Percival will blindly leave all
his interests in my sole care, what course can I possibly take
except the course of asserting them? My hands are bound--don't you
see, my dear sir?--my hands are bound."

"You maintain your note on the clause, then, to the letter?" I
said.

"Yes--deuce take it! I have no other alternative." He walked to
the fireplace and warmed himself, humming the fag end of a tune in
a rich convivial bass voice.  "What does your side say?" he went
on; "now pray tell me--what does your side say?"

I was ashamed to tell him.  I attempted to gain time--nay, I did
worse.  My legal instincts got the better of me, and I even tried
to bargain.

"Twenty thousand pounds is rather a large sum to be given up by
the lady's friends at two days' notice," I said.

"Very true," replied Mr. Merriman, looking down thoughtfully at
his boots.  "Properly put, sir--most properly put!"

"A compromise, recognising the interests of the lady's family as 
well as the interests of the husband, might not perhaps have
frightened my client quite so much," I went on.  "Come, come! this
contingency resolves itself into a matter of bargaining after all. 
What is the least you will take?"

"The least we will take," said Mr. Merriman, "is nineteen-
thousand-nine-hundred-and-ninety-nine-pounds-nineteen-shillings-
and-elevenpence-three-farthings.  Ha! ha! ha! Excuse me, Mr.
Gilmore.  I must have my little joke."

"Little enough," I remarked.  "The joke is just worth the odd
farthing it was made for."

Mr. Merriman was delighted.  He laughed over my retort till the
room rang again.  I was not half so good-humoured on my side; I
came back to business, and closed the interview.

"This is Friday," I said.  "Give us till Tuesday next for our
final answer."

"By all means," replied Mr. Merriman.  "Longer, my dear sir, if
you like." He took up his hat to go, and then addressed me again. 
"By the way," he said, "your clients in Cumberland have not heard
anything more of the woman who wrote the anonymous letter, have
they?"

"Nothing more," I answered.  "Have you found no trace of her?"

"Not yet," said my legal friend.  "But we don't despair.  Sir
Percival has his suspicions that Somebody is keeping her in
hiding, and we are having that Somebody watched."

"You mean the old woman who was with her in Cumberland," I said.

"Quite another party, sir," answered Mr. Merriman.  "We don't
happen to have laid hands on the old woman yet.  Our Somebody is a
man.  We have got him close under our eye here in London, and we
strongly suspect he had something to do with helping her in the
first instance to escape from the Asylum.  Sir Percival wanted to
question him at once, but I said, 'No.  Questioning him will only
put him on his guard--watch him, and wait.' We shall see what
happens.  A dangerous woman to be at large, Mr. Gilmore; nobody
knows what she may do next.  I wish you good-morning, sir.  On
Tuesday next I shall hope for the pleasure of hearing from you."
He smiled amiably and went out.

My mind had been rather absent during the latter part of the
conversation with my legal friend.  I was so anxious about the
matter of the settlement that I had little attention to give to
any other subject, and the moment I was left alone again I began
to think over what my next proceeding ought to be.

In the case of any other client I should have acted on my
instructions, however personally distasteful to me, and have given
up the point about the twenty thousand pounds on the spot.  But I
could not act with this business-like indifference towards Miss
Fairlie.  I had an honest feeling of affection and admiration for
her--I remembered gratefully that her father had been the kindest
patron and friend to me that ever man had--I had felt towards her
while I was drawing the settlement as I might have felt, if I had
not been an old bachelor, towards a daughter of my own, and I was
determined to spare no personal sacrifice in her service and where
her interests were concerned.  Writing a second time to Mr.
Fairlie was not to be thought of--it would only be giving him a
second opportunity of slipping through my fingers.  Seeing him and
personally remonstrating with him might possibly be of more use. 
The next day was Saturday.  I determined to take a return ticket
and jolt my old bones down to Cumberland, on the chance of
persuading him to adopt the just, the independent, and the
honourable course.  It was a poor chance enough, no doubt, but
when I had tried it my conscience would be at ease.  I should then
have done all that a man in my position could do to serve the
interests of my old friend's only child.

The weather on Saturday was beautiful, a west wind and a bright
sun.  Having felt latterly a return of that fulness and oppression
of the head, against which my doctor warned me so seriously more
than two years since, I resolved to take the opportunity of
getting a little extra exercise by sending my bag on before me and
walking to the terminus in Euston Square.  As I came out into
Holborn a gentleman walking by rapidly stopped and spoke to me. 
It was Mr. Walter Hartright.

If he had not been the first to greet me I should certainly have
passed him.  He was so changed that I hardly knew him again.  His
face looked pale and haggard--his manner was hurried and
uncertain--and his dress, which I remembered as neat and
gentleman-like when I saw him at Limmeridge, was so slovenly now
that I should really have been ashamed of the appearance of it on
one of my own clerks.

"Have you been long back from Cumberland?" he asked.  "I heard
from Miss Halcombe lately.  I am aware that Sir Percival Glyde's
explanation has been considered satisfactory. Will the marriage
take place soon? Do you happen to know Mr. Gilmore?"

He spoke so fast, and crowded his questions together so strangely
and confusedly, that I could hardly follow him.  However
accidentally intimate he might have been with the family at
Limmeridge, I could not see that he had any right to expect
information on their private affairs, and I determined to drop
him, as easily as might be, on the subject of Miss Fairlie's
marriage.

"Time will show, Mr. Hartright," I said--"time will show.  I dare
say if we look out for the marriage in the papers we shall not be
far wrong.  Excuse my noticing it, but I am sorry to see you not
looking so well as you were when we last met."

A momentary nervous contraction quivered about his lips and eyes,
and made me half reproach myself for having answered him in such a
significantly guarded manner.

"I had no right to ask about her marriage," he said bitterly.  "I
must wait to see it in the newspapers like other people.  Yes,"--
he went on before I could make any apologies--"I have not been
well lately.  I am going to another country to try a change of
scene and occupation.  Miss Halcombe has kindly assisted me with
her influence, and my testimonials have been found satisfactory. 
It is a long distance off, but I don't care where I go, what the
climate is, or how long I am away." He looked about him while he
said this at the throng of strangers passing us by on either side,
in a strange, suspicious manner, as if he thought that some of
them might be watching us.

"I wish you well through it, and safe back again," I said, and
then added, so as not to keep him altogether at arm's length on
the subject of the Fairlies, "I am going down to Limmeridge to-day
on business.  Miss Halcombe and Miss Fairlie are away just now on
a visit to some friends in Yorkshire."

His eyes brightened, and he seemed about to say something in
answer, but the same momentary nervous spasm crossed his face
again.  He took my hand, pressed it hard, and disappeared among
the crowd without saying another word.  Though he was little more
than a stranger to me, I waited for a moment, looking after him
almost with a feeling of regret.  I had gained in my profession
sufficient experience of young men to know what the outward signs
and tokens were of their beginning to go wrong, and when I resumed
my walk to the railway I am sorry to say I felt more than doubtful
about Mr. Hartright's future.



IV


Leaving by an early train, I got to Limmeridge in time for dinner. 
The house was oppressively empty and dull.  I had expected that
good Mrs. Vesey would have been company for me in the absence of
the young ladies, but she was confined to her room by a cold.  The
servants were so surprised at seeing me that they hurried and
bustled absurdly, and made all sorts of annoying mistakes.  Even
the butler, who was old enough to have known better, brought me a
bottle of port that was chilled.  The reports of Mr. Fairlie's
health were just as usual, and when I sent up a message to
announce my arrival, I was told that he would be delighted to see
me the next morning but that the sudden news of my appearance had
prostrated him with palpitations for the rest of the evening.  The
wind howled dismally all night, and strange cracking and groaning
noises sounded here, there, and everywhere in the empty house.  I
slept as wretchedly as possible, and got up in a mighty bad humour
to breakfast by myself the next morning.

At ten o'clock I was conducted to Mr. Fairlie's apartments.  He
was in his usual room, his usual chair, and his usual aggravating
state of mind and body.  When I went in, his valet was standing
before him, holding up for inspection a heavy volume of etchings,
as long and as broad as my office writing-desk.  The miserable
foreigner grinned in the most abject manner, and looked ready to
drop with fatigue, while his master composedly turned over the
etchings, and brought their hidden beauties to light with the help
of a magnifying glass.

"You very best of good old friends," said Mr. Fairlie, leaning
hack lazily before he could look at me, "are you QUITE well? How
nice of you to come here and see me in my solitude.  Dear
Gilmore!"

I had expected that the valet would be dismissed when I appeared,
but nothing of the sort happened.  There he stood, in front of his
master's chair, trembling under the weight of the etchings, and
there Mr. Fairlie sat, serenely twirling the magnifying glass
between his white fingers and thumbs.

"I have come to speak to you on a very important matter," I said,
"and you will therefore excuse me, if I suggest that we had better
be alone."

The unfortunate valet looked at me gratefully.  Mr. Fairlie
faintly repeated my last three words, "better be alone," with
every appearance of the utmost possible astonishment.

I was in no humour for trifling, and I resolved to make him
understand what I meant.

"Oblige me by giving that man permission to withdraw," I said,
pointing to the valet.

Mr. Fairlie arched his eyebrows and pursed up his lips in
sarcastic surprise.

"Man?" he repeated.  "You provoking old Gilmore, what can you
possibly mean by calling him a man? He's nothing of the sort.  He
might have been a man half an hour ago, before I wanted my
etchings, and he may be a man half an hour hence, when I don't
want them any longer.  At present he is simply a portfolio stand. 
Why object, Gilmore, to a portfolio stand?"

"I DO object.  For the third time, Mr. Fairlie, I beg that we may
be alone."

My tone and manner left him no alternative but to comply with my
request.  He looked at the servant, and pointed peevishly to a
chair at his side.

"Put down the etchings and go away," he said.  "Don't upset me by
losing my place.  Have you, or have you not, lost my place? Are
you sure you have not? And have you put my hand-bell quite within
my reach? Yes? Then why the devil don't you go?"

The valet went out.  Mr. Fairlie twisted himself round in his
chair, polished the magnifying glass with his delicate cambric
handkerchief, and indulged himself with a sidelong inspection of
the open volume of etchings.  It was not easy to keep my temper
under these circumstances, but I did keep it.

"I have come here at great personal inconvenience," I said, "to
serve the interests of your niece and your family, and I think I
have established some slight claim to be favoured with your
attention in return."

"Don't bully me!" exclaimed Mr. Fairlie, falling back helplessly
in the chair, and closing his eyes.  "Please don't bully me.  I'm
not strong enough."

I was determined not to let him provoke me, for Laura Fairlie's
sake.

"My object," I went on, "is to entreat you to reconsider your
letter, and not to force me to abandon the just rights of your
niece, and of all who belong to her.  Let me state the case to you
once more, and for the last time."

Mr. Fairlie shook his head and sighed piteously.

"This is heartless of you, Gilmore--very heartless," he said. 
"Never mind, go on."

I put all the points to him carefully--I set the matter before him
in every conceivable light.  He lay back in the chair the whole
time I was speaking with his eyes closed.  When I had done he
opened them indolently, took his silver smelling-bottle from the
table, and sniffed at it with an air of gentle relish.

"Good Gilmore!" he said between the sniffs, "how very nice this is
of you! How you reconcile one to human nature!"

"Give me a plain answer to a plain question, Mr. Fairlie.  I tell
you again, Sir Percival Glyde has no shadow of a claim to expect
more than the income of the money.  The money itself if your niece
has no children, ought to be under her control, and to return to
her family.  If you stand firm, Sir Percival must give way--he
must give way, I tell you, or he exposes himself to the base
imputation of marrying Miss Fairlie entirely from mercenary
motives."

Mr. Fairlie shook the silver smelling-bottle at me playfully.

"You dear old Gilmore, how you do hate rank and family, don't you?
How you detest Glyde because he happens to be a baronet.  What a
Radical you are--oh, dear me, what a Radical you are!"

A Radical!!! I could put up with a good deal of provocation, but,
after holding the soundest Conservative principles all my life, I
could NOT put up with being called a Radical.  My blood boiled at
it--I started out of my chair--I was speechless with Indignation.

"Don't shake the room!" cried Mr. Fairlie--"for Heaven's sake
don't shake the room! Worthiest of all possible Gilmores, I meant
no offence.  My own views are so extremely liberal that I think I
am a Radical myself.  Yes.  We are a pair of Radicals.  Please
don't be angry.  I can't quarrel--I haven't stamina enough.  Shall
we drop the subject? Yes.  Come and look at these sweet etchings. 
Do let me teach you to understand the heavenly pearliness of these
lines.  Do now, there's a good Gilmore!"

While he was maundering on in this way I was, fortunately for my
own self-respect, returning to my senses.  When I spoke again I
was composed enough to treat his impertinence with the silent
contempt that it deserved.

"You are entirely wrong, sir," I said, "in supposing that I speak
from any prejudice against Sir Percival Glyde.  I may regret that
he has so unreservedly resigned himself in this matter to his
lawyer's direction as to make any appeal to himself impossible,
but I am not prejudiced against him.  What I have said would
equally apply to any other man in his situation, high or low.  The
principle I maintain is a recognised principle.  If you were to
apply at the nearest town here, to the first respectable solicitor
you could find, he would tell you as a stranger what I tell you as
a friend.  He would inform you that it is against all rule to
abandon the lady's money entirely to the man she marries.  He
would decline, on grounds of common legal caution, to give the
husband, under any circumstances whatever, an interest of twenty
thousand pounds in his wife's death."

"Would he really, Gilmore?" said Mr. Fairlie.  "If he said
anything half so horrid, I do assure you I should tinkle my bell
for Louis, and have him sent out of the house immediately."

"You shall not irritate me, Mr. Fairlie--for your niece's sake and
for her father's sake, you shall not irritate me.  You shall take
the whole responsibility of this discreditable settlement on your
own shoulders before I leave the room."

"Don't!--now please don't!" said Mr. Fairlie.  "Think how precious
your time is, Gilmore, and don't throw it away.  I would dispute
with you if I could, but I can't--I haven't stamina enough.  You
want to upset me, to upset yourself, to upset Glyde, and to upset
Laura; and--oh, dear me!--all for the sake of the very last thing
in the world that is likely to happen.  No, dear friend, in the
interests of peace and quietness, positively No!"

"I am to understand, then, that you hold by the determination
expressed in your letter?"

"Yes, please.  So glad we understand each other at last.  Sit down
again--do!"

I walked at once to the door, and Mr. Fairlie resignedly "tinkled"
his hand-bell.  Before I left the room I turned round and
addressed him for the last time.

"Whatever happens in the future, sir," I said, "remember that my
plain duty of warning you has been performed.  As the faithful
friend and servant of your family, I tell you, at parting, that no
daughter of mine should be married to any man alive under such a
settlement as you are forcing me to make for Miss Fairlie."

The door opened behind me, and the valet stood waiting on the
threshold.

"Louis," said Mr. Fairlie, "show Mr. Gilmore out, and then come
back and hold up my etchings for me again.  Make them give you a
good lunch downstairs.  Do, Gilmore, make my idle beasts of
servants give you a good lunch!"

I was too much disgusted to reply--I turned on my heel, and left
him in silence.  There was an up train at two o'clock in the
afternoon, and by that train I returned to London.

On the Tuesday I sent in the altered settlement, which practically
disinherited the very persons whom Miss Fairlie's own lips had
informed me she was most anxious to benefit.  I had no choice. 
Another lawyer would have drawn up the deed if I had refused to
undertake it.


My task is done.  My personal share in the events of the family
story extends no farther than the point which I have just reached. 
Other pens than mine will describe the strange circumstances which
are now shortly to follow.  Seriously and sorrowfully I close this
brief record.  Seriously and sorrowfully I repeat here the parting
words that I spoke at Limmeridge House:--No daughter of mine
should have been married to any man alive under such a settlement
as I was compelled to make for Laura Fairlie.

The End of Mr. Gilmore's Narrative.



THE STORY CONTINUED BY MARIAN HALCOMBE
(in Extracts from her Diary)


                   LIMMERIDGE HOUSE, Nov. 8.[1]

[1] The passages omitted, here and elsewhere, in Miss Halcombe's
Diary are only those which bear no reference to Miss Fairlie or to
any of the persons with whom she is associated in these pages.


This morning Mr. Gilmore left us.

His interview with Laura had evidently grieved and surprised him
more than he liked to confess.  I felt afraid, from his look and
manner when we parted, that she might have inadvertently betrayed
to him the real secret of her depression and my anxiety.  This
doubt grew on me so, after he had gone, that I declined riding out
with Sir Percival, and went up to Laura's room instead.

I have been sadly distrustful of myself, in this difficult and
lamentable matter, ever since I found out my own ignorance of the
strength of Laura's unhappy attachment.  I ought to have known
that the delicacy and forbearance and sense of honour which drew
me to poor Hartright, and made me so sincerely admire and respect
him, were just the qualities to appeal most irresistibly to
Laura's natural sensitiveness and natural generosity of nature. 
And yet, until she opened her heart to me of her own accord, I had
no suspicion that this new feeling had taken root so deeply.  I
once thought time and care might remove it.  I now fear that it
will remain with her and alter her for life.  The discovery that I
have committed such an error in judgment as this makes me hesitate
about everything else.  I hesitate about Sir Percival, in the face
of the plainest proofs.  I hesitate even in speaking to Laura.  On
this very morning I doubted, with my hand on the door, whether I
should ask her the questions I had come to put, or not.

When I went into her room I found her walking up and down in great
impatience.  She looked flushed and excited, and she came forward
at once, and spoke to me before I could open my lips.

"I wanted you," she said.  "Come and sit down on the sofa with me. 
Marian! I can bear this no longer--I must and will end it."

There was too much colour in her cheeks, too much energy in her
manner, too much firmness in her voice.  The little book of
Hartright's drawings--the fatal book that she will dream over
whenever she is alone--was in one of her hands.  I began by gently
and firmly taking it from her, and putting it out of sight on a
side-table.

"Tell me quietly, my darling, what you wish to do," I said.  "Has
Mr. Gilmore been advising you?"

She shook her head.  "No, not in what I am thinking of now.  He
was very kind and good to me, Marian, and I am ashamed to say I
distressed him by crying.  I am miserably helpless--I can't
control myself.  For my own sake, and for all our sakes, I must
have courage enough to end it."

"Do you mean courage enough to claim your release?" I asked.

"No," she said simply.  "Courage, dear, to tell the truth."

She put her arms round my neck, and rested her head quietly on my
bosom.  On the opposite wall hung the miniature portrait of her
father.  I bent over her, and saw that she was looking at it while
her head lay on my breast.

"I can never claim my release from my engagement," she went on. 
"Whatever way it ends it must end wretchedly for me.  All I can
do, Marian, is not to add the remembrance that I have broken my
promise and forgotten my father's dying words, to make that
wretchedness worse."

"What is it you propose, then?" I asked.

"To tell Sir Percival Glyde the truth with my own lips," she
answered, "and to let him release me, if he will, not because I
ask him, but because he knows all."

"What do you mean, Laura, by 'all'? Sir Percival will know enough
(he has told me so himself) if he knows that the engagement is
opposed to your own wishes."

"Can I tell him that, when the engagement was made for me by my
father, with my own consent? I should have kept my promise, not
happily, I am afraid, but still contentedly--" she stopped, turned
her face to me, and laid her cheek close against mine--"I should
have kept my engagement, Marian, if another love had not grown up
in my heart, which was not there when I first promised to be Sir
Percival's wife."

"Laura! you will never lower yourself by making a confession to
him?"

"I shall lower myself, indeed, if I gain my release by hiding from
him what he has a right to know."

"He has not the shadow of a right to know it!"

"Wrong, Marian, wrong! I ought to deceive no one--least of all the
man to whom my father gave me, and to whom I gave myself." She put
her lips to mine, and kissed me.  "My own love," she said softly,
"you are so much too fond of me, and so much too proud of me, that
you forget, in my case, what you would remember in your own. 
Better that Sir Percival should doubt my motives, and misjudge my
conduct if he will, than that I should be first false to him in
thought, and then mean enough to serve my own interests by hiding
the falsehood."

I held her away from me in astonishment.  For the first time in
our lives we had changed places--the resolution was all on her
side, the hesitation all on mine.  I looked into the pale, quiet,
resigned young face--I saw the pure, innocent heart, in the loving
eyes that looked back at me--and the poor worldly cautions and
objections that rose to my lips dwindled and died away in their
own emptiness.  I hung my head in silence.  In her place the
despicably small pride which makes so many women deceitful would
have been my pride, and would have made me deceitful too.

"Don't be angry with me, Marian," she said, mistaking my silence.

I only answered by drawing her close to me again.  I was afraid of
crying if I spoke.  My tears do not flow so easily as they ought--
they come almost like men's tears, with sobs that seem to tear me
in pieces, and that frighten every one about me.

"I have thought of this, love, for many days," she went on,
twining and twisting my hair with that childish restlessness in
her fingers, which poor Mrs. Vesey still tries so patiently and so
vainly to cure her of--"I have thought of it very seriously, and I
can be sure of my courage when my own conscience tells me I am
right.  Let me speak to him to-morrow--in your presence, Marian. 
I will say nothing that is wrong, nothing that you or I need be
ashamed of--but, oh, it will ease my heart so to end this
miserable concealment! Only let me know and feel that I have no
deception to answer for on my side, and then, when he has heard
what I have to say, let him act towards me as he will."

She sighed, and put her head back in its old position on my bosom. 
Sad misgivings about what the end would be weighed upon my mind,
but still distrusting myself, I told her that I would do as she
wished.  She thanked me, and we passed gradually into talking of
other things.

At dinner she joined us again, and was more easy and more herself
with Sir Percival than I have seen her yet.  In the evening she
went to the piano, choosing new music of the dexterous, tuneless,
florid kind.  The lovely old melodies of Mozart, which poor
Hartright was so fond of, she has never played since he left.  The
book is no longer in the music-stand.  She took the volume away
herself, so that nobody might find it out and ask her to play from
it.

I had no opportunity of discovering whether her purpose of the
morning had changed or not, until she wished Sir Percival good-
night--and then her own words informed me that it was unaltered. 
She said, very quietly, that she wished to speak to him after
breakfast, and that he would find her in her sitting-room with me. 
He changed colour at those words, and I felt his hand trembling a
little when it came to my turn to take it.  The event of the next
morning would decide his future life, and he evidently knew it.

I went in, as usual, through the door between our two bed-rooms,
to bid Laura good-night before she went to sleep.  In stooping
over her to kiss her I saw the little book of Hartright's drawings
half hidden under her pillow, just in the place where she used to
hide her favourite toys when she was a child.  I could not find it
in my heart to say anything, but I pointed to the book and shook
my head.  She reached both hands up to my cheeks, and drew my face
down to hers till our lips met.

"Leave it there to-night," she whispered; "to-morrow may be cruel,
and may make me say good-bye to it for ever."


9th.--The first event of the morning was not of a kind to raise my
spirits--a letter arrived for me from poor Walter Hartright.  It
is the answer to mine describing the manner in which Sir Percival
cleared himself of the suspicions raised by Anne Catherick's
letter.  He writes shortly and bitterly about Sir Percival's
explanations, only saying that he has no right to offer an opinion
on the conduct of those who are above him.  This is sad, but his
occasional references to himself grieve me still more.  He says
that the effort to return to his old habits and pursuits grows
harder instead of easier to him every day and he implores me, if I
have any interest, to exert it to get him employment that will
necessitate his absence from England, and take him among new
scenes and new people.  I have been made all the readier to comply
with this request by a passage at the end of his letter, which has
almost alarmed me.

After mentioning that he has neither seen nor heard anything of
Anne Catherick, he suddenly breaks off, and hints in the most
abrupt, mysterious manner, that he has been perpetually watched
and followed by strange men ever since he returned to London.  He
acknowledges that he cannot prove this extraordinary suspicion by
fixing on any particular persons, but he declares that the
suspicion itself is present to him night and day.  This has
frightened me, because it looks as if his one fixed idea about
Laura was becoming too much for his mind.  I will write
immediately to some of my mother's influential old friends in
London, and press his claims on their notice.  Change of scene and
change of occupation may really be the salvation of him at this
crisis in his life.

Greatly to my relief, Sir Percival sent an apology for not joining
us at breakfast.  He had taken an early cup of coffee in his own
room, and he was still engaged there in writing letters.  At
eleven o'clock, if that hour was convenient, he would do himself
the honour of waiting on Miss Fairlie and Miss Halcombe.

My eyes were on Laura's face while the message was being
delivered.  I had found her unaccountably quiet and composed on
going into her room in the morning, and so she remained all
through breakfast.  Even when we were sitting together on the sofa
in her room, waiting for Sir Percival, she still preserved her
self-control.

"Don't be afraid of me, Marian," was all she said; "I may forget
myself with an old friend like Mr. Gilmore, or with a dear sister
like you, but I will not forget myself with Sir Percival Glyde."

I looked at her, and listened to her in silent surprise.  Through
all the years of our close intimacy this passive force in her
character had been hidden from me--hidden even from herself, till
love found it, and suffering called it forth.

As the clock on the mantelpiece struck eleven Sir Percival knocked
at the door and came in.  There was suppressed anxiety and
agitation in every line of his face.  The dry, sharp cough, which
teases him at most times, seemed to be troubling him more
incessantly than ever.  He sat down opposite to us at the table,
and Laura remained by me.  I looked attentively at them both, and
he was the palest of the two.

He said a few unimportant words, with a visible effort to preserve
his customary ease of manner.  But his voice was not to be
steadied, and the restless uneasiness in his eyes was not to be
concealed.  He must have felt this himself, for he stopped in the
middle of a sentence, and gave up even the attempt to hide his
embarrassment any longer.

There was just one moment of dead silence before Laura addressed
him.

"I wish to speak to you, Sir Percival," she said, "on a subject
that is very important to us both.  My sister is here, because her
presence helps me and gives me confidence.  She has not suggested
one word of what I am going to say--I speak from my own thoughts,
not from hers.  I am sure you will be kind enough to understand
that before I go any farther?"

Sir Percival bowed.  She had proceeded thus far, with perfect
outward tranquillity and perfect propriety of manner.  She looked
at him, and he looked at her.  They seemed, at the outset, at
least, resolved to understand one another plainly.

"I have heard from Marian," she went on, "that I have only to
claim my release from our engagement to obtain that release from
you.  It was forbearing and generous on your part, Sir Percival,
to send me such a message.  It is only doing you justice to say
that I am grateful for the offer, and I hope and believe that it
is only doing myself justice to tell you that I decline to accept
it."

His attentive face relaxed a little.  But I saw one of his feet,
softly, quietly, incessantly beating on the carpet under the
table, and I felt that he was secretly as anxious as ever.

"I have not forgotten," she said, "that you asked my father's
permission before you honoured me with a proposal of marriage. 
Perhaps you have not forgotten either what I said when I consented
to our engagement? I ventured to tell you that my father's
influence and advice had mainly decided me to give you my promise. 
I was guided by my father, because I had always found him the
truest of all advisers, the best and fondest of all protectors and
friends.  I have lost him now--I have only his memory to love, but
my faith in that dear dead friend has never been shaken.  I
believe at this moment, as truly as I ever believed, that he knew
what was best, and that his hopes and wishes ought to be my hopes
and wishes too."

Her voice trembled for the first time.  Her restless fingers stole
their way into my lap, and held fast by one of my hands.  There
was another moment of silence, and then Sir Percival spoke.

"May I ask," he said, "if I have ever proved myself unworthy of
the trust which it has been hitherto my greatest honour and
greatest happiness to possess?"

"I have found nothing in your conduct to blame," she answered. 
"You have always treated me with the same delicacy and the same
forbearance.  You have deserved my trust, and, what is of far more
importance in my estimation, you have deserved my father's trust,
out of which mine grew.  You have given me no excuse, even if I
had wanted to find one, for asking to be released from my pledge. 
What I have said so far has been spoken with the wish to
acknowledge my whole obligation to you.  My regard for that
obligation, my regard for my father's memory, and my regard for my
own promise, all forbid me to set the example, on my side, of
withdrawing from our present position.  The breaking of our
engagement must be entirely your wish and your act, Sir Percival--
not mine."

The uneasy beating of his foot suddenly stopped, and he leaned
forward eagerly across the table.

"My act?" he said.  "What reason can there be on my side for
withdrawing?"

I heard her breath quickening--I felt her hand growing cold.  In
spite of what she had said to me when we were alone, I began to be
afraid of her.  I was wrong.

"A reason that it is very hard to tell you," she answered.  "There
is a change in me, Sir Percival--a change which is serious enough
to justify you, to yourself and to me, in breaking off our
engagement."

His face turned so pale again that even his lips lost their
colour.  He raised the arm which lay on the table, turned a little
away in his chair, and supported his head on his hand, so that his
profile only was presented to us.

"What change?" he asked.  The tone in which he put the question
jarred on me--there was something painfully suppressed in it.

She sighed heavily, and leaned towards me a little, so as to rest
her shoulder against mine.  I felt her trembling, and tried to
spare her by speaking myself.  She stopped me by a warning
pressure of her hand, and then addressed Sir Percival one more,
but this time without looking at him.

"I have heard," she said, "and I believe it, that the fondest and
truest of all affections is the affection which a woman ought to
bear to her husband.  When our engagement began that affection was
mine to give, if I could, and yours to win, if you could.  Will
you pardon me, and spare me, Sir Percival, if I acknowledge that
it is not so any longer?"

A few tears gathered in her eyes, and dropped over her cheeks
slowly as she paused and waited for his answer.  He did not utter
a word.  At the beginning of her reply he had moved the hand on
which his head rested, so that it hid his face.  I saw nothing but
the upper part of his figure at the table.  Not a muscle of him
moved.  The fingers of the hand which supported his head were
dented deep in his hair.  They might have expressed hidden anger
or hidden grief--it was hard to say which--there was no
significant trembling in them.  There was nothing, absolutely
nothing, to tell the secret of his thoughts at that moment--the
moment which was the crisis of his life and the crisis of hers.

I was determined to make him declare himself, for Laura's sake.

"Sir Percival!" I interposed sharply, "have you nothing to say
when my sister has said so much? More, in my opinion," I added, my
unlucky temper getting the better of me, "than any man alive, in
your position, has a right to hear from her."

That last rash sentence opened a way for him by which to escape me
if he chose, and he instantly took advantage of it.

"Pardon me, Miss Halcombe," he said, still keeping his hand over
his face, "pardon me if I remind you that I have claimed no such
right."

The few plain words which would have brought him back to the point
from which he had wandered were just on my lips, when Laura
checked me by speaking again.

"I hope I have not made my painful acknowledgment in vain," she
continued.  "I hope it has secured me your entire confidence in
what I have still to say?"

"Pray be assured of it." He made that brief reply warmly, dropping
his hand on the table while he spoke, and turning towards us
again.  Whatever outward change had passed over him was gone now. 
His face was eager and expectant--it expressed nothing but the
most intense anxiety to hear her next words.

"I wish you to understand that I have not spoken from any selfish
motive," she said.  "If you leave me, Sir Percival, after what you
have just heard, you do not leave me to marry another man, you
only allow me to remain a single woman for the rest of my life. 
My fault towards you has begun and ended in my own thoughts.  It
can never go any farther.  No word has passed--" She hesitated, in
doubt about the expression she should use next, hesitated in a
momentary confusion which it was very sad and very painful to see. 
"No word has passed," she patiently and resolutely resumed,
"between myself and the person to whom I am now referring for the
first and last time in your presence of my feelings towards him,
or of his feelings towards me--no word ever can pass--neither he
nor I are likely, in this world, to meet again.  I earnestly beg
you to spare me from saying any more, and to believe me, on my
word, in what I have just told you.  It is the truth.  Sir
Percival, the truth which I think my promised husband has a claim
to hear, at any sacrifice of my own feelings.  I trust to his
generosity to pardon me, and to his honour to keep my secret."

"Both those trusts are sacred to me," he said, "and both shall be
sacredly kept."

After answering in those terms he paused, and looked at her as if
he was waiting to hear more.

I have said all I wish to say," she added quietly--" I have said
more than enough to justify you in withdrawing from your
engagement."

"You have said more than enough," he answered, "to make it the
dearest object of my life to KEEP the engagement." With those
words he rose from his chair, and advanced a few steps towards the
place where she was sitting.

She started violently, and a faint cry of surprise escaped her. 
Every word she had spoken had innocently betrayed her purity and
truth to a man who thoroughly understood the priceless value of a
pure and true woman.  Her own noble conduct had been the hidden
enemy, throughout, of all the hopes she had trusted to it.  I had
dreaded this from the first.  I would have prevented it, if she
had allowed me the smallest chance of doing so.  I even waited and
watched now, when the harm was done, for a word from Sir Percival
that would give me the opportunity of putting him in the wrong.

"You have left it to ME, Miss Fairlie, to resign you," he
continued.  "I am not heartless enough to resign a woman who has
just shown herself to be the noblest of her sex."

He spoke with such warmth and feeling, with such passionate
enthusiasm, and yet with such perfect delicacy, that she raised
her head, flushed up a little, and looked at him with sudden
animation and spirit.

"No!" she said firmly.  "The most wretched of her sex, if she must
give herself in marriage when she cannot give her love."

"May she not give it in the future," he asked, "if the one object
of her husband's life is to deserve it?"

"Never!" she answered.  "If you still persist in maintaining our
engagement, I may be your true and faithful wife, Sir Percival--
your loving wife, if I know my own heart, never!"

She looked so irresistibly beautiful as she said those brave words
that no man alive could have steeled his heart against her.  I
tried hard to feel that Sir Percival was to blame, and to say so,
but my womanhood would pity him, in spite of myself.

"I gratefully accept your faith and truth," he said.  "The least
that you can offer is more to me than the utmost that I could hope
for from any other woman in the world."

Her left hand still held mine, but her right hand hung listlessly
at her side.  He raised it gently to his lips--touched it with
them, rather than kissed it--bowed to me--and then, with perfect
delicacy and discretion, silently quitted the room.

She neither moved nor said a word when he was gone--she sat by me,
cold and still, with her eyes fixed on the ground.  I saw it was
hopeless and useless to speak, and I only put my arm round her,
and held her to me in silence.  We remained together so for what
seemed a long and weary time--so long and so weary, that I grew
uneasy and spoke to her softly, in the hope of producing a change.

The sound of my voice seemed to startle her into consciousness. 
She suddenly drew herself away from me and rose to her feet.

"I must submit, Marian, as well as I can," she said.  "My new life
has its hard duties, and one of them begins to-day."

As she spoke she went to a side-table near the window, on which
her sketching materials were placed, gathered them together
carefully, and put them in a drawer of her cabinet.  She locked
the drawer and brought the key to me.

"I must part from everything that reminds me of him," she said. 
"Keep the key wherever you please--I shall never want it again."

Before I could say a word she had turned away to her book-case,
and had taken from it the album that contained Walter Hartright's
drawings.  She hesitated for a moment, holding the little volume
fondly in her hands--then lifted it to her lips and kissed it.

"Oh, Laura! Laura!" I said, not angrily, not reprovingly--with
nothing but sorrow in my voice, and nothing but sorrow in my
heart.

"It is the last time, Marian," she pleaded.  "I am bidding it
good-bye for ever."

She laid the book on the table and drew out the comb that fastened
her hair.  It fell, in its matchless beauty, over her back and
shoulders, and dropped round her, far below her waist.  She
separated one long, thin lock from the rest, cut it off, and
pinned it carefully, in the form of a circle, on the first blank
page of the album.  The moment it was fastened she closed the
volume hurriedly, and placed it in my hands.

"You write to him and he writes to you," she said.  "While I am
alive, if he asks after me always tell him I am well, and never
say I am unhappy.  Don't distress him, Marian, for my sake, don't
distress him.  If I die first, promise you will give him this
little book of his drawings, with my hair in it.  There can be no
harm, when I am gone, in telling him that I put it there with my
own hands.  And say--oh, Marian, say for me, then, what I can
never say for myself--say I loved him!"

She flung her arms round my neck, and whispered the last words in
my ear with a passionate delight in uttering them which it almost
broke my heart to hear.  All the long restraint she had imposed on
herself gave way in that first last outburst of tenderness.  She
broke from me with hysterical vehemence, and threw herself on the
sofa in a paroxysm of sobs and tears that shook her from head to
foot.

I tried vainly to soothe her and reason with her--she was past
being soothed, and past being reasoned with.  It was the sad,
sudden end for us two of this memorable day.  When the fit had
worn itself out she was too exhausted to speak.  She slumbered
towards the afternoon, and I put away the book of drawings so that
she might not see it when she woke.  My face was calm, whatever my
heart might be, when she opened her eyes again and looked at me. 
We said no more to each other about the distressing interview of
the morning.  Sir Percival's name was not mentioned.  Walter
Hartright was not alluded to again by either of us for the
remainder of the day.


10th.--Finding that she was composed and like herself this
morning, I returned to the painful subject of yesterday, for the
sole purpose of imploring her to let me speak to Sir Percival and
Mr. Fairlie, more plainly and strongly than she could speak to
either of them herself, about this lamentable marriage.  She
interposed, gently but firmly, in the middle of my remonstrances.

"I left yesterday to decide," she said; "and yesterday HAS
decided.  It is too late to go back."

Sir Percival spoke to me this afternoon about what had passed in
Laura's room.  He assured me that the unparalleled trust she had
placed in him had awakened such an answering conviction of her
innocence and integrity in his mind, that he was guiltless of
having felt even a moment's unworthy jealousy, either at the time
when he was in her presence, or afterwards when he had withdrawn
from it.  Deeply as he lamented the unfortunate attachment which
had hindered the progress he might otherwise have made in her
esteem and regard, he firmly believed that it had remained
unacknowledged in the past, and that it would remain, under all
changes of circumstance which it was possible to contemplate,
unacknowledged in the future.  This was his absolute conviction;
and the strongest proof he could give of it was the assurance,
which he now offered, that he felt no curiosity to know whether
the attachment was of recent date or not, or who had been the
object of it.  His implicit confidence in Miss Fairlie made him
satisfied with what she had thought fit to say to him, and he was
honestly innocent of the slightest feeling of anxiety to hear
more.

He waited after saying those words and looked at me.  I was so
conscious of my unreasonable prejudice against him--so conscious
of an unworthy suspicion that he might be speculating on my
impulsively answering the very questions which he had just
described himself as resolved not to ask--that I evaded all
reference to this part of the subject with something like a
feeling of confusion on my own part.  At the same time I was
resolved not to lose even the smallest opportunity of trying to
plead Laura's cause, and I told him boldly that I regretted his
generosity had not carried him one step farther, and induced him
to withdraw from the engagement altogether.

Here, again, he disarmed me by not attempting to defend himself. 
He would merely beg me to remember the difference there was
between his allowing Miss Fairlie to give him up, which was a
matter of submission only, and his forcing himself to give up Miss
Fairlie, which was, in other words, asking him to be the suicide
of his own hopes.  Her conduct of the day before had so
strengthened the unchangeable love and admiration of two long
years, that all active contention against those feelings, on his
part, was henceforth entirely out of his power.  I must think him
weak, selfish, unfeeling towards the very woman whom he idolised,
and he must bow to my opinion as resignedly as he could--only
putting it to me, at the same time, whether her future as a single
woman, pining under an unhappily placed attachment which she could
never acknowledge, could be said to promise her a much brighter
prospect than her future as the wife of a man who worshipped the
very ground she walked on? In the last case there was hope from
time, however slight it might be--in the first case, on her own
showing, there was no hope at all.

I answered him--more because my tongue is a woman's, and must
answer, than because I had anything convincing to say.  It was
only too plain that the course Laura had adopted the day before
had offered him the advantage if he chose to take it--and that he
HAD chosen to take it.  I felt this at the time, and I feel it
just as strongly now, while I write these lines, in my own room. 
The one hope left is that his motives really spring, as he says
they do, from the irresistible strength of his attachment to
Laura.

Before I close my diary for to-night I must record that I wrote
to-day, in poor Hartright's interest, to two of my mother's old
friends in London--both men of influence and position.  If they
can do anything for him, I am quite sure they will.  Except Laura,
I never was more anxious about any one than I am now about Walter. 
All that has happened since he left us has only increased my
strong regard and sympathy for him.  I hope I am doing right in
trying to help him to employment abroad--I hope, most earnestly
and anxiously, that it will end well.


11th.--Sir Percival had an interview with Mr.  Fairlie, and I was
sent for to join them.

I found Mr. Fairlie greatly relieved at the prospect of the
"family worry" (as he was pleased to describe his niece's
marriage) being settled at last.  So far, I did not feel called on
to say anything to him about my own opinion, but when he
proceeded, in his most aggravatingly languid manner, to suggest
that the time for the marriage had better be settled next, in
accordance with Sir Percival's wishes, I enjoyed the satisfaction
of assailing Mr. Fairlie's nerves with as strong a protest against
hurrying Laura's decision as I could put into words.  Sir Percival
immediately assured me that he felt the force of my objection, and
begged me to believe that the proposal had not been made in
consequence of any interference on his part.  Mr. Fairlie leaned
back in his chair, closed his eyes, said we both of us did honour
to human nature, and then repeated his suggestion as coolly as if
neither Sir Percival nor I had said a word in opposition to it. 
It ended in my flatly declining to mention the subject to Laura,
unless she first approached it of her own accord.  I left the room
at once after making that declaration.  Sir Percival looked
seriously embarrassed and distressed, Mr. Fairlie stretched out
his lazy legs on his velvet footstool, and said, "Dear Marian! how
I envy you your robust nervous system! Don't bang the door!"

On going to Laura's room I found that she had asked for me, and
that Mrs. Vesey had informed her that I was with Mr. Fairlie.  She
inquired at once what I had been wanted for, and I told her all
that had passed, without attempting to conceal the vexation and
annoyance that I really felt.  Her answer surprised and distressed
me inexpressibly--it was the very last reply that I should have
expected her to make.

"My uncle is right," she said.  "I have caused trouble and anxiety
enough to you, and to all about me.  Let me cause no more, Marian--
let Sir Percival decide."

I remonstrated warmly, but nothing that I could say moved her.

"I am held to my engagement," she replied; "I have broken with my
old life.  The evil day will not come the less surely because I
put it off.  No, Marian! once again my uncle is right.  I have
caused trouble enough and anxiety enough, and I will cause no
more."

She used to be pliability itself, but she was now inflexibly
passive in her resignation--I might almost say in her despair. 
Dearly as I love her, I should have been less pained if she had
been violently agitated--it was so shockingly unlike her natural
character to see her as cold and insensible as I saw her now.


12th.--Sir Percival put some questions to me at breakfast about
Laura, which left me no choice but to tell him what she had said.

While we were talking she herself came down and joined us.  She
was just as unnaturally composed in Sir Percival's presence as she
had been in mine.  When breakfast was over he had an opportunity
of saying a few words to her privately, in a recess of one of the
windows.  They were not more than two or three minutes together,
and on their separating she left the room with Mrs. Vesey, while
Sir Percival came to me.  He said he had entreated her to favour
him by maintaining her privilege of fixing the time for the
marriage at her own will and pleasure.  In reply she had merely
expressed her acknowledgments, and had desired him to mention what
his wishes were to Miss Halcombe.

I have no patience to write more.  In this instance, as in every
other, Sir Percival has carried his point with the utmost possible
credit to himself, in spite of everything that I can say or do. 
His wishes are now, what they were, of course, when he first came
here; and Laura having resigned herself to the one inevitable
sacrifice of the marriage, remains as coldly hopeless and enduring
as ever.  In parting with the little occupations and relics that
reminded her of Hartright, she seems to have parted with all her
tenderness and all her impressibility.  It is only three o'clock
in the afternoon while I write these lines, and Sir Percival has
left us already, in the happy hurry of a bride-groom, to prepare
for the bride's reception at his house in Hampshire.  Unless some
extraordinary event happens to prevent it they will be married
exactly at the time when he wished to be married--before the end
of the year.  My very fingers burn as I write it!


13th.--A sleepless night, through uneasiness about Laura.  Towards
the morning I came to a resolution to try what change of scene
would do to rouse her.  She cannot surely remain in her present
torpor of insensibility, if I take her away from Limmeridge and
surround her with the pleasant faces of old friends? After some
consideration I decided on writing to the Arnolds, in Yorkshire. 
They are simple, kind-hearted, hospitable people, and she has
known them from her childhood.  When I had put the letter in the
post-bag I told her what I had done.  It would have been a relief
to me if she had shown the spirit to resist and object.  But no--
she only said, "I will go anywhere with you, Marian.  I dare say
you are right--I dare say the change will do me good."


14th.--I wrote to Mr. Gilmore, informing him that there was really
a prospect of this miserable marriage taking place, and also
mentioning my idea of trying what change of scene would do for
Laura.  I had no heart to go into particulars.  Time enough for
them when we get nearer to the end of the year.


15th.--Three letters for me.  The first, from the Arnolds, full of
delight at the prospect of seeing Laura and me.  The second, from
one of the gentlemen to whom I wrote on Walter Hartright's behalf,
informing me that he has been fortunate enough to find an
opportunity of complying with my request.  The third, from Walter
himself, thanking me, poor fellow, in the warmest terms, for
giving him an opportunity of leaving his home, his country, and
his friends.  A private expedition to make excavations among the
ruined cities of Central America is, it seems, about to sail from
Liverpool.  The draughtsman who had been already appointed to
accompany it has lost heart, and withdrawn at the eleventh hour,
and Walter is to fill his place.  He is to be engaged for six
months certain, from the time of the landing in Honduras, and for
a year afterwards, if the excavations are successful, and if the
funds hold out.  His letter ends with a promise to write me a
farewell line when they are all on board ship, and when the pilot
leaves them.  I can only hope and pray earnestly that he and I are
both acting in this matter for the best.  It seems such a serious
step for him to take, that the mere contemplation of it startles
me.  And yet, in his unhappy position, how can I expect him or
wish him to remain at home?


16th.--The carriage is at the door.  Laura and I set out on our
visit to the Arnolds to-day.



POLESDEAN LODGE, YORKSHIRE.

23rd.--A week in these new scenes and among these kind-hearted
people has done her some good, though not so much as I had hoped. 
I have resolved to prolong our stay for another week at least.  It
is useless to go back to Limmeridge till there is an absolute
necessity for our return.


24th.--Sad news by this morning's post.  The expedition to Central
America sailed on the twenty-first.  We have parted with a true
man--we have lost a faithful friend.  Water Hartright has left
England.


25th.--Sad news yesterday--ominous news to-day.  Sir Percival
Glyde has written to Mr. Fairlie, and Mr. Fairlie has written to
Laura and me, to recall us to Limmeridge immediately.

What can this mean? Has the day for the marriage been fixed in our
absence?



II


LIMMERIDGE HOUSE.

November 27th.--My forebodings are realised.  The marriage is
fixed for the twenty-second of December.

The day after we left for Polesdean Lodge Sir Percival wrote, it
seems, to Mr. Fairlie, to say that the necessary repairs and
alterations in his house in Hampshire would occupy a much longer
time in completion than he had originally anticipated.  The proper
estimates were to be submitted to him as soon as possible, and it
would greatly facilitate his entering into definite arrangements
with the workpeople, if he could be informed of the exact period
at which the wedding ceremony might be expected to take place.  He
could then make all his calculations in reference to time, besides
writing the necessary apologies to friends who had been engaged to
visit him that winter, and who could not, of course, be received
when the house was in the hands of the workmen.

To this letter Mr. Fairlie had replied by requesting Sir Percival
himself to suggest a day for the marriage, subject to Miss
Fairlie's approval, which her guardian willingly undertook to do
his best to obtain.  Sir Percival wrote back by the next post, and
proposed (in accordance with his own views and wishes from the
first? the latter part of December--perhaps the twenty-second, or
twenty-fourth, or any other day that the lady and her guardian
might prefer.  The lady not being at hand to speak for herself,
her guardian had decided, in her absence, on the earliest day
mentioned--the twenty-second of December, and had written to
recall us to Limmeridge in consequence.

After explaining these particulars to me at a private interview
yesterday, Mr. Fairlie suggested, in his most amiable manner, that
I should open the necessary negotiations to-day.  Feeling that
resistance was useless, unless I could first obtain Laura's
authority to make it, I consented to speak to her, but declared,
at the same time, that I would on no consideration undertake to
gain her consent to Sir Percival's wishes.  Mr. Fairlie
complimented me on my "excellent conscience," much as he would
have complimented me, if he had been out walking, on my "excellent
constitution," and seemed perfectly satisfied, so far, with having
simply shifted one more family responsibility from his own
shoulders to mine.

This morning I spoke to Laura as I had promised.  The composure--I
may almost say, the insensibility--which she has so strangely and
so resolutely maintained ever since Sir Percival left us, was not
proof against the shock of the news I had to tell her.  She turned
pale and trembled violently.

"Not so soon!" she pleaded.  "Oh, Marian, not so soon!"

The slightest hint she could give was enough for me.  I rose to
leave the room, and fight her battle for her at once with Mr.
Fairlie.

Just as my hand was on the door, she caught fast hold of my dress
and stopped me.

"Let me go!" I said.  "My tongue burns to tell your uncle that he
and Sir Percival are not to have it all their own way."

She sighed bitterly, and still held my dress.

"No!" she said faintly.  "Too late, Marian, too late!"

"Not a minute too late," I retorted.  "The question of time is OUR
question--and trust me, Laura, to take a woman's full advantage of
it."

I unclasped her hand from my gown while I spoke; but she slipped
both her arms round my waist at the same moment, and held me more
effectually than ever.

"It will only involve us in more trouble and more confusion," she
said.  "It will set you and my uncle at variance, and bring Sir
Percival here again with fresh causes of complaint--"

"So much the better!" I cried out passionately.  "Who cares for
his causes of complaint? Are you to break your heart to set his
mind at ease? No man under heaven deserves these sacrifices from
us women.  Men! They are the enemies of our innocence and our
peace--they drag us away from our parents' love and our sisters'
friendship--they take us body and soul to themselves, and fasten
our helpless lives to theirs as they chain up a dog to his kennel. 
And what does the best of them give us in return? Let me go,
Laura--I'm mad when I think of it!"

The tears--miserable, weak, women's tears of vexation and rage--
started to my eyes.  She smiled sadly, and put her handkerchief
over my face to hide for me the betrayal of my own weakness--the
weakness of all others which she knew that I most despised.

"Oh, Marian!" she said.  "You crying! Think what you would say to
me, if the places were changed, and if those tears were mine.  All
your love and courage and devotion will not alter what must
happen, sooner or later.  Let my uncle have his way.  Let us have
no more troubles and heart-burnings that any sacrifice of mine can
prevent.  Say you will live with me, Marian, when I am married--
and say no more."

But I did say more.  I forced back the contemptible tears that
were no relief to ME, and that only distressed HER, and reasoned
and pleaded as calmly as I could.  It was of no avail.  She made
me twice repeat the promise to live with her when she was married,
and then suddenly asked a question which turned my sorrow and my
sympathy for her into a new direction.

"While we were at Polesdean," she said, "you had a letter, Marian----"

Her altered tone--the abrupt manner in which she looked away from
me and hid her face on my shoulder--the hesitation which silenced
her before she had completed her question, all told me, but too
plainly, to whom the half-expressed inquiry pointed.

"I thought, Laura, that you and I were never to refer to him
again," I said gently.

"You had a letter from him?" she persisted.

"Yes," I replied, "if you must know it."

"Do you mean to write to him again?"

I hesitated.  I had been afraid to tell her of his absence from
England, or of the manner in which my exertions to serve his new
hopes and projects had connected me with his departure.  What
answer could I make? He was gone where no letters could reach him
for months, perhaps for years, to come.

"Suppose I do mean to write to him again," I said at last.  "What
then, Laura?"

Her cheek grew burning hot against my neck, and her arms trembled
and tightened round me.

"Don't tell him about THE TWENTY-SECOND," she whispered. 
"Promise, Marian--pray promise you will not even mention my name
to him when you write next."

I gave the promise.  No words can say how sorrowfully I gave it. 
She instantly took her arm from my waist, walked away to the
window, and stood looking out with her back to me.  After a moment
she spoke once more, but without turning round, without allowing
me to catch the smallest glimpse of her face.

"Are you going to my uncle's room?" she asked.  "Will you say that
I consent to whatever arrangement he may think best? Never mind
leaving me, Marian.  I shall be better alone for a little while."

I went out.  If, as soon as I got into the passage, I could have
transported Mr. Fairlie and Sir Percival Glyde to the uttermost
ends of the earth by lifting one of my fingers, that finger would
have been raised without an instant's hesitation.  For once my
unhappy temper now stood my friend.  I should have broken down
altogether and burst into a violent fit of crying, if my tears had
not been all burnt up in the heat of my anger.  As it was, I
dashed into Mr. Fairlie's room--called to him as harshly as
possible, "Laura consents to the twenty-second"--and dashed out
again without waiting for a word of answer.  I banged the door
after me, and I hope I shattered Mr. Fairlie's nervous system for
the rest of the day.


28th.--This morning I read poor Hartright's farewell letter over
again, a doubt having crossed my mind since yesterday, whether I
am acting wisely in concealing the fact of his departure from
Laura.

On reflection, I still think I am right.  The allusions in his
letter to the preparations made for the expedition to Central
America, all show that the leaders of it know it to be dangerous. 
If the discovery of this makes me uneasy, what would it make HER?
It is bad enough to feel that his departure has deprived us of the
friend of all others to whose devotion we could trust in the hour
of need, if ever that hour comes and finds us helpless; but it is
far worse to know that he has gone from us to face the perils of a
bad climate, a wild country, and a disturbed population.  Surely
it would be a cruel candour to tell Laura this, without a pressing
and a positive necessity for it?

I almost doubt whether I ought not to go a step farther, and burn
the letter at once, for fear of its one day falling into wrong
hands.  It not only refers to Laura in terms which ought to remain
a secret for ever between the writer and me, but it reiterates his
suspicion--so obstinate, so unaccountable, and so alarming--that
he has been secretly watched since he left Limmeridge.  He
declares that he saw the faces of the two strange men who followed
him about the streets of London, watching him among the crowd 
which gathered at Liverpool to see the expedition embark, and he
positively asserts that he heard the name of Anne Catherick
pronounced behind him as he got into the boat.  His own words are,
"These events have a meaning, these events must lead to a result. 
The mystery of Anne Catherick is NOT cleared up yet.  She may
never cross my path again, but if ever she crosses yours, make
better use of the opportunity, Miss Halcombe, than I made of it. 
I speak on strong conviction--I entreat you to remember what I
say." These are his own expressions.  There is no danger of my
forgetting them--my memory is only too ready to dwell on any words
of Hartright's that refer to Anne Catherick.  But there is danger
in my keeping the letter.  The merest accident might place it at
the mercy of strangers.  I may fall ill--I may die.  Better to
burn it at once, and have one anxiety the less.

It is burnt.  The ashes of his farewell letter--the last he may
ever write to me--lie in a few black fragments on the hearth.  Is
this the sad end to all that sad story? Oh, not the end--surely,
surely not the end already!


29th.--The preparations for the marriage have begun.  The
dressmaker has come to receive her orders.  Laura is perfectly
impassive, perfectly careless about the question of all others in
which a woman's personal interests are most closely bound up. She
has left it all to the dressmaker and to me.  If poor Hartright
had been the baronet, and the husband of her father's choice, how
differently she would have behaved! How anxious and capricious she
would have been, and what a hard task the best of dressmakers
would have found it to please her!


30th.--We hear every day from Sir Percival.  The last news is that
the alterations in his house will occupy from four to six months
before they can be properly completed.  If painters, paperhangers,
and upholsterers could make happiness as well as splendour, I
should be interested about their proceedings in Laura's future
home.  As it is, the only part of Sir Percival's last letter which
does not leave me as it found me, perfectly indifferent to all his
plans and projects, is the part which refers to the wedding tour. 
He proposes, as Laura is delicate, and as the winter threatens to
be unusually severe, to take her to Rome, and to remain in Italy
until the early part of next summer.  If this plan should not be
approved, he is equally ready, although he has no establishment of
his own in town, to spend the season in London, in the most
suitable furnished house that can be obtained for the purpose.

Putting myself and my own feelings entirely out of the question
(which it is my duty to do, and which I have done), I, for one,
have no doubt of the propriety of adopting the first of these
proposals.  In either case a separation between Laura and me is
inevitable.  It will be a longer separation, in the event of their
going abroad, than it would be in the event of their remaining in
London--but we must set against this disadvantage the benefit to
Laura, on the other side, of passing the winter in a mild climate,
and more than that, the immense assistance in raising her spirits,
and reconciling her to her new existence, which the mere wonder
and excitement of travelling for the first time in her life in the
most interesting country in the world, must surely afford.  She is
not of a disposition to find resources in the conventional
gaieties and excitements of London.  They would only make the
first oppression of this lamentable marriage fall the heavier on
her.  I dread the beginning of her new life more than words can
tell, but I see some hope for her if she travels--none if she
remains at home.

It is strange to look back at this latest entry in my journal, and
to find that I am writing of the marriage and the parting with
Laura, as people write of a settled thing.  It seems so cold and
so unfeeling to be looking at the future already in this cruelly
composed way.  But what other way is possible, now that the time
is drawing so near? Before another month is over our heads she
will be HIS Laura instead of mine! HIS Laura! I am as little able
to realise the idea which those two words convey--my mind feels
almost as dulled and stunned by it--as if writing of her marriage
were like writing of her death.


December 1st.--A sad, sad day--a day that I have no heart to
describe at any length.  After weakly putting it off last night, I
was obliged to speak to her this morning of Sir Percival's
proposal about the wedding tour.

In the full conviction that I should be with her wherever she
went, the poor child--for a child she is still in many things--was
almost happy at the prospect of seeing the wonders of Florence and
Rome and Naples.  It nearly broke my heart to dispel her delusion,
and to bring her face to face with the hard truth.  I was obliged
to tell her that no man tolerates a rival--not even a woman rival--
in his wife's affections, when he first marries, whatever he may
do afterwards.  I was obliged to warn her that my chance of living
with her permanently under her own roof, depended entirely on my
not arousing Sir Percival's jealousy and distrust by standing
between them at the beginning of their marriage, in the position
of the chosen depositary of his wife's closest secrets.  Drop by
drop I poured the profaning bitterness of this world's wisdom into
that pure heart and that innocent mind, while every higher and
better feeling within me recoiled from my miserable task.  It is
over now.  She has learnt her hard, her inevitable lesson.  The
simple illusions of her girlhood are gone, and my hand has
stripped them off.  Better mine than his--that is all my
consolation--better mine than his.

So the first proposal is the proposal accepted.  They are to go to
Italy, and I am to arrange, with Sir Percival's permission, for
meeting them and staying with them when they return to England. 
In other words, I am to ask a personal favour, for the first time
in my life, and to ask it of the man of all others to whom I least
desire to owe a serious obligation of any kind.  Well! I think I
could do even more than that, for Laura's sake.


2nd.--On looking back, I find myself always referring to Sir
Percival in disparaging terms.  In the turn affairs have now
taken.  I must and will root out my prejudice against him, I
cannot think how it first got into my mind.  It certainly never
existed in former times.

Is it Laura's reluctance to become his wife that has set me
against him? Have Hartright's perfectly intelligible prejudices
infected me without my suspecting their influence? Does that
letter of Anne Catherick's still leave a lurking distrust in my
mind, in spite of Sir Percival's explanation, and of the proof in
my possession of the truth of it? I cannot account for the state
of my own feelings; the one thing I am certain of is, that it is
my duty--doubly my duty now--not to wrong Sir Percival by unjustly
distrusting him.  If it has got to be a habit with me always to
write of him in the same unfavourable manner, I must and will
break myself of this unworthy tendency, even though the effort
should force me to close the pages of my journal till the marriage
is over! I am seriously dissatisfied with myself--I will write no
more to-day.



December 16th.--A whole fortnight has passed, and I have not once
opened these pages.  I have been long enough away from my journal
to come back to it with a healthier and better mind, I hope, so
far as Sir Percival is concerned.

There is not much to record of the past two weeks.  The dresses
are almost all finished, and the new travelling trunks have been
sent here from London.  Poor dear Laura hardly leaves me for a
moment all day, and last night, when neither of us could sleep,
she came and crept into my bed to talk to me there.  "I shall lose
you so soon, Marian," she said; "I must make the most of you while
I can."

They are to be married at Limmeridge Church, and thank Heaven, not
one of the neighbours is to be invited to the ceremony.  The only
visitor will be our old friend, Mr. Arnold, who is to come from
Polesdean to give Laura away, her uncle being far too delicate to
trust himself outside the door in such inclement weather as we now
have.  If I were not determined, from this day forth, to see
nothing but the bright side of our prospects, the melancholy
absence of any male relative of Laura's, at the most important
moment of her life, would make me very gloomy and very distrustful
of the future.  But I have done with gloom and distrust--that is
to say, I have done with writing about either the one or the other
in this journal.

Sir Percival is to arrive to-morrow.  He offered, in case we
wished to treat him on terms of rigid etiquette, to write and ask
our clergyman to grant him the hospitality of the rectory, during
the short period of his sojourn at Limmeridge, before the
marriage.  Under the circumstances, neither Mr. Fairlie nor I
thought it at all necessary for us to trouble ourselves about
attending to trifling forms and ceremonies.  In our wild moorland
country, and in this great lonely house, we may well claim to be
beyond the reach of the trivial conventionalities which hamper
people in other places.  I wrote to Sir Percival to thank him for
his polite offer, and to beg that he would occupy his old rooms,
just as usual, at Limmeridge House.


17th.--He arrived to-day, looking, as I thought, a little worn and
anxious, but still talking and laughing like a man in the best
possible spirits.  He brought with him some really beautiful
presents in jewellery, which Laura received with her best grace,
and, outwardly at least, with perfect self-possession.  The only
sign I can detect of the struggle it must cost her to preserve
appearances at this trying time, expresses itself in a sudden
unwillingness, on her part, ever to be left alone.  Instead of
retreating to her own room, as usual, she seems to dread going
there.  When I went upstairs to-day, after lunch, to put on my
bonnet for a walk, she volunteered to join me, and again, before
dinner, she threw the door open between our two rooms, so that we
might talk to each other while we were dressing.  "Keep me always
doing something," she said; "keep me always in company with
somebody.  Don't let me think--that is all I ask now, Marian--
don't let me think."

This sad change in her only increases her attractions for Sir
Percival.  He interprets it, I can see, to his own advantage. 
There is a feverish flush in her cheeks, a feverish brightness in
her eyes, which he welcomes as the return of her beauty and the
recovery of her spirits.  She talked to-day at dinner with a
gaiety and carelessness so false, so shockingly out of her
character, that I secretly longed to silence her and take her
away.  Sir Percival's delight and surprise appeared to be beyond
all expression.  The anxiety which I had noticed on his face when
he arrived totally disappeared from it, and he looked, even to my
eyes, a good ten years younger than he really is.

There can be no doubt--though some strange perversity prevents me
from seeing it myself--there can be no doubt that Laura's future
husband is a very handsome man.  Regular features form a personal
advantage to begin with--and he has them.  Bright brown eyes,
either in man or woman, are a great attraction--and he has them. 
Even baldness, when it is only baldness over the forehead (as in
his case), is rather becoming than not in a man, for it heightens
the head and adds to the intelligence of the face.  Grace and ease
of movement, untiring animation of manner, ready, pliant,
conversational powers--all these are unquestionable merits, and
all these he certainly possesses.  Surely Mr. Gilmore, ignorant as
he is of Laura's secret, was not to blame for feeling surprised
that she should repent of her marriage engagement? Any one else in
his place would have shared our good old friend's opinion.  If I
were asked, at this moment, to say plainly what defects I have
discovered in Sir Percival, I could only point out two.  One, his
incessant restlessness and excitability--which may be caused,
naturally enough, by unusual energy of character.  The other, his
short, sharp, ill-tempered manner of speaking to the servants--
which may be only a bad habit after all.  No, I cannot dispute it,
and I will not dispute it--Sir Percival is a very handsome and a
very agreeable man.  There! I have written it down at last, and I
am glad it's over.


18th.--Feeling weary and depressed this morning, I left Laura with
Mrs. Vesey, and went out alone for one of my brisk midday walks,
which I have discontinued too much of late.  I took the dry airy
road over the moor that leads to Todd's Corner.  After having been
out half an hour, I was excessively surprised to see Sir Percival
approaching me from the direction of the farm.  He was walking
rapidly, swinging his stick, his head erect as usual, and his
shooting jacket flying open in the wind.  When we met he did not
wait for me to ask any questions--he told me at once that he had
been to the farm to inquire if Mr. or Mrs. Todd had received any
tidings, since his last visit to Limmeridge, of Anne Catherick.

"You found, of course, that they had heard nothing?" I said.

"Nothing whatever," he replied.  "I begin to be seriously afraid
that we have lost her.  Do you happen to know," he continued,
looking me in the face very attentively "if the artist--Mr.
Hartright--is in a position to give us any further information?"

"He has neither heard of her, nor seen her, since he left
Cumberland," I answered.

"Very sad," said Sir Percival, speaking like a man who was
disappointed, and yet, oddly enough, looking at the same time like
a man who was relieved.  "It is impossible to say what misfortunes
may not have happened to the miserable creature.  I am
inexpressibly annoyed at the failure of all my efforts to restore
her to the care and protection which she so urgently needs."

This time he really looked annoyed.  I said a few sympathising
words, and we then talked of other subjects on our way back to the
house.  Surely my chance meeting with him on the moor has
disclosed another favourable trait in his character? Surely it was
singularly considerate and unselfish of him to think of Anne
Catherick on the eve of his marriage, and to go all the way to
Todd's Corner to make inquiries about her, when he might have
passed the time so much more agreeably in Laura's society?
Considering that he can only have acted from motives of pure
charity, his conduct, under the circumstances, shows unusual good
feeling and deserves extraordinary praise.  Well! I give him
extraordinary praise--and there's an end of it.



19th.--More discoveries in the inexhaustible mine of Sir
Percival's virtues.

To-day I approached the subject of my proposed sojourn under his
wife's roof when he brings her back to England.  I had hardly
dropped my first hint in this direction before he caught me warmly
by the hand, and said I had made the very offer to him which he
had been, on his side, most anxious to make to me.  I was the
companion of all others whom he most sincerely longed to secure
for his wife, and he begged me to believe that I had conferred a
lasting favour on him by making the proposal to live with Laura
after her marriage, exactly as I had always lived with her before
it.

When I had thanked him in her name and mine for his considerate
kindness to both of us, we passed next to the subject of his
wedding tour, and began to talk of the English society in Rome to
which Laura was to be introduced.  He ran over the names of
several friends whom he expected to meet abroad this winter.  They
were all English, as well as I can remember, with one exception. 
The one exception was Count Fosco.

The mention of the Count's name, and the discovery that he and his
wife are likely to meet the bride and bridegroom on the continent,
puts Laura's marriage, for the first time, in a distinctly
favourable light.  It is likely to be the means of healing a
family feud.  Hitherto Madame Fosco has chosen to forget her
obligations as Laura's aunt out of sheer spite against the late
Mr. Fairlie for his conduct in the affair of the legacy.  Now
however, she can persist in this course of conduct no longer.  Sir
Percival and Count Fosco are old and fast friends, and their wives
will have no choice but to meet on civil terms.  Madame Fosco in
her maiden days was one of the most impertinent women I ever met
with--capricious, exacting, and vain to the last degree of
absurdity.  If her husband has succeeded in bringing her to her
senses, he deserves the gratitude of every member of the family,
and he may have mine to begin with.

I am becoming anxious to know the Count.  He is the most intimate
friend of Laura's husband, and in that capacity he excites my
strongest interest.  Neither Laura nor I have ever seen him.  All
I know of him is that his accidental presence, years ago, on the
steps of the Trinita del Monte at Rome, assisted Sir Percival's
escape from robbery and assassination at the critical moment when
he was wounded in the hand, and might the next instant have been
wounded in the heart.  I remember also that, at the time of the
late Mr. Fairlie's absurd objections to his sister's marriage, the
Count wrote him a very temperate and sensible letter on the
subject, which, I am ashamed to say, remained unanswered.  This is
all I know of Sir Percival's friend.  I wonder if he will ever
come to England? I wonder if I shall like him?

My pen is running away into mere speculation.  Let me return to
sober matter of fact.  It is certain that Sir Percival's reception
of my venturesome proposal to live with his wife was more than
kind, it was almost affectionate.  I am sure Laura's husband will
have no reason to complain of me if I can only go on as I have
begun.  I have already declared him to be handsome, agreeable,
full of good feeling towards the unfortunate and full of
affectionate kindness towards me.  Really, I hardly; know myself
again in my new character of Sir Percival's warmest friend.


20th.--I hate Sir Percival! I flatly deny his good looks.  I
consider him to be eminently ill-tempered and disagreeable, and
totally wanting in kindness and good feeling.  Last night the
cards for the married couple were sent home.  Laura opened the
packet and saw her future name in print for the first time.  Sir
Percival looked over her shoulder familiarly at the new card which
had already transformed Miss Fairlie into Lady Glyde--smiled with
the most odious self-complacency, and whispered something in her
ear.  I don't know what it was--Laura has refused to tell me--but
I saw her face turn to such a deadly whiteness that I thought she
would have fainted.  He took no notice of the change--he seemed to
be barbarously unconscious that he had said anything to pain her. 
All my old feelings of hostility towards him revived on the
instant, and all the hours that have passed since have done
nothing to dissipate them.  I am more unreasonable and more unjust
than ever.  In three words--how glibly my pen writes them!--in
three words, I hate him.


21st.--Have the anxieties of this anxious time shaken me a little,
at last? I have been writing, for the last few days, in a tone of
levity which, Heaven knows, is far enough from my heart, and which
it has rather shocked me to discover on looking back at the
entries in my journal.

Perhaps I may have caught the feverish excitement of Laura's
spirits for the last week.  If so, the fit has already passed away
from me, and has left me in a very strange state of mind.  A
persistent idea has been forcing itself on my attention, ever
since last night, that something will yet happen to prevent the
marriage.  What has produced this singular fancy? Is it the
indirect result of my apprehensions for Laura's future? Or has it
been unconsciously suggested to me by the increasing restlessness
and irritability which I have certainly observed in Sir Percival's
manner as the wedding-day draws nearer and nearer? Impossible to
say.  I know that I have the idea--surely the wildest idea, under
the circumstances, that ever entered a woman's head?--but try as I
may, I cannot trace it back to its source.

This last day has been all confusion and wretchedness.  How can I
write about it?--and yet, I must write.  Anything is better than
brooding over my own gloomy thoughts.

Kind Mrs. Vesey, whom we have all too much overlooked and
forgotten of late, innocently caused us a sad morning to begin
with.  She has been, for months past, secretly making a warm
Shetland shawl for her dear pupil--a most beautiful and surprising
piece of work to be done by a woman at her age and with her
habits.  The gift was presented this morning, and poor warm-
hearted Laura completely broke down when the shawl was put proudly
on her shoulders by the loving old friend and guardian of her
motherless childhood.  I was hardly allowed time to quiet them
both, or even to dry my own eyes, when I was sent for by Mr.
Fairlie, to be favoured with a long recital of his arrangements
for the preservation of his own tranquillity on the wedding-day.

"Dear Laura" was to receive his present--a shabby ring, with her
affectionate uncle's hair for an ornament, instead of a precious
stone, and with a heartless French inscription inside, about
congenial sentiments and eternal friendship--"dear Laura" was to
receive this tender tribute from my hands immediately, so that she
might have plenty of time to recover from the agitation produced
by the gift before she appeared in Mr. Fairlie's presence.  "Dear
Laura" was to pay him a little visit that evening, and to be kind
enough not to make a scene.  "Dear Laura" was to pay him another
little visit in her wedding-dress the next morning, and to be kind
enough, again, not to make a scene.  "Dear Laura" was to look in
once more, for the third time, before going away, but without
harrowing his feelings by saying WHEN she was going away, and
without tears--"in the name of pity, in the name of everything,
dear Marian, that is most affectionate and most domestic, and most
delightfully and charmingly self-composed, WITHOUT TEARS! " I was
so exasperated by this miserable selfish trifling, at such a time,
that I should certainly have shocked Mr. Fairlie by some of the
hardest and rudest truths he has ever heard in his life, if the
arrival of Mr. Arnold from Polesdean had not called me away to new
duties downstairs.

The rest of the day is indescribable.  I believe no one in the
house really knew how it passed.  The confusion of small events,
all huddled together one on the other, bewildered everybody. 
There were dresses sent home that had been forgotten--there were
trunks to be packed and unpacked and packed again--there were
presents from friends far and near, friends high and low.  We were
all needlessly hurried, all nervously expectant of the morrow. 
Sir Percival, especially, was too restless now to remain five
minutes together in the same place.  That short, sharp cough of
his troubled him more than ever.  He was in and out of doors all
day long, and he seemed to grow so inquisitive on a sudden, that
he questioned the very strangers who came on small errands to the
house.  Add to all this, the one perpetual thought in Laura's mind
and mine, that we were to part the next day, and the haunting
dread, unexpressed by either of us, and yet ever present to both,
that this deplorable marriage might prove to be the one fatal
error of her life and the one hopeless sorrow of mine.  For the
first time in all the years of our close and happy intercourse we
almost avoided looking each other in the face, and we refrained,
by common consent, from speaking together in private through the
whole evening.  I can dwell on it no longer.  Whatever future
sorrows may be in store for me, I shall always look back on this
twenty-first of December as the most comfortless and most
miserable day of my life.

I am writing these lines in the solitude of my own room, long
after midnight, having just come back from a stolen look at Laura
in her pretty little white bed--the bed she has occupied since the
days of her girlhood.

There she lay, unconscious that I was looking at her--quiet, more
quiet than I had dared to hope, but not sleeping.  The glimmer of
the night-light showed me that her eyes were only partially
closed--the traces of tears glistened between her eye-lids.  My
little keepsake--only a brooch--lay on the table at her bedside,
with her prayer-book, and the miniature portrait of her father
which she takes with her wherever she goes.  I waited a moment,
looking at her from behind her pillow, as she lay beneath me, with
one arm and hand resting on the white coverlid, so still, so
quietly breathing, that the frill on her night-dress never moved--
I waited, looking at her, as I have seen her thousands of times,
as I shall never see her again--and then stole back to my room. 
My own love! with all your wealth, and all your beauty, how
friendless you are! The one man who would give his heart's life to
serve you is far away, tossing, this stormy night, on the awful
sea.  Who else is left to you? No father, no brother--no living
creature but the helpless, useless woman who writes these sad
lines, and watches by you for the morning, in sorrow that she
cannot compose, in doubt that she cannot conquer.  Oh, what a
trust is to be placed in that man's hands to-morrow! If ever he
forgets it--if ever he injures a hair of her head!----


THE TWENTY-SECOND OF DECEMBER.  Seven o'clock.  A wild, unsettled
morning.  She has just risen--better and calmer, now that the time
has come, than she was yesterday.



Ten o'clock.  She is dressed.  We have kissed each other--we have
promised each other not to lose courage.  I am away for a moment
in my own room.  In the whirl and confusion of my thoughts, I can
detect that strange fancy of some hindrance happening to stop the
marriage still hanging about my mind.  Is it hanging about HIS
mind too? I see him from the window, moving hither and thither
uneasily among the carriages at the door.--How can I write such
folly! The marriage is a certainty.  In less than half an hour we
start for the church.


Eleven o'clock.  It is all over.  They are married.


Three o'clock.  They are gone! I am blind with crying--I can write
no more----

*    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *

[The First Epoch of the Story closes here.]




THE SECOND EPOCH

THE STORY CONTINUED BY MARIAN HALCOMBE.


I

BLACKWATER PARK, HAMPSHIRE.


June 11th, 1850.--Six months to look back on--six long, lonely
months since Laura and I last saw each other!

How many days have I still to wait? Only one! To-morrow, the
twelfth, the travellers return to England.  I can hardly realise
my own happiness--I can hardly believe that the next four-and-
twenty hours will complete the last day of separation between
Laura and me.

She and her husband have been in Italy all the winter, and
afterwards in the Tyrol.  They come back, accompanied by Count
Fosco and his wife, who propose to settle somewhere in the
neighbourhood of London, and who have engaged to stay at
Blackwater Park for the summer months before deciding on a place
of residence.  So long as Laura returns, no matter who returns
with her.  Sir Percival may fill the house from floor to ceiling,
if he likes, on condition that his wife and I inhabit it together.

Meanwhile, here I am, established at Blackwater Park, "the ancient
and interesting seat" (as the county history obligingly informs
me) "of Sir Percival Glyde, Bart.," and the future abiding-place
(as I may now venture to add on my account) of plain Marian
Halcombe, spinster, now settled in a snug little sitting-room,
with a cup of tea by her side, and all her earthly possessions
ranged round her in three boxes and a bag.

I left Limmeridge yesterday, having received Laura's delightful
letter from Paris the day before.  I had been previously uncertain
whether I was to meet them in London or in Hampshire, but this
last letter informed me that Sir Percival proposed to land at
Southampton, and to travel straight on to his country-house.  He
has spent so much money abroad that he has none left to defray the
expenses of living in London for the remainder of the season, and
he is economically resolved to pass the summer and autumn quietly
at Blackwater.  Laura has had more than enough of excitement and
change of scene, and is pleased at the prospect of country
tranquillity and retirement which her husband's prudence provides
for her.  As for me, I am ready to be happy anywhere in her
society.  We are all, therefore, well contented in our various
ways, to begin with.

Last night I slept in London, and was delayed there so long to-day
by various calls and commissions, that I did not reach Blackwater
this evening till after dusk.

Judging by my vague impressions of the place thus far, it is the
exact opposite of Limmeridge.

The house is situated on a dead flat, and seems to be shut in--
almost suffocated, to my north-country notions, by trees.  I have
seen nobody but the man-servant who opened the door to me, and the
housekeeper, a very civil person, who showed me the way to my own
room, and got me my tea.  I have a nice little boudoir and
bedroom, at the end of a long passage on the first floor.  The
servants and some of the spare rooms are on the second floor, and
all the living rooms are on the ground floor.  I have not seen one
of them yet, and I know nothing about the house, except that one
wing of it is said to be five hundred years old, that it had a
moat round it once, and that it gets its name of Blackwater from a
lake in the park.

Eleven o'clock has just struck, in a ghostly and solemn manner,
from a turret over the centre of the house, which I saw when I
came in.  A large dog has been woke, apparently by the sound of
the bell, and is howling and yawning drearily, somewhere round a
corner.  I hear echoing footsteps in the passages below, and the
iron thumping of bolts and bars at the house door.  The servants
are evidently going to bed.  Shall I follow their example?

No, I am not half sleepy enough.  Sleepy, did I say? I feel as if
I should never close my eyes again.  The bare anticipation of
seeing that dear face, and hearing that well-known voice to-
morrow, keeps me in a perpetual fever of excitement.  If I only
had the privileges of a man, I would order out Sir Percival's best
horse instantly, and tear away on a night-gallop, eastward, to
meet the rising sun--a long, hard, heavy, ceaseless gallop of
hours and hours, like the famous highwayman's ride to York. 
Being, however, nothing but a woman, condemned to patience,
propriety, and petticoats for life, I must respect the house-
keeper's opinions, and try to compose myself in some feeble and
feminine way.

Reading is out of the question--I can't fix my attention on books. 
Let me try if I can write myself into sleepiness and fatigue.  My
journal has been very much neglected of late.  What can I recall--
standing, as I now do, on the threshold of a new life--of persons
and events, of chances and changes, during the past six months--
the long, weary, empty interval since Laura's wedding-day?


Walter Hartright is uppermost in my memory, and he passes first in
the shadowy procession of my absent friends.  I received a few
lines from him, after the landing of the expedition in Honduras,
written more cheerfully and hopefully than he has written yet.  A
month or six weeks later I saw an extract from an American
newspaper, describing the departure of the adventurers on their
inland journey.  They were last seen entering a wild primeval
forest, each man with his rifle on his shoulder and his baggage at
his back.  Since that time, civilisation has lost all trace of
them.  Not a line more have I received from Walter, not a fragment
of news from the expedition has appeared in any of the public
journals.

The same dense, disheartening obscurity hangs over the fate and
fortunes of Anne Catherick, and her companion, Mrs. Clements. 
Nothing whatever has been heard of either of them.  Whether they
are in the country or out of it, whether they are living or dead,
no one knows.  Even Sir Percival's solicitor has lost all hope,
and has ordered the useless search after the fugitives to be
finally given up.

Our good old friend Mr. Gilmore has met with a sad check in his
active professional career.  Early in the spring we were alarmed
by hearing that he had been found insensible at his desk, and that
the seizure was pronounced to be an apoplectic fit.  He had been
long complaining of fulness and oppression in the head, and his
doctor had warned him of the consequences that would follow his
persistency in continuing to work, early and late, as if he were
still a young man.  The result now is that he has been positively
ordered to keep out of his office for a year to come, at least,
and to seek repose of body and relief of mind by altogether
changing his usual mode of life.  The business is left,
accordingly, to be carried on by his partner, and he is himself,
at this moment, away in Germany, visiting some relations who are
settled there in mercantile pursuits.  Thus another true friend
and trustworthy adviser is lost to us--lost, I earnestly hope and
trust, for a time only.

Poor Mrs. Vesey travelled with me as far as London.  It was
impossible to abandon her to solitude at Limmeridge after Laura
and I had both left the house, and we have arranged that she is to
live with an unmarried younger sister of hers, who keeps a school
at Clapham.  She is to come here this autumn to visit her pupil--I
might almost say her adopted child.  I saw the good old lady safe
to her destination, and left her in the care of her relative,
quietly happy at the prospect of seeing Laura again in a few
months' time.

As for Mr. Fairlie, I believe I am guilty of no injustice if I
describe him as being unutterably relieved by having the house
clear of us women.  The idea of his missing his niece is simply
preposterous--he used to let months pass in the old times without
attempting to see her--and in my case and Mrs. Vesey's, I take
leave to consider his telling us both that he was half heart-
broken at our departure, to be equivalent to a confession that he
was secretly rejoiced to get rid of us.  His last caprice has led
him to keep two photographers incessantly employed in producing
sun-pictures of all the treasures and curiosities in his
possession.  One complete copy of the collection of the
photographs is to be presented to the Mechanics' Institution of
Carlisle, mounted on the finest cardboard, with ostentatious red-
letter inscriptions underneath, "Madonna and Child by Raphael.  In
the possession of Frederick Fairlie, Esquire." "Copper coin of the
period of Tiglath Pileser.  In the possession of Frederick
Fairlie, Esquire." "Unique Rembrandt etching.  Known all over
Europe as THE SMUDGE, from a printer's blot in the corner which
exists in no other copy.  Valued at three hundred guineas.  In the
possession of Frederick Fairlie, Esq." Dozens of photographs of
this sort, and all inscribed in this manner, were completed before
I left Cumberland, and hundreds more remain to be done.  With this
new interest to occupy him, Mr. Fairlie will be a happy man for
months and months to come, and the two unfortunate photographers
will share the social martyrdom which he has hitherto inflicted on
his valet alone.

So much for the persons and events which hold the foremost place
in my memory.  What next of the one person who holds the foremost
place in my heart? Laura has been present to my thoughts all the
while I have been writing these lines.  What can I recall of her
during the past six months, before I close my journal for the
night?

I have only her letters to guide me, and on the most important of
all the questions which our correspondence can discuss, every one
of those letters leaves me in the dark.

Does he treat her kindly? Is she happier now than she was when I
parted with her on the wedding-day? All my letters have contained
these two inquiries, put more or less directly, now in one form,
and now in another, and all, on that point only, have remained
without reply, or have been answered as if my questions merely
related to the state of her health.  She informs me, over and over
again, that she is perfectly well--that travelling agrees with
her--that she is getting through the winter, for the first time in
her life, without catching cold--but not a word can I find
anywhere which tells me plainly that she is reconciled to her
marriage, and that she can now look back to the twenty-second of
December without any bitter feelings of repentance and regret. 
The name of her husband is only mentioned in her letters, as she
might mention the name of a friend who was travelling with them,
and who had undertaken to make all the arrangements for the
journey.  "Sir Percival" has settled that we leave on such a day--
"Sir Percival" has decided that we travel by such a road. 
Sometimes she writes "Percival" only, but very seldom--in nine
cases out of ten she gives him his title.

I cannot find that his habits and opinions have changed and
coloured hers in any single particular.  The usual moral
transformation which is insensibly wrought in a young, fresh,
sensitive woman by her marriage, seems never to have taken place
in Laura.  She writes of her own thoughts and impressions, amid
all the wonders she has seen, exactly as she might have written to
some one else, if I had been travelling with her instead of her
husband.  I see no betrayal anywhere of sympathy of any kind
existing between them.  Even when she wanders from the subject of
her travels, and occupies herself with the prospects that await
her in England, her speculations are busied with her future as my
sister, and persistently neglect to notice her future as Sir
Percival's wife.  In all this there is no undertone of complaint
to warn me that she is absolutely unhappy in her married life. 
The impression I have derived from our correspondence does not,
thank God, lead me to any such distressing conclusion as that.  I
only see a sad torpor, an unchangeable indifference, when I turn
my mind from her in the old character of a sister, and look at
her, through the medium of her letters, in the new character of a
wife.  In other words, it is always Laura Fairlie who has been
writing to me for the last six months, and never Lady Glyde.

The strange silence which she maintains on the subject of her
husband's character and conduct, she preserves with almost equal
resolution in the few references which her later letters contain
to the name of her husband's bosom friend, Count Fosco.

For some unexplained reason the Count and his wife appear to have
changed their plans abruptly, at the end of last autumn, and to
have gone to Vienna instead of going to Rome, at which latter
place Sir Percival had expected to find them when he left England. 
They only quitted Vienna in the spring, and travelled as far as
the Tyrol to meet the bride and bridegroom on their homeward
journey.  Laura writes readily enough about the meeting with
Madame Fosco, and assures me that she has found her aunt so much
changed for the better--so much quieter, and so much more sensible
as a wife than she was as a single woman--that I shall hardly know
her again when I see her here.  But on the subject of Count Fosco
(who interests me infinitely more than his wife), Laura is
provokingly circumspect and silent.  She only says that he puzzles
her, and that she will not tell me what her impression of him is
until I have seen him, and formed my own opinion first.

This, to my mind, looks ill for the Count.  Laura has preserved,
far more perfectly than most people do in later life, the child's
subtle faculty of knowing a friend by instinct, and if I am right
in assuming that her first impression of Count Fosco has not been
favourable, I for one am in some danger of doubting and
distrusting that illustrious foreigner before I have so much as
set eyes on him.  But, patience, patience--this uncertainty, and
many uncertainties more, cannot last much longer.  To-morrow will
see all my doubts in a fair way of being cleared up, sooner or
later.

Twelve o'clock has struck, and I have just come back to close
these pages, after looking out at my open window.

It is a still, sultry, moonless night.  The stars are dull and
few.  The trees that shut out the view on all sides look dimly
black and solid in the distance, like a great wall of rock.  I
hear the croaking of frogs, faint and far off, and the echoes of
the great clock hum in the airless calm long after the strokes
have ceased.  I wonder how Blackwater Park will look in the
daytime? I don't altogether like it by night.


12th.--A day of investigations and discoveries--a more interesting
day, for many reasons, than I had ventured to anticipate.

I began my sight-seeing, of course, with the house.

The main body of the building is of the time of that highly-
overrated woman, Queen Elizabeth.  On the ground floor there are
two hugely long galleries, with low ceilings lying parallel with
each other, and rendered additionally dark and dismal by hideous
family portraits--every one of which I should like to burn.  The
rooms on the floor above the two galleries are kept in tolerable
repair, but are very seldom used.  The civil housekeeper, who
acted as my guide, offered to show me over them, but considerately
added that she feared I should find them rather out of order.  My
respect for the integrity of my own petticoats and stockings
infinitely exceeds my respect for all the Elizabethan bedrooms in
the kingdom, so I positively declined exploring the upper regions
of dust and dirt at the risk of soiling my nice clean clothes. 
The housekeeper said, "I am quite of your opinion, miss," and
appeared to think me the most sensible woman she had met with for
a long time past.

So much, then, for the main building.  Two wings are added at
either end of it.  The half-ruined wing on the left (as you
approach the house) was once a place of residence standing by
itself, and was built in the fourteenth century.  One of Sir
Percival's maternal ancestors--I don't remember, and don't care
which--tacked on the main building, at right angles to it, in the
aforesaid Queen Elizabeth's time.  The housekeeper told me that
the architecture of "the old wing," both outside and inside, was
considered remarkably fine by good judges.  On further
investigation I discovered that good judges could only exercise
their abilities on Sir Percival's piece of antiquity by previously
dismissing from their minds all fear of damp, darkness, and rats. 
Under these circumstances, I unhesitatingly acknowledged myself to
be no judge at all, and suggested that we should treat "the old
wing" precisely as we had previously treated the Elizabethan
bedrooms.  Once more the housekeeper said, "I am quite of your
opinion, miss," and once more she looked at me with undisguised
admiration of my extraordinary common-sense.

We went next to the wing on the right, which was built, by way of
completing the wonderful architectural jumble at Blackwater Park,
in the time of George the Second.

This is the habitable part of the house, which has been repaired
and redecorated inside on Laura's account.  My two rooms, and all
the good bedrooms besides, are on the first floor, and the
basement contains a drawing-room, a dining-room, a morning-room, a
library, and a pretty little boudoir for Laura, all very nicely
ornamented in the bright modern way, and all very elegantly
furnished with the delightful modern luxuries.  None of the rooms
are anything like so large and airy as our rooms at Limmeridge,
but they all look pleasant to live in.  I was terribly afraid,
from what I had heard of Blackwater Park, of fatiguing antique
chairs, and dismal stained glass, and musty, frouzy hangings, and
all the barbarous lumber which people born without a sense of
comfort accumulate about them, in defiance of the consideration
due to the convenience of their friends.  It is an inexpressible
relief to find that the nineteenth century has invaded this
strange future home of mine, and has swept the dirty "good old
times" out of the way of our daily life.

I dawdled away the morning--part of the time in the rooms
downstairs, and part out of doors in the great square which is
formed by the three sides of the house, and by the lofty iron
railings and gates which protect it in front.  A large circular
fishpond with stone sides, and an allegorical leaden monster in
the middle, occupies the centre of the square.  The pond itself is
full of gold and silver fish, and is encircled by a broad belt of
the softest turf I ever walked on.  I loitered here on the shady
side pleasantly enough till luncheon-time, and after that took my
broad straw hat and wandered out alone in the warm lovely sunlight
to explore the grounds.

Daylight confirmed the impression which I had felt the night
before, of there being too many trees at Blackwater.  The house is
stifled by them.  They are, for the most part, young, and planted
far too thickly.  I suspect there must have been a ruinous cutting
down of timber all over the estate before Sir Percival's time, and
an angry anxiety on the part of the next possessor to fill up all
the gaps as thickly and rapidly as possible.  After looking about
me in front of the house, I observed a flower-garden on my left
hand, and walked towards it to see what I could discover in that
direction.

On a nearer view the garden proved to be small and poor and ill
kept.  I left it behind me, opened a little gate in a ring fence,
and found myself in a plantation of fir-trees.

A pretty winding path, artificially made, led me on among the
trees, and my north-country experience soon informed me that I was
approaching sandy, heathy ground.  After a walk of more than half
a mile, I should think, among the firs, the path took a sharp
turn--the trees abruptly ceased to appear on either side of me,
and I found myself standing suddenly on the margin of a vast open
space, and looking down at the Blackwater lake from which the
house takes its name.

The ground, shelving away below me, was all sand, with a few
little heathy hillocks to break the monotony of it in certain
places.  The lake itself had evidently once flowed to the spot on
which I stood, and had been gradually wasted and dried up to less
than a third of its former size.  I saw its still, stagnant
waters, a quarter of a mile away from me in the hollow, separated
into pools and ponds by twining reeds and rushes, and little
knolls of earth.  On the farther bank from me the trees rose
thickly again, and shut out the view, and cast their black shadows
on the sluggish, shallow water.  As I walked down to the lake, I
saw that the ground on its farther side was damp and marshy,
overgrown with rank grass and dismal willows.  The water, which
was clear enough on the open sandy side, where the sun shone,
looked black and poisonous opposite to me, where it lay deeper
under the shade of the spongy banks, and the rank overhanging
thickets and tangled trees.  The frogs were croaking, and the rats
were slipping in and out of the shadowy water, like live shadows
themselves, as I got nearer to the marshy side of the lake.  I saw
here, lying half in and half out of the water, the rotten wreck of
an old overturned boat, with a sickly spot of sunlight glimmering
through a gap in the trees on its dry surface, and a snake basking
in the midst of the spot, fantastically coiled and treacherously
still.  Far and near the view suggested the same dreary
impressions of solitude and decay, and the glorious brightness of
the summer sky overhead seemed only to deepen and harden the gloom
and barrenness of the wilderness on which it shone.  I turned and
retraced my steps to the high heathy ground, directing them a
little aside from my former path towards a shabby old wooden shed,
which stood on the outer skirt of the fir plantation, and which
had hitherto been too unimportant to share my notice with the
wide, wild prospect of the lake.

On approaching the shed I found that it had once been a boat-
house, and that an attempt had apparently been made to convert it
afterwards into a sort of rude arbour, by placing inside it a
firwood seat, a few stools, and a table.  I entered the place, and
sat down for a little while to rest and get my breath again.

I had not been in the boat-house more than a minute when it struck
me that the sound of my own quick breathing was very strangely
echoed by something beneath me.  I listened intently for a moment,
and heard a low, thick, sobbing breath that seemed to come from
the ground under the seat which I was occupying.  My nerves are
not easily shaken by trifles, but on this occasion I started to my
feet in a fright--called out--received no answer--summoned back my
recreant courage, and looked under the seat.

There, crouched up in the farthest corner, lay the forlorn cause
of my terror, in the shape of a poor little dog--a black and white
spaniel.  The creature moaned feebly when I looked at it and
called to it, but never stirred.  I moved away the seat and looked
closer.  The poor little dog's eyes were glazing fast, and there
were spots of blood on its glossy white side.  The misery of a
weak, helpless, dumb creature is surely one of the saddest of all
the mournful sights which this world can show.  I lifted the poor
dog in my arms as gently as I could, and contrived a sort of make-
shift hammock for him to lie in, by gathering up the front of my
dress all round him.  In this way I took the creature, as
painlessly as possible, and as fast as possible, back to the
house.

Finding no one in the hall I went up at once to my own sitting-
room, made a bed for the dog with one of my old shawls, and rang
the bell.  The largest and fattest of all possible house-maids
answered it, in a state of cheerful stupidity which would have
provoked the patience of a saint.  The girl's fat, shapeless face
actually stretched into a broad grin at the sight of the wounded
creature on the floor.

"What do you see there to laugh at?" I asked, as angrily as if she
had been a servant of my own.  "Do you know whose dog it is?"

"No, miss, that I certainly don't." She stooped, and looked down
at the spaniel's injured side--brightened suddenly with the
irradiation of a new idea--and pointing to the wound with a
chuckle of satisfaction, said, "That's Baxter's doings, that is."

I was so exasperated that I could have boxed her ears.  "Baxter?"
I said.  "Who is the brute you call Baxter?"

The girl grinned again more cheerfully than ever.  "Bless you,
miss! Baxter's the keeper, and when he finds strange dogs hunting
about, he takes and shoots 'em.  It's keeper's dooty miss, I think
that dog will die.  Here's where he's been shot, ain't it? That's
Baxter's doings, that is.  Baxter's doings, miss, and Baxter's
dooty."

I was almost wicked enough to wish that Baxter had shot the
housemaid instead of the dog.  Seeing that it was quite useless to
expect this densely impenetrable personage to give me any help in
relieving the suffering creature at our feet, I told her to
request the housekeeper's attendance with my compliments.  She
went out exactly as she had come in, grinning from ear to ear.  As
the door closed on her she said to herself softly, "It's Baxter's
doings and Baxter's dooty--that's what it is."

The housekeeper, a person of some education and intelligence,
thoughtfully brought upstairs with her some milk and some warm
water.  The instant she saw the dog on the floor she started and
changed colour.

"Why, Lord bless me," cried the housekeeper, "that must be Mrs.
Catherick's dog!"

"Whose?" I asked, in the utmost astonishment.

"Mrs. Catherick's.  You seem to know Mrs. Catherick, Miss
Halcombe?"

"Not personally, but I have heard of her.  Does she live here? Has
she had any news of her daughter?"

"No, Miss Halcombe, she came here to ask for news."

"When?"

"Only yesterday.  She said some one had reported that a stranger
answering to the description of her daughter had been seen in our
neighbourhood.  No such report has reached us here, and no such
report was known in the village, when I sent to make inquiries
there on Mrs. Catherick's account.  She certainly brought this
poor little dog with her when she came, and I saw it trot out
after her when she went away.  I suppose the creature strayed into
the plantations, and got shot.  Where did you find it, Miss
Halcombe?"

"In the old shed that looks out on the lake."

"Ah, yes, that is the plantation side, and the poor thing dragged
itself, I suppose, to the nearest shelter, as dogs will, to die. 
If you can moisten its lips with the milk, Miss Halcombe, I will
wash the clotted hair from the wound.  I am very much afraid it is
too late to do any good.  However, we can but try."

Mrs. Catherick! The name still rang in my ears, as if the
housekeeper had only that moment surprised me by uttering it. 
While we were attending to the dog, the words of Walter
Hartright's caution to me returned to my memory: "If ever Anne
Catherick crosses your path, make better use of the opportunity,
Miss Halcombe, than I made of it." The finding of the wounded
spaniel had led me already to the discovery of Mrs. Catherick's
visit to Blackwater Park, and that event might lead in its turn,
to something more.  I determined to make the most of the chance
which was now offered to me, and to gain as much information as I
could.

"Did you say that Mrs. Catherick lived anywhere in this
neighbourhood?" I asked.

"Oh dear, no," said the housekeeper.  "She lives at Welmingham,
quite at the other end of the county--five-and-twenty miles off,
at least."

"I suppose you have known Mrs. Catherick for some years?"

"On the contrary, Miss Halcombe, I never saw her before she came
here yesterday.  I had heard of her, of course, because I had
heard of Sir Percival's kindness in putting her daughter under
medical care.  Mrs. Catherick is rather a strange person in her
manners, but extremely respectable-looking.  She seemed sorely put
out when she found that there was no foundation--none, at least,
that any of us could discover--for the report of her daughter
having been seen in this neighbourhood."

"I am rather interested about Mrs. Catherick," I went on,
continuing the conversation as long as possible.  "I wish I had
arrived here soon enough to see her yesterday.  Did she stay for
any length of time?"

"Yes," said the housekeeper, "she stayed for some time; and I
think she would have remained longer, if I had not been called
away to speak to a strange gentleman--a gentleman who came to ask
when Sir Percival was expected back.  Mrs. Catherick got up and
left at once, when she heard the maid tell me what the visitor's
errand was.  She said to me, at parting, that there was no need to
tell Sir Percival of her coming here.  I thought that rather an
odd remark to make, especially to a person in my responsible
situation."

I thought it an odd remark too.  Sir Percival had certainly led me
to believe, at Limmeridge, that the most perfect confidence
existed between himself and Mrs. Catherick.  If that was the case,
why should she be anxious to have her visit at Blackwater Park
kept a secret from him?

"Probably," I said, seeing that the housekeeper expected me to
give my opinion on Mrs. Catherick's parting words, "probably she
thought the announcement of her visit might vex Sir Percival to no
purpose, by reminding him that her lost daughter was not found
yet.  Did she talk much on that subject?"

"Very little," replied the housekeeper.  "She talked principally
of Sir Percival, and asked a great many questions about where he
had been travelling, and what sort of lady his new wife was.  She
seemed to be more soured and put out than distressed, by failing
to find any traces of her daughter in these parts.  'I give her
up,' were the last words she said that I can remember; 'I give her
up, ma'am, for lost.' And from that she passed at once to her
questions about Lady Glyde, wanting to know if she was a handsome,
amiable lady, comely and healthy and young----Ah, dear! I thought
how it would end.  Look, Miss Halcombe, the poor thing is out of
its misery at last!"

The dog was dead.  It had given a faint, sobbing cry, it had
suffered an instant's convulsion of the limbs, just as those last
words, "comely and healthy and young," dropped from the
housekeeper's lips.  The change had happened with startling
suddenness--in one moment the creature lay lifeless under our
hands.

Eight o'clock.  I have just returned from dining downstairs, in
solitary state.  The sunset is burning redly on the wilderness of
trees that I see from my window, and I am poring over my journal
again, to calm my impatience for the return of the travellers. 
They ought to have arrived, by my calculations, before this.  How
still and lonely the house is in the drowsy evening quiet! Oh me!
how many minutes more before I hear the carriage wheels and run
downstairs to find myself in Laura's arms?

The poor little dog! I wish my first day at Blackwater Park had
not been associated with death, though it is only the death of a
stray animal.

Welmingham--I see, on looking back through these private pages of
mine, that Welmingham is the name of the place where Mrs.
Catherick lives.  Her note is still in my possession, the note in
answer to that letter about her unhappy daughter which Sir
Percival obliged me to write.  One of these days, when I can find
a safe opportunity, I will take the note with me by way of
introduction, and try what I can make of Mrs. Catherick at a
personal interview.  I don't understand her wishing to conceal her
visit to this place from Sir Percival's knowledge, and I don't
feel half so sure, as the housekeeper seems to do, that her
daughter Anne is not in the neighbourhood after all.  What would
Walter Hartright have said in this emergency? Poor, dear
Hartright! I am beginning to feel the want of his honest advice
and his willing help already.

Surely I heard something.  Was it a bustle of footsteps below
stairs? Yes! I hear the horses' feet--I hear the rolling wheels----




II


June 15th.--The confusion of their arrival has had time to
subside.  Two days have elapsed since the return of the
travellers, and that interval has sufficed to put the new
machinery of our lives at Blackwater Park in fair working order. 
I may now return to my journal, with some little chance of being
able to continue the entries in it as collectedly as usual.

I think I must begin by putting down an odd remark which has
suggested itself to me since Laura came back.

When two members of a family or two intimate friends are
separated, and one goes abroad and one remains at home, the return
of the relative or friend who has been travelling always seems to
place the relative or friend who has been staying at home at a
painful disadvantage when the two first meet.  The sudden
encounter of the new thoughts and new habits eagerly gained in the
one case, with the old thoughts and old habits passively preserved
in the other, seems at first to part the sympathies of the most
loving relatives and the fondest friends, and to set a sudden
strangeness, unexpected by both and uncontrollable by both,
between them on either side.  After the first happiness of my
meeting with Laura was over, after we had sat down together hand
in hand to recover breath enough and calmness enough to talk, I
felt this strangeness instantly, and I could see that she felt it
too.  It has partially worn away, now that we have fallen back
into most of our old habits, and it will probably disappear before
long.  But it has certainly had an influence over the first
impressions that I have formed of her, now that we are living
together again--for which reason only I have thought fit to
mention it here.

She has found me unaltered, but I have found her changed.

Changed in person, and in one respect changed in character.  I
cannot absolutely say that she is less beautiful than she used to
be--I can only say that she is less beautiful to me.

Others, who do not look at her with my eyes and my recollections,
would probably think her improved.  There is more colour and more
decision and roundness of outline in her face than there used to
be, and her figure seems more firmly set and more sure and easy in
all its movements than it was in her maiden days.  But I miss
something when I look at her--something that once belonged to the
happy, innocent life of Laura Fairlie, and that I cannot find in
Lady Glyde.  There was in the old times a freshness, a softness,
an ever-varying and yet ever-remaining tenderness of beauty in her
face, the charm of which it is not possible to express in words,
or, as poor Hartright used often to say, in painting either.  This
is gone.  I thought I saw the faint reflection of it for a moment
when she turned pale under the agitation of our sudden meeting on
the evening of her return, but it has never reappeared since. 
None of her letters had prepared me for a personal change in her. 
On the contrary, they had led me to expect that her marriage had
left her, in appearance at least, quite unaltered.  Perhaps I read
her letters wrongly in the past, and am now reading her face
wrongly in the present? No matter! Whether her beauty has gained
or whether it has lost in the last six months, the separation
either way has made her own dear self more precious to me than
ever, and that is one good result of her marriage, at any rate!

The second change, the change that I have observed in her
character, has not surprised me, because I was prepared for it in
this case by the tone of her letters.  Now that she is at home
again, I find her just as unwilling to enter into any details on
the subject of her married life as I had previously found her all
through the time of our separation, when we could only communicate
with each other by writing.  At the first approach I made to the
forbidden topic she put her hand on my lips with a look and
gesture which touchingly, almost painfully, recalled to my memory
the days of her girlhood and the happy bygone time when there were
no secrets between us.

"Whenever you and I are together, Marian," she said, "we shall
both be happier and easier with one another, if we accept my
married life for what it is, and say and think as little about it
as possible.  I would tell you everything, darling, about myself,"
she went on, nervously buckling and unbuckling the ribbon round my
waist, "if my confidences could only end there.  But they could
not--they would lead me into confidences about my husband too; and
now I am married, I think I had better avoid them, for his sake,
and for your sake, and for mine.  I don't say that they would
distress you, or distress me--I wouldn't have you think that for
the world.  But--I want to be so happy, now I have got you back
again, and I want you to be so happy too----" She broke off
abruptly, and looked round the room, my own sitting-room, in which
we were talking.  "Ah!" she cried, clapping her hands with a
bright smile of recognition, "another old friend found already!
Your bookcase, Marian--your dear-little-shabby-old-satin-wood
bookcase--how glad I am you brought it with you from Limmeridge!
And the horrid heavy man's umbrella, that you always would walk
out with when it rained! And first and foremost of all, your own
dear, dark, clever, gipsy-face, looking at me just as usual! It is
so like home again to be here.  How can we make it more like home
still? I will put my father's portrait in your room instead of in
mine--and I will keep all my little treasures from Limmeridge
here--and we will pass hours and hours every day with these four
friendly walls round us.  Oh, Marian!" she said, suddenly seating
herself on a footstool at my knees, and looking up earnestly in my
face, "promise you will never marry, and leave me.  It is selfish
to say so, but you are so much better off as a single woman--
unless--unless you are very fond of your husband--but you won't be
very fond of anybody but me, will you?" She stopped again, crossed
my hands on my lap, and laid her face on them.  "Have you been
writing many letters, and receiving many letters lately?" she
asked, in low, suddenly-altered tones.  I understood what the
question meant, but I thought it my duty not to encourage her by
meeting her half way.  "Have you heard from him?" she went on,
coaxing me to forgive the more direct appeal on which she now
ventured, by kissing my hands, upon which her face still rested. 
"Is he well and happy, and getting on in his profession? Has he
recovered himself--and forgotten me?"

She should not have asked those questions.  She should have
remembered her own resolution, on the morning when Sir Percival
held her to her marriage engagement, and when she resigned the
book of Hartright's drawings into my hands for ever.  But, ah me!
where is the faultless human creature who can persevere in a good
resolution, without sometimes failing and falling back? Where is
the woman who has ever really torn from her heart the image that
has been once fixed in it by a true love? Books tell us that such
unearthly creatures have existed--but what does our own experience
say in answer to books?

I made no attempt to remonstrate with her: perhaps, because I
sincerely appreciated the fearless candour which let me see, what
other women in her position might have had reasons for concealing
even from their dearest friends--perhaps, because I felt, in my
own heart and conscience, that in her place I should have asked
the same questions and had the same thoughts.  All I could
honestly do was to reply that I had not written to him or heard
from him lately, and then to turn the conversation to less
dangerous topics.

There has been much to sadden me in our interview--my first
confidential interview with her since her return.  The change
which her marriage has produced in our relations towards each
other, by placing a forbidden subject between us, for the first
time in our lives; the melancholy conviction of the dearth of all
warmth of feeling, of all close sympathy, between her husband and
herself, which her own unwilling words now force on my mind; the
distressing discovery that the influence of that ill-fated
attachment still remains (no matter how innocently, how
harmlessly) rooted as deeply as ever in her heart--all these are
disclosures to sadden any woman who loves her as dearly, and feels
for her as acutely, as I do.

There is only one consolation to set against them--a consolation
that ought to comfort me, and that does comfort me.  All the
graces and gentleness of her character--all the frank affection of
her nature--all the sweet, simple, womanly charms which used to
make her the darling and delight of every one who approached her,
have come back to me with herself.  Of my other impressions I am
sometimes a little inclined to doubt.  Of this last, best,
happiest of all impressions, I grow more and more certain every
hour in the day.

Let me turn, now, from her to her travelling companions.  Her
husband must engage my attention first.  What have I observed in
Sir Percival, since his return, to improve my opinion of him?

I can hardly say.  Small vexations and annoyances seem to have
beset him since he came back, and no man, under those
circumstances, is ever presented at his best.  He looks, as I
think, thinner than he was when he left England.  His wearisome
cough and his comfortless restlessness have certainly increased. 
His manner--at least his manner towards me--is much more abrupt
than it used to be.  He greeted me, on the evening of his return,
with little or nothing of the ceremony and civility of former
times--no polite speeches of welcome--no appearance of
extraordinary gratification at seeing me--nothing but a short
shake of the hand, and a sharp "How-d'ye-do, Miss Halcombe--glad
to see you again." He seemed to accept me as one of the necessary
fixtures of Blackwater Park, to be satisfied at finding me
established in my proper place, and then to pass me over
altogether.

Most men show something of their disposition in their own houses,
which they have concealed elsewhere, and Sir Percival has already
displayed a mania for order and regularity, which is quite a new
revelation of him, so far as my previous knowledge of his
character is concerned.  If I take a book from the library and
leave it on the table, he follows me and puts it back again.  If I
rise from a chair, and let it remain where I have been sitting, he
carefully restores it to its proper place against the wall.  He
picks up stray flower-blossoms from the carpet, and mutters to
himself as discontentedly as if they were hot cinders burning
holes in it, and he storms at the servants if there is a crease in
the tablecloth, or a knife missing from its place at the dinner-
table, as fiercely as if they had personally insulted him.

I have already referred to the small annoyances which appear to
have troubled him since his return.  Much of the alteration for
the worse which I have noticed in him may be due to these.  I try
to persuade myself that it is so, because I am anxious not to be
disheartened already about the future.  It is certainly trying to
any man's temper to be met by a vexation the moment he sets foot
in his own house again, after a long absence, and this annoying
circumstance did really happen to Sir Percival in my presence.

On the evening of their arrival the housekeeper followed me into
the hall to receive her master and mistress and their guests.  The
instant he saw her, Sir Percival asked if any one had called
lately.  The housekeeper mentioned to him, in reply, what she had
previously mentioned to me, the visit of the strange gentleman to
make inquiries about the time of her master's return.  He asked
immediately for the gentleman's name.  No name had been left.  The
gentleman's business? No business had been mentioned.  What was
the gentleman like? The housekeeper tried to describe him, but
failed to distinguish the nameless visitor by any personal
peculiarity which her master could recognise.  Sir Percival
frowned, stamped angrily on the floor, and walked on into the
house, taking no notice of anybody.  Why he should have been so
discomposed by a trifle I cannot say--but he was seriously
discomposed, beyond all doubt.

Upon the whole, it will be best, perhaps, if I abstain from
forming a decisive opinion of his manners, language, and conduct
in his own house, until time has enabled him to shake off the
anxieties, whatever they may be, which now evidently troubled his
mind in secret.  I will turn over to a new page, and my pen shall
let Laura's husband alone for the present.

The two guests--the Count and Countess Fosco--come next in my
catalogue.  I will dispose of the Countess first, so as to have
done with the woman as soon as possible.

Laura was certainly not chargeable with any exaggeration, in
writing me word that I should hardly recognise her aunt again when
we met.  Never before have I beheld such a change produced in a
woman by her marriage as has been produced in Madame Fosco.

As Eleanor Fairlie (aged seven-and-thirty), she was always talking
pretentious nonsense, and always worrying the unfortunate men with
every small exaction which a vain and foolish woman can impose on
long-suffering male humanity.  As Madame Fosco (aged three-and-
forty), she sits for hours together without saying a word, frozen
up in the strangest manner in herself.  The hideously ridiculous
love-locks which used to hang on either side of her face are now
replaced by stiff little rows of very short curls, of the sort one
sees in old-fashioned wigs.  A plain, matronly cap covers her
head, and makes her look, for the first time in her life since I
remember her, like a decent woman.  Nobody (putting her husband
out of the question, of course) now sees in her, what everybody
once saw--I mean the structure of the female skeleton, in the
upper regions of the collar-bones and the shoulder-blades.  Clad
in quiet black or grey gowns, made high round the throat--dresses
that she would have laughed at, or screamed at, as the whim of the
moment inclined her, in her maiden days--she sits speechless in
corners; her dry white hands (so dry that the pores of her skin
look chalky) incessantly engaged, either in monotonous embroidery
work or in rolling up endless cigarettes for the Count's own
particular smoking.  On the few occasions when her cold blue eyes
are off her work, they are generally turned on her husband, with
the look of mute submissive inquiry which we are all familiar with
in the eyes of a faithful dog.  The only approach to an inward
thaw which I have yet detected under her outer covering of icy
constraint, has betrayed itself, once or twice, in the form of a
suppressed tigerish jealousy of any woman in the house (the maids
included) to whom the Count speaks, or on whom he looks with
anything approaching to special interest or attention.  Except in
this one particular, she is always, morning, noon, and night,
indoors and out, fair weather or foul, as cold as a statue, and as
impenetrable as the stone out of which it is cut.  For the common
purposes of society the extraordinary change thus produced in her
is, beyond all doubt, a change for the better, seeing that it has
transformed her into a civil, silent, unobtrusive woman, who is
never in the way.  How far she is really reformed or deteriorated
in her secret self, is another question.  I have once or twice
seen sudden changes of expression on her pinched lips, and heard
sudden inflexions of tone in her calm voice, which have led me to
suspect that her present state of suppression may have sealed up
something dangerous in her nature, which used to evaporate
harmlessly in the freedom of her former life.  It is quite
possible that I may be altogether wrong in this idea.  My own
impression, however, is, that I am right.  Time will show.

And the magician who has wrought this wonderful transformation--
the foreign husband who has tamed this once wayward English woman
till her own relations hardly know her again--the Count himself?
What of the Count?

This in two words: He looks like a man who could tame anything. 
If he had married a tigress, instead of a woman, he would have
tamed the tigress.  If he had married me, I should have made his
cigarettes, as his wife does--I should have held my tongue when he
looked at me, as she holds hers.

I am almost afraid to confess it, even to these secret pages.  The
man has interested me, has attracted me, has forced me to like
him.  In two short days he has made his way straight into my
favourable estimation, and how he has worked the miracle is more
than I can tell.

It absolutely startles me, now he is in my mind, to find how
plainly I see him!--how much more plainly than I see Sir Percival,
or Mr. Fairlie, or Walter Hartright, or any other absent person of
whom I think, with the one exception of Laura herself! I can hear
his voice, as if he was speaking at this moment.  I know what his
conversation was yesterday, as well as if I was hearing it now. 
How am I to describe him? There are peculiarities in his personal
appearance, his habits, and his amusements, which I should blame
in the boldest terms, or ridicule in the most merciless manner, if
I had seen them in another man.  What is it that makes me unable
to blame them, or to ridicule them in HIM?

For example, he is immensely fat.  Before this time I have always
especially disliked corpulent humanity.  I have always maintained
that the popular notion of connecting excessive grossness of size
and excessive good-humour as inseparable allies was equivalent to
declaring, either that no people but amiable people ever get fat,
or that the accidental addition of so many pounds of flesh has a
directly favourable influence over the disposition of the person
on whose body they accumulate.  I have invariably combated both
these absurd assertions by quoting examples of fat people who were
as mean, vicious, and cruel as the leanest and the worst of their
neighbours.  I have asked whether Henry the Eighth was an amiable
character?  Whether Pope Alexander the Sixth was a good man?
Whether Mr. Murderer and Mrs. Murderess Manning were not both
unusually stout people? Whether hired nurses, proverbially as
cruel a set of women as are to be found in all England, were not,
for the most part, also as fat a set of women as are to be found
in all England?--and so on, through dozens of other examples,
modern and ancient, native and foreign, high and low.  Holding
these strong opinions on the subject with might and main as I do
at this moment, here, nevertheless, is Count Fosco, as fat as
Henry the Eighth himself, established in my favour, at one day's
notice, without let or hindrance from his own odious corpulence. 
Marvellous indeed!

Is it his face that has recommended him?

It may be his face.  He is a most remarkable likeness, on a large
scale, of the great Napoleon.  His features have Napoleon's
magnificent regularity--his expression recalls the grandly calm,
immovable power of the Great Soldier's face.  This striking
resemblance certainly impressed me, to begin with; but there is
something in him besides the resemblance, which has impressed me
more.  I think the influence I am now trying to find is in his
eyes.  They are the most unfathomable grey eyes I ever saw, and
they have at times a cold, clear, beautiful, irresistible glitter
in them which forces me to look at him, and yet causes me
sensations, when I do look, which I would rather not feel.  Other
parts of his face and head have their strange peculiarities.  His
complexion, for instance, has a singular sallow-fairness, so much
at variance with the dark-brown colour of his hair, that I suspect
the hair of being a wig, and his face, closely shaven all over, is
smoother and freer from all marks and wrinkles than mine, though
(according to Sir Percival's account of him) he is close on sixty
years of age.  But these are not the prominent personal
characteristics which distinguish him, to my mind, from all the
other men I have ever seen.  The marked peculiarity which singles
him out from the rank and file of humanity lies entirely, so far
as I can tell at present, in the extraordinary expression and
extraordinary power of his eyes.

His manner and his command of our language may also have assisted
him, in some degree, to establish himself in my good opinion.  He
has that quiet deference, that look of pleased, attentive interest
in listening to a woman, and that secret gentleness in his voice
in speaking to a woman, which, say what we may, we can none of us
resist.  Here, too, his unusual command of the English language
necessarily helps him.  I had often heard of the extraordinary
aptitude which many Italians show in mastering our strong, hard,
Northern speech; but, until I saw Count Fosco, I had never
supposed it possible that any foreigner could have spoken English
as he speaks it.  There are times when it is almost impossible to
detect, by his accent that he is not a countryman of our own, and
as for fluency, there are very few born Englishmen who can talk
with as few stoppages and repetitions as the Count.  He may
construct his sentences more or less in the foreign way, but I
have never yet heard him use a wrong expression, or hesitate for a
moment in his choice of a word.

All the smallest characteristics of this strange man have
something strikingly original and perplexingly contradictory in
them.  Fat as he is and old as he is, his movements are
astonishingly light and easy.  He is as noiseless in a room as any
of us women, and more than that, with all his look of unmistakable
mental firmness and power, he is as nervously sensitive as the
weakest of us.  He starts at chance noises as inveterately as
Laura herself.  He winced and shuddered yesterday, when Sir
Percival beat one of the spaniels, so that I felt ashamed of my
own want of tenderness and sensibility by comparison with the
Count.

The relation of this last incident reminds me of one of his most
curious peculiarities, which I have not yet mentioned--his
extraordinary fondness for pet animals.

Some of these he has left on the Continent, but he has brought
with him to this house a cockatoo, two canary-birds, and a whole
family of white mice.  He attends to all the necessities of these
strange favourites himself, and he has taught the creatures to be
surprisingly fond of him and familiar with him.  The cockatoo, a
most vicious and treacherous bird towards every one else,
absolutely seems to love him.  When he lets it out of its cage, it
hops on to his knee, and claws its way up his great big body, and
rubs its top-knot against his sallow double chin in the most
caressing manner imaginable.  He has only to set the doors of the
canaries' cages open, and to call them, and the pretty little
cleverly trained creatures perch fearlessly on his hand, mount his
fat outstretched fingers one by one, when he tells them to "go
upstairs," and sing together as if they would burst their throats
with delight when they get to the top finger.  His white mice live
in a little pagoda of gaily-painted wirework, designed and made by
himself.  They are almost as tame as the canaries, and they are
perpetually let out like the canaries.  They crawl all over him,
popping in and out of his waistcoat, and sitting in couples, white
as snow, on his capacious shoulders.  He seems to be even fonder
of his mice than of his other pets, smiles at them, and kisses
them, and calls them by all sorts of endearing names.  If it be
possible to suppose an Englishman with any taste for such childish
interests and amusements as these, that Englishman would certainly
feel rather ashamed of them, and would be anxious to apologise for
them, in the company of grown-up people.  But the Count,
apparently, sees nothing ridiculous in the amazing contrast
between his colossal self and his frail little pets.  He would
blandly kiss his white mice and twitter to his canary-birds amid
an assembly of English fox-hunters, and would only pity them as
barbarians when they were all laughing their loudest at him.

It seems hardly credible while I am writing it down, but it is
certainly true, that this same man, who has all the fondness of an
old maid for his cockatoo, and all the small dexterities of an
organ-boy in managing his white mice, can talk, when anything
happens to rouse him, with a daring independence of thought, a
knowledge of books in every language, and an experience of society
in half the capitals of Europe, which would make him the prominent
personage of any assembly in the civilised world.  This trainer of
canary-birds, this architect of a pagoda for white mice, is (as
Sir Percival himself has told me) one of the first experimental
chemists living, and has discovered, among other wonderful
inventions, a means of petrifying the body after death, so as to
preserve it, as hard as marble, to the end of time.  This fat,
indolent, elderly man, whose nerves are so finely strung that he
starts at chance noises, and winces when he sees a house-spaniel
get a whipping, went into the stable-yard on the morning after his
arrival, and put his hand on the head of a chained bloodhound--a
beast so savage that the very groom who feeds him keeps out of his
reach.  His wife and I were present, and I shall not forget the
scene that followed, short as it was.

"Mind that dog, sir," said the groom; "he flies at everybody!" "He
does that, my friend," replied the Count quietly, "because
everybody is afraid of him.  Let us see if he flies at me." And he
laid his plump, yellow-white fingers, on which the canary-birds
had been perching ten minutes before, upon the formidable brute's
head, and looked him straight in the eyes.  "You big dogs are all
cowards," he said, addressing the animal contemptuously, with his
face and the dog's within an inch of each other.  "You would kill
a poor cat, you infernal coward.  You would fly at a starving
beggar, you infernal coward.  Anything that you can surprise
unawares--anything that is afraid of your big body, and your
wicked white teeth, and your slobbering, bloodthirsty mouth, is
the thing you like to fly at.  You could throttle me at this
moment, you mean, miserable bully, and you daren't so much as look
me in the face, because I'm not afraid of you.  Will you think
better of it, and try your teeth in my fat neck? Bah! not you!" He
turned away, laughing at the astonishment of the men in the yard,
and the dog crept back meekly to his kennel.  "Ah! my nice
waistcoat!" he said pathetically.  "I am sorry I came here.  Some
of that brute's slobber has got on my pretty clean waistcoat."
Those words express another of his incomprehensible oddities.  He
is as fond of fine clothes as the veriest fool in existence, and
has appeared in four magnificent waistcoats already--all of light
garish colours, and all immensely large even for him--in the two
days of his residence at Blackwater Park.

His tact and cleverness in small things are quite as noticeable as
the singular inconsistencies in his character, and the childish
triviality of his ordinary tastes and pursuits.

I can see already that he means to live on excellent terms with
all of us during the period of his sojourn in this place.  He has
evidently discovered that Laura secretly dislikes him (she
confessed as much to me when I pressed her on the subject)--but he
has also found out that she is extravagantly fond of flowers. 
Whenever she wants a nosegay he has got one to give her, gathered
and arranged by himself, and greatly to my amusement, he is always
cunningly provided with a duplicate, composed of exactly the same
flowers, grouped in exactly the same way, to appease his icily
jealous wife before she can so much as think herself aggrieved. 
His management of the Countess (in public) is a sight to see.  He
bows to her, he habitually addresses her as "my angel," he carries
his canaries to pay her little visits on his fingers and to sing
to her, he kisses her hand when she gives him his cigarettes; he
presents her with sugar-plums in return, which he puts into her
mouth playfully, from a box in his pocket.  The rod of iron with
which he rules her never appears in company--it is a private rod,
and is always kept upstairs.

His method of recommending himself to me is entirely different. 
He flatters my vanity by talking to me as seriously and sensibly
as if I was a man.  Yes! I can find him out when I am away from
him--I know he flatters my vanity, when I think of him up here in
my own room--and yet, when I go downstairs, and get into his
company again, he will blind me again, and I shall be flattered
again, just as if I had never found him out at all! He can manage
me as he manages his wife and Laura, as he managed the bloodhound
in the stable-yard, as he manages Sir Percival himself, every hour
in the day.  "My good Percival! how I like your rough English
humour!"--"My good Percival! how I enjoy your solid English
sense!" He puts the rudest remarks Sir Percival can make on his
effeminate tastes and amusements quietly away from him in that
manner--always calling the baronet by his Christian name, smiling
at him with the calmest superiority, patting him on the shoulder,
and bearing with him benignantly, as a good-humoured father bears
with a wayward son.

The interest which I really cannot help feeling in this strangely
original man has led me to question Sir Percival about his past
life.

Sir Percival either knows little, or will tell me little, about
it.  He and the Count first met many years ago, at Rome, under the
dangerous circumstances to which I have alluded elsewhere.  Since
that time they have been perpetually together in London, in Paris,
and in Vienna--but never in Italy again; the Count having, oddly
enough, not crossed the frontiers of his native country for years
past.  Perhaps he has been made the victim of some political
persecution? At all events, he seems to be patriotically anxious
not to lose sight of any of his own countrymen who may happen to
be in England.  On the evening of his arrival he asked how far we
were from the nearest town, and whether we knew of any Italian
gentlemen who might happen to be settled there.  He is certainly
in correspondence with people on the Continent, for his letters
have all sorts of odd stamps on them, and I saw one for him this
morning, waiting in his place at the breakfast-table, with a huge,
official-looking seal on it.  Perhaps he is in correspondence with
his government? And yet, that is hardly to be reconciled either
with my other idea that he may be a political exile.

How much I seem to have written about Count Fosco! And what does
it all amount to?--as poor, dear Mr. Gilmore would ask, in his
impenetrable business-like way I can only repeat that I do
assuredly feel, even on this short acquaintance, a strange, half-
willing, half-unwilling liking for the Count.  He seems to have
established over me the same sort of ascendency which he has
evidently gained over Sir Percival.  Free, and even rude, as he
may occasionally be in his manner towards his fat friend, Sir
Percival is nevertheless afraid, as I can plainly see, of giving
any serious offence to the Count.  I wonder whether I am afraid
too? I certainly never saw a man, in all my experience, whom I
should be so sorry to have for an enemy.  Is this because I like
him, or because I am afraid of him? Chi sa?--as Count Fosco might
say in his own language.  Who knows?


June 16th.--Something to chronicle to-day besides my own ideas and
impressions.  A visitor has arrived--quite unknown to Laura and to
me, and apparently quite unexpected by Sir Percival.

We were all at lunch, in the room with the new French windows that
open into the verandah, and the Count (who devours pastry as I
have never yet seen it devoured by any human beings but girls at
boarding-schools) had just amused us by asking gravely for his
fourth tart--when the servant entered to announce the visitor.

"Mr. Merriman has just come, Sir Percival, and wishes to see you
immediately."

Sir Percival started, and looked at the man with an expression of
angry alarm.

"Mr. Merriman!" he repeated, as if he thought his own ears must
have deceived him.

"Yes, Sir Percival--Mr. Merriman, from London."

"Where is he?"

"In the library, Sir Percival."

He left the table the instant the last answer was given, and
hurried out of the room without saying a word to any of us.

"Who is Mr. Merriman?" asked Laura, appealing to me.

"I have not the least idea," was all I could say in reply.

The Count had finished his fourth tart, and had gone to a side-
table to look after his vicious cockatoo.  He turned round to us
with the bird perched on his shoulder.

"Mr. Merriman is Sir Percival's solicitor," he said quietly.

Sir Percival's solicitor.  It was a perfectly straightforward
answer to Laura's question, and yet, under the circumstances, it
was not satisfactory.  If Mr. Merriman had been specially sent for
by his client, there would have been nothing very wonderful in his
leaving town to obey the summons.  But when a lawyer travels from
London to Hampshire without being sent for, and when his arrival
at a gentleman's house seriously startles the gentleman himself,
it may be safely taken for granted that the legal visitor is the
bearer of some very important and very unexpected news--news which
may be either very good or very bad, but which cannot, in either
case, be of the common everyday kind.

Laura and I sat silent at the table for a quarter of an hour or
more, wondering uneasily what had happened, and waiting for the
chance of Sir Percival's speedy return.  There were no signs of
his return, and we rose to leave the room.

The Count, attentive as usual, advanced from the corner in which
he had been feeding his cockatoo, with the bird still perched on
his shoulder, and opened the door for us.  Laura and Madame Fosco
went out first.  Just as I was on the point of following them he
made a sign with his hand, and spoke to me, before I passed him,
in the oddest manner.

"Yes," he said, quietly answering the unexpressed idea at that
moment in my mind, as if I had plainly confided it to him in so
many words--" yes, Miss Halcombe, something HAS happened."

I was on the point of answering, "I never said so," but the
vicious cockatoo ruffled his clipped wings and gave a screech that
set all my nerves on edge in an instant, and made me only too glad
to get out of the room.

I joined Laura at the foot of the stairs.  The thought in her mind
was the same as the thought in mine, which Count Fosco had
surprised, and when she spoke her words were almost the echo of
his.  She, too, said to me secretly that she was afraid something
had happened.



III


June 16th.--I have a few lines more to add to this day's entry
before I go to bed to-night.

About two hours after Sir Percival rose from the luncheon-table to
receive his solicitor, Mr. Merriman, in the library, I left my
room alone to take a walk in the plantations.  Just as I was at
the end of the landing the library door opened and the two
gentlemen came out.  Thinking it best not to disturb them by
appearing on the stairs, I resolved to defer going down till they
had crossed the hall.  Although they spoke to each other in
guarded tones, their words were pronounced with sufficient
distinctness of utterance to reach my ears.

"Make your mind easy, Sir Percival," I heard the lawyer say; "it
all rests with Lady Glyde."

I had turned to go back to my own room for a minute or two, but
the sound of Laura's name on the lips of a stranger stopped me
instantly.  I daresay it was very wrong and very discreditable to
listen, but where is the woman, in the whole range of our sex, who
can regulate her actions by the abstract principles of honour,
when those principles point one way, and when her affections, and
the interests which grow out of them, point the other?

I listened--and under similar circumstances I would listen again--
yes! with my ear at the keyhole, if I could not possibly manage it
in any other way.

"You quite understand, Sir Percival," the lawyer went on.  "Lady
Glyde is to sign her name in the presence of a witness--or of two
witnesses, if you wish to be particularly careful--and is then to
put her finger on the seal and say, 'I deliver this as my act and
deed.' If that is done in a week's time the arrangement will be
perfectly successful, and the anxiety will be all over.  If not----"

"What do you mean by 'if not'?" asked Sir Percival angrily.  "If
the thing must be done it SHALL be done.  I promise you that,
Merriman."

"Just so, Sir Percival--just so; but there are two alternatives in
all transactions, and we lawyers like to look both of them in the
face boldly.  If through any extraordinary circumstance the
arrangement should not be made, I think I may be able to get the
parties to accept bills at three months.  But how the money is to
be raised when the bills fall due----"

"Damn the bills! The money is only to be got in one way, and in
that way, I tell you again, it SHALL be got.  Take a glass of
wine, Merriman, before you go."

"Much obliged, Sir Percival, I have not a moment to lose if I am
to catch the up-train.  You will let me know as soon as the
arrangement is complete? and you will not forget the caution I
recommended----"

"Of course I won't.  There's the dog-cart at the door for you.  My
groom will get you to the station in no time.  Benjamin, drive
like mad! Jump in.  If Mr. Merriman misses the train you lose your
place.  Hold fast, Merriman, and if you are upset trust to the
devil to save his own." With that parting benediction the baronet
turned about and walked back to the library.

I had not heard much, but the little that had reached my ears was
enough to make me feel uneasy.  The "something" that "had
happened" was but too plainly a serious money embarrassment, and
Sir Percival's relief from it depended upon Laura.  The prospect
of seeing her involved in her husband's secret difficulties filled
me with dismay, exaggerated, no doubt, by my ignorance of business
and my settled distrust of Sir Percival.  Instead of going out, as
I proposed, I went back immediately to Laura's room to tell her
what I had heard.

She received my bad news so composedly as to surprise me.  She
evidently knows more of her husband's character and her husband's
embarrassments than I have suspected up to this time.

"I feared as much," she said, "when I heard of that strange
gentleman who called, and declined to leave his name."

"Who do you think the gentleman was, then?" I asked.

"Some person who has heavy claims on Sir Percival," she answered,
"and who has been the cause of Mr. Merriman's visit here to-day."

"Do you know anything about those claims?"

"No, I know no particulars."

"You will sign nothing, Laura, without first looking at it?"

"Certainly not, Marian.  Whatever I can harmlessly and honestly do
to help him I will do--for the sake of making your life and mine,
love, as easy and as happy as possible.  But I will do nothing
ignorantly, which we might, one day, have reason to feel ashamed
of.  Let us say no more about it now.  You have got your hat on--
suppose we go and dream away the afternoon in the grounds?"

On leaving the house we directed our steps to the nearest shade.

As we passed an open space among the trees in front of the house,
there was Count Fosco, slowly walking backwards and forwards on
the grass, sunning himself in the full blaze of the hot June
afternoon.  He had a broad straw hat on, with a violet-coloured
ribbon round it.  A blue blouse, with profuse white fancy-work
over the bosom, covered his prodigious body, and was girt about
the place where his waist might once have been with a broad
scarlet leather belt.  Nankeen trousers, displaying more white
fancy-work over the ankles, and purple morocco slippers, adorned
his lower extremities.  He was singing Figaro's famous song in the
Barber of Seville, with that crisply fluent vocalisation which is
never heard from any other than an Italian throat, accompanying
himself on the concertina, which he played with ecstatic
throwings-up of his arms, and graceful twistings and turnings of
his head, like a fat St. Cecilia masquerading in male attire. 
"Figaro qua! Figaro la! Figaro su! Figaro giu!" sang the Count,
jauntily tossing up the concertina at arm's length, and bowing to
us, on one side of the instrument, with the airy grace and
elegance of Figaro himself at twenty years of age.

"Take my word for it, Laura, that man knows something of Sir
Percival's embarrassments," I said, as we returned the Count's
salutation from a safe distance.

"What makes you think that?" she asked.

"How should he have known, otherwise, that Mr. Merriman was Sir
Percival's solicitor?" I rejoined.  "Besides, when I followed you
out of the luncheon-room, he told me, without a single word of
inquiry on my part, that something had happened.  Depend upon it,
he knows more than we do."

"Don't ask him any questions if he does.  Don't take him into our
confidence!"

"You seem to dislike him, Laura, in a very determined manner. 
What has he said or done to justify you?"

"Nothing, Marian.  On the contrary, he was all kindness and
attention on our journey home, and he several times checked Sir
Percival's outbreaks of temper, in the most considerate manner
towards me.  Perhaps I dislike him because he has so much more
power over my husband than I have.  Perhaps it hurts my pride to
be under any obligations to his interference.  All I know is, that
I DO dislike him."

The rest of the day and evening passed quietly enough.  The Count
and I played at chess.  For the first two games he politely
allowed me to conquer him, and then, when he saw that I had found
him out, begged my pardon, and at the third game checkmated me in
ten minutes.  Sir Percival never once referred, all through the
evening, to the lawyer's visit.  But either that event, or
something else, had produced a singular alteration for the better
in him.  He was as polite and agreeable to all of us, as he used
to be in the days of his probation at Limmeridge, and he was so
amazingly attentive and kind to his wife, that even icy Madame
Fosco was roused into looking at him with a grave surprise.  What
does this mean? I think I can guess--I am afraid Laura can guess--
and I am sure Count Fosco knows.  I caught Sir Percival looking at
him for approval more than once in the course of the evening.


June 17th.--A day of events.  I most fervently hope I may not have
to add, a day of disasters as well.

Sir Percival was as silent at breakfast as he had been the evening
before, on the subject of the mysterious "arrangement" (as the
lawyer called it) which is hanging over our heads.  An hour
afterwards, however, he suddenly entered the morning-room, where
his wife and I were waiting, with our hats on, for Madame Fosco to
join us, and inquired for the Count.

"We expect to see him here directly," I said.

"The fact is," Sir Percival went on, walking nervously about the
room, "I want Fosco and his wife in the library, for a mere
business formality, and I want you there, Laura, for a minute
too." He stopped, and appeared to notice, for the first time, that
we were in our walking costume.  "Have you just come in?" he
asked, "or were you just going out?"

"We were all thinking of going to the lake this morning," said
Laura.  "But if you have any other arrangement to propose----"

"No, no," he answered hastily.  "My arrangement can wait.  After
lunch will do as well for it as after breakfast. All going to the
lake, eh? A good idea.  Let's have an idle morning--I'll be one of
the party."

There was no mistaking his manner, even if it had been possible to
mistake the uncharacteristic readiness which his words expressed,
to submit his own plans and projects to the convenience of others. 
He was evidently relieved at finding any excuse for delaying the
business formality in the library, to which his own words had
referred.  My heart sank within me as I drew the inevitable
inference.

The Count and his wife joined us at that moment.  The lady had her
husband's embroidered tobacco-pouch, and her store of paper in her
hand, for the manufacture of the eternal cigarettes.  The
gentleman, dressed, as usual, in his blouse and straw hat, carried
the gay little pagoda-cage, with his darling white mice in it, and
smiled on them, and on us, with a bland amiability which it was
impossible to resist.

"With your kind permission," said the Count, "I will take my small
family here--my poor-little-harmless-pretty-Mouseys, out for an
airing along with us.  There are dogs about the house, and shall I
leave my forlorn white children at the mercies of the dogs? Ah,
never!"

He chirruped paternally at his small white children through the
bars of the pagoda, and we all left the house for the lake.

In the plantation Sir Percival strayed away from us.  It seems to
be part of his restless disposition always to separate himself
from his companions on these occasions, and always to occupy
himself when he is alone in cutting new walking-sticks for his own
use.  The mere act of cutting and lopping at hazard appears to
please him.  He has filled the house with walking-sticks of his
own making, not one of which he ever takes up for a second time. 
When they have been once used his interest in them is all
exhausted, and he thinks of nothing but going on and making more.

At the old boat-house he joined us again.  I will put down the
conversation that ensued when we were all settled in our places
exactly as it passed.  It is an important conversation, so far as
I am concerned, for it has seriously disposed me to distrust the
influence which Count Fosco has exercised over my thoughts and
feelings, and to resist it for the future as resolutely as I can.

The boat-house was large enough to hold us all, but Sir Percival
remained outside trimming the last new stick with his pocket-axe. 
We three women found plenty of room on the large seat.  Laura took
her work, and Madame Fosco began her cigarettes.  I, as usual, had
nothing to do.  My hands always were, and always will be, as
awkward as a man's.  The Count good-humouredly took a stool many
sizes too small for him, and balanced himself on it with his back
against the side of the shed, which creaked and groaned under his
weight.  He put the pagoda-cage on his lap, and let out the mice
to crawl over him as usual.  They are pretty, innocent-looking
little creatures, but the sight of them creeping about a man's
body is for some reason not pleasant to me.  It excites a strange
responsive creeping in my own nerves, and suggests hideous ideas
of men dying in prison with the crawling creatures of the dungeon
preying on them undisturbed.

The morning was windy and cloudy, and the rapid alternations of
shadow and sunlight over the waste of the lake made the view look
doubly wild, weird, and gloomy.

"Some people call that picturesque," said Sir Percival, pointing
over the wide prospect with his half-finished walking-stick.  "I
call it a blot on a gentleman's property.  In my great-
grandfather's time the lake flowed to this place.  Look at it now!
It is not four feet deep anywhere, and it is all puddles and
pools.  I wish I could afford to drain it, and plant it all over. 
My bailiff (a superstitious idiot) says he is quite sure the lake
has a curse on it, like the Dead Sea.  What do you think, Fosco?
It looks just the place for a murder, doesn't it?"

"My good Percival," remonstrated the Count.  "What is your solid
English sense thinking of? The water is too shallow to hide the
body, and there is sand everywhere to print off the murderer's
footsteps.  It is, upon the whole, the very worst place for a
murder that I ever set my eyes on."

"Humbug!" said Sir Percival, cutting away fiercely at his stick. 
"You know what I mean.  The dreary scenery, the lonely situation. 
If you choose to understand me, you can--if you don't choose, I am
not going to trouble myself to explain my meaning."

"And why not," asked the Count, "when your meaning can be
explained by anybody in two words? If a fool was going to commit a
murder, your lake is the first place he would choose for it.  If a
wise man was going to commit a murder, your lake is the last place
he would choose for it.  Is that your meaning? If it is, there is
your explanation for you ready made.  Take it, Percival, with your
good Fosco's blessing."

Laura looked at the Count with her dislike for him appearing a
little too plainly in her face.  He was so busy with his mice that
he did not notice her.

"I am sorry to hear the lake-view connected with anything so
horrible as the idea of murder," she said.  "And if Count Fosco
must divide murderers into classes, I think he has been very
unfortunate in his choice of expressions.  To describe them as
fools only seems like treating them with an indulgence to which
they have no claim.  And to describe them as wise men sounds to me
like a downright contradiction in terms.  I have always heard that
truly wise men are truly good men, and have a horror of crime."

"My dear lady," said the Count, "those are admirable sentiments,
and I have seen them stated at the tops of copy-books." He lifted
one of the white mice in the palm of his hand, and spoke to it in
his whimsical way.  "My pretty little smooth white rascal," he
said, "here is a moral lesson for you.  A truly wise mouse is a
truly good mouse.  Mention that, if you please, to your
companions, and never gnaw at the bars of your cage again as long
as you live."

"It is easy to turn everything into ridicule," said Laura
resolutely; "but you will not find it quite so easy, Count Fosco,
to give me an instance of a wise man who has been a great
criminal."

The Count shrugged his huge shoulders, and smiled on Laura in the
friendliest manner.

"Most true!" he said.  "The fool's crime is the crime that is
found out, and the wise man's crime is the crime that is NOT found
out.  If I could give you an instance, it would not be the
instance of a wise man.  Dear Lady Glyde, your sound English
common sense has been too much for me.  It is checkmate for me
this time, Miss Halcombe--ha?"

"Stand to your guns, Laura," sneered Sir Percival, who had been
listening in his place at the door.  "Tell him next, that crimes
cause their own detection.  There's another bit of copy-book
morality for you, Fosco.  Crimes cause their own detection.  What
infernal humbug!"

"I believe it to be true," said Laura quietly.

Sir Percival burst out laughing, so violently, so outrageously,
that he quite startled us all--the Count more than any of us.

"I believe it too," I said, coming to Laura's rescue.

Sir Percival, who had been unaccountably amused at his wife's
remark, was just as unaccountably irritated by mine.  He struck
the new stick savagely on the sand, and walked away from us.

"Poor dear Percival!" cried Count Fosco, looking after him gaily,
"he is the victim of English spleen.  But, my dear Miss Halcombe,
my dear Lady Glyde, do you really believe that crimes cause their
own detection? And you, my angel," he continued, turning to his
wife, who had not uttered a word yet, "do you think so too?"

"I wait to be instructed," replied the Countess, in tones of
freezing reproof, intended for Laura and me, "before I venture on
giving my opinion in the presence of well-informed men."

"Do you, indeed?" I said.  "I remember the time, Countess, when
you advocated the Rights of Women, and freedom of female opinion
was one of them."

"What is your view of the subject, Count?" asked Madame Fosco,
calmly proceeding with her cigarettes, and not taking the least
notice of me.

The Count stroked one of his white mice reflectively with his
chubby little finger before he answered.

"It is truly wonderful," he said, "how easily Society can console
itself for the worst of its shortcomings with a little bit of
clap-trap.  The machinery it has set up for the detection of crime
is miserably ineffective--and yet only invent a moral epigram,
saying that it works well, and you blind everybody to its blunders
from that moment.  Crimes cause their own detection, do they? And
murder will out (another moral epigram), will it? Ask Coroners who
sit at inquests in large towns if that is true, Lady Glyde.  Ask
secretaries of life-assurance companies if that is true, Miss
Halcombe.  Read your own public journals.  In the few cases that
get into the newspapers, are there not instances of slain bodies
found, and no murderers ever discovered? Multiply the cases that
are reported by the cases that are NOT reported, and the bodies
that are found by the bodies that are NOT found, and what
conclusion do you come to? This.  That there are foolish criminals
who are discovered, and wise criminals who escape.  The hiding of
a crime, or the detection of a crime, what is it? A trial of skill
between the police on one side, and the individual on the other. 
When the criminal is a brutal, ignorant fool, the police in nine
cases out of ten win.  When the criminal is a resolute, educated,
highly-intelligent man, the police in nine cases out of ten lose. 
If the police win, you generally hear all about it.  If the police
lose, you generally hear nothing.  And on this tottering
foundation you build up your comfortable moral maxim that Crime
causes its own detection! Yes--all the crime you know of.  And
what of the rest?"

"Devilish true, and very well put," cried a voice at the entrance
of the boat-house.  Sir Percival had recovered his equanimity, and
had come back while we were listening to the Count.

"Some of it may be true," I said, "and all of it may be very well
put.  But I don't see why Count Fosco should celebrate the victory
of the criminal over Society with so much exultation, or why you,
Sir Percival, should applaud him so loudly for doing it."

"Do you hear that, Fosco?" asked Sir Percival.  "Take my advice,
and make your peace with your audience.  Tell them virtue's a fine
thing--they like that, I can promise you."

The Count laughed inwardly and silently, and two of the white mice
in his waistcoat, alarmed by the internal convulsion going on
beneath them, darted out in a violent hurry, and scrambled into
their cage again.

"The ladies, my good Percival, shall tell me about virtue," he
said.  "They are better authorities than I am, for they know what
virtue is, and I don't."

"You hear him?" said Sir Percival.  "Isn't it awful?"

"It is true," said the Count quietly.  "I am a citizen of the
world, and I have met, in my time, with so many different sorts of
virtue, that I am puzzled, in my old age, to say which is the
right sort and which is the wrong.  Here, in England, there is one
virtue.  And there, in China, there is another virtue.  And John
Englishman says my virtue is the genuine virtue.  And John
Chinaman says my virtue is the genuine virtue.  And I say Yes to
one, or No to the other, and am just as much bewildered about it
in the case of John with the top-boots as I am in the case of John
with the pigtail.  Ah, nice little Mousey! come, kiss me.  What is
your own private notion of a virtuous man, my pret-pret-pretty? A
man who keeps you warm, and gives you plenty to eat.  And a good
notion, too, for it is intelligible, at the least."

"Stay a minute, Count," I interposed.  "Accepting your
illustration, surely we have one unquestionable virtue in England
which is wanting in China.  The Chinese authorities kill thousands
of innocent people on the most frivolous pretexts.  We in England
are free from all guilt of that kind--we commit no such dreadful
crime--we abhor reckless bloodshed with all our hearts."

"Quite right, Marian," said Laura.  "Well thought of, and well
expressed "

"Pray allow the Count to proceed," said Madame Fosco, with stern
civility.  "You will find, young ladies, that HE never speaks
without having excellent reasons for all that he says."

"Thank you, my angel," replied the Count.  "Have a bon-bon?" He
took out of his pocket a pretty little inlaid box, and placed it
open on the table.  "Chocolat a la Vanille," cried the
impenetrable man, cheerfully rattling the sweetmeats in the box,
and bowing all round.  "Offered by Fosco as an act of homage to
the charming society."

"Be good enough to go on, Count," said his wife, with a spiteful
reference to myself.  "Oblige me by answering Miss Halcombe."

"Miss Halcombe is unanswerable," replied the polite Italian; "that
is to say, so far as she goes.  Yes! I agree with her.  John Bull
does abhor the crimes of John Chinaman.  He is the quickest old
gentleman at finding out faults that are his neighbours', and the
slowest old gentleman at finding out the faults that are his own,
who exists on the face of creation.  Is he so very much better in
this way than the people whom he condemns in their way? English
Society, Miss Halcombe, is as often the accomplice as it is the
enemy of crime.  Yes! yes! Crime is in this country what crime is
in other countries--a good friend to a man and to those about him
as often as it is an enemy.  A great rascal provides for his wife
and family.  The worse he is the more he makes them the objects
for your sympathy.  He often provides also for himself.  A
profligate spendthrift who is always borrowing money will get more
from his friends than the rigidly honest man who only borrows of
them once, under pressure of the direst want.  In the one case the
friends will not be at all surprised, and they will give.  In the
other case they will be very much surprised, and they will
hesitate.  Is the prison that Mr. Scoundrel lives in at the end of
his career a more uncomfortable place than the workhouse that Mr.
Honesty lives in at the end of his career? When John-Howard-
Philanthropist wants to relieve misery he goes to find it in
prisons, where crime is wretched--not in huts and hovels, where
virtue is wretched too.  Who is the English poet who has won the
most universal sympathy--who makes the easiest of all subjects for
pathetic writing and pathetic painting? That nice young person who
began life with a forgery, and ended it by a suicide--your dear,
romantic, interesting Chatterton.  Which gets on best, do you
think, of two poor starving dressmakers--the woman who resists
temptation and is honest, or the woman who falls under temptation
and steals? You all know that the stealing is the making of that
second woman's fortune--it advertises her from length to breadth
of good-humoured, charitable England--and she is relieved, as the
breaker of a commandment, when she would have been left to starve,
as the keeper of it.  Come here, my jolly little Mouse! Hey!
presto! pass! I transform you, for the time being, into a
respectable lady.  Stop there, in the palm of my great big hand,
my dear, and listen.  You marry the poor man whom you love, Mouse,
and one half your friends pity, and the other half blame you.  And
now, on the contrary, you sell yourself for gold to a man you
don't care for, and all your friends rejoice over you, and a
minister of public worship sanctions the base horror of the vilest
of all human bargains, and smiles and smirks afterwards at your
table, if you are polite enough to ask him to breakfast. Hey!
presto! pass! Be a mouse again, and squeak.  If you continue to be
a lady much longer, I shall have you telling me that Society
abhors crime--and then, Mouse, I shall doubt if your own eyes and
ears are really of any use to you.  Ah! I am a bad man, Lady
Glyde, am I not? I say what other people only think, and when all
the rest of the world is in a conspiracy to accept the mask for
the true face, mine is the rash hand that tears off the plump
pasteboard, and shows the bare bones beneath.  I will get up on my
big elephant's legs, before I do myself any more harm in your
amiable estimations--I will get up and take a little airy walk of
my own.  Dear ladies, as your excellent Sheridan said, I go--and
leave my character behind me."

He got up, put the cage on the table, and paused for a moment to
count the mice in it.  "One, two, three, four----Ha!" he cried,
with a look of horror, "where, in the name of Heaven, is the
fifth--the youngest, the whitest, the most amiable of all--my
Benjamin of mice!"

Neither Laura nor I were in any favorable disposition to be
amused.  The Count's glib cynicism had revealed a new aspect of
his nature from which we both recoiled.  But it was impossible to
resist the comical distress of so very large a man at the loss of
so very small a mouse.  We laughed in spite of ourselves; and when
Madame Fosco rose to set the example of leaving the boat-house
empty, so that her husband might search it to its remotest
corners, we rose also to follow her out.

Before we had taken three steps, the Count's quick eye discovered
the lost mouse under the seat that we had been occupying.  He
pulled aside the bench, took the little animal up in his hand, and
then suddenly stopped, on his knees, looking intently at a
particular place on the ground just beneath him.

When he rose to his feet again, his hand shook so that he could
hardly put the mouse back in the cage, and his face was of a faint
livid yellow hue all over.

"Percival!" he said, in a whisper.  "Percival! come here."

Sir Percival had paid no attention to any of us for the last ten
minutes.  He had been entirely absorbed in writing figures on the
sand, and then rubbing them out again with the point of his stick.

"What's the matter now?" he asked, lounging carelessly into the
boat-house.

"Do you see nothing there?" said the Count, catching him nervously
by the collar with one hand, and pointing with the other to the
place near which he had found the mouse.

"I see plenty of dry sand," answered Sir Percival, "and a spot of
dirt in the middle of it."

"Not dirt," whispered the Count, fastening the other hand suddenly
on Sir Percival's collar, and shaking it in his agitation. 
"Blood."

Laura was near enough to hear the last word, softly as he
whispered it.  She turned to me with a look of terror.

"Nonsense, my dear," I said.  "There is no need to be alarmed.  It
is only the blood of a poor little stray dog."

Everybody was astonished, and everybody's eyes were fixed on me
inquiringly.

"How do you know that?" asked Sir Percival, speaking first.

"I found the dog here, dying, on the day when you all returned
from abroad," I replied.  "The poor creature had strayed into the
plantation, and had been shot by your keeper."

"Whose dog was it?" inquired Sir Percival.  "Not one of mine?"

"Did you try to save the poor thing?" asked Laura earnestly. 
"Surely you tried to save it, Marian?"

"Yes," I said, "the housekeeper and I both did our best--but the
dog was mortally wounded, and he died under our hands."

"Whose dog was it?" persisted Sir Percival, repeating his question
a little irritably.  "One of mine?"

"No, not one of yours."

"Whose then? Did the housekeeper know?"

The housekeeper's report of Mrs. Catherick's desire to conceal her
visit to Blackwater Park from Sir Percival's knowledge recurred to
my memory the moment he put that last question, and I half doubted
the discretion of answering it; but in my anxiety to quiet the
general alarm, I had thoughtlessly advanced too far to draw back,
except at the risk of exciting suspicion, which might only make
matters worse.  There was nothing for it but to answer at once,
without reference to results.

"Yes," I said.  "The housekeeper knew.  She told me it was Mrs.
Catherick's dog."

Sir Percival had hitherto remained at the inner end of the boat-
house with Count Fosco, while I spoke to him from the door.  But
the instant Mrs. Catherick's name passed my lips he pushed by the
Count roughly, and placed himself face to face with me under the
open daylight.

"How came the housekeeper to know it was Mrs. Catherick's dog?" he
asked, fixing his eyes on mine with a frowning interest and
attention, which half angered, half startled me.

"She knew it," I said quietly, "because Mrs. Catherick brought the
dog with her."

"Brought it with her? Where did she bring it with her?"

"To this house."

"What the devil did Mrs. Catherick want at this house?"

The manner in which he put the question was even more offensive
than the language in which he expressed it.  I marked my sense of
his want of common politeness by silently turning away from him.

Just as I moved the Count's persuasive hand was laid on his
shoulder, and the Count's mellifluous voice interposed to quiet
him.

"My dear Percival!--gently--gently!"

Sir Percival looked round in his angriest manner.  The Count only
smiled and repeated the soothing application.

"Gently, my good friend--gently!"

Sir Percival hesitated, followed me a few steps, and, to my great
surprise, offered me an apology.

"I beg your pardon, Miss Halcombe," he said.  "I have been out of
order lately, and I am afraid I am a little irritable.  But I
should like to know what Mrs. Catherick could possibly want here. 
When did she come? Was the housekeeper the only person who saw
her?"

"The only person," I answered, "so far as I know."

The Count interposed again.

"In that case why not question the housekeeper?" he said.  "Why
not go, Percival, to the fountain-head of information at once?"

"Quite right!" said Sir Percival.  "Of course the housekeeper is
the first person to question.  Excessively stupid of me not to see
it myself." With those words he instantly left us to return to the
house.

The motive of the Count's interference, which had puzzled me at
first, betrayed itself when Sir Percival's back was turned.  He
had a host of questions to put to me about Mrs. Catherick, and the
cause of her visit to Blackwater Park, which he could scarcely
have asked in his friend's presence.  I made my answers as short
as I civilly could, for I had already determined to check the
least approach to any exchanging of confidences between Count
Fosco and myself.  Laura, however, unconsciously helped him to
extract all my information, by making inquiries herself, which
left me no alternative but to reply to her, or to appear in the
very unenviable and very false character of a depositary of Sir
Percival's secrets.  The end of it was, that, in about ten
minutes' time, the Count knew as much as I know of Mrs. Catherick,
and of the events which have so strangely connected us with her
daughter, Anne, from the time when Cartright met with her to this
day.

The effect of my information on him was, in one respect, curious
enough.

Intimately as he knows Sir Percival, and closely as he appears to
be associated with Sir Percival's private affairs in general, he
is certainly as far as I am from knowing anything of the true
story of Anne Catherick.  The unsolved mystery in connection with
this unhappy woman is now rendered doubly suspicious, in my eyes,
by the absolute conviction which I feel, that the clue to it has
been hidden by Sir Percival from the most intimate friend he has
in the world.  It was impossible to mistake the eager curiosity of
the Count's look and manner while he drank in greedily every word
that fell from my lips.  There are many kinds of curiosity, I
know--but there is no misinterpreting the curiosity of blank
surprise: if I ever saw it in my life I saw it in the Count's
face.

While the questions and answers were going on, we had all been
strolling quietly back through the plantation.  As soon as we
reached the house the first object that we saw in front of it was
Sir Percival's dog-cart, with the horse put to and the groom
waiting by it in his stable-jacket.  If these unexpected
appearances were to be trusted, the examination of the house-
keeper had produced important results already.

"A fine horse, my friend," said the Count, addressing the groom
with the most engaging familiarity of manner, "You are going to
drive out?"

"I am not going, sir," replied the man, looking at his stable-
jacket, and evidently wondering whether the foreign gentleman took
it for his livery.  "My master drives himself."

"Aha!" said the Count, "does he indeed? I wonder he gives himself
the trouble when he has got you to drive for him.  Is he going to
fatigue that nice, shining, pretty horse by taking him very far
to-day?"

"I don't know, sir," answered the man.  "The horse is a mare, if
you please, sir.  She's the highest-couraged thing we've got in
the stables.  Her name's Brown Molly, sir, and she'll go till she
drops.  Sir Percival usually takes Isaac of York for the short
distances."

"And your shining courageous Brown Molly for the long?"

"Logical inference, Miss Halcombe," continued the Count, wheeling
round briskly, and addressing me.  "Sir Percival is going a long
distance to-day."

I made no reply.  I had my own inferences to draw, from what I
knew through the housekeeper and from what I saw before me, and I
did not choose to share them with Count Fosco.

When Sir Percival was in Cumberland (I thought to myself), he
walked away a long distance, on Anne's account, to question the
family at Todd's Corner.  Now he is in Hampshire, is he going to
drive away a long distance, on Anne's account again, to question
Mrs. Catherick at Welmingham?

We all entered the house.  As we crossed the hall Sir Percival
came out from the library to meet us.  He looked hurried and pale
and anxious--but for all that, he was in his most polite mood when
he spoke to us.

"I am sorry to say I am obliged to leave you," he began--"a long
drive--a matter that I can't very well put off.  I shall be back
in good time to-morrow--but before I go I should like that little
business-formality, which I spoke of this morning, to be settled. 
Laura, will you come into the library? It won't take a minute--a
mere formality.  Countess, may I trouble you also? I want you and
the Countess, Fosco, to be witnesses to a signature--nothing more. 
Come in at once and get it over."

He held the library door open until they had passed in, followed
them, and shut it softly.

I remained, for a moment afterwards, standing alone in the hall,
with my heart beating fast and my mind misgiving me sadly.  Then I
went on to the staircase, and ascended slowly to my own room.



IV


June 17th.--Just as my hand was on the door of my room, I heard
Sir Percival's voice calling to me from below.

"I must beg you to come downstairs again," he said.  "It is
Fosco's fault, Miss Halcombe, not mine.  He has started some
nonsensical objection to his wife being one of the witnesses, and
has obliged me to ask you to join us in the library."

I entered the room immediately with Sir Percival.  Laura was
waiting by the writing-table, twisting and turning her garden hat
uneasily in her hands.  Madame Fosco sat near her, in an arm-
chair, imperturbably admiring her husband, who stood by himself at
the other end of the library, picking off the dead leaves from the
flowers in the window.

The moment I appeared the Count advanced to meet me, and to offer
his explanations.

"A thousand pardons, Miss Halcombe," he said.  "You know the
character which is given to my countrymen by the English? We
Italians are all wily and suspicious by nature, in the estimation
of the good John Bull.  Set me down, if you please, as being no
better than the rest of my race.  I am a wily Italian and a
suspicious Italian.  You have thought so yourself, dear lady, have
you not? Well! it is part of my wiliness and part of my suspicion
to object to Madame Fosco being a witness to Lady Glyde's
signature, when I am also a witness myself."

"There is not the shadow of a reason for his objection,"
interposed Sir Percival.  "I have explained to him that the law of
England allows Madame Fosco to witness a signature as well as her
husband."

"I admit it," resumed the Count.  "The law of England says, Yes,
but the conscience of Fosco says, No." He spread out his fat
fingers on the bosom of his blouse, and bowed solemnly, as if he
wished to introduce his conscience to us all, in the character of
an illustrious addition to the society.  "What this document which
Lady Glyde is about to sign may be," he continued, "I neither know
nor desire to know.  I only say this, circumstances may happen in
the future which may oblige Percival, or his representatives, to
appeal to the two witnesses, in which case it is certainly
desirable that those witnesses should represent two opinions which
are perfectly independent the one of the other.  This cannot be if
my wife signs as well as myself, because we have but one opinion
between us, and that opinion is mine.  I will not have it cast in
my teeth, at some future day, that Madame Fosco acted under my
coercion, and was, in plain fact, no witness at all.  I speak in
Percival's interest, when I propose that my name shall appear (as
the nearest friend of the husband), and your name, Miss Halcombe
(as the nearest friend of the wife).  I am a Jesuit, if you please
to think so--a splitter of straws--a man of trifles and crochets
and scruples--but you will humour me, I hope, in merciful
consideration for my suspicious Italian character, and my uneasy
Italian conscience." He bowed again, stepped back a few paces, and
withdrew his conscience from our society as politely as he had
introduced it.

The Count's scruples might have been honourable and reasonable
enough, but there was something in his manner of expressing them
which increased my unwillingness to be concerned in the business
of the signature.  No consideration of less importance than my
consideration for Laura would have induced me to consent to be a
witness at all.  One look, however, at her anxious face decided me
to risk anything rather than desert her.

"I will readily remain in the room," I said.  "And if I find no
reason for starting any small scruples on my side, you may rely on
me as a witness."

Sir Percival looked at me sharply, as if he was about to say
something.  But at the same moment, Madame Fosco attracted his
attention by rising from her chair.  She had caught her husband's
eye, and had evidently received her orders to leave the room.

"You needn't go," said Sir Percival.

Madame Fosco looked for her orders again, got them again, said she
would prefer leaving us to our business, and resolutely walked
out.  The Count lit a cigarette, went back to the flowers in the
window, and puffed little jets of smoke at the leaves, in a state
of the deepest anxiety about killing the insects.

Meanwhile Sir Percival unlocked a cupboard beneath one of the
book-cases, and produced from it a piece of parchment, folded
longwise, many times over.  He placed it on the table, opened the
last fold only, and kept his hand on the rest. The last fold
displayed a strip of blank parchment with little wafers stuck on
it at certain places.  Every line of the writing was hidden in the
part which he still held folded up under his hand.  Laura and I
looked at each other.  Her face was pale, but it showed no
indecision and no fear.

Sir Percival dipped a pen in ink, and handed it to his wife. "Sign
your name there," he said, pointing to the place.  "You and Fosco
are to sign afterwards, Miss Halcombe, opposite those two wafers. 
Come here, Fosco! witnessing a signature is not to be done by
mooning out of window and smoking into the flowers."

The Count threw away his cigarette, and joined us at the table,
with his hands carelessly thrust into the scarlet belt of his
blouse, and his eyes steadily fixed on Sir Percival's face. 
Laura, who was on the other side of her husband, with the pen in
her hand, looked at him too.  He stood between them holding the
folded parchment down firmly on the table, and glancing across at
me, as I sat opposite to him, with such a sinister mixture of
suspicion and embarrassment on his face that he looked more like a
prisoner at the bar than a gentleman in his own house.

"Sign there," he repeated, turning suddenly on Laura, and pointing
once more to the place on the parchment.

"What is it I am to sign?" she asked quietly.

"I have no time to explain," he answered.  "The dog-cart is at the
door, and I must go directly.  Besides, if I had time, you
wouldn't understand.  It is a purely formal document, full of
legal technicalities, and all that sort of thing.  Come! come!
sign your name, and let us have done as soon as possible."

"I ought surely to know what I am signing, Sir Percival, before I
write my name?"

"Nonsense! What have women to do with business? I tell you again,
you can't understand it."

"At any rate, let me try to understand it.  Whenever Mr. Gilmore
had any business for me to do, he always explained it first, and I
always understood him."

"I dare say he did.  He was your servant, and was obliged to
explain.  I am your husband, and am NOT obliged.  How much longer
do you mean to keep me here? I tell you again, there is no time
for reading anything--the dog-cart is waiting at the door.  Once
for all, will you sign or will you not?"

She still had the pen in her hand, but she made no approach to
signing her name with it.

"If my signature pledges me to anything," she said, "surely I have
some claim to know what that pledge is?"

He lifted up the parchment, and struck it angrily on the table.

"Speak out!" he said.  "You were always famous for telling the
truth.  Never mind Miss Halcombe, never mind Fosco--say, in plain
terms, you distrust me."

The Count took one of his hands out of his belt and laid it on Sir
Percival's shoulder.  Sir Percival shook it off irritably.  The
Count put it on again with unruffled composure.

"Control your unfortunate temper, Percival," he said "Lady Glyde
is right."

"Right!" cried Sir Percival.  "A wife right in distrusting her
husband!"

"It is unjust and cruel to accuse me of distrusting you," said
Laura.  "Ask Marian if I am not justified in wanting to know what
this writing requires of me before I sign it."

"I won't have any appeals made to Miss Halcombe," retorted Sir
Percival.  "Miss Halcombe has nothing to do with the matter."

I had not spoken hitherto, and I would much rather not have spoken
now.  But the expression of distress in Laura's face when she
turned it towards me, and the insolent injustice of her husband's
conduct, left me no other alternative than to give my opinion, for
her sake, as soon as I was asked for it.

"Excuse me, Sir Percival," I said--"but as one of the witnesses to
the signature, I venture to think that I HAVE something to do with
the matter.  Laura's objection seems to me a perfectly fair one,
and speaking for myself only, I cannot assume the responsibility
of witnessing her signature, unless she first understands what the
writing is which you wish her to sign."

"A cool declaration, upon my soul!" cried Sir Percival.  "The next
time you invite yourself to a man's house, Miss Halcombe, I
recommend you not to repay his hospitality by taking his wife's
side against him in a matter that doesn't concern you."

I started to my feet as suddenly as if he had struck me.  If I had
been a man, I would have knocked him down on the threshold of his
own door, and have left his house, never on any earthly
consideration to enter it again.  But I was only a woman--and I
loved his wife so dearly!

Thank God, that faithful love helped me, and I sat down again
without saying a word.  SHE knew what I had suffered and what I
had suppressed.  She ran round to me, with the tears streaming
from her eyes.  "Oh, Marian!" she whispered softly.  "If my mother
had been alive, she could have done no more for me!"

"Come back and sign!" cried Sir Percival from the other side of
the table.

"Shall I?" she asked in my ear; "I will, if you tell me."

"No," I answered.  "The right and the truth are with you--sign
nothing, unless you have read it first."

"Come back and sign!" he reiterated, in his loudest and angriest
tones.

The Count, who had watched Laura and me with a close and silent
attention, interposed for the second time.

"Percival!" he said.  "I remember that I am in the presence of
ladies.  Be good enough, if you please, to remember it too."

Sir Percival turned on him speechless with passion.  The Count's
firm hand slowly tightened its grasp on his shoulder, and the
Count's steady voice quietly repeated, "Be good enough, if you
please, to remember it too."

They both looked at each other.  Sir Percival slowly drew his
shoulder from under the Count's hand, slowly turned his face away
from the Count's eyes, doggedly looked down for a little while at
the parchment on the table, and then spoke, with the sullen
submission of a tamed animal, rather than the becoming resignation
of a convinced man.

"I don't want to offend anybody," he said, "but my wife's
obstinacy is enough to try the patience of a saint.  I have told
her this is merely a formal document--and what more can she want?
You may say what you please, but it is no part of a woman's duty
to set her husband at defiance.  Once more, Lady Glyde, and for
the last time, will you sign or will you not?"

Laura returned to his side of the table, and took up the pen
again.

"I will sign with pleasure," she said, "if you will only treat me
as a responsible being.  I care little what sacrifice is required
of me, if it will affect no one else, and lead to no ill results--"

"Who talked of a sacrifice being required of You?" he broke in,
with a half-suppressed return of his former violence.

"I only meant," she resumed, "that I would refuse no concession
which I could honourably make.  If I have a scruple about signing
my name to an engagement of which I know nothing, why should you
visit it on me so severely? It is rather hard, I think, to treat
Count Fosco's scruples so much more indulgently than you have 
treated mine."

This unfortunate, yet most natural, reference to the Count's
extraordinary power over her husband, indirect as it was, set Sir
Percival's smouldering temper on fire again in an instant.

"Scruples!" he repeated.  "YOUR scruples! It is rather late in the
day for you to be scrupulous.  I should have thought you had got
over all weakness of that sort, when you made a virtue of
necessity by marrying me."

The instant he spoke those words, Laura threw down the pen--looked
at him with an expression in her eyes which, throughout all my
experience of her, I had never seen in them before, and turned her
back on him in dead silence.

This strong expression of the most open and the most bitter
contempt was so entirely unlike herself, so utterly out of her
character, that it silenced us all.  There was something hidden,
beyond a doubt, under the mere surface-brutality of the words
which her husband had just addressed to her.  There was some
lurking insult beneath them, of which I was wholly ignorant, but
which had left the mark of its profanation so plainly on her face
that even a stranger might have seen it.

The Count, who was no stranger, saw it as distinctly as I did. 
When I left my chair to join Laura, I heard him whisper under his
breath to Sir Percival, "You idiot!"

Laura walked before me to the door as I advanced, and at the same
time her husband spoke to her once more.

"You positively refuse, then, to give me your signature?" he said,
in the altered tone of a man who was conscious that he had let his
own licence of language seriously injure him.

"After what you have just said to me," she replied firmly, "I
refuse my signature until I have read every line in that parchment
from the first word to the last. Come away, Marian, we have
remained here long enough."

"One moment!" interposed the Count before Sir Percival could speak
again--"one moment, Lady Glyde, I implore you!"

Laura would have left the room without noticing him, but I stopped
her.

"Don't make an enemy of the Count!" I whispered.  "Whatever you
do, don't make an enemy of the Count!"

She yielded to me.  I closed the door again, and we stood near it
waiting.  Sir Percival sat down at the table, with his elbow on
the folded parchment, and his head resting on his clenched fist.
The Count stood between us--master of the dreadful position in
which we were placed, as he was master of everything else.

"Lady Glyde," he said, with a gentleness which seemed to address
itself to our forlorn situation instead of to ourselves, "pray
pardon me if I venture to offer one suggestion, and pray believe
that I speak out of my profound respect and my friendly regard for
the mistress of this house." He turned sharply towards Sir
Percival.  "Is it absolutely necessary," he asked "that this thing
here, under your elbow, should be signed to-day?"

"It is necessary to my plans and wishes," returned the other
sulkily.  "But that consideration, as you may have noticed, has no
influence with Lady Glyde."

"Answer my plain question plainly.  Can the business of the
signature be put off till to-morrow--Yes or No?"

"Yes, if you will have it so."

"Then what are you wasting your time for here? Let the signature
wait till to-morrow--let it wait till you come back."

Sir Percival looked up with a frown and an oath.

"You are taking a tone with me that I don't like," he said.  "A
tone I won't bear from any man."

"I am advising you for your good," returned the Count, with a
smile of quiet contempt.  "Give yourself time--give Lady Glyde
time.  Have you forgotten that your dog-cart is waiting at the
door? My tone surprises you--ha? I dare say it does--it is the
tone of a man who can keep his temper.  How many doses of good
advice have I given you in my time? More than you can count.  Have
I ever been wrong? I defy you to quote me an instance of it.  Go!
take your drive.  The matter of the signature can wait till to-
morrow.  Let it wait--and renew it when you come back."

Sir Percival hesitated and looked at his watch.  His anxiety about
the secret journey which he was to take that day, revived by the
Count's words, was now evidently disputing possession of his mind
with his anxiety to obtain Laura's signature.  He considered for a
little while, and then got up from his chair.

"It is easy to argue me down," he said, "when I have no time to
answer you.  I will take your advice, Fosco--not because I want
it, or believe in it, but because I can't stop here any longer."
He paused, and looked round darkly at his wife.  "If you don't
give me your signature when I come back to-morrow!" The rest was
lost in the noise of his opening the book-case cupboard again, and
locking up the parchment once more.  He took his hat and gloves
off the table, and made for the door.  Laura and I drew back to
let him pass.  "Remember to-morrow!" he said to his wife, and went
out.

We waited to give him time to cross the hall and drive away.  The
Count approached us while we were standing near the door.

"You have just seen Percival at his worst, Miss Halcombe," he
said.  "As his old friend, I am sorry for him and ashamed of him. 
As his old friend, I promise you that he shall not break out to-
morrow in the same disgraceful manner in which he has broken out
to-day."

Laura had taken my arm while he was speaking and she pressed it
significantly when he had done.  It would have been a hard trial
to any woman to stand by and see the office of apologist for her
husband's misconduct quietly assumed by his male friend in her own
house--and it was a trial to HER.  I thanked the Count civilly,
and let her out.  Yes! I thanked him: for I felt already, with a
sense of inexpressible helplessness and humiliation, that it was
either his interest or his caprice to make sure of my continuing
to reside at Blackwater Park, and I knew after Sir Percival's
conduct to me, that without the support of the Count's influence,
I could not hope to remain there.  His influence, the influence of
all others that I dreaded most, was actually the one tie which now
held me to Laura in the hour of her utmost need!

We heard the wheels of the dog-cart crashing on the gravel of the
drive as we came into the hall.  Sir Percival had started on his
journey.

"Where is he going to, Marian?" Laura whispered.  "Every fresh
thing he does seems to terrify me about the future.  Have you any
suspicions?"

After what she had undergone that morning, I was unwilling to tell
her my suspicions.

"How should I know his secrets?" I said evasively.

"I wonder if the housekeeper knows?" she persisted.

"Certainly not," I replied.  "She must be quite as ignorant as we
are."

Laura shook her head doubtfully.

"Did you not hear from the housekeeper that there was a report of
Anne Catherick having been seen in this neighbourhood? Don't you
think he may have gone away to look for her?"

"I would rather compose myself, Laura, by not thinking about it at
all, and after what has happened, you had better follow my
example.  Come into my room, and rest and quiet yourself a
little."

We sat down together close to the window, and let the fragrant
summer air breathe over our faces.

"I am ashamed to look at you, Marian," she said, "after what you
submitted to downstairs, for my sake.  Oh, my own love, I am
almost heartbroken when I think of it! But I will try to make it
up to you--I will indeed!"

"Hush! hush!" I replied; "don't talk so.  What is the trifling
mortification of my pride compared to the dreadful sacrifice of
your happiness?"

"You heard what he said to me?" she went on quickly and
vehemently.  "You heard the words--but you don't know what they
meant--you don't know why I threw down the pen and turned my back
on him." She rose in sudden agitation, and walked about the room. 
"I have kept many things from your knowledge, Marian, for fear of
distressing you, and making you unhappy at the outset of our new
lives.  You don't know how he has used me.  And yet you ought to
know, for you saw how he used me to-day.  You heard him sneer at
my presuming to be scrupulous--you heard him say I had made a
virtue of necessity in marrying him." She sat down again, her face
flushed deeply, and her hands twisted and twined together in her
lap.  "I can't tell you about it now," she said; "I shall burst
out crying if I tell you now--later, Marian, when I am more sure
of myself.  My poor head aches, darling--aches, aches, aches. 
Where is your smelling-bottle? Let me talk to you about yourself. 
I wish I had given him my signature, for your sake.  Shall I give
it to him to-morrow? I would rather compromise myself than
compromise you.  After your taking my part against him, he will
lay all the blame on you if I refuse again.  What shall we do? Oh,
for a friend to help us and advise us!--a friend we could really
trust!"

She sighed bitterly.  I saw in her face that she was thinking of
Hartright--saw it the more plainly because her last words set me
thinking of him too.  In six months only from her marriage we
wanted the faithful service he had offered to us in his farewell
words.  How little I once thought that we should ever want it at
all!

"We must do what we can to help ourselves," I said.  "Let us try
to talk it over calmly, Laura--let us do all in our power to
decide for the best."

Putting what she knew of her husband's embarrassments and what I
had heard of his conversation with the lawyer together, we arrived
necessarily at the conclusion that the parchment in the library
had been drawn up for the purpose of borrowing money, and that
Laura's signature was absolutely necessary to fit it for the
attainment of Sir Percival's object.

The second question, concerning the nature of the legal contract
by which the money was to be obtained, and the degree of personal
responsibility to which Laura might subject herself if she signed
it in the dark, involved considerations which lay far beyond any
knowledge and experience that either of us possessed.  My own
convictions led me to believe that the hidden contents of the
parchment concealed a transaction of the meanest and the most
fraudulent kind.

I had not formed this conclusion in consequence of Sir Percival's
refusal to show the writing or to explain it, for that refusal
might well have proceeded from his obstinate disposition and his
domineering temper alone.  My sole motive for distrusting his 
honesty sprang from the change which I had observed in his
language and his manners at Blackwater Park, a change which
convinced me that he had been acting a part throughout the whole
period of his probation at Limmeridge House.  His elaborate
delicacy, his ceremonious politeness which harmonised so agreeably
with Mr. Gilmore's old-fashioned notions, his modesty with Laura,
his candour with me, his moderation with Mr. Fairlie--all these
were the artifices of a mean, cunning, and brutal man, who had
dropped his disguise when his practised duplicity had gained its
end, and had openly shown himself in the library on that very day. 
I say nothing of the grief which this discovery caused me on
Laura's account, for it is not to be expressed by any words of
mine.  I only refer to it at all, because it decided me to oppose
her signing the parchment, whatever the consequences might be,
unless she was first made acquainted with the contents.

Under these circumstances, the one chance for us when to-morrow
came was to be provided with an objection to giving the signature,
which might rest on sufficiently firm commercial or legal grounds
to shake Sir Percival's resolution, and to make him suspect that
we two women understood the laws and obligations of business as
well as himself.

After some pondering, I determined to write to the only honest man
within reach whom we could trust to help us discreetly in our
forlorn situation.  That man was Mr. Gilmore's partner, Mr. Kyrle,
who conducted the business now that our old friend had been
obliged to withdraw from it, and to leave London on account of his
health.  I explained to Laura that I had Mr. Gilmore's own
authority for placing implicit confidence in his partner's
integrity, discretion, and accurate knowledge of all her affairs,
and with her full approval I sat down at once to write the letter,
I began by stating our position to Mr. Kyrle exactly as it was,
and then asked for his advice in return, expressed in plain,
downright terms which he could comprehend without any danger of
misinterpretations and mistakes.  My letter was as short as I
could possibly make it, and was, I hope, unencumbered by needless
apologies and needless details.

Just as I was about to put the address on the envelope an obstacle
was discovered by Laura, which in the effort and preoccupation of
writing had escaped my mind altogether.

"How are we to get the answer in time?" she asked.  "Your letter
will not be delivered in London before to-morrow morning, and the
post will not bring the reply here till the morning after."

The only way of overcoming this difficulty was to have the answer
brought to us from the lawyer's office by a special messenger.  I
wrote a postscript to that effect, begging that the messenger
might be despatched with the reply by the eleven o'clock morning
train, which would bring him to our station at twenty minutes past
one, and so enable him to reach Blackwater Park by two o'clock at
the latest. He was to be directed to ask for me, to answer no
questions addressed to him by any one else, and to deliver his
letter into no hands but mine.

"In case Sir Percival should come back to-morrow before two
o'clock," I said to Laura, "the wisest plan for you to adopt is to
be out in the grounds all the morning with your book or your work,
and not to appear at the house till the messenger has had time to
arrive with the letter.  I will wait here for him all the morning,
to guard against any misadventures or mistakes.  By following this
arrangement I hope and believe we shall avoid being taken by
surprise.  Let us go down to the drawing-room now.  We may excite
suspicion if we remain shut up together too long."

"Suspicion?" she repeated.  "Whose suspicion can we excite, now
that Sir Percival has left the house? Do you mean Count Fosco?"

"Perhaps I do, Laura."

"You are beginning to dislike him as much as I do, Marian."

"No, not to dislike him.  Dislike is always more or less
associated with contempt--I can see nothing in the Count to
despise."

"You are not afraid of him, are you?"

"Perhaps I am--a little."

"Afraid of him, after his interference in our favour to-day!"

"Yes.  I am more afraid of his interference than I am of Sir
Percival's violence.  Remember what I said to you in the library. 
Whatever you do, Laura, don't make an enemy of the Count!"

We went downstairs.  Laura entered the drawing-room, while I
proceeded across the hall, with my letter in my hand, to put it
into the post-bag, which hung against the wall opposite to me.

The house door was open, and as I crossed past it, I saw Count
Fosco and his wife standing talking together on the steps outside,
with their faces turned towards me.

The Countess came into the hall rather hastily, and asked if I had
leisure enough for five minutes' private conversation.  Feeling a
little surprised by such an appeal from such a person, I put my
letter into the bag, and replied that I was quite at her disposal. 
She took my arm with unaccustomed friendliness and familiarity,
and instead of leading me into an empty room, drew me out with her
to the belt of turf which surrounded the large fish-pond.

As we passed the Count on the steps he bowed and smiled, and then
went at once into the house, pushing the hall door to after him,
but not actually closing it.

The Countess walked me gently round the fish-pond.  I expected to
be made the depositary of some extraordinary confidence, and I was
astonished to find that Madame Fosco's communication for my
private ear was nothing more than a polite assurance of her
sympathy for me, after what had happened in the library.  Her
husband had told her of all that had passed, and of the insolent
manner in which Sir Percival had spoken to me.  This information
had so shocked and distressed her, on my account and on Laura's,
that she had made up her mind, if anything of the sort happened
again, to mark her sense of Sir Percival's outrageous conduct by
leaving the house.  The Count had approved of her idea, and she
now hoped that I approved of it too.

I thought this a very strange proceeding on the part of such a
remarkably reserved woman as Madame Fosco, especially after the
interchange of sharp speeches which had passed between us during
the conversation in the boat-house on that very morning.  However,
it was my plain duty to meet a polite and friendly advance on the
part of one of my elders with a polite and friendly reply.  I
answered the Countess accordingly in her own tone, and then,
thinking we had said all that was necessary on either side, made
an attempt to get back to the house.

But Madame Fosco seemed resolved not to part with me, and to my
unspeakable amazement, resolved also to talk.  Hitherto the most
silent of women, she now persecuted me with fluent
conventionalities on the subject of married life, on the subject
of Sir Percival and Laura, on the subject of her own happiness, on 
the subject of the late Mr. Fairlie's conduct to her in the matter
of her legacy, and on half a dozen other subjects besides, until
she had detained me walking round and round the fish-pond for more
than half an hour, and had quite wearied me out.  Whether she
discovered this or not, I cannot say, but she stopped as abruptly
as she had begun--looked towards the house door, resumed her icy
manner in a moment, and dropped my arm of her own accord before I
could think of an excuse for accomplishing my own release from
her.

As I pushed open the door and entered the hall, I found myself
suddenly face to face with the Count again.  He was just putting a
letter into the post-bag.

After he had dropped it in and had closed the bag, he asked me
where I had left Madame Fosco.  I told him, and he went out at the
hall door immediately to join his wife.  His manner when he spoke
to me was so unusually quiet and subdued that I turned and looked
after him, wondering if he were ill or out of spirits.

Why my next proceeding was to go straight up to the post-bag and
take out my own letter and look at it again, with a vague distrust
on me, and why the looking at it for the second time instantly
suggested the idea to my mind of sealing the envelope for its
greater security--are mysteries which are either too deep or too
shallow for me to fathom.  Women, as everybody knows, constantly
act on impulses which they cannot explain even to themselves, and
I can only suppose that one of those impulses was the hidden cause
of my unaccountable conduct on this occasion.

Whatever influence animated me, I found cause to congratulate
myself on having obeyed it as soon as I prepared to seal the
letter in my own room.  I had originally closed the envelope in
the usual way by moistening the adhesive point and pressing it on
the paper beneath, and when I now tried it with my finger, after a
lapse of full three-quarters of an hour, the envelope opened on
the instant, without sticking or tearing.  Perhaps I had fastened
it insufficiently? Perhaps there might have been some defect in
the adhesive gum?

Or, perhaps----No! it is quite revolting enough to feel that third
conjecture stirring in my mind.  I would rather not see it
confronting me in plain black and white.

I almost dread to-morrow--so much depends on my discretion and
self-control.  There are two precautions, at all events, which I
am sure not to forget.  I must be careful to keep up friendly
appearances with the Count, and I must be well on my guard when
the messenger from the office comes here with the answer to my
letter.



V


June 17th.--When the dinner hour brought us together again, Count
Fosco was in his usual excellent spirits.  He exerted himself to
interest and amuse us, as if he was determined to efface from our
memories all recollection of what had passed in the library that
afternoon.  Lively descriptions of his adventures in travelling,
amusing anecdotes of remarkable people whom he had met with
abroad, quaint comparisons between the social customs of various
nations, illustrated by examples drawn from men and women
indiscriminately all over Europe, humorous confessions of the
innocent follies of his own early life, when he ruled the fashions
of a second-rate Italian town, and wrote preposterous romances on
the French model for a second-rate Italian newspaper--all flowed
in succession so easily and so gaily from his lips, and all
addressed our various curiosities and various interests so
directly and so delicately, that Laura and I listened to him with
as much attention and, inconsistent as it may seem, with as much
admiration also, as Madame Fosco herself.  Women can resist a
man's love, a man's fame, a man's personal appearance, and a man's
money, but they cannot resist a man's tongue when he knows how to
talk to them.

After dinner, while the favourable impression which he had
produced on us was still vivid in our minds, the Count modestly
withdrew to read in the library.

Laura proposed a stroll in the grounds to enjoy the close of the
long evening.  It was necessary in common politeness to ask Madame
Fosco to join us, but this time she had apparently received her
orders beforehand, and she begged we would kindly excuse her. 
"The Count will probably want a fresh supply of cigarettes," she
remarked by way of apology, "and nobody can make them to his
satisfaction but myself." Her cold blue eyes almost warmed as she
spoke the words--she looked actually proud of being the
officiating medium through which her lord and master composed
himself with tobacco-smoke!

Laura and I went out together alone.

It was a misty, heavy evening.  There was a sense of blight in the
air; the flowers were drooping in the garden, and the ground was
parched and dewless.  The western heaven, as we saw it over the
quiet trees, was of a pale yellow hue, and the sun was setting
faintly in a haze.  Coming rain seemed near--it would fall
probably with the fall of night.

"Which way shall we go?" I asked

"Towards the lake, Marian, if you like," she answered.

"You seem unaccountably fond, Laura, of that dismal lake."

"No, not of the lake but of the scenery about it.  The sand and
heath and the fir-trees are the only objects I can discover, in
all this large place, to remind me of Limmeridge.  But we will
walk in some other direction if you prefer it."

"I have no favourite walks at Blackwater Park, my love.  One is
the same as another to me.  Let us go to the lake--we may find it
cooler in the open space than we find it here."

We walked through the shadowy plantation in silence.  The
heaviness in the evening air oppressed us both, and when we
reached the boat-house we were glad to sit down and rest inside.

A white fog hung low over the lake.  The dense brown line of the
trees on the opposite bank appeared above it, like a dwarf forest
floating in the sky.  The sandy ground, shelving downward from
where we sat, was lost mysteriously in the outward layers of the
fog.  The silence was horrible.  No rustling of the leaves--no
bird's note in the wood--no cry of water-fowl from the pools of
the hidden lake.  Even the croaking of the frogs had ceased to-
night.

"It is very desolate and gloomy," said Laura.  "But we can be more
alone here than anywhere else."

She spoke quietly and looked at the wilderness of sand and mist
with steady, thoughtful eyes.  I could see that her mind was too
much occupied to feel the dreary impressions from without which
had fastened themselves already on mine.

"I promised, Marian, to tell you the truth about my married life,
instead of leaving you any longer to guess it for yourself," she
began.  "That secret is the first I have ever had from you, love,
and I am determined it shall be the last. I was silent, as you
know, for your sake--and perhaps a little for my own sake as well. 
It is very hard for a woman to confess that the man to whom she
has given her whole life is the man of all others who cares least
for the gift.  If you were married yourself, Marian--and
especially if you were happily married--you would feel for me as
no single woman CAN feel, however kind and true she may be."

What answer could I make? I could only take her hand and look at
her with my whole heart as well as my eyes would let me.

"How often," she went on, "I have heard you laughing over what you
used to call your 'poverty!' how often you have made me mock-
speeches of congratulation on my wealth! Oh, Marian, never laugh
again.  Thank God for your poverty--it has made you your own
mistress, and has saved you from the lot that has fallen on ME."

A sad beginning on the lips of a young wife!--sad in its quiet
plain-spoken truth.  The few days we had all passed together at
Blackwater Park had been many enough to show me--to show any one--
what her husband had married her for.

"You shall not be distressed," she said, "by hearing how soon my
disappointments and my trials began--or even by knowing what they
were.  It is bad enough to have them on my memory.  If I tell you
how he received the first and last attempt at remonstrance that I
ever made, you will know how he has always treated me, as well as
if I had described it in so many words.  It was one day at Rome
when we had ridden out together to the tomb of Cecilia Metella. 
The sky was calm and lovely, and the grand old ruin looked
beautiful, and the remembrance that a husband's love had raised it
in the old time to a wife's memory, made me feel more tenderly and
more anxiously towards my husband than I had ever felt yet. 
'Would you build such a tomb for ME, Percival?' I asked him.  'You
said you loved me dearly before we were married, and yet, since
that time----' I could get no farther.  Marian! he was not even
looking at me! I pulled down my veil, thinking it best not to let
him see that the tears were in my eyes.  I fancied he had not paid
any attention to me, but he had.  He said, 'Come away,' and
laughed to himself as he helped me on to my horse.  He mounted his
own horse and laughed again as we rode away.  'If I do build you a
tomb,' he said, 'it will be done with your own money.  I wonder
whether Cecilia Metella had a fortune and paid for hers.' I made
no reply--how could I, when I was crying behind my veil?' Ah, you
light-complexioned women are all sulky,' he said.  'What do you
want? compliments and soft speeches? Well! I'm in a good humour
this morning. Consider the compliments paid and the speeches
said.' Men little know when they say hard things to us how well we
remember them, and how much harm they do us.  It would have been
better for me if I had gone on crying, but his contempt dried up
my tears and hardened my heart.  From that time, Marian, I never
checked myself again in thinking of Walter Hartright.  I let the
memory of those happy days, when we were so fond of each other in
secret, come back and comfort me.  What else had I to look to for
consolation? If we had been together you would have helped me to
better things.  I know it was wrong, darling, but tell me if I was
wrong without any excuse."

I was obliged to turn my face from her.  "Don't ask me!" I said. 
"Have I suffered as you have suffered? What right have I to
decide?"

"I used to think of him," she pursued, dropping her voice and
moving closer to me, "I used to think of him when Percival left me
alone at night to go among the Opera people.  I used to fancy what
I might have been if it had pleased God to bless me with poverty,
and if I had been his wife.  I used to see myself in my neat cheap
gown, sitting at home and waiting for him while he was earning our
bread--sitting at home and working for him and loving him all the
better because I had to work for him--seeing him come in tired and
taking off his hat and coat for him, and, Marian, pleasing him
with little dishes at dinner that I had learnt to make for his
sake.  Oh! I hope he is never lonely enough and sad enough to
think of me and see me as I have thought of HIM and see HIM!"

As she said those melancholy words, all the lost tenderness
returned to her voice, and all the lost beauty trembled back into
her face.  Her eyes rested as lovingly on the blighted, solitary,
ill-omened view before us, as if they saw the friendly hills of
Cumberland in the dim and threatening sky.

"Don't speak of Walter any more," I said, as soon as I could
control myself.  "Oh, Laura, spare us both the wretchedness of
talking of him now!"

She roused herself, and looked at me tenderly.

"I would rather be silent about him for ever," she answered, "than
cause you a moment's pain."

"It is in your interests," I pleaded; "it is for your sake that I
speak.  If your husband heard you----"

"It would not surprise him if he did hear me."

She made that strange reply with a weary calmness and coldness. 
The change in her manner, when she gave the answer, startled me
almost as much as the answer itself.

"Not surprise him!" I repeated.  "Laura! remember what you are
saying--you frighten me!"

"It is true," she said; "it is what I wanted to tell you to-day,
when we were talking in your room.  My only secret when I opened
my heart to him at Limmeridge was a harmless secret, Marian--you
said so yourself.  The name was all I kept from him, and he has
discovered it."

I heard her, but I could say nothing.  Her last words had killed
the little hope that still lived in me.

"It happened at Rome," she went on, as wearily calm and cold as
ever.  "We were at a little party given to the English by some
friends of Sir Percival's--Mr. and Mrs. Markland.  Mrs. Markland
had the reputation of sketching very beautifully, and some of the
guests prevailed on her to show us her drawings.  We all admired
them, but something I said attracted her attention particularly to
me.  'Surely you draw yourself?' she asked.  'I used to draw a
little once,' I answered, 'but I have given it up.' 'If you have
once drawn,' she said, 'you may take to it again one of these
days, and if you do, I wish you would let me recommend you a
master.' I said nothing--you know why, Marian--and tried to change
the conversation.  But Mrs. Markland persisted.  'I have had all
sorts of teachers,' she went on, 'but the best of all, the most
intelligent and the most attentive, was a Mr. Hartright.  If you
ever take up your drawing again, do try him as a master.  He is a
young man--modest and gentlemanlike--I am sure you will like him . 
'Think of those words being spoken to me publicly, in the presence
of strangers--strangers who had been invited to meet the bride and
bridegroom! I did all I could to control myself--I said nothing,
and looked down close at the drawings.  When I ventured to raise
my head again, my eyes and my husband's eyes met, and I knew, by
his look, that my face had betrayed me.  'We will see about Mr.
Hartright,' he said, looking at me all the time, 'when we get back
to England.  I agree with you, Mrs. Markland--I think Lady Glyde
is sure to like him.' He laid an emphasis on the last words which
made my cheeks burn, and set my heart beating as if it would
stifle me.  Nothing more was said.  We came away early.  He was
silent in the carriage driving back to the hotel.  He helped me
out, and followed me upstairs as usual.  But the moment we were in
the drawing-room, he locked the door, pushed me down into a chair,
and stood over me with his hands on my shoulders.  'Ever since
that morning when you made your audacious confession to me at
Limmeridge,' he said, 'I have wanted to find out the man, and I
found him in your face to-night.  Your drawing-master was the man,
and his name is Hartright.  You shall repent it, and he shall
repent it, to the last hour of your lives.  Now go to bed and
dream of him if you like, with the marks of my horsewhip on his
shoulders.' Whenever he is angry with me now he refers to what I
acknowledged to him in your presence with a sneer or a threat.  I
have no power to prevent him from putting his own horrible
construction on the confidence I placed in him.  I have no
influence to make him believe me, or to keep him silent.  You
looked surprised to-day when you heard him tell me that I had made
a virtue of necessity in marrying him.  You will not be surprised
again when you hear him repeat it, the next time he is out of
temper----Oh, Marian! don't! don't! you hurt me!"

I had caught her in my arms, and the sting and torment of my
remorse had closed them round her like a vice.  Yes! my remorse. 
The white despair of Walter's face, when my cruel words struck him
to the heart in the summer-house at Limmeridge, rose before me in
mute, unendurable reproach.  My hand had pointed the way which led
the man my sister loved, step by step, far from his country and
his friends.  Between those two young hearts I had stood, to
sunder them for ever, the one from the other, and his life and her
life lay wasted before me alike in witness of the deed.  I had
done this, and done it for Sir Percival Glyde.

For Sir Percival Glyde.


I heard her speaking, and I knew by the tone of her voice that she
was comforting me--I, who deserved nothing but the reproach of her
silence! How long it was before I mastered the absorbing misery of
my own thoughts, I cannot tell.  I was first conscious that she
was kissing me, and then my eyes seemed to wake on a sudden to
their sense of outward things, and I knew that I was looking
mechanically straight before me at the prospect of the lake.

"It is late," I heard her whisper.  "It will be dark in the
plantation." She shook my arm and repeated, "Marian! it will be
dark in the plantation."

"Give me a minute longer," I said--"a minute, to get better in."

I was afraid to trust myself to look at her yet, and I kept my
eyes fixed on the view.

It WAS late.  The dense brown line of trees in the sky had faded
in the gathering darkness to the faint resemblance of a long
wreath of smoke.  The mist over the lake below had stealthily
enlarged, and advanced on us.  The silence was as breathless as
ever, but the horror of it had gone, and the solemn mystery of its
stillness was all that remained.

"We are far from the house," she whispered.  "Let us go back."

She stopped suddenly, and turned her face from me towards the
entrance of the boat-house.

"Marian!" she said, trembling violently.  "Do you see nothing?
Look!"

"Where?"

"Down there, below us."

She pointed.  My eyes followed her hand, and I saw it too.

A living figure was moving over the waste of heath in the
distance.  It crossed our range of view from the boat-house, and
passed darkly along the outer edge of the mist. It stopped far
off, in front of us--waited--and passed on; moving slowly, with
the white cloud of mist behind it and above it--slowly, slowly,
till it glided by the edge of the boat-house, and we saw it no
more.

We were both unnerved by what had passed between us that evening. 
Some minutes elapsed before Laura would venture into the
plantation, and before I could make up my mind to lead her back to
the house.

"Was it a man or a woman?" she asked in a whisper, as we moved at
last into the dark dampness of the outer air.

"I am not certain."

"Which do you think?"

"It looked like a woman."

"I was afraid it was a man in a long cloak."

"It may be a man.  In this dim light it is not possible to be
certain."

"Wait, Marian! I'm frightened--I don't see the path.  Suppose the
figure should follow us?"

"Not at all likely, Laura.  There is really nothing to be alarmed
about.  The shores of the lake are not far from the village, and
they are free to any one to walk on by day or night.  It is only
wonderful we have seen no living creature there before."

We were now in the plantation.  It was very dark--so dark, that we
found some difficulty in keeping the path.  I gave Laura my arm,
and we walked as fast as we could on our way back.

Before we were half-way through she stopped, and forced me to stop
with her.  She was listening.

"Hush," she whispered.  "I hear something behind us."

"Dead leaves," I said to cheer her, "or a twig blown off the
trees."

"It is summer time, Marian, and there is not a breath of wind. 
Listen!"

I heard the sound too--a sound like a light footstep following us.

"No matter who it is, or what it is," I said, "let us walk on.  In
another minute, if there is anything to alarm us, we shall be near
enough to the house to be heard."

We went on quickly--so quickly, that Laura was breathless by the
time we were nearly through the plantation, and within sight of
the lighted windows.

I waited a moment to give her breathing-time. Just as we were
about to proceed she stopped me again, and signed to me with her
hand to listen once more. We both heard distinctly a long, heavy
sigh behind us, in the black depths of the trees.

"Who's there?" I called out.

There was no answer.

"Who's there?" I repeated.

An instant of silence followed, and then we heard the light fall
of the footsteps again, fainter and fainter--sinking away into the
darkness--sinking, sinking, sinking--till they were lost in the
silence.

We hurried out from the trees to the open lawn beyond crossed it
rapidly, and without another word passing between us, reached the
house.

In the light of the hall-lamp Laura looked at me, with white
cheeks and startled eyes.

"I am half dead with fear," she said. "Who could it have been?"

"We will try to guess to-morrow," I replied. "In the meantime say
nothing to any one of what we have heard and seen.

"Why not?"

"Because silence is safe, and we have need of safety in this
house."

I sent Laura upstairs immediately, waited a minute to take off my
hat and put my hair smooth, and then went at once to make my first
investigations in the library, on pretence of searching for a
book.

There sat the Count, filling out the largest easy-chair in the
house, smoking and reading calmly, with his feet on an ottoman,
his cravat across his knees, and his shirt collar wide open.  And
there sat Madame Fosco, like a quiet child, on a stool by his
side, making cigarettes.  Neither husband nor wife could, by any
possibility, have been out late that evening, and have just got
back to the house in a hurry.  I felt that my object in visiting
the library was answered the moment I set eyes on them.

Count Fosco rose in polite confusion and tied his cravat on when I
entered the room.

"Pray don't let me disturb you," I said.  "I have only come here
to get a book."

"All unfortunate men of my size suffer from the heat," said the
Count, refreshing himself gravely with a large green fan.  "I wish
I could change places with my excellent wife.  She is as cool at
this moment as a fish in the pond outside."

The Countess allowed herself to thaw under the influence of her
husband's quaint comparison.  "I am never warm, Miss Halcombe,"
she remarked, with the modest air of a woman who was confessing to
one of her own merits.

"Have you and Lady Glyde been out this evening?" asked the Count,
while I was taking a book from the shelves to preserve
appearances.

"Yes, we went out to get a little air."

"May I ask in what direction?"

"In the direction of the lake--as far as the boat-house."

"Aha? As far as the boat-house?"

Under other circumstances I might have resented his curiosity. 
But to-night I hailed it as another proof that neither he nor his
wife were connected with the mysterious appearance at the lake.

"No more adventures, I suppose, this evening?" he went on .  "No
more discoveries, like your discovery of the wounded dog?"

He fixed his unfathomable grey eyes on me, with that cold, clear,
irresistible glitter in them which always forces me to look at
him, and always makes me uneasy while I do look.  An unutterable
suspicion that his mind is prying into mine overcomes me at these
times, and it overcame me now.

"No," I said shortly; "no adventures--no discoveries."

I tried to look away from him and leave the room.  Strange as it
seems, I hardly think I should have succeeded in the attempt if
Madame Fosco had not helped me by causing him to move and look
away first.

"Count, you are keeping Miss Halcombe standing," she said.

The moment he turned round to get me a chair, I seized my
opportunity--thanked him--made my excuses--and slipped out.

An hour later, when Laura's maid happened to be in her mistress's
room, I took occasion to refer to the closeness of the night, with
a view to ascertaining next how the servants had been passing
their time.

"Have you been suffering much from the heat downstairs?" I asked.

"No, miss," said the girl, "we have not felt it to speak of."

"You have been out in the woods then, I suppose?"

"Some of us thought of going, miss.  But cook said she should take
her chair into the cool court-yard, outside the kitchen door, and
on second thoughts, all the rest of us took our chairs out there
too."

The housekeeper was now the only person who remained to be
accounted for.

"Is Mrs. Michelson gone to bed yet?" I inquired.

"I should think not, miss," said the girl, smiling.  "Mrs.
Michelson is more likely to be getting up just now than going to
bed."

"Why? What do you mean? Has Mrs. Michelson been taking to her bed
in the daytime?"

"No, miss, not exactly, but the next thing to it.  She's been
asleep all the evening on the sofa in her own room."

Putting together what I observed for myself in the library, and
what I have just heard from Laura's maid, one conclusion seems
inevitable.  The figure we saw at the lake was not the figure of
Madame Fosco, of her husband, or of any of the servants.  The
footsteps we heard behind us were not the footsteps of any one
belonging to the house.

Who could it have been?

It seems useless to inquire.  I cannot even decide whether the
figure was a man's or a woman's.  I can only say that I think it
was a woman's,



VI


June 18th.--The misery of self-reproach which I suffered yesterday
evening, on hearing what Laura told me in the boat-house, returned
in the loneliness of the night, and kept me waking and wretched
for hours.

I lighted my candle at last, and searched through my old journals
to see what my share in the fatal error of her marriage had really
been, and what I might have once done to save her from it.  The
result soothed me a little for it showed that, however blindly and
ignorantly I acted, I acted for the best. Crying generally does me
harm; but it was not so last night--I think it relieved me.  I
rose this morning with a settled resolution and a quiet mind. 
Nothing Sir Percival can say or do shall ever irritate me again,
or make me forget for one moment that I am staying here in
defiance of mortifications, insults, and threats, for Laura's
service and for Laura's sake.

The speculations in which we might have indulged this morning, on
the subject of the figure at the lake and the foot-steps in the
plantation, have been all suspended by a trifling accident which
has caused Laura great regret.  She has lost the little brooch I
gave her for a keepsake on the day before her marriage.  As she
wore it when we went out yesterday evening we can only suppose
that it must have dropped from her dress, either in the boat-house
or on our way back.  The servants have been sent to search, and
have returned unsuccessful.  And now Laura herself has gone to
look for it.  Whether she finds it or not the loss will help to
excuse her absence from the house.  if Sir Percival returns before
the letter from Mr. Gilmore's partner is placed in my hands.

One o'clock has just struck.  I am considering whether I had
better wait here for the arrival of the messenger from London, or
slip away quietly, and watch for him outside the lodge gate.

My suspicion of everybody and everything in this house inclines me
to think that the second plan may be the best. The Count is safe
in the breakfast-room.  I heard him, through the door, as I ran
upstairs ten minutes since, exercising his canary-birds at their
tricks:--"Come out on my little finger, my pret-pret-pretties!
Come out, and hop upstairs! One, two, three--and up! Three, two,
one--and down! One, two, three--twit-twit-twit-tweet!" The birds
burst into their usual ecstasy of singing, and the Count chirruped
and whistled at them in return, as if he was a bird himself.  My
room door is open, and I can hear the shrill singing and whistling
at this very moment.  If I am really to slip out without being
observed, now is my time.


FOUR O'CLOCK.  The three hours that have passed since I made my
last entry have turned the whole march of events at Blackwater
Park in a new direction.  Whether for good or for evil, I cannot
and dare not decide.

Let me get back first to the place at which I left off, or I shall
lose myself in the confusion of my own thoughts.

I went out, as I had proposed, to meet the messenger with my
letter from London at the lodge gate.  On the stairs I saw no one. 
In the hall I heard the Count still exercising his birds.  But on
crossing the quadrangle outside, I passed Madame Fosco, walking by
herself in her favourite circle, round and round the great fish-
pond.  I at once slackened my pace, so as to avoid all appearance
of being in a hurry, and even went the length, for caution's sake,
of inquiring if she thought of going out before lunch.  She smiled
at me in the friendliest manner--said she preferred remaining near
the house, nodded pleasantly, and re-entered the hall.  I looked
back, and saw that she had closed the door before I had opened the
wicket by the side of the carriage gates.

In less than a quarter of an hour I reached the lodge.

The lane outside took a sudden turn to the left, ran on straight
for a hundred yards or so, and then took another sharp turn to the
right to join the high-road.  Between these two turns, hidden from
the lodge on one side, and from the way to the station on the
other, I waited, walking backwards and forwards.  High hedges were
on either side of me, and for twenty minutes, by my watch, I
neither saw nor heard anything.  At the end of that time the sound
of a carriage caught my ear, and I was met, as I advanced towards
the second turning, by a fly from the railway.  I made a sign to
the driver to stop.  As he obeyed me a respectable-looking man put
his head out of the window to see what was the matter.

"I beg your pardon," I said, "but am I right in supposing that you
are going to Blackwater Park?"

"Yes, ma'am."

"With a letter for any one?"

"With a letter for Miss Halcombe, ma'am."

"You may give me the letter.  I am Miss Halcombe."

The man touched his hat, got out of the fly immediately, and gave
me the letter.

I opened it at once and read these lines.  I copy them here,
thinking it best to destroy the original for caution's sake.



"DEAR MADAM,--Your letter received this morning has caused me very
great anxiety.  I will reply to it as briefly and plainly as
possible.

"My careful consideration of the statement made by yourself, and
my knowledge of Lady Glyde's position, as defined in the
settlement, lead me, I regret to say, to the conclusion that a
loan of the trust money to Sir Percival (or, in other words, a
loan of some portion of the twenty thousand pounds of Lady Glyde's
fortune) is in contemplation, and that she is made a party to the
deed, in order to secure her approval of a flagrant breach of
trust, and to have her signature produced against her if she
should complain hereafter.  It is impossible, on any other
supposition, to account, situated as she is, for her execution to
a deed of any kind being wanted at all.

"In the event of Lady Glyde's signing such a document, as I am
compelled to suppose the deed in question to be, her trustees
would be at liberty to advance money to Sir Percival out of her
twenty thousand pounds.  If the amount so lent should not he paid
back, and if Lady Glyde should have children, their fortune will
then be diminished by the sum, large or small, so advanced.  In
plainer terms still, the transaction, for anything that Lady Glyde
knows to the contrary, may be a fraud upon her unborn children.

"Under these serious circumstances, I would recommend Lady Glyde
to assign as a reason for withholding her signature, that she
wishes the deed to be first submitted to myself, as her family
solicitor (in the absence of my partner, Mr. Gilmore).  No
reasonable objection can be made to taking this course--for, if
the transaction is an honourable one, there will necessarily be no
difficulty in my giving my approval.

"Sincerely assuring you of my readiness to afford any additional
help or advice that may be wanted, I beg to remain, Madam, your
faithful servant,

WILLIAM KYRLE.


I read this kind and sensible letter very thankfully.  It supplied
Laura with a reason for objecting to the signature which was
unanswerable, and which we could both of us understand.  The
messenger waited near me while I was reading to receive his
directions when I had done,

"Will you be good enough to say that I understand the letter, and
that I am very much obliged?" I said.  "There is no other reply
necessary at present."

Exactly at the moment when I was speaking those words, holding the
letter open in my hand, Count Fosco turned the corner of the lane
from the high-road, and stood before me as if he had sprung up out
of the earth.

The suddenness of his appearance, in the very last place under
heaven in which I should have expected to see him, took me
completely by surprise.  The messenger wished me good-morning, and
got into the fly again.  I could not say a word to him--I was not
even able to return his bow.  The conviction that I was
discovered--and by that man, of all others--absolutely petrified
me.

"Are you going back to the house, Miss Halcombe?" he inquired,
without showing the least surprise on his side, and without even
looking after the fly, which drove off while he was speaking to
me.

I collected myself sufficiently to make a sign in the affirmative.

"I am going back too," he said.  "Pray allow me the pleasure of
accompanying you.  Will you take my arm? You look surprised at
seeing me!"

I took his arm.  The first of my scattered senses that came back
was the sense that warned me to sacrifice anything rather than
make an enemy of him.

"You look surprised at seeing me!" he repeated in his quietly
pertinacious way.

"I thought, Count, I heard you with your birds in the breakfast-
room," I answered, as quietly and firmly as I could.

"Surely.  But my little feathered children, dear lady, are only
too like other children.  They have their days of perversity, and
this morning was one of them.  My wife came in as I was putting
them back in their cage, and said she had left you going out alone
for a walk.  You told her so, did you not?"

"Certainly."

"Well, Miss Halcombe, the pleasure of accompanying you was too
great a temptation for me to resist. At my age there is no harm in
confessing so much as that, is there? I seized my hat, and set off
to offer myself as your escort.  Even so fat an old man as Fosco
is surely better than no escort at all?  I took the wrong path--I
came back in despair, and here I am, arrived (may I say it?) at
the height of my wishes."

He talked on in this complimentary strain with a fluency which
left me no exertion to make beyond the effort of maintaining my
composure.  He never referred in the most distant manner to what
he had seen in the lane, or to the letter which I still had in my
hand.  This ominous discretion helped to convince me that he must
have surprised, by the most dishonourable means, the secret of my
application in Laura's interest to the lawyer; and that, having
now assured himself of the private manner in which I had received
the answer, he had discovered enough to suit his purposes, and was
only bent on trying to quiet the suspicions which he knew he must
have aroused in my mind.  I was wise enough, under these
circumstances, not to attempt to deceive him by plausible
explanations, and woman enough, notwithstanding my dread of him,
to feel as if my hand was tainted by resting on his arm.

On the drive in front of the house we met the dog-cart being taken
round to the stables.  Sir Percival had just returned.  He came
out to meet us at the house-door.  Whatever other results his
journey might have had, it had not ended in softening his savage
temper.

"Oh! here are two of you come back," he said, with a lowering
face.  "What is the meaning of the house being deserted in this
way? Where is Lady Glyde?"

I told him of the loss of the brooch, and said that Laura had gone
into the plantation to look for it.

"Brooch or no brooch," he growled sulkily, "I recommend her not to
forget her appointment in the library this afternoon.  I shall
expect to see her in half an hour."

I took my hand from the Count's arm, and slowly ascended the
steps.  He honoured me with one of his magnificent bows, and then
addressed himself gaily to the scowling master of the house.

"Tell me, Percival," he said, "have you had a pleasant drive? And
has your pretty shining Brown Molly come back at all tired?"

"Brown Molly be hanged--and the drive too! I want my lunch."

"And I want five minutes' talk with you, Percival, first,"
returned the Count.  "Five minutes' talk, my friend, here on the
grass."

"What about?"

"About business that very much concerns you."

I lingered long enough in passing through the hall-door to hear
this question and answer, and to see Sir Percival thrust his hands
into his pockets in sullen hesitation.

"If you want to badger me with any more of your infernal
scruples," he said, "I for one won't hear them.  I want my lunch."

"Come out here and speak to me," repeated the Count, still
perfectly uninfluenced by the rudest speech that his friend could
make to him.

Sir Percival descended the steps.  The Count took him by the arm,
and walked him away gently.  The "business," I was sure, referred
to the question of the signature.  They were speaking of Laura and
of me beyond a doubt.  I felt heart-sick and faint with anxiety. 
It might be of the last importance to both of us to know what they
were saying to each other at that moment, and not one word of it
could by any possibility reach my ears.

I walked about the house, from room to room, with the lawyer's
letter in my bosom (I was afraid by this time even to trust it
under lock and key), till the oppression of my suspense half
maddened me.  There were no signs of Laura's return, and I thought
of going out to look for her.  But my strength was so exhausted by
the trials and anxieties of the morning that the heat of the day
quite overpowered me, and after an attempt to get to the door I
was obliged to return to the drawing-room and lie down on the
nearest sofa to recover.

I was just composing myself when the door opened softly and the
Count looked in.

"A thousand pardons, Miss Halcombe," he said; "I only venture to
disturb you because I am the bearer of good news.  Percival--who
is capricious in everything, as you know--has seen fit to alter
his mind at the last moment, and the business of the signature is
put off for the present.  A great relief to all of us, Miss
Halcombe, as I see with pleasure in your face.  Pray present my
best respects and felicitations, when you mention this pleasant
change of circumstances to Lady Glyde."

He left me before I had recovered my astonishment.  There could be
no doubt that this extraordinary alteration of purpose in the
matter of the signature was due to his influence, and that his
discovery of my application to London yesterday, and of my having
received an answer to it to-day, had offered him the means of
interfering with certain success.

I felt these impressions, but my mind seemed to share the
exhaustion of my body, and I was in no condition to dwell on them
with any useful reference to the doubtful present or the
threatening future.  I tried a second time to run out and find
Laura, but my head was giddy and my knees trembled under me. 
There was no choice but to give it up again and return to the
sofa, sorely against my will.

The quiet in the house, and the low murmuring hum of summer
insects outside the open window, soothed me.  My eyes closed of
themselves, and I passed gradually into a strange condition, which
was not waking--for I knew nothing of what was going on about me,
and not sleeping--for I was conscious of my own repose.  In this
state my fevered mind broke loose from me, while my weary body was
at rest, and in a trance, or day-dream of my fancy--I know not
what to call it--I saw Walter Hartright.  I had not thought of him
since I rose that morning--Laura had not said one word to me
either directly or indirectly referring to him--and yet I saw him
now as plainly as if the past time had returned, and we were both
together again at Limmeridge House.

He appeared to me as one among many other men, none of whose faces
I could plainly discern.  They were all lying on the steps of an
immense ruined temple.  Colossal tropical trees--with rank
creepers twining endlessly about their trunks, and hideous stone
idols glimmering and grinning at intervals behind leaves and
stalks and branches--surrounded the temple and shut out the sky,
and threw a dismal shadow over the forlorn band of men on the
steps.  White exhalations twisted and curled up stealthily from
the ground, approached the men in wreaths like smoke, touched
them, and stretched them out dead, one by one, in the places where
they lay.  An agony of pity and fear for Walter loosened my
tongue, and I implored him to escape.  "Come back, come back!" I
said.  "Remember your promise to HER and to ME.  Come back to us
before the Pestilence reaches you and lays you dead like the
rest!"

He looked at me with an unearthly quiet in his face.  "Wait," he
said, "I shall come back.  The night when I met the lost Woman on
the highway was the night which set my life apart to be the
instrument of a Design that is yet unseen.  Here, lost in the
wilderness, or there, welcomed back in the land of my birth, I am
still walking on the dark road which leads me, and you, and the 
sister of your love and mine, to the unknown Retribution and the
inevitable End.  Wait and look.  The Pestilence which touches the
rest will pass ME."

I saw him again.  He was still in the forest, and the numbers of
his lost companions had dwindled to very few.  The temple was
gone, and the idols were gone--and in their place the figures of
dark, dwarfish men lurked murderously among the trees, with bows
in their hands, and arrows fitted to the string.  Once more I
feared for Walter, and cried out to warn him.  Once more he turned
to me, with the immovable quiet in his face.

"Another step," he said, "on the dark road.  Wait and look.  The
arrows that strike the rest will spare me."

I saw him for the third time in a wrecked ship, stranded on a
wild, sandy shore.  The overloaded boats were making away from him
for the land, and he alone was left to sink with the ship.  I
cried to him to hail the hindmost boat, and to make a last effort
for his life.  The quiet face looked at me in return, and the
unmoved voice gave me back the changeless reply.  "Another step on
the journey.  Wait and look.  The Sea which drowns the rest will
spare me."

I saw him for the last time.  He was kneeling by a tomb of white
marble, and the shadow of a veiled woman rose out of the grave
beneath and waited by his side.  The unearthly quiet of his face
had changed to an unearthly sorrow.  But the terrible certainty of
his words remained the same.  "Darker and darker," he said;
"farther and farther yet.  Death takes the good, the beautiful,
and the young--and spares me.  The Pestilence that wastes, the
Arrow that strikes, the Sea that drowns, the Grave that closes
over Love and Hope, are steps of my journey, and take me nearer
and nearer to the End."

My heart sank under a dread beyond words, under a grief beyond
tears.  The darkness closed round the pilgrim at the marble tomb--
closed round the veiled woman from the grave--closed round the
dreamer who looked on them.  I saw and heard no more.

I was aroused by a hand laid on my shoulder.  It was Laura's.

She had dropped on her knees by the side of the sofa.  Her face
was flushed and agitated, and her eyes met mine in a wild
bewildered manner.  I started the instant I saw her.

"What has happened?" I asked.  "What has frightened you?"

She looked round at the half-open door, put her lips close to my
ear, and answered in a whisper--

"Marian!--the figure at the lake--the footsteps last night--I've
just seen her! I've just spoken to her!"

"Who, for Heaven's sake?"

"Anne Catherick."

I was so startled by the disturbance in Laura's face and manner,
and so dismayed by the first waking impressions of my dream, that
I was not fit to bear the revelation which burst upon me when that
name passed her lips.  I could only stand rooted to the floor,
looking at her in breathless silence.

She was too much absorbed by what had happened to notice the
effect which her reply had produced on me.  "I have seen Anne
Catherick! I have spoken to Anne Catherick!" she repeated as if I
had not heard her.  "Oh, Marian, I have such things to tell you!
Come away--we may be interrupted here--come at once into my room."

With those eager words she caught me by the hand, and led me
through the library, to the end room on the ground floor, which
had been fitted up for her own especial use.  No third person,
except her maid, could have any excuse for surprising us here. 
She pushed me in before her, locked the door, and drew the chintz
curtains that hung over the inside.

The strange, stunned feeling which had taken possession of me
still remained.  But a growing conviction that the complications
which had long threatened to gather about her, and to gather about
me, had suddenly closed fast round us both, was now beginning to
penetrate my mind.  I could not express it in words--I could
hardly even realise it dimly in my own thoughts.  "Anne
Catherick!" I whispered to myself, with useless, helpless
reiteration--"Anne Catherick!"

Laura drew me to the nearest seat, an ottoman in the middle of the
room.  "Look!" she said, "look here!"--and pointed to the bosom of
her dress.

I saw, for the first time, that the lost brooch was pinned in its
place again.  There was something real in the sight of it,
something real in the touching of it afterwards, which seemed to
steady the whirl and confusion in my thoughts, and to help me to
compose myself.

"Where did you find your brooch?" The first words I could say to
her were the words which put that trivial question at that
important moment.

"SHE found it, Marian."

"Where?"

"On the floor of the boat-house.  Oh, how shall I begin--how shall
I tell you about it! She talked to me so strangely--she looked so
fearfully ill--she left me so suddenly!"

Her voice rose as the tumult of her recollections pressed upon her
mind.  The inveterate distrust which weighs, night and day, on my
spirits in this house, instantly roused me to warn her--just as
the sight of the brooch had roused me to question her, the moment
before.

"Speak low," I said.  "The window is open, and the garden path
runs beneath it.  Begin at the beginning, Laura.  Tell me, word
for word, what passed between that woman and you."

"Shall I close the window?"

"No, only speak low--only remember that Anne Catherick is a
dangerous subject under your husband's roof.  Where did you first
see her?"

"At the boat-house, Marian.  I went out, as you know, to find my
brooch, and I walked along the path through the plantation,
looking down on the ground carefully at every step.  In that way I
got on, after a long time, to the boat-house, and as soon as I was
inside it, I went on my knees to hunt over the floor.  I was still
searching with my back to the doorway, when I heard a soft,
strange voice behind me say, 'Miss Fairlie.'"

"Miss Fairlie!"

"Yes, my old name--the dear, familiar name that I thought I had
parted from for ever.  I started up--not frightened, the voice was
too kind and gentle to frighten anybody--but very much surprised. 
There, looking at me from the doorway, stood a woman, whose face I
never remembered to have seen before--"

"How was she dressed?"

"She had a neat, pretty white gown on, and over it a poor worn
thin dark shawl.  Her bonnet was of brown straw, as poor and worn
as the shawl.  I was struck by the difference between her gown and
the rest of her dress, and she saw that I noticed it.  'Don't look
at my bonnet and shawl,' she said, speaking in a quick,
breathless, sudden way; 'if I mustn't wear white, I don't care
what I wear.  Look at my gown as much as you please--I'm not
ashamed of that.' Very strange, was it not? Before I could say
anything to soothe her, she held out one of her hands, and I saw
my brooch in it.  I was so pleased and so grateful, that I went
quite close to her to say what I really felt.  'Are you thankful
enough to do me one little kindness?' she asked.  'Yes, indeed,' I
answered, 'any kindness in my power I shall be glad to show you.'
'Then let me pin your brooch on for you, now I have found it.' Her
request was so unexpected, Marian, and she made it with such
extraordinary eagerness, that I drew back a step or two, not well
knowing what to do.  'Ah!' she said, 'your mother would have let
me pin on the brooch.' There was something in her voice and her
look, as well as in her mentioning my mother in that reproachful
manner, which made me ashamed of my distrust. I took her hand with
the brooch in it, and put it up gently on the bosom of my dress. 
'You knew my mother?' I said.  'Was it very long ago? have I ever
seen you before?' Her hands were busy fastening the brooch: she
stopped and pressed them against my breast. 'You don't remember a
fine spring day at Limmeridge,' she said, 'and your mother walking
down the path that led to the school, with a little girl on each
side of her? I have had nothing else to think of since, and I
remember it.  You were one of the little girls, and I was the
other.  Pretty, clever Miss Fairlie, and poor dazed Anne Catherick
were nearer to each other then than they are now!'"

"Did you remember her, Laura, when she told you her name?"

"Yes, I remembered your asking me about Anne Catherick at
Limmeridge, and your saying that she had once been considered like
me."

"What reminded you of that, Laura?"

"SHE reminded me.  While I was looking at her, while she was very
close to me, it came over my mind suddenly that we were like each
other! Her face was pale and thin and weary--but the sight of it
startled me, as if it had been the sight of my own face in the
glass after a long illness.  The discovery--I don't know why--gave
me such a shock, that I was perfectly incapable of speaking to her
for the moment."

"Did she seem hurt by your silence?"

"I am afraid she was hurt by it.  'You have not got your mother's
face,' she said, 'or your mother's heart.  Your mother's face was
dark, and your mother's heart, Miss Fairlie, was the heart of an
angel.' 'I am sure I feel kindly towards you,' I said, 'though I
may not be able to express it as I ought.  Why do you call me Miss
Fairlie?----' 'Because I love the name of Fairlie and hate the
name of Glyde,' she broke out violently.  I had seen nothing like
madness in her before this, but I fancied I saw it now in her
eyes.  'I only thought you might not know I was married,' I said,
remembering the wild letter she wrote to me at Limmeridge, and
trying to quiet her.  She sighed bitterly, and turned away from
me.  'Not know you were married?' she repeated.  'I am here
BECAUSE you are married.  I am here to make atonement to you,
before I meet your mother in the world beyond the grave.' She drew
farther and farther away from me, till she was out of the boat-
house, and then she watched and listened for a little while.  When
she turned round to speak again, instead of coming back, she
stopped where she was, looking in at me, with a hand on each side
of the entrance.  'Did you see me at the lake last night?' she
said.  'Did you hear me following you in the wood? I have been
waiting for days together to speak to you alone--I have left the
only friend I have in the world, anxious and frightened about me--
I have risked being shut up again in the mad-house--and all for
your sake, Miss Fairlie, all for your sake.' Her words alarmed me,
Marian, and yet there was something in the way she spoke that made
me pity her with all my heart.  I am sure my pity must have been
sincere, for it made me bold enough to ask the poor creature to
come in, and sit down in the boat-house, by my side."

"Did she do so?"

"No.  She shook her head, and told me she must stop where she was,
to watch and listen, and see that no third person surprised us. 
And from first to last, there she waited at the entrance, with a
hand on each side of it, sometimes bending in suddenly to speak to
me, sometimes drawing back suddenly to look about her.  'I was
here yesterday,' she said, 'before it came dark, and I heard you,
and the lady with you, talking together.  I heard you tell her
about your husband.  I heard you say you had no influence to make
him believe you, and no influence to keep him silent.  Ah! I knew
what those words meant--my conscience told me while I was
listening.  Why did I ever let you marry him! Oh, my fear--my mad,
miserable, wicked fear!--'She covered up her face in her poor worn
shawl, and moaned and murmured to herself behind it.  I began to
be afraid she might break out into some terrible despair which
neither she nor I could master.  'Try to quiet yourself,' I said;
'try to tell me how you might have prevented my marriage.' She
took the shawl from her face, and looked at me vacantly.  'I ought
to have had heart enough to stop at Limmeridge,' she answered.  'I
ought never to have let the news of his coming there frighten me
away.  I ought to have warned you and saved you before it was too
late.  Why did I only have courage enough to write you that
letter? Why did I only do harm, when I wanted and meant to do
good? Oh, my fear--my mad, miserable, wicked fear! 'She repeated
those words again, and hid her face again in the end of her poor
worn shawl.  It was dreadful to see her, and dreadful to hear
her."

"Surely, Laura, you asked what the fear was which she dwelt on so
earnestly?"

"Yes, I asked that."

"And what did she say?"

"She asked me in return, if I should not be afraid of a man who
had shut me up in a mad-house, and who would shut me up again, if
he could? I said, 'Are you afraid still? Surely you would not be
here if you were afraid now?' 'No,' she said, 'I am not afraid
now.' I asked why not.  She suddenly bent forward into the boat-
house, and said, 'Can't you guess why?' I shook my head.  'Look at
me,' she went on.  I told her I was grieved to see that she looked
very sorrowful and very ill.  She smiled for the first time. 
'Ill?' she repeated; 'I'm dying.  You know why I'm not afraid of
him now.  Do you think I shall meet your mother in heaven? Will
she forgive me if I do?' I was so shocked and so startled, that I
could make no reply.  'I have been thinking of it,' she went on,
'all the time I have been in hiding from your husband, all the
time I lay ill.  My thoughts have driven me here--I want to make
atonement--I want to undo all I can of the harm I once did.' I
begged her as earnestly as I could to tell me what she meant.  She
still looked at me with fixed vacant eyes.  'SHALL I undo the
harm?' she said to herself doubtfully.  'You have friends to take
your part.  If YOU know his Secret, he will be afraid of you, he
won't dare use you as he used me.  He must treat you mercifully
for his own sake, if he is afraid of you and your friends.  And if
he treats you mercifully, and if I can say it was my doing----' I
listened eagerly for more, but she stopped at those words."

"You tried to make her go on?"

"I tried, but she only drew herself away from me again, and leaned
her face and arms against the side of the boat-house.  'Oh!' I
heard her say, with a dreadful, distracted tenderness in her
voice, 'oh! if I could only be buried with your mother! If I could
only wake at her side, when the angel's trumpet sounds, and the
graves give up their dead at the resurrection!'--Marian! I
trembled from head to foot--it was horrible to hear her.  'But
there is no hope of that,' she said, moving a little, so as to
look at me again, 'no hope for a poor stranger like me.  I shall
not rest under the marble cross that I washed with my own hands,
and made so white and pure for her sake.  Oh no! oh no! God's
mercy, not man's, will take me to her, where the wicked cease from
troubling and the weary are at rest.' She spoke those words
quietly and sorrowfully, with a heavy, hopeless sigh, and then
waited a little.  Her face was confused and troubled, she seemed
to be thinking, or trying to think.  'What was it I said just
now?' she asked after a while.  'When your mother is in my mind,
everything else goes out of it.  What was I saying? what was I
saying?' I reminded the poor creature, as kindly and delicately as
I could.  'Ah, yes, yes,' she said, still in a vacant, perplexed
manner.  'You are helpless with your wicked husband.  Yes.  And I
must do what I have come to do here--I must make it up to you for
having been afraid to speak out at a better time.' 'What IS it you
have to tell me?' I asked.  'The Secret that your cruel husband is
afraid of,' she answered.  'I once threatened him with the Secret,
and frightened him.  You shall threaten him with the Secret, and
frighten him too.' Her face darkened, and a hard, angry stare
fixed itself in her eyes.  She began waving her hand at me in a
vacant, unmeaning manner.  'My mother knows the Secret,' she said. 
'My mother has wasted under the Secret half her lifetime.  One
day, when I was grown up, she said something to ME.  And the next
day your husband----'"

"Yes! yes! Go on.  What did she tell you about your husband?"

"She stopped again, Marian, at that point----"

"And said no more?"

"And listened eagerly.  'Hush!' she whispered, still waving her
hand at me.  'Hush!' She moved aside out of the doorway, moved
slowly and stealthily, step by step, till I lost her past the edge
of the boat-house."

"Surely you followed her?"

"Yes, my anxiety made me bold enough to rise and follow her.  Just
as I reached the entrance, she appeared again suddenly, round the
side of the boat-house.  'The Secret,' I whispered to her--'wait
and tell me the Secret!' She caught hold of my arm, and looked at
me with wild frightened eyes.  'Not now,' she said, 'we are not
alone--we are watched.  Come here to-morrow at this time--by
yourself--mind--by yourself.' She pushed me roughly into the boat-
house again, and I saw her no more."

"Oh, Laura, Laura, another chance lost! If I had only been near
you she should not have escaped us.  On which side did you lose
sight of her?"

"On the left side, where the ground sinks and the wood is
thickest."

"Did you run out again? did you call after her?"

"How could I? I was too terrified to move or speak."

"But when you DID move--when you came out?"

"I ran back here, to tell you what had happened."

"Did you see any one, or hear any one, in the plantation?"

"No, it seemed to be all still and quiet when I passed through
it."

I waited for a moment to consider.  Was this third person,
supposed to have been secretly present at the interview, a
reality, or the creature of Anne Catherick's excited fancy? It was
impossible to determine.  The one thing certain was, that we had
failed again on the very brink of discovery--failed utterly and
irretrievably, unless Anne Catherick kept her appointment at the
boat-house for the next day.

"Are you quite sure you have told me everything that passed? Every
word that was said?" I inquired.

"I think so," she answered.  "My powers of memory, Marian, are not
like yours.  But I was so strongly impressed, so deeply
interested, that nothing of any importance can possibly have
escaped me."

"My dear Laura, the merest trifles are of importance where Anne
Catherick is concerned.  Think again.  Did no chance reference
escape her as to the place in which she is living at the present
time?"

"None that I can remember."

"Did she not mention a companion and friend--a woman named Mrs.
Clements?"

"Oh yes! yes! I forgot that.  She told me Mrs. Clements wanted
sadly to go with her to the lake and take care of her, and begged
and prayed that she would not venture into this neighbourhood
alone."

"Was that all she said about Mrs. Clements?"

"Yes, that was all."

"She told you nothing about the place in which she took refuge
after leaving Todd's Corner?"

"Nothing--I am quite sure."

"Nor where she has lived since? Nor what her illness had been?"

"No, Marian, not a word.  Tell me, pray tell me, what you think
about it.  I don't know what to think, or what to do next."

"You must do this, my love: You must carefully keep the
appointment at the boat-house to-morrow.  It is impossible to say
what interests may not depend on your seeing that woman again. 
You shall not be left to yourself a second time.  I will follow
you at a safe distance.  Nobody shall see me, but I will keep
within hearing of your voice, if anything happens.  Anne Catherick
has escaped Walter Hartright, and has escaped you.  Whatever
happens, she shall not escape ME."

Laura's eyes read mine attentively.

"You believe," she said, "in this secret that my husband is afraid
of? Suppose, Marian, it should only exist after all in Anne
Catherick's fancy? Suppose she only wanted to see me and to speak
to me, for the sake of old remembrances? Her manner was so
strange--I almost doubted her.  Would you trust her in other
things?"

"I trust nothing, Laura, but my own observation of your husband's
conduct.  I judge Anne Catherick's words by his actions, and I
believe there is a secret."

I said no more, and got up to leave the room Thoughts were
troubling me which I might have told her if we had spoken together
longer, and which it might have been dangerous for her to know. 
The influence of the terrible dream from which she had awakened me
hung darkly and heavily over every fresh impression which the
progress of her narrative produced on my mind.  I felt the ominous
future coming close, chilling me with an unutterable awe, forcing
on me the conviction of an unseen design in the long series of
complications which had now fastened round us.  I thought of
Hartright--as I saw him in the body when he said farewell; as I
saw him in the spirit in my dream--and I too began to doubt now
whether we were not advancing blindfold to an appointed and an
inevitable end.

Leaving Laura to go upstairs alone, I went out to look about me in
the walks near the house.  The circumstances under which Anne
Catherick had parted from her had made me secretly anxious to know
how Count Fosco was passing the afternoon, and had rendered me
secretly distrustful of the results of that solitary journey from
which Sir Percival had returned but a few hours since.

After looking for them in every direction and discovering nothing,
I returned to the house, and entered the different rooms on the
ground floor one after another.  They were all empty.  I came out
again into the hall, and went upstairs to return to Laura.  Madame
Fosco opened her door as I passed it in my way along the passage,
and I stopped to see if she could inform me of the whereabouts of
her husband and Sir Percival.  Yes, she had seen them both from
her window more than an hour since.  The Count had looked up with
his customary kindness, and had mentioned with his habitual
attention to her in the smallest trifles, that he and his friend
were going out together for a long walk.

For a long walk! They had never yet been in each other's company
with that object in my experience of them.  Sir Percival cared for
no exercise but riding, and the Count (except when he was polite
enough to be my escort) cared for no exercise at all.

When I joined Laura again, I found that she had called to mind in
my absence the impending question of the signature to the deed,
which, in the interest of discussing her interview with Anne
Catherick, we had hitherto overlooked.  Her first words when I saw
her expressed her surprise at the absence of the expected summons
to attend Sir Percival in the library.

"You may make your mind easy on that subject," I said.  "For the
present, at least, neither your resolution nor mine will be
exposed to any further trial.  Sir Percival has altered his plans--
the business of the signature is put off."

"Put off?" Laura repeated amazedly.  "Who told you so?"

"My authority is Count Fosco.  I believe it is to his interference
that we are indebted for your husband's sudden change of purpose."

"It seems impossible, Marian.  If the object of my signing was, as
we suppose, to obtain money for Sir Percival that he urgently
wanted, how can the matter be put off?"

"I think, Laura, we have the means at hand of setting that doubt
at rest. Have you forgotten the conversation that I heard between
Sir Percival and the lawyer as they were crossing the hall?"

"No, but I don't remember----"

"I do.  There were two alternatives proposed.  One was to obtain
your signature to the parchment.  The other was to gain time by
giving bills at three months.  The last resource is evidently the
resource now adopted, and we may fairly hope to be relieved from
our share in Sir Percival's embarrassments for some time to come."

"Oh, Marian, it sounds too good to be true!"

"Does it, my love? You complimented me on my ready memory not long
since, but you seem to doubt it now.  I will get my journal, and
you shall see if I am right or wrong."

I went away and got the book at once.

On looking back to the entry referring to the lawyer's visit, we
found that my recollection of the two alternatives presented was
accurately correct.  It was almost as great a relief to my mind as
to Laura's, to find that my memory had served me, on this
occasion, as faithfully as usual.  In the perilous uncertainty of
our present situation, it is hard to say what future interests may
not depend upon the regularity of the entries in my journal, and
upon the reliability of my recollection at the time when I make
them.

Laura's face and manner suggested to me that this last
consideration had occurred to her as well as to myself.  Anyway,
it is only a trifling matter, and I am almost ashamed to put it
down here in writing--it seems to set the forlornness of our
situation in such a miserably vivid light.  We must have little
indeed to depend on, when the discovery that my memory can still
be trusted to serve us is hailed as if it was the discovery of a
new friend!

The first bell for dinner separated us.  Just as it had done
ringing, Sir Percival and the Count returned from their walk.  We
heard the master of the house storming at the servants for being
five minutes late, and the master's guest interposing, as usual,
in the interests of propriety, patience, and peace.

*    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *

The evening has come and gone.  No extraordinary event has
happened.  But I have noticed certain peculiarities in the conduct
of Sir Percival and the Count, which have sent me to my bed
feeling very anxious and uneasy about Anne Catherick, and about
the results which to-morrow may produce.

I know enough by this time, to be sure, that the aspect of Sir
Percival which is the most false, and which, therefore, means the
worst, is his polite aspect.  That long walk with his friend had
ended in improving his manners, especially towards his wife.  To
Laura's secret surprise and to my secret alarm, he called her by
her Christian name, asked if she had heard lately from her uncle. 
inquired when Mrs. Vesey was to receive her invitation to
Blackwater, and showed her so many other little attentions that he
almost recalled the days of his hateful courtship at Limmeridge
House.  This was a bad sign to begin with, and I thought it more
ominous still that he should pretend after dinner to fall asleep
in the drawing-room, and that his eyes should cunningly follow
Laura and me when he thought we neither of us suspected him.  I
have never had any doubt that his sudden journey by himself took
him to Welmingham to question Mrs. Catherick--but the experience
of to-night has made me fear that the expedition was not
undertaken in vain, and that he has got the information which he
unquestionably left us to collect.  If I knew where Anne Catherick
was to be found, I would be up to-morrow with sunrise and warn
her.

While the aspect under which Sir Percival presented himself to-
night was unhappily but too familiar to me, the aspect under which
the Count appeared was, on the other hand, entirely new in my
experience of him.  He permitted me, this evening, to make his
acquaintance, for the first time, in the character of a Man of
Sentiment--of sentiment, as I believe, really felt, not assumed
for the occasion.

For instance, he was quiet and subdued--his eyes and his voice
expressed a restrained sensibility.  He wore (as if there was some
hidden connection between his showiest finery and his deepest
feeling) the most magnificent waistcoat he has yet appeared in--it
was made of pale sea-green silk, and delicately trimmed with fine
silver braid.  His voice sank into the tenderest inflections, his
smile expressed a thoughtful, fatherly admiration, whenever he
spoke to Laura or to me.  He pressed his wife's hand under the
table when she thanked him for trifling little attentions at
dinner.  He took wine with her.  "Your health and happiness, my
angel!" he said, with fond glistening eyes.  He ate little or
nothing, and sighed, and said "Good Percival!" when his friend
laughed at him.  After dinner, he took Laura by the hand, and
asked her if she would be "so sweet as to play to him." She
complied, through sheer astonishment.  He sat by the piano, with
his watch-chain resting in folds, like a golden serpent, on the
sea-green protuberance of his waistcoat.  His immense head lay
languidly on one side, and he gently beat time with two of his
yellow-white fingers.  He highly approved of the music, and
tenderly admired Laura's manner of playing--not as poor Hartright
used to praise it, with an innocent enjoyment of the sweet sounds,
but with a clear, cultivated, practical knowledge of the merits of
the composition, in the first place, and of the merits of the
player's touch in the second.  As the evening closed in, he begged
that the lovely dying light might not be profaned, just yet, by
the appearance of the lamps.  He came, with his horribly silent
tread, to the distant window at which I was standing, to be out of
his way and to avoid the very sight of him--he came to ask me to
support his protest against the lamps.  If any one of them could
only have burnt him up at that moment, I would have gone down to
the kitchen and fetched it myself.

"Surely you like this modest, trembling English twilight?" he said
softly.  "Ah! I love it.  I feel my inborn admiration of all that
is noble, and great, and good, purified by the breath of heaven on
an evening like this.  Nature has such imperishable charms, such
inextinguishable tenderness for me!--I am an old, fat man--talk
which would become your lips, Miss Halcombe, sounds like a
derision and a mockery on mine.  It is hard to be laughed at in my
moments of sentiment, as if my soul was like myself, old and
overgrown.  Observe, dear lady, what a light is dying on the
trees! Does it penetrate your heart, as it penetrates mine?"

He paused, looked at me, and repeated the famous lines of Dante on
the Evening-time, with a melody and tenderness which added a charm
of their own to the matchless beauty of the poetry itself.

"Bah!" he cried suddenly, as the last cadence of those noble
Italian words died away on his lips; "I make an old fool of
myself, and only weary you all! Let us shut up the window in our
bosoms and get back to the matter-of-fact world.  Percival! I
sanction the admission of the lamps.  Lady Glyde--Miss Halcombe--
Eleanor, my good wife--which of you will indulge me with a game at
dominoes?"

He addressed us all, but he looked especially at Laura.

She had learnt to feel my dread of offending him, and she accepted
his proposal.  It was more than I could have done at that moment. 
I could not have sat down at the same table with him for any
consideration.  His eyes seemed to reach my inmost soul through
the thickening obscurity of the twilight.  His voice trembled
along every nerve in my body, and turned me hot and cold
alternately.  The mystery and terror of my dream, which had
haunted me at intervals all through the evening, now oppressed my
mind with an unendurable foreboding and an unutterable awe.  I saw
the white tomb again, and the veiled woman rising out of it by
Hartright's side.  The thought of Laura welled up like a spring in
the depths of my heart, and filled it with waters of bitterness,
never, never known to it before.  I caught her by the hand as she
passed me on her way to the table, and kissed her as if that night
was to part us for ever.  While they were all gazing at me in
astonishment, I ran out through the low window which was open
before me to the ground--ran out to hide from them in the
darkness, to hide even from myself.


We separated that evening later than usual.  Towards mid-night the
summer silence was broken by the shuddering of a low, melancholy
wind among the trees.  We all felt the sudden chill in the
atmosphere, but the Count was the first to notice the stealthy
rising of the wind.  He stopped while he was lighting my candle 
for me, and held up his hand warningly--

"Listen!" he said.  "There will be a change to-morrow."



VII


June 19th.--The events of yesterday warned me to be ready, sooner
or later, to meet the worst. To-day is not yet at an end, and the
worst has come.

Judging by the closest calculation of time that Laura and I could
make, we arrived at the conclusion that Anne Catherick must have
appeared at the boat-house at half-past two o'clock on the
afternoon of yesterday.  I accordingly arranged that Laura should
just show herself at the luncheon-table to-day, and should then
slip out at the first opportunity, leaving me behind to preserve
appearances, and to follow her as soon as I could safely do so. 
This mode of proceeding, if no obstacles occurred to thwart us,
would enable her to be at the boat-house before half-past two, and
(when I left the table, in my turn) would take me to a safe
position in the plantation before three.

The change in the weather, which last night's wind warned us to
expect, came with the morning.  It was raining heavily when I got
up, and it continued to rain until twelve o'clock--when the clouds
dispersed, the blue sky appeared, and the sun shone again with the
bright promise of a fine afternoon.

My anxiety to know how Sir Percival and the Count would occupy the
early part of the day was by no means set at rest, so far as Sir
Percival was concerned, by his leaving us immediately after
breakfast, and going out by himself, in spite of the rain.  He
neither told us where he was going nor when we might expect him
back.  We saw him pass the breakfast-room window hastily, with his
high boots and his waterproof coat on--and that was all.

The Count passed the morning quietly indoors, some part of it in
the library, some part in the drawing-room, playing odds and ends
of music on the piano, and humming to himself.  Judging by
appearances, the sentimental side of his character was
persistently inclined to betray itself still.  He was silent and
sensitive, and ready to sigh and languish ponderously (as only fat
men CAN sigh and languish) on the smallest provocation.

Luncheon-time came and Sir Percival did not return.  The Count
took his friend's place at the table, plaintively devoured the
greater part of a fruit tart, submerged under a whole jugful of
cream, and explained the full merit of the achievement to us as
soon as he had done.  "A taste for sweets," he said in his softest
tones and his tenderest manner, "is the innocent taste of women
and children.  I love to share it with them--it is another bond,
dear ladies, between you and me."

Laura left the table in ten minutes' time.  I was sorely tempted
to accompany her.  But if we had both gone out together we must
have excited suspicion, and worse still, if we allowed Anne
Catherick to see Laura, accompanied by a second person who was a
stranger to her, we should in all probability forfeit her
confidence from that moment, never to regain it again.

I waited, therefore, as patiently as I could, until the servant
came in to clear the table.  When I quitted the room, there were
no signs, in the house or out of it, of Sir Percival's return.  I
left the Count with a piece of sugar between his lips, and the
vicious cockatoo scrambling up his waistcoat to get at it, while
Madame Fosco, sitting opposite to her husband, watched the
proceedings of his bird and himself as attentively as if she had
never seen anything of the sort before in her life.  On my way to
the plantation I kept carefully beyond the range of view from the
luncheon-room window.  Nobody saw me and nobody followed me.  It
was then a quarter to three o'clock by my watch.

Once among the trees I walked rapidly, until I had advanced more
than half-way through the plantation.  At that point I slackened
my pace and proceeded cautiously, but I saw no one, and heard no
voices.  By little and little I came within view of the back of
the boat-house--stopped and listened--then went on, till I was
close behind it, and must have heard any persons who were talking
inside.  Still the silence was unbroken--still far and near no
sign of a living creature appeared anywhere.

After skirting round by the back of the building, first on one
side and then on the other, and making no discoveries, I ventured
in front of it, and fairly looked in.  The place was empty.

I called, "Laura!"--at first softly, then louder and louder.  No
one answered and no one appeared.  For all that I could see and
hear, the only human creature in the neighbourhood of the lake and
the plantation was myself.

My heart began to beat violently, but I kept my resolution, and
searched, first the boat-house and then the ground in front of it,
for any signs which might show me whether Laura had really reached
the place or not.  No mark of her presence appeared inside the
building, but I found traces of her outside it, in footsteps on
the sand.

I detected the footsteps of two persons--large footsteps like a
man's, and small footsteps, which, by putting my own feet into
them and testing their size in that manner, I felt certain were
Laura's.  The ground was confusedly marked in this way just before
the boat-house.  Close against one side of it, under shelter of
the projecting roof, I discovered a little hole in the sand--a
hole artificially made, beyond a doubt.  I just noticed it, and
then turned away immediately to trace the footsteps as far as I
could, and to follow the direction in which they might lead me.

They led me, starting from the left-hand side of the boat-house,
along the edge of the trees, a distance, I should think, of
between two and three hundred yards, and then the sandy ground
showed no further trace of them.  Feeling that the persons whose
course I was tracking must necessarily have entered the plantation
at this point, I entered it too.  At first I could find no path,
but I discovered one afterwards, just faintly traced among the
trees, and followed it.  It took me, for some distance, in the
direction of the village, until I stopped at a point where another
foot-track crossed it.  The brambles grew thickly on either side
of this second path.  I stood looking down it, uncertain which way
to take next, and while I looked I saw on one thorny branch some
fragments of fringe from a woman's shawl.  A closer examination of
the fringe satisfied me that it had been torn from a shawl of
Laura's, and I instantly followed the second path.  It brought me
out at last, to my great relief, at the back of the house.  I say
to my great relief, because I inferred that Laura must, for some
unknown reason, have returned before me by this roundabout way.  I
went in by the court-yard and the offices.  The first person whom
I met in crossing the servants' hall was Mrs. Michelson, the
housekeeper.

"Do you know," I asked, "whether Lady Glyde has come in from her
walk or not?"

"My lady came in a little while ago with Sir Percival," answered
the housekeeper.  "I am afraid, Miss Halcombe, something very
distressing has happened."

My heart sank within me.  "You don't mean an accident?" I said
faintly.

"No, no--thank God, no accident.  But my lady ran up-stairs to her
own room in tears, and Sir Percival has ordered me to give Fanny
warning to leave in an hour's time."

Fanny was Laura's maid--a good affectionate girl who had been with
her for years--the only person in the house whose fidelity and
devotion we could both depend upon.

"Where is Fanny?" I inquired.

"In my room, Miss Halcombe.  The young woman is quite overcome,
and I told her to sit down and try to recover herself."

I went to Mrs. Michelson's room, and found Fanny in a corner, with
her box by her side, crying bitterly.

She could give me no explanation whatever of her sudden dismissal. 
Sir Percival had ordered that she should have a month's wages, in
place of a month's warning, and go.  No reason had been assigned--
no objection had been made to her conduct.  She had been forbidden
to appeal to her mistress, forbidden even to see her for a moment
to say good-bye.  She was to go without explanations or farewells,
and to go at once.

After soothing the poor girl by a few friendly words, I asked
where she proposed to sleep that night.  She replied that she
thought of going to the little inn in the village, the landlady of
which was a respectable woman, known to the servants at Blackwater
Park.  The next morning, by leaving early, she might get back to
her friends in Cumberland without stopping in London, where she
was a total stranger.

I felt directly that Fanny's departure offered us a safe means of
communication with London and with Limmeridge House, of which it
might be very important to avail ourselves.  Accordingly, I told
her that she might expect to hear from her mistress or from me in
the course of the evening, and that she might depend on our both
doing all that lay in our power to help her, under the trial of
leaving us for the present.  Those words said, I shook hands with
her and went upstairs.

The door which led to Laura's room was the door of an ante-chamber
opening on to the passage.  When I tried it, it was bolted on the
inside.

I knocked, and the door was opened by the same heavy, over-grown
housemaid whose lumpish insensibility had tried my patience so
severely on the day when I found the wounded dog.

I had, since that time, discovered that her name was Margaret
Porcher, and that she was the most awkward, slatternly, and
obstinate servant in the house.

On opening the door she instantly stepped out to the threshold,
and stood grinning at me in stolid silence.

"Why do you stand there?" I said.  "Don't you see that I want to
come in?"

"Ah, but you mustn't come in," was the answer, with another and a
broader grin still.

"How dare you talk to me in that way? Stand back instantly!"

She stretched out a great red hand and arm on each side of her, so
as to bar the doorway, and slowly nodded her addle head at me.

"Master's orders," she said, and nodded again.

I had need of all my self-control to warn me against contesting
the matter with HER, and to remind me that the next words I had to
say must be addressed to her master.  I turned my back on her, and
instantly went downstairs to find him.  My resolution to keep my
temper under all the irritations that Sir Percival could offer
was, by this time, as completely forgotten--I say so to my shame--
as if I had never made it.  It did me good, after all I had
suffered and suppressed in that house--it actually did me good to
feel how angry I was.

The drawing-room and the breakfast-room were both empty.  I went
on to the library, and there I found Sir Percival, the Count, and
Madame Fosco.  They were all three standing up, close together,
and Sir Percival had a little slip of paper in his hand.  As I
opened the door I heard the Count say to him, "No--a thousand
times over, no."

I walked straight up to him, and looked him full in the face.

"Am I to understand, Sir Percival, that your wife's room is a
prison, and that your housemaid is the gaoler who keeps it?" I
asked.

"Yes, that is what you are to understand," he answered.  "Take
care my gaoler hasn't got double duty to do--take care your room
is not a prison too."

"Take YOU care how you treat your wife, and how you threaten ME,"
I broke out in the heat of my anger.  "There are laws in England
to protect women from cruelty and outrage.  If you hurt a hair of
Laura's head, if you dare to interfere with my freedom, come what
may, to those laws I will appeal."

Instead of answering me he turned round to the Count.

"What did I tell you?" he asked.  "What do you say now?"

"What I said before," replied the Count--"No."

Even in the vehemence of my anger I felt his calm, cold, grey eyes
on my face.  They turned away from me as soon as he had spoken,
and looked significantly at his wife.  Madame Fosco immediately
moved close to my side, and in that position addressed Sir
Percival before either of us could speak again.

"Favour me with your attention for one moment," she said, in her
clear icily-suppressed tones.  "I have to thank you, Sir Percival,
for your hospitality, and to decline taking advantage of it any
longer.  I remain in no house in which ladies are treated as your
wife and Miss Halcombe have been treated here to-day!"

Sir Percival drew back a step, and stared at her in dead silence. 
The declaration he had just heard--a declaration which he well
knew, as I well knew, Madame Fosco would not have ventured to make
without her husband's permission--seemed to petrify him with
surprise.  The Count stood by, and looked at his wife with the
most enthusiastic admiration.

"She is sublime!" he said to himself.  He approached her while he
spoke, and drew her hand through his arm.  "I am at your service,
Eleanor," he went on, with a quiet dignity that I had never
noticed in him before.  "And at Miss Halcombe's service, if she
will honour me by accepting all the assistance I can offer her."

"Damn it! what do you mean?" cried Sir Percival, as the Count
quietly moved away with his wife to the door.

"At other times I mean what I say, but at this time I mean what my
wife says," replied the impenetrable Italian.  "We have changed
places, Percival, for once, and Madame Fosco's opinion is--mine."

Sir Percival crumpled up the paper in his hand, and pushing past
the Count, with another oath, stood between him and the door.

"Have your own way," he said, with baffled rage in his low, half-
whispering tones.  "Have your own way--and see what comes of it."
With those words he left the room.

Madame Fosco glanced inquiringly at her husband.  "He has gone
away very suddenly," she said.  "What does it mean?"

"It means that you and I together have brought the worst-tempered
man in all England to his senses," answered the Count.  "It means,
Miss Halcombe, that Lady Glyde is relieved from a gross indignity,
and you from the repetition of an unpardonable insult.  Suffer me
to express my admiration of your conduct and your courage at a
very trying moment."

"Sincere admiration," suggested Madame Fosco.

"Sincere admiration," echoed the Count.

I had no longer the strength of my first angry resistance to
outrage and injury to support me.  My heart-sick anxiety to see
Laura, my sense of my own helpless ignorance of what had happened
at the boat-house, pressed on me with an intolerable weight.  I
tried to keep up appearances by speaking to the Count and his wife
in the tone which they had chosen to adopt in speaking to me, but
the words failed on my lips--my breath came short and thick--my
eyes looked longingly, in silence, at the door.  The Count,
understanding my anxiety, opened it, went out, and pulled it to
after him.  At the same time Sir Percival's heavy step descended
the stairs.  I heard them whispering together outside, while
Madame Fosco was assuring me, in her calmest and most conventional
manner, that she rejoiced, for all our sakes, that Sir Percival's
conduct had not obliged her husband and herself to leave
Blackwater Park.  Before she had done speaking the whispering
ceased, the door opened, and the Count looked in.

"Miss Halcombe," he said, "I am happy to inform you that Lady
Glyde is mistress again in her own house.  I thought it might be
more agreeable to you to hear of this change for the better from
me than from Sir Percival, and I have therefore expressly returned
to mention it."

"Admirable delicacy!" said Madame Fosco, paying back her husband's
tribute of admiration with the Count's own coin, in the Count's
own manner.  He smiled and bowed as if he had received a formal
compliment from a polite stranger, and drew back to let me pass
out first.

Sir Percival was standing in the hall.  As I hurried to the stairs
I heard him call impatiently to the Count to come out of the
library.

"What are you waiting there for?" he said.  "I want to speak to
you."

"And I want to think a little by myself," replied the other. 
"Wait till later, Percival, wait till later."

Neither he nor his friend said any more.  I gained the top of the
stairs and ran along the passage.  In my haste and my agitation I
left the door of the ante-chamber open, but I closed the door of
the bedroom the moment I was inside it.

Laura was sitting alone at the far end of the room, her arms
resting wearily on a table, and her face hidden in her hands.  She
started up with a cry of delight when she saw me.

"How did you get here?" she asked.  "Who gave you leave? Not Sir
Percival?"

In my overpowering anxiety to hear what she had to tell me, I
could not answer her--I could only put questions on my side. 
Laura's eagerness to know what had passed downstairs proved,
however, too strong to be resisted.  She persistently repeated her
inquiries.

"The Count, of course," I answered impatiently.  "Whose influence
in the house----"

She stopped me with a gesture of disgust.

"Don't speak of him," she cried.  "The Count is the vilest
creature breathing! The Count is a miserable Spy----!"

Before we could either of us say another word we were alarmed by a
soft knocking at the door of the bedroom.

I had not yet sat down, and I went first to see who it was.  When
I opened the door Madame Fosco confronted me with my handkerchief
in her hand.

"You dropped this downstairs, Miss Halcombe," she said, "and I
thought I could bring it to you, as I was passing by to my own
room."

Her face, naturally pale, had turned to such a ghastly whiteness
that I started at the sight of it.  Her hands, so sure and steady
at all other times, trembled violently, and her eyes looked
wolfishly past me through the open door, and fixed on Laura.

She had been listening before she knocked! I saw it in her white
face, I saw it in her trembling hands, I saw it in her look at
Laura.

After waiting an instant she turned from me in silence, and slowly
walked away.

I closed the door again.  "Oh, Laura! Laura! We shall both rue the
day when you called the Count a Spy!"

"You would have called him so yourself, Marian, if you had known
what I know.  Anne Catherick was right.  There was a third person
watching us in the plantation yesterday, and that third person---"

"Are you sure it was the Count?"

"I am absolutely certain.  He was Sir Percival's spy--he was Sir
Percival's informer--he set Sir Percival watching and waiting, all
the morning through, for Anne Catherick and for me."

"Is Anne found? Did you see her at the lake?"

"No.  She has saved herself by keeping away from the place.  When
I got to the boat-house no one was there."

"Yes? Yes?"

"I went in and sat waiting for a few minutes.  But my restlessness
made me get up again, to walk about a little.  As I passed out I
saw some marks on the sand, close under the front of the boat-
house.  I stooped down to examine them, and discovered a word
written in large letters on the sand.  The word was--LOOK.

"And you scraped away the sand, and dug a hollow place in it?"

"How do you know that, Marian?"

"I saw the hollow place myself when I followed you to the boat-
house.  Go on--go on!"

"Yes, I scraped away the sand on the surface, and in a little
while I came to a strip of paper hidden beneath, which had writing
on it.  The writing was signed with Anne Catherick's initials.

"Where is it?"

"Sir Percival has taken it from me."

"Can you remember what the writing was? Do you think you can
repeat it to me?"

"In substance I can, Marian.  It was very short.  You would have
remembered it, word for word."

"Try to tell me what the substance was before we go any further."

She complied.  I write the lines down here exactly as she repeated
them to me.  They ran thus--


"I was seen with you, yesterday, by a tall, stout old man, and had
to run to save myself.  He was not quick enough on his feet to
follow me, and he lost me among the trees.  I dare not risk coming
back here to-day at the same time.  I write this, and hide it in
the sand, at six in the morning, to tell you so.  When we speak
next of your wicked husband's Secret we must speak safely, or not
at all.  Try to have patience.  I promise you shall see me again
and that soon.--A. C."


The reference to the "tall, stout old man" (the terms of which
Laura was certain that she had repeated to me correctly) left no
doubt as to who the intruder had been.  I called to mind that I
had told Sir Percival, in the Count's presence the day before,
that Laura had gone to the boat-house to look for her brooch.  In
all probability he had followed her there, in his officious way,
to relieve her mind about the matter of the signature, immediately
after he had mentioned the change in Sir Percival's plans to me in
the drawing-room.  In this case he could only have got to the
neighbourhood of the boat-house at the very moment when Anne
Catherick discovered him.  The suspiciously hurried manner in
which she parted from Laura had no doubt prompted his useless
attempt to follow her.  Of the conversation which had previously
taken place between them he could have heard nothing.  The
distance between the house and the lake, and the time at which he
left me in the drawing-room, as compared with the time at which
Laura and Anne Catherick had been speaking together, proved that
fact to us at any rate, beyond a doubt.

Having arrived at something like a conclusion so far, my next
great interest was to know what discoveries Sir Percival had made
after Count Fosco had given him his information.

"How came you to lose possession of the letter?" I asked.  "What
did you do with it when you found it in the sand?"

"After reading it once through," she replied, "I took it into the
boat-house with me to sit down and look over it a second time. 
While I was reading a shadow fell across the paper.  I looked up,
and saw Sir Percival standing in the doorway watching me."

"Did you try to hide the letter?"

"I tried, but he stopped me.  'You needn't trouble to hide that,'
he said.  'I happen to have read it.' I could only look at him
helplessly--I could say nothing.  'You understand?' he went on; 'I
have read it.  I dug it up out of the sand two hours since, and
buried it again, and wrote the word above it again, and left it
ready to your hands.  You can't lie yourself out of the scrape
now.  You saw Anne Catherick in secret yesterday, and you have got
her letter in your hand at this moment.  I have not caught HER
yet, but I have caught YOU.  Give me the letter.' He stepped close
up to me--I was alone with him, Marian--what could I do?--I gave
him the letter."

"What did he say when you gave it to him?"

"At first he said nothing.  He took me by the arm, and led me out
of the boat-house, and looked about him on all sides, as if he was
afraid of our being seen or heard.  Then he clasped his hand fast
round my arm, and whispered to me, 'What did Anne Catherick say to
you yesterday? I insist on hearing every word, from first to
last.'"

"Did you tell him?"

"I was alone with him, Marian--his cruel hand was bruising my arm--
what could I do?"

"Is the mark on your arm still? Let me see it."

"Why do you want to see it?"

"I want to see it, Laura, because our endurance must end, and our
resistance must begin to-day.  That mark is a weapon to strike him
with.  Let me see it now--I may have to swear to it at some future
time."

"Oh, Marian, don't look so--don't talk so! It doesn't hurt me
now!"

"Let me see it!"

She showed me the marks.  I was past grieving over them, past
crying over them, past shuddering over them.  They say we are
either better than men, or worse.  If the temptation that has
fallen in some women's way, and made them worse, had fallen in
mine at that moment   Thank God! my face betrayed nothing that his
wife could read.  The gentle, innocent, affectionate creature
thought I was frightened for her and sorry for her, and thought no
more.

"Don't think too seriously of it, Marian," she said simply, as she
pulled her sleeve down again.  "It doesn't hurt me now."

"I will try to think quietly of it, my love, for your sake.--Well!
well! And you told him all that Anne Catherick had said to you--
all that you told me?"

"Yes, all.  He insisted on it--I was alone with him--I could
conceal nothing."

"Did he say anything when you had done?"

"He looked at me, and laughed to himself in a mocking, bitter way. 
'I mean to have the rest out of you,' he said, 'do you hear?--the
rest.' I declared to him solemnly that I had told him everything I
knew.  'Not you,' he answered, 'you know more than you choose to
tell.  Won't you tell it? You shall! I'll wring it out of you at
home if I can't wring it out of you here.' He led me away by a
strange path through the plantation--a path where there was no
hope of our meeting you--and he spoke no more till we came within
sight of the house.  Then he stopped again, and said, 'Will you
take a second chance, if I give it to you? Will you think better
of it, and tell me the rest?' I could only repeat the same words I
had spoken before.  He cursed my obstinacy, and went on, and took
me with him to the house.  'You can't deceive me,' he said, 'you
know more than you choose to tell.  I'll have your secret out of
you, and I'll have it out of that sister of yours as well.  There
shall be no more plotting and whispering between you.  Neither you
nor she shall see each other again till you have confessed the
truth.  I'll have you watched morning, noon, and night, till you
confess the truth.' He was deaf to everything I could say.  He
took me straight upstairs into my own room.  Fanny was sitting
there, doing some work for me, and he instantly ordered her out. 
'I'll take good care YOU'RE not mixed up in the conspiracy,' he
said.  'You shall leave this house to-day.  If your mistress wants
a maid, she shall have one of my choosing.' He pushed me into the
room, and locked the door on me.  He set that senseless woman to
watch me outside, Marian! He looked and spoke like a madman.  You
may hardly understand it--he did indeed."

"I do understand it, Laura.  He is mad--mad with the terrors of a
guilty conscience.  Every word you have said makes me positively
certain that when Anne Catherick left you yesterday you were on
the eve of discovering a secret which might have been your vile
husband's ruin, and he thinks you HAVE discovered it.  Nothing you
can say or do will quiet that guilty distrust, and convince his
false nature of your truth.  I don't say this, my love, to alarm
you.  I say it to open your eyes to your position, and to convince
you of the urgent necessity of letting me act, as I best can, for
your protection while the chance is our own.  Count Fosco's
interference has secured me access to you to-day, but he may
withdraw that interference to-morrow.  Sir Percival has already
dismissed Fanny because she is a quick-witted girl, and devotedly
attached to you, and has chosen a woman to take her place who
cares nothing for your interests, and whose dull intelligence
lowers her to the level of the watch-dog in the yard.  It is
impossible to say what violent measures he may take next, unless
we make the most of our opportunities while we have them."

"What can we do, Marian? Oh, if we could only leave this house,
never to see it again!"

"Listen to me, my love, and try to think that you are not quite
helpless so long as I am here with you."

"I will think so--I do think so.  Don't altogether forget poor
Fanny in thinking of me.  She wants help and comfort too."

"I will not forget her.  I saw her before I came up here, and I
have arranged to communicate with her to-night.  Letters are not
safe in the post-bag at Blackwater Park, and I shall have two to
write to-day, in your interests, which must pass through no hands
but Fanny's."

"What letters?"

"I mean to write first, Laura, to Mr. Gilmore's partner, who has
offered to help us in any fresh emergency.  Little as I know of
the law, I am certain that it can protect a woman from such
treatment as that ruffian has inflicted on you to-day.  I will go
into no details about Anne Catherick, because I have no certain
information to give.  But the lawyer shall know of those bruises
on your arm, and of the violence offered to you in this room--he
shall, before I rest to-night!"

"But think of the exposure, Marian!"

"I am calculating on the exposure.  Sir Percival has more to dread
from it than you have.  The prospect of an exposure may bring him
to terms when nothing else will."

I rose as I spoke, but Laura entreated me not to leave her.  "You
will drive him to desperation," she said, "and increase our
dangers tenfold."

I felt the truth--the disheartening truth--of those words.  But I
could not bring myself plainly to acknowledge it to her.  In our
dreadful position there was no help and no hope for us but in
risking the worst.  I said so in guarded terms.  She sighed
bitterly, but did not contest the matter.  She only asked about
the second letter that I had proposed writing.  To whom was it to
be addressed?

"To Mr. Fairlie," I said.  "Your uncle is your nearest male
relative, and the head of the family.  He must and shall
interfere."

Laura shook her head sorrowfully.

"Yes, yes," I went on, "your uncle is a weak, selfish, worldly
man, I know, but he is not Sir Percival Glyde, and he has no such
friend about him as Count Fosco.  I expect nothing from his
kindness or his tenderness of feeling towards you or towards me,
but he will do anything to pamper his own indolence, and to secure
his own quiet.  Let me only persuade him that his interference at
this moment will save him inevitable trouble and wretchedness and
responsibility hereafter, and he will bestir himself for his own
sake.  I know how to deal with him, Laura--I have had some
practice."

"If you could only prevail on him to let me go back to Limmeridge
for a little while and stay there quietly with you, Marian, I
could be almost as happy again as I was before I was married!"

Those words set me thinking in a new direction.  Would it be
possible to place Sir Percival between the two alternatives of
either exposing himself to the scandal of legal interference on
his wife's behalf, or of allowing her to be quietly separated from
him for a time under pretext of a visit to her uncle's house? And
could he, in that case, be reckoned on as likely to accept the
last resource? It was doubtful--more than doubtful.  And yet,
hopeless as the experiment seemed, surely it was worth trying.  I
resolved to try it in sheer despair of knowing what better to do.

"Your uncle shall know the wish you have just expressed," I said,
"and I will ask the lawyer's advice on the subject as well.  Good
may come of it--and will come of it, I hope."

Saying that I rose again, and again Laura tried to make me resume
my seat.

"Don't leave me," she said uneasily.  "My desk is on that table. 
You can write here."

It tried me to the quick to refuse her, even in her own interests. 
But we had been too long shut up alone together already.  Our
chance of seeing each other again might entirely depend on our not
exciting any fresh suspicions.  It was full time to show myself,
quietly and unconcernedly, among the wretches who were at that
very moment, perhaps, thinking of us and talking of us downstairs. 
I explained the miserable necessity to Laura, and prevailed on her
to recognise it as I did.

"I will come back again, love, in an hour or less," I said.  "The
worst is over for to-day.  Keep yourself quiet and fear nothing."

"Is the key in the door, Marian? Can I lock it on the inside?"

"Yes, here is the key.  Lock the door, and open it to nobody until
I come upstairs again."

I kissed her and left her.  It was a relief to me as I walked away
to hear the key turned in the lock, and to know that the door was
at her own command.



VIII



June 19th.--I had only got as far as the top of the stairs when
the locking of Laura's door suggested to me the precaution of also
locking my own door, and keeping the key safely about me while I
was out of the room.  My journal was already secured with other
papers in the table drawer, but my writing materials were left
out.  These included a seal bearing the common device of two doves
drinking out of the same cup, and some sheets of blotting-paper,
which had the impression on them of the closing lines of my
writing in these pages traced during the past night.  Distorted by
the suspicion which had now become a part of myself, even such
trifles as these looked too dangerous to be trusted without a
guard--even the locked table drawer seemed to be not sufficiently
protected in my absence until the means of access to it had been
carefully secured as well.

I found no appearance of any one having entered the room while I
had been talking with Laura.  My writing materials (which I had
given the servant instructions never to meddle with) were
scattered over the table much as usual.  The only circumstance in
connection with them that at all struck me was that the seal lay
tidily in the tray with the pencils and the wax.  It was not in my
careless habits (I am sorry to say) to put it there, neither did I
remember putting it there.  But as I could not call to mind, on
the other hand, where else I had thrown it down, and as I was also
doubtful whether I might not for once have laid it mechanically in
the right place, I abstained from adding to the perplexity with
which the day's events had filled my mind by troubling it afresh
about a trifle.  I locked the door, put the key in my pocket, and
went downstairs.

Madame Fosco was alone in the hall looking at the weather-glass.

"Still falling," she said.  "I am afraid we must expect more
rain."

Her face was composed again to its customary expression and its
customary colour.  But the hand with which she pointed to the dial
of the weather-glass still trembled.

Could she have told her husband already that she had overheard
Laura reviling him, in my company, as a " spy?"  My strong
suspicion that she must have told him, my irresistible dread (all
the more overpowering from its very vagueness) of the consequences
which might follow, my fixed conviction, derived from various
little self-betrayals which women notice in each other, that
Madame Fosco, in spite of her well-assumed external civility, had
not forgiven her niece for innocently standing between her and the
legacy of ten thousand pounds--all rushed upon my mind together,
all impelled me to speak in the vain hope of using my own
influence and my own powers of persuasion for the atonement of
Laura's offence.

"May I trust to your kindness to excuse me, Madame Fosco, if I
venture to speak to you on an exceedingly painful subject?"

She crossed her hands in front of her and bowed her head solemnly,
without uttering a word, and without taking her eyes off mine for
a moment.

"When you were so good as to bring me back my handkerchief," I
went on, "I am very, very much afraid you must have accidentally
heard Laura say something which I am unwilling to repeat, and
which I will not attempt to defend.  I will only venture to hope
that you have not thought it of sufficient importance to be
mentioned to the Count?"

"I think it of no importance whatever," said Madame Fosco sharply
and suddenly.  "But," she added, resuming her icy manner in a
moment, "I have no secrets from my husband even in trifles.  When
he noticed just now that I looked distressed, it was my painful
duty to tell him why I was distressed, and I frankly acknowledge
to you, Miss Halcombe, that I HAVE told him."

I was prepared to hear it, and yet she turned me cold all over
when she said those words.

"Let me earnestly entreat you, Madame Fosco--let me earnestly
entreat the Count--to make some allowances for the sad position in
which my sister is placed.  She spoke while she was smarting under
the insult and injustice inflicted on her by her husband, and she
was not herself when she said those rash words.  May I hope that
they will be considerately and generously forgiven?"

"Most assuredly," said the Count's quiet voice behind me.  He had
stolen on us with his noiseless tread and his book in his hand
from the library.

"When Lady Glyde said those hasty words," he went on, "she did me
an injustice which I lament--and forgive.  Let us never return to
the subject, Miss Halcombe; let us all comfortably combine to
forget it from this moment."

"You are very kind," I said, "you relieve me inexpressibly "

I tried to continue, but his eyes were on me; his deadly smile
that hides everything was set, hard, and unwavering on his broad,
smooth face.  My distrust of his unfathomable falseness, my sense
of my own degradation in stooping to conciliate his wife and
himself, so disturbed and confused me, that the next words failed
on my lips, and I stood there in silence.

"I beg you on my knees to say no more, Miss Halcombe--I am truly
shocked that you should have thought it necessary to say so much."
With that polite speech he took my hand--oh, how I despise myself!
oh, how little comfort there is even in knowing that I submitted
to it for Laura's sake!--he took my hand and put it to his
poisonous lips.  Never did I know all my horror of him till then. 
That innocent familiarity turned my blood as if it had been the
vilest insult that a man could offer me.  Yet I hid my disgust
from him--I tried to smile--I, who once mercilessly despised
deceit in other women, was as false as the worst of them, as false
as the Judas whose lips had touched my hand.

I could not have maintained my degrading self-control--it is all
that redeems me in my own estimation to know that I could not--if
he had still continued to keep his eyes on my face.  His wife's
tigerish jealousy came to my rescue and forced his attention away
from me the moment he possessed himself of my hand.  Her cold blue
eyes caught light, her dull white cheeks flushed into bright
colour, she looked years younger than her age in an instant.

"Count!" she said.  "Your foreign forms of politeness are not
understood by Englishwomen."

"Pardon me, my angel! The best and dearest Englishwoman in the
world understands them." With those words he dropped my hand and
quietly raised his wife's hand to his lips in place of it.

I ran back up the stairs to take refuge in my own room.  If there
had been time to think, my thoughts, when I was alone again, would
have caused me bitter suffering.  But there was no time to think. 
Happily for the preservation of my calmness and my courage there
was time for nothing but action.

The letters to the lawyer and to Mr. Fairlie were still to be
written, and I sat down at once without a moment's hesitation to
devote myself to them.

There was no multitude of resources to perplex me--there was
absolutely no one to depend on, in the first instance, but myself. 
Sir Percival had neither friends nor relatives in the
neighbourhood whose intercession I could attempt to employ.  He
was on the coldest terms--in some cases on the worst terms with
the families of his own rank and station who lived near him.  We
two women had neither father nor brother to come to the house and
take our parts.  There was no choice but to write those two
doubtful letters, or to put Laura in the wrong and myself in the
wrong, and to make all peaceable negotiation in the future
impossible by secretly escaping from Blackwater Park.  Nothing but
the most imminent personal peril could justify our taking that
second course.  The letters must be tried first, and I wrote them.

I said nothing to the lawyer about Anne Catherick, because (as I
had already hinted to Laura) that topic was connected with a
mystery which we could not yet explain, and which it would
therefore be useless to write about to a professional man.  I left
my correspondent to attribute Sir Percival's disgraceful conduct,
if he pleased, to fresh disputes about money matters, and simply
consulted him on the possibility of taking legal proceedings for
Laura's protection in the event of her husband's refusal to allow
her to leave Blackwater Park for a time and return with me to
Limmeridge.  I referred him to Mr. Fairlie for the details of this
last arrangement--I assured him that I wrote with Laura's
authority--and I ended by entreating him to act in her name to the
utmost extent of his power and with the least possible loss of
time.

The letter to Mr. Fairlie occupied me next.  I appealed to him on
the terms which I had mentioned to Laura as the most likely to
make him bestir himself; I enclosed a copy of my letter to the
lawyer to show him how serious the case was, and I represented our
removal to Limmeridge as the only compromise which would prevent
the danger and distress of Laura's present position from
inevitably affecting her uncle as well as herself at no very
distant time.

When I had done, and had sealed and directed the two envelopes, I
went back with the letters to Laura's room, to show her that they
were written.

"Has anybody disturbed you?" I asked, when she opened the door to
me.

"Nobody has knocked," she replied.  "But I heard some one in the
outer room."

"Was it a man or a woman?"

"A woman.  I heard the rustling of her gown."

"A rustling like silk?"

"Yes, like silk."

Madame Fosco had evidently been watching outside.  The mischief
she might do by herself was little to be feared.  But the mischief
she might do, as a willing instrument in her husband's hands, was
too formidable to be overlooked.

"What became of the rustling of the gown when you no longer heard
it in the ante-room?" I inquired.  "Did you hear it go past your
wall, along the passage?"

"Yes.  I kept still and listened, and just heard it."

"Which way did it go?"

"Towards your room."

I considered again.  The sound had not caught my ears.  But I was
then deeply absorbed in my letters, and I write with a heavy hand
and a quill pen, scraping and scratching noisily over the paper. 
It was more likely that Madame Fosco would hear the scraping of my
pen than that I should hear the rustling of her dress.  Another
reason (if I had wanted one) for not trusting my letters to the
post-bag in the hall.

Laura saw me thinking.  "More difficulties!" she said wearily;
"more difficulties and more dangers!"

"No dangers," I replied.  "Some little difficulty, perhaps.  I am
thinking of the safest way of putting my two letters into Fanny's
hands."

"You have really written them, then? Oh, Marian, run no risks--
pray, pray run no risks!"

"No, no--no fear.  Let me see--what o'clock is it now?"

It was a quarter to six.  There would be time for me to get to the
village inn, and to come back again before dinner.  If I waited
till the evening I might find no second opportunity of safely
leaving the house.

"Keep the key turned in the lock.  Laura," I said, "and don't be
afraid about me.  If you hear any inquiries made, call through the
door, and say that I am gone out for a walk."

"When shall you be back?"

"Before dinner, without fail.  Courage, my love.  By this time to-
morrow you will have a clear-headed, trustworthy man acting for
your good.  Mr. Gilmore's partner is our next best friend to Mr.
Gilmore himself."

A moment's reflection, as soon as I was alone, convinced me that I
had better not appear in my walking-dress until I had first
discovered what was going on in the lower part of the house.  I
had not ascertained yet whether Sir Percival was indoors or out.

The singing of the canaries in the library, and the smell of
tobacco-smoke that came through the door, which was not closed,
told me at once where the Count was.  I looked over my shoulder as
I passed the doorway, and saw to my surprise that he was
exhibiting the docility of the birds in his most engagingly polite
manner to the housekeeper.  He must have specially invited her to
see them--for she would never have thought of going into the
library of her own accord.  The man's slightest actions had a
purpose of some kind at the bottom of every one of them.  What
could be his purpose here?

It was no time then to inquire into his motives.  I looked about
for Madame Fosco next, and found her following her favourite
circle round and round the fish-pond.

I was a little doubtful how she would meet me, after the outbreak
of jealousy of which I had been the cause so short a time since. 
But her husband had tamed her in the interval, and she now spoke
to me with the same civility as usual.  My only object in
addressing myself to her was to ascertain if she knew what had
become of Sir Percival.  I contrived to refer to him indirectly,
and after a little fencing on either side she at last mentioned
that he had gone out.

"Which of the horses has he taken?" I asked carelessly.

"None of them," she replied.  "He went away two hours since on
foot.  As I understood it, his object was to make fresh inquiries
about the woman named Anne Catherick.  He appears to be
unreasonably anxious about tracing her.  Do you happen to know if
she is dangerously mad, Miss Halcombe?"

"I do not, Countess."

"Are you going in?"

"Yes, I think so.  I suppose it will soon be time to dress for
dinner."

We entered the house together.  Madame Fosco strolled into the
library, and closed the door.  I went at once to fetch my hat and
shawl.  Every moment was of importance, if I was to get to Fanny
at the inn and be back before dinner.

When I crossed the hall again no one was there, and the singing of
the birds in the library had ceased.  I could not stop to make any
fresh investigations.  I could only assure myself that the way was
clear, and then leave the house with the two letters safe in my
pocket.

On my way to the village I prepared myself for the possibility of
meeting Sir Percival.  As long as I had him to deal with alone I
felt certain of not losing my presence of mind.  Any woman who is
sure of her own wits is a match at any time for a man who is not
sure of his own temper.  I had no such fear of Sir Percival as I
had of the Count.  Instead of fluttering, it had composed me, to
hear of the errand on which he had gone out.  While the tracing of
Anne Catherick was the great anxiety that occupied him, Laura and
I might hope for some cessation of any active persecution at his
hands.  For our sakes now, as well as for Anne's, I hoped and
prayed fervently that she might still escape him.

I walked on as briskly as the heat would let me till I reached the
cross-road which led to the village, looking back from time to
time to make sure that I was not followed by any one.

Nothing was behind me all the way but an empty country waggon. 
The noise made by the lumbering wheels annoyed me, and when I
found that the waggon took the road to the village, as well as
myself, I stopped to let it go by and pass out of hearing.  As I
looked toward it, more attentively than before, I thought I
detected at intervals the feet of a man walking close behind it,
the carter being in front, by the side of his horses.  The part of
the cross-road which I had just passed over was so narrow that the
waggon coming after me brushed the trees and thickets on either
side, and I had to wait until it went by before I could test the
correctness of my impression.  Apparently that impression was
wrong, for when the waggon had passed me the road behind it was
quite clear.

I reached the inn without meeting Sir Percival, and without
noticing anything more, and was glad to find that the landlady had
received Fanny with all possible kindness.  The girl had a little
parlour to sit in, away from the noise of the taproom, and a clean
bedchamber at the top of the house.  She began crying again at the
sight of me, and said, poor soul, truly enough, that it was
dreadful to feel herself turned out into the world as if she had
committed some unpardonable fault, when no blame could be laid at
her door by anybody--not even by her master, who had sent her
away.

"Try to make the best of it, Fanny," I said.  "Your mistress and I
will stand your friends, and will take care that your character
shall not suffer.  Now, listen to me.  I have very little time to
spare, and I am going to put a great trust in your hands.  I wish
you to take care of these two letters.  The one with the stamp on
it you are to put into the post when you reach London to-morrow. 
The other, directed to Mr. Fairlie, you are to deliver to him
yourself as soon as you get home.  Keep both the letters about you
and give them up to no one.  They are of the last importance to
your mistress's interests."

Fanny put the letters into the bosom of her dress.  "There they
shall stop, miss," she said, "till I have done what you tell me."

"Mind you are at the station in good time to-morrow morning," I
continued.  "And when you see the housekeeper at Limmeridge give
her my compliments, and say that you are in my service until Lady
Glyde is able to take you back.  We may meet again sooner than you
think.  So keep a good heart, and don't miss the seven o'clock
train."

"Thank you, miss--thank you kindly.  It gives one courage to hear
your voice again.  Please to offer my duty to my lady, and say I
left all the things as tidy as I could in the time.  Oh, dear!
dear! who will dress her for dinner to-day? It really breaks my
heart, miss, to think of it."


When I got back to the house I had only a quarter of an hour to
spare to put myself in order for dinner, and to say two words to
Laura before I went downstairs.

"The letters are in Fanny's hands," I whispered to her at the
door.  "Do you mean to join us at dinner?"

"Oh, no, no--not for the world."

"Has anything happened? Has any one disturbed you?"

"Yes--just now--Sir Percival----"

"Did he come in?"

"No, he frightened me by a thump on the door outside.  I said,
'Who's there?' 'You know,' he answered.  'Will you alter your
mind, and tell me the rest? You shall! Sooner or later I'll wring
it out of you.  You know where Anne Catherick is at this moment.'
'Indeed, indeed,' I said, 'I don't.' 'You do!' he called back. 
'I'll crush your obstinacy--mind that!--I'll wring it out of you!'
He went away with those words--went away, Marian, hardly five
minutes ago."

He had not found Anne! We were safe for that night--he had not
found her yet.

"You are going downstairs, Marian? Come up again in the evening."

"Yes, yes.  Don't be uneasy if I am a little late--I must be
careful not to give offence by leaving them too soon."

The dinner-bell rang and I hastened away.

Sir Percival took Madame Fosco into the dining-room, and the Count
gave me his arm.  He was hot and flushed, and was not dressed with
his customary care and completeness.  Had he, too, been out before
dinner, and been late in getting back? or was he only suffering
from the heat a little more severely than usual?

However this might be, he was unquestionably troubled by some
secret annoyance or anxiety, which, with all his powers of
deception, he was not able entirely to conceal.  Through the whole
of dinner he was almost as silent as Sir Percival himself, and he, 
every now and then, looked at his wife with an expression of
furtive uneasiness which was quite new in my experience of him. 
The one social obligation which he seemed to be self-possessed
enough to perform as carefully as ever was the obligation of being
persistently civil and attentive to me.  What vile object he has
in view I cannot still discover, but be the design what it may,
invariable politeness towards myself, invariable humility towards
Laura, and invariable suppression (at any cost) of Sir Percival's
clumsy violence, have been the means he has resolutely and
impenetrably used to get to his end ever since he set foot in this
house.  I suspected it when he first interfered in our favour, on
the day when the deed was produced in the library, and I feel
certain of it now.

When Madame Fosco and I rose to leave the table, the Count rose
also to accompany us back to the drawing-room.

"What are you going away for?" asked Sir Percival--"I mean YOU,
Fosco."

"I am going away because I have had dinner enough, and wine
enough," answered the Count.  "Be so kind, Percival, as to make
allowances for my foreign habit of going out with the ladies, as
well as coming in with them."

"Nonsense! Another glass of claret won't hurt you.  Sit down again
like an Englishman.  I want half an hour's quiet talk with you
over our wine."

"A quiet talk, Percival, with all my heart, but not now, and not
over the wine.  Later in the evening, if you please--later in the
evening."

"Civil!" said Sir Percival savagely.  "Civil behaviour, upon my
soul, to a man in his own house!"

I had more than once seen him look at the Count uneasily during
dinner-time, and had observed that the Count carefully abstained
from looking at him in return.  This circumstance, coupled with
the host's anxiety for a little quiet talk over the wine, and the
guest's obstinate resolution not to sit down again at the table,
revived in my memory the request which Sir Percival had vainly
addressed to his friend earlier in the day to come out of the
library and speak to him.  The Count had deferred granting that
private interview, when it was first asked for in the afternoon,
and had again deferred granting it, when it was a second time
asked for at the dinner-table.  Whatever the coming subject of
discussion between them might be, it was clearly an important
subject in Sir Percival's estimation--and perhaps (judging from
his evident reluctance to approach it) a dangerous subject as
well, in the estimation of the Count.

These considerations occurred to me while we were passing from the
dining-room to the drawing-room.  Sir Percival's angry commentary
on his friend's desertion of him had not produced the slightest
effect.  The Count obstinately accompanied us to the tea-table--
waited a minute or two in the room--went out into the hall--and
returned with the post-bag in his hands.  It was then eight
o'clock--the hour at which the letters were always despatched from
Blackwater Park.

"Have you any letter for the post, Miss Halcombe?" he asked,
approaching me with the bag.

I saw Madame Fosco, who was making the tea, pause, with the sugar-
tongs in her hand, to listen for my answer.

"No, Count, thank you.  No letters to-day."

He gave the bag to the servant, who was then in the room; sat down
at the piano, and played the air of the lively Neapolitan street-
song, "La mia Carolina," twice over.  His wife, who was usually
the most deliberate of women in all her movements, made the tea as
quickly as I could have made it myself--finished her own cup in
two minutes, and quietly glided out of the room.

I rose to follow her example--partly because I suspected her of
attempting some treachery upstairs with Laura, partly because I
was resolved not to remain alone in the same room with her
husband.

Before I could get to the door the Count stopped me, by a request
for a cup of tea.  I gave him the cup of tea, and tried a second
time to get away.  He stopped me again--this time by going back to
the piano, and suddenly appealing to me on a musical question in
which he declared that the honour of his country was concerned.

I vainly pleaded my own total ignorance of music, and total want
of taste in that direction.  He only appealed to me again with a
vehemence which set all further protest on my part at defiance. 
"The English and the Germans (he indignantly declared) were always
reviling the Italians for their inability to cultivate the higher
kinds of music.  We were perpetually talking of our Oratorios, and
they were perpetually talking of their Symphonies.  Did we forget
and did they forget his immortal friend and countryman, Rossini?
What was Moses in Egypt but a sublime oratorio, which was acted on
the stage instead of being coldly sung in a concert-room? What was
the overture to Guillaume Tell but a symphony under another name?
Had I heard Moses in Egypt? Would I listen to this, and this, and
this, and say if anything more sublimely sacred and grand had ever
been composed by mortal man?"--And without waiting for a word of
assent or dissent on my part, looking me hard in the face all the
time, he began thundering on the piano, and singing to it with
loud and lofty enthusiasm--only interrupting himself, at
intervals, to announce to me fiercely the titles of the different
pieces of music: "Chorus of Egyptians in the Plague of Darkness,
Miss Halcombe!"--"Recitativo of Moses with the tables of the
Law."--"Prayer of Israelites, at the passage of the Red Sea.  Aha!
Aha! Is that sacred? is that sublime?" The piano trembled under
his powerful hands, and the teacups on the table rattled, as his
big bass voice thundered out the notes, and his heavy foot beat
time on the floor.

There was something horrible--something fierce and devilish--in
the outburst of his delight at his own singing and playing, and in
the triumph with which he watched its effect upon me as I shrank
nearer and nearer to the door.  I was released at last, not by my
own efforts, but by Sir Percival's interposition.  He opened the
dining-room door, and called out angrily to know what "that
infernal noise" meant.  The Count instantly got up from the piano. 
"Ah! if Percival is coming," he said, "harmony and melody are both
at an end.  The Muse of Music, Miss Halcombe, deserts us in
dismay, and I, the fat old minstrel, exhale the rest of my
enthusiasm in the open air!" He stalked out into the verandah, put
his hands in his pockets, and resumed the Recitativo of Moses,
sotto voce, in the garden.

I heard Sir Percival call after him from the dining-room window. 
But he took no notice--he seemed determined not to hear.  That
long-deferred quiet talk between them was still to be put off, was
still to wait for the Count's absolute will and pleasure.

He had detained me in the drawing-room nearly half an hour from
the time when his wife left us.  Where had she been, and what had
she been doing in that interval?

I went upstairs to ascertain, but I made no discoveries, and when
I questioned Laura, I found that she had not heard anything. 
Nobody had disturbed her, no faint rustling of the silk dress had
been audible, either in the ante-room or in the passage.

It was then twenty minutes to nine.  After going to my room to get
my journal, I returned, and sat with Laura, sometimes writing,
sometimes stopping to talk with her.  Nobody came near us, and
nothing happened.  We remained together till ten o'clock.  I then
rose, said my last cheering words, and wished her good-night.  She
locked her door again after we had arranged that I should come in
and see her the first thing in the morning.

I had a few sentences more to add to my diary before going to bed
myself, and as I went down again to the drawing-room after leaving
Laura for the last time that weary day, I resolved merely to show
myself there, to make my excuses, and then to retire an hour
earlier than usual for the night.

Sir Percival, and the Count and his wife, were sitting together. 
Sir Percival was yawning in an easy-chair, the Count was reading,
Madame Fosco was fanning herself.  Strange to say, HER face was
flushed now.  She, who never suffered from the heat, was most
undoubtedly suffering from it to-night.

"I am afraid, Countess, you are not quite so well as usual?" I
said.

"The very remark I was about to make to you," she replied.  "You
are looking pale, my dear."

My dear! It was the first time she had ever addressed me with that
familiarity! There was an insolent smile too on her face when she
said the words.

"I am suffering from one of my bad headaches," I answered coldly.

"Ah, indeed? Want of exercise, I suppose? A walk before dinner
would have been just the thing for you." She referred to the
"walk" with a strange emphasis.  Had she seen me go out? No matter
if she had.  The letters were safe now in Fanny's hands.

"Come and have a smoke, Fosco," said Sir Percival, rising, with
another uneasy look at his friend.

"With pleasure, Percival, when the ladies have gone to bed,"
replied the Count.

"Excuse me, Countess, if I set you the example of retiring," I
said.  "The only remedy for such a headache as mine is going to
bed."

I took my leave.  There was the same insolent smile on the woman's
face when I shook hands with her.  Sir Percival paid no attention
to me.  He was looking impatiently at Madame Fosco, who showed no
signs of leaving the room with me.  The Count smiled to himself
behind his book.  There was yet another delay to that quiet talk
with Sir Percival--and the Countess was the impediment this time.



IX


June 19th.--Once safely shut into my own room, I opened these
pages, and prepared to go on with that part of the day's record
which was still left to write.

For ten minutes or more I sat idle, with the pen in my hand,
thinking over the events of the last twelve hours.  When I at last
addressed myself to my task, I found a difficulty in proceeding
with it which I had never experienced before.  In spite of my
efforts to fix my thoughts on the matter in hand, they wandered
away with the strangest persistency in the one direction of Sir
Percival and the Count, and all the interest which I tried to
concentrate on my journal centred instead in that private
interview between them which had been put off all through the day,
and which was now to take place in the silence and solitude of the
night.

In this perverse state of my mind, the recollection of what had
passed since the morning would not come back to me, and there was
no resource but to close my journal and to get away from it for a
little while.

I opened the door which led from my bedroom into my sitting-room,
and having passed through, pulled it to again, to prevent any
accident in case of draught with the candle left on the dressing-
table.  My sitting-room window was wide open, and I leaned out
listlessly to look at the night.

It was dark and quiet.  Neither moon nor stars were visible. 
There was a smell like rain in the still, heavy air, and I put my
hand out of window.  No.  The rain was only threatening, it had
not come yet.

I remained leaning on the window-sill for nearly a quarter of an
hour, looking out absently into the black darkness, and hearing
nothing, except now and then the voices of the servants, or the
distant sound of a closing door, in the lower part of the house.

Just as I was turning away wearily from the window to go back to
the bedroom and make a second attempt to complete the unfinished
entry in my journal, I smelt the odour of tobacco-smoke stealing
towards me on the heavy night air.  The next moment I saw a tiny
red spark advancing from the farther end of the house in the pitch
darkness.  I heard no footsteps, and I could see nothing but the
spark.  It travelled along in the night, passed the window at
which I was standing, and stopped opposite my bedroom window,
inside which I had left the light burning on the dressing-table.

The spark remained stationary for a moment, then moved back again
in the direction from which it had advanced.  As I followed its
progress I saw a second red spark, larger than the first,
approaching from the distance.  The two met together in the
darkness.  Remembering who smoked cigarettes and who smoked
cigars, I inferred immediately that the Count had come out first
to look and listen under my window, and that Sir Percival had
afterwards joined him.  They must both have been walking on the
lawn--or I should certainly have heard Sir Percival's heavy
footfall, though the Count's soft step might have escaped me, even
on the gravel walk.

I waited quietly at the window, certain that they could neither of
them see me in the darkness of the room.

"What's the matter?" I heard Sir Percival say in a low voice. 
"Why don't you come in and sit down?"

"I want to see the light out of that window," replied the Count
softly.

"What harm does the light do?"

"It shows she is not in bed yet.  She is sharp enough to suspect
something, and bold enough to come downstairs and listen, if she
can get the chance.  Patience, Percival--patience."

"Humbug! You're always talking of patience."

"I shall talk of something else presently.  My good friend, you
are on the edge of your domestic precipice, and if I let you give
the women one other chance, on my sacred word of honour they will
push you over it!"

"What the devil do you mean?"

"We will come to our explanations, Percival, when the light is out
of that window, and when I have had one little look at the rooms
on each side of the library, and a peep at the staircase as well."

They slowly moved away, and the rest of the conversation between
them (which had been conducted throughout in the same low tones)
ceased to be audible.  It was no matter.  I had heard enough to
determine me on justifying the Count's opinion of my sharpness and
my courage.  Before the red sparks were out of sight in the
darkness I had made up my mind that there should be a listener
when those two men sat down to their talk--and that the listener,
in spite of all the Count's precautions to the contrary, should be
myself.  I wanted but one motive to sanction the act to my own
conscience, and to give me courage enough for performing it--and
that motive I had.  Laura's honour, Laura's happiness--Laura's
life itself--might depend on my quick ears and my faithful memory
to-night.

I had heard the Count say that he meant to examine the rooms on
each side of the library, and the staircase as well, before he
entered on any explanation with Sir Percival.  This expression of
his intentions was necessarily sufficient to inform me that the
library was the room in which he proposed that the conversation
should take place.  The one moment of time which was long enough
to bring me to that conclusion was also the moment which showed me
a means of baffling his precautions--or, in other words, of
hearing what he and Sir Percival said to each other, without the
risk of descending at all into the lower regions of the house.

In speaking of the rooms on the ground floor I have mentioned
incidentally the verandah outside them, on which they all opened
by means of French windows, extending from the cornice to the
floor.  The top of this verandah was flat, the rain-water being
carried off from it by pipes into tanks which helped to supply the
house.  On the narrow leaden roof, which ran along past the
bedrooms, and which was rather less, I should think, than three
feet below the sills of the window, a row of flower-pots was
ranged, with wide intervals between each pot--the whole being
protected from falling in high winds by an ornamental iron railing
along the edge of the roof.

The plan which had now occurred to me was to get out at my
sitting-room window on to this roof, to creep along noiselessly
till I reached that part of it which was immediately over the
library window, and to crouch down between the flower-pots, with
my ear against the outer railing.  If Sir Percival and the Count
sat and smoked to-night, as I had seen them sitting and smoking
many nights before, with their chairs close at the open window,
and their feet stretched on the zinc garden seats which were
placed under the verandah, every word they said to each other
above a whisper (and no long conversation, as we all know by
experience, can be carried on IN a whisper) must inevitably reach
my ears.  If, on the other hand, they chose to-night to sit far
back inside the room, then the chances were that I should hear
little or nothing--and in that case, I must run the far more
serious risk of trying to outwit them downstairs.

Strongly as I was fortified in my resolution by the desperate
nature of our situation, I hoped most fervently that I might
escape this last emergency.  My courage was only a woman's courage
after all, and it was very near to failing me when I thought of
trusting myself on the ground floor, at the dead of night, within
reach of Sir Percival and the Count.

I went softly back to my bedroom to try the safer experiment of
the verandah roof first.

A complete change in my dress was imperatively necessary for many
reasons.  I took off my silk gown to begin with, because the
slightest noise from it on that still night might have betrayed
me.  I next removed the white and cumbersome parts of my
underclothing, and replaced them by a petticoat of dark flannel. 
Over this I put my black travelling cloak, and pulled the hood on
to my head.  In my ordinary evening costume I took up the room of
three men at least.  In my present dress, when it was held close
about me, no man could have passed through the narrowest spaces
more easily than I.  The little breadth left on the roof of the
verandah, between the flower-pots on one side and the wall and the
windows of the house on the other, made this a serious
consideration.  If I knocked anything down, if I made the least
noise, who could say what the consequences might be?

I only waited to put the matches near the candle before I
extinguished it, and groped my way back into the sitting-room, I
locked that door, as I had locked my bedroom door--then quietly
got out of the window, and cautiously set my feet on the leaden
roof of the verandah.

My two rooms were at the inner extremity of the new wing of the
house in which we all lived, and I had five windows to pass before
I could reach the position it was necessary to take up immediately
over the library.  The first window belonged to a spare room which
was empty.  The second and third windows belonged to Laura's room. 
The fourth window belonged to Sir Percival's room.  The fifth
belonged to the Countess's room.  The others, by which it was not
necessary for me to pass, were the windows of the Count's
dressing-room, of the bath-room, and of the second empty spare
room.

No sound reached my ears--the black blinding darkness of the night
was all round me when I first stood on the verandah, except at
that part of it which Madame Fosco's window over-looked.  There,
at the very place above the library to which my course was
directed--there I saw a gleam of light! The Countess was not yet
in bed.

It was too late to draw back--it was no time to wait.  I
determined to go on at all hazards, and trust for security to my
own caution and to the darkness of the night.  "For Laura's sake!"
I thought to myself, as I took the first step forward on the roof,
with one hand holding my cloak close round me, and the other
groping against the wall of the house.  It was better to brush
close by the wall than to risk striking my feet against the
flower-pots within a few inches of me, on the other side.

I passed the dark window of the spare room, trying the leaden roof
at each step with my foot before I risked resting my weight on it. 
I passed the dark windows of Laura's room ("God bless her and keep
her to-night!").  I passed the dark window of Sir Percival's room. 
Then I waited a moment, knelt down with my hands to support me,
and so crept to my position, under the protection of the low wall
between the bottom of the lighted window and the verandah roof.

When I ventured to look up at the window itself I found that the
top of it only was open, and that the blind inside was drawn down. 
While I was looking I saw the shadow of Madame Fosco pass across
the white field of the blind--then pass slowly back again.  Thus
far she could not have heard me, or the shadow would surely have
stopped at the blind, even if she had wanted courage enough to
open the window and look out?

I placed myself sideways against the railing of the verandah--
first ascertaining, by touching them, the position of the flower-
pots on either side of me.  There was room enough for me to sit
between them and no more.  The sweet-scented leaves of the flower
on my left hand just brushed my cheek as I lightly rested my head
against the railing.

The first sounds that reached me from below were caused by the
opening or closing (most probably the latter) of three doors in
succession--the doors, no doubt, leading into the hall and into
the rooms on each side of the library, which the Count had pledged
himself to examine.  The first object that I saw was the red spark
again travelling out into the night from under the verandah,
moving away towards my window, waiting a moment, and then
returning to the place from which it had set out.

"The devil take your restlessness! When do you mean to sit down?"
growled Sir Percival's voice beneath me.

"Ouf! how hot it is!" said the Count, sighing and puffing wearily.

His exclamation was followed by the scraping of the garden chairs
on the tiled pavement under the verandah--the welcome sound which
told me they were going to sit close at the window as usual.  So
far the chance was mine.  The clock in the turret struck the
quarter to twelve as they settled themselves in their chairs.  I
heard Madame Fosco through the open window yawning, and saw her
shadow pass once more across the white field of the blind.

Meanwhile, Sir Percival and the Count began talking together
below, now and then dropping their voices a little lower than
usual, but never sinking them to a whisper.  The strangeness and
peril of my situation, the dread, which I could not master, of
Madame Fosco's lighted window, made it difficult, almost
impossible, for me, at first, to keep my presence of mind, and to
fix my attention solely on the conversation beneath.  For some
minutes I could only succeed in gathering the general substance of
it.  I understood the Count to say that the one window alight was
his wife's, that the ground floor of the house was quite clear,
and that they might now speak to each other without fear of
accidents.  Sir Percival merely answered by upbraiding his friend
with having unjustifiably slighted his wishes and neglected his
interests all through the day.  The Count thereupon defended
himself by declaring that he had been beset by certain troubles
and anxieties which had absorbed all his attention, and that the
only safe time to come to an explanation was a time when they
could feel certain of being neither interrupted nor overheard. 
"We are at a serious crisis in our affairs, Percival," he said,
"and if we are to decide on the future at all, we must decide
secretly to-night."

That sentence of the Count's was the first which my attention was
ready enough to master exactly as it was spoken.  From this point,
with certain breaks and interruptions, my whole interest fixed
breathlessly on the conversation, and I followed it word for word.

"Crisis?" repeated Sir Percival.  "It's a worse crisis than you
think for, I can tell you."

"So I should suppose, from your behaviour for the last day or
two," returned the other coolly.  "But wait a little.  Before we
advance to what I do NOT know, let us be quite certain of what I
DO know.  Let us first see if I am right about the time that is
past, before I make any proposal to you for the time that is to
come."

"Stop till I get the brandy and water.  Have some yourself."

"Thank you, Percival.  The cold water with pleasure, a spoon, and
the basin of sugar.  Eau sucree, my friend--nothing more.

"Sugar-and-water for a man of your age!--There! mix your sickly
mess.  You foreigners are all alike."

"Now listen, Percival.  I will put our position plainly before
you, as I understand it, and you shall say if I am right or wrong. 
You and I both came back to this house from the Continent with our
affairs very seriously embarrassed "

"Cut it short! I wanted some thousands and you some hundreds, and
without the money we were both in a fair way to go to the dogs
together.  There's the situation.  Make what you can of it.  Go
on."

"Well, Percival, in your own solid English words, you wanted some
thousands and I wanted some hundreds, and the only way of getting
them was for you to raise the money for your own necessity (with a
small margin beyond for my poor little hundreds) by the help of
your wife.  What did I tell you about your wife on our way to
England?--and what did I tell you again when we had come here, and
when I had seen for myself the sort of woman Miss Halcombe was?"

"How should I know? You talked nineteen to the dozen, I suppose,
just as usual."

"I said this: Human ingenuity, my friend, has hitherto only
discovered two ways in which a man can manage a woman.  One way is
to knock her down--a method largely adopted by the brutal lower
orders of the people, but utterly abhorrent to the refined and
educated classes above them.  The other way (much longer, much
more difficult, but in the end not less certain) is never to
accept a provocation at a woman's hands.  It holds with animals,
it holds with children, and it holds with women, who are nothing
but children grown up.  Quiet resolution is the one quality the
animals, the children, and the women all fail in.  If they can
once shake this superior quality in their master, they get the
better of HIM.  If they can never succeed in disturbing it, he
gets the better of THEM.  I said to you, Remember that plain truth
when you want your wife to help you to the money.  I said,
Remember it doubly and trebly in the presence of your wife's
sister, Miss Halcombe.  Have you remembered it? Not once in all
the implications that have twisted themselves about us in this
house.  Every provocation that your wife and her sister could
offer to you, you instantly accepted from them.  Your mad temper
lost the signature to the deed, lost the ready money, set Miss
Halcombe writing to the lawyer for the first time "

"First time! Has she written again?"

"Yes, she has written again to-day."

A chair fell on the pavement of the verandah--fell with a crash,
as if it had been kicked down.

It was well for me that the Count's revelation roused Sir
Pemival's anger as it did.  On hearing that I had been once more
discovered I started so that the railing against which I leaned
cracked again.  Had he followed me to the inn? Did he infer that I
must have given my letters to Fanny when I told him I had none for
the post-bag.  Even if it was so, how could he have examined the
letters when they had gone straight from my hand to the bosom of
the girl's dress?

"Thank your lucky star," I heard the Count say next, "that you
have me in the house to undo the harm as fast as you do it.  Thank
your lucky star that I said No when you were mad enough to talk of
turning the key to-day on Miss Halcombe, as you turned it in your
mischievous folly on your wife.  Where are your eves? Can you look
at Miss Halcombe and not see that she has the foresight and the
resolution of a man? With that woman for my friend I would snap
these fingers of mine at the world.  With that woman for my enemy,
I, with all my brains and experience--I, Fosco, cunning as the
devil himself, as you have told me a hundred times--I walk, in
your English phrase, upon egg-shells! And this grand creature--I
drink her health in my sugar-and-water--this grand creature, who
stands in the strength of her love and her courage, firm as a
rock, between us two and that poor, flimsy, pretty blonde wife of
yours--this magnificent woman, whom I admire with all my soul,
though I oppose her in your interests and in mine, you drive to
extremities as if she was no sharper and no bolder than the rest
of her sex.  Percival! Percival! you deserve to fail, and you HAVE
failed."

There was a pause.  I write the villain's words about myself
because I mean to remember them--because I hope yet for the day
when I may speak out once for all in his presence, and cast them
back one by one in his teeth.

Sir Percival was the first to break the silence again.

"Yes, yes, bully and bluster as much as you like," he said
sulkily; "the difficulty about the money is not the only
difficulty.  You would be for taking strong measures with the
women yourself--if you knew as much as I do."

"We will come to that second difficulty all in good time,"
rejoined the Count.  "You may confuse yourself, Percival, as much
as you please, but you shall not confuse me.  Let the question of
the money be settled first.  Have I convinced your obstinacy? have
I shown you that your temper will not let you help yourself?--Or
must I go back, and (as you put it in your dear straightforward
English) bully and bluster a little more?"

"Pooh! It's easy enough to grumble at ME.  Say what is to be done--
that's a little harder."

"Is it? Bah! This is what is to be done: You give up all direction
in the business from to-night--you leave it for the future in my
hands only.  I am talking to a Practical British man--ha? Well,
Practical, will that do for you?"

"What do you propose if I leave it all to you?"

"Answer me first.  Is it to be in my hands or not?"

"Say it is in your hands--what then?"

"A few questions, Percival, to begin with.  I must wait a little
yet, to let circumstances guide me, and I must know, in every
possible way, what those circumstances are likely to be.  There is
no time to lose.  I have told you already that Miss Halcombe has
written to the lawyer to-day for the second time."

"How did you find it out? What did she say?"

"If I told you, Percival, we should only come back at the end to
where we are now.  Enough that I have found it out--and the
finding has caused that trouble and anxiety which made me so
inaccessible to you all through to-day.  Now, to refresh my memory
about your affairs--it is some time since I talked them over with
you.  The money has been raised, in the absence of your wife's
signature, by means of bills at three months--raised at a cost
that makes my poverty-stricken foreign hair stand on end to think
of it! When the bills are due, is there really and truly no
earthly way of paying them but by the help of your wife?"

"None."

"What! You have no money at the bankers?"

"A few hundreds, when I want as many thousands."

"Have you no other security to borrow upon?"

"Not a shred."

"What have you actually got with your wife at the present moment?"

"Nothing but the interest of her twenty thousand pounds--barely
enough to pay our daily expenses."

"What do you expect from your wife?"

"Three thousand a year when her uncle dies."

"A fine fortune, Percival.  What sort of a man is this uncle? 
Old?"

"No--neither old nor young."

"A good-tempered, freely-living man?  Married?  No--I think my
wife told me, not married."

"Of course not.  If he was married, and had a son, Lady Glyde
would not be next heir to the property.  I'll tell you what he is. 
He's a maudlin, twaddling, selfish fool, and bores everybody who
comes near him about the state of his health."

"Men of that sort, Percival, live long, and marry malevolently
when you least expect it.  I don't give you much, my friend, for
your chance of the three thousand a year.  Is there nothing more
that comes to you from your wife?"

"Nothing."

"Absolutely nothing?"

"Absolutely nothing--except in case of her death."

"Aha! in the case of her death."

There was another pause.  The Count moved from the
verandah to the gravel walk outside.  I knew that he had moved by
his voice.  "The rain has come at last," I heard him say.  It had
come.  The state of my cloak showed that it had been falling
thickly for some little time.

The Count went back under the verandah--I heard the chair creak
beneath his weight as he sat down in it again.

"Well, Percival," he said, "and in the case of Lady Glyde's death,
what do you get then?"

"If she leaves no children----"

"Which she is likely to do?"

"Which she is not in the least likely to do----"

"Yes?"

"Why, then I get her twenty thousand pounds."

"Paid down?"

"Paid down."

They were silent once more.  As their voices ceased Madame Fosco's
shadow darkened the blind again.  Instead of passing this time, it
remained, for a moment, quite still.  I saw her fingers steal
round the corner of the blind, and draw it on one side.  The dim
white outline of her face, looking out straight over me, appeared
behind the window.  I kept still, shrouded from head to foot in my
black cloak.  The rain, which was fast wetting me, dripped over
the glass, blurred it, and prevented her from seeing anything. 
"More rain!" I heard her say to herself.  She dropped the blind,
and I breathed again freely.

The talk went on below me, the Count resuming it this time.

"Percival! do you care about your wife?"

"Fosco! that's rather a downright question."

"I am a downright man, and I repeat it."

"Why the devil do you look at me in that way?"

"You won't answer me? Well, then, let us say your wife dies before
the summer is out----"

"Drop it, Fosco!"

"Let us say your wife dies----"

"Drop it, I tell you!"

"In that case, you would gain twenty thousand pounds, and you
would lose----"

"I should lose the chance of three thousand a year."

"The REMOTE chance, Percival--the remote chance only.  And you
want money, at once.  In your position the gain is certain--the
loss doubtful."

"Speak for yourself as well as for me.  Some of the money I want
has been borrowed for you.  And if you come to gain, my wife's
death would be ten thousand pounds in your wife's pocket.  Sharp
as you are, you seem to have conveniently forgotten Madame Fosco's
legacy.  Don't look at me in that way! I won't have it! What with
your looks and your questions, upon my soul, you make my flesh
creep!"

"Your flesh? Does flesh mean conscience in English? speak of your
wife's death as I speak of a possibility.  Why not? The
respectable lawyers who scribble-scrabble your deeds and your
wills look the deaths of living people in the face.  Do lawyers
make your flesh creep? Why should I? It is my business to-night to
clear up your position beyond the possibility of mistake, and I
have now done it.  Here is your position. If your wife lives, you
pay those bills with her signature to the parchment.  If your wife
dies, you pay them with her death."

As he spoke the light in Madame Fosco's room was extinguished, and
the whole second floor of the house was now sunk in darkness,

"Talk! talk!" grumbled Sir Percival.  "One would think, to hear
you, that my wife's signature to the deed was got already."

"You have left the matter in my hands," retorted the Count, "and I
have more than two months before me to turn round in.  Say no more
about it, if you please, for the present.  When the bills are due,
you will see for yourself if my 'talk! talk!' is worth something,
or if it is not.  And now, Percival, having done with the money
matters for to-night, I can place my attention at your disposal,
if you wish to consult me on that second difficulty which has
mixed itself up with our little embarrassments, and which has so
altered you for the worse, that I hardly know you again.  Speak,
my friend--and pardon me if I shock your fiery national tastes by
mixing myself a second glass of sugar-and-water."

"It's very well to say speak," replied Sir Percival, in a far more
quiet and more polite tone than he had yet adopted, "but it's not
so easy to know how to begin."

"Shall I help you?" suggested the Count.  "Shall I give this
private difficulty of yours a name? What if I call it--Anne
Catherick?"

"Look here, Fosco, you and I have known each other for a long
time, and if you have helped me out of one or two scrapes before
this, I have done the best I could to help you in return, as far
as money would go.  We have made as many friendly sacrifices, on
both sides, as men could, but we have had our secrets from each
other, of course--haven't we?"

"You have had a secret from me, Percival.  There is a skeleton in
your cupboard here at Blackwater Park that has peeped out in these
last few days at other people besides yourself."

"Well, suppose it has.  If it doesn't concern you, you needn't be
curious about it, need you?"

"Do I look curious about it?"

"Yes, you do."

"So! so! my face speaks the truth, then? What an immense
foundation of good there must be in the nature of a man who
arrives at my age, and whose face has not yet lost the habit of
speaking the truth!--Come, Glyde! let us be candid one with the
other.  This secret of yours has sought me: I have not sought it. 
Let us say I am curious--do you ask me, as your old friend, to
respect your secret, and to leave it, once for all, in your own
keeping?"

"Yes--that's just what I do ask."

"Then my curiosity is at an end.  It dies in me from this moment."

"Do you really mean that?"

"What makes you doubt me?"

"I have had some experience, Fosco, of your roundabout ways, and I
am not so sure that you won't worm it out of me after all."

The chair below suddenly creaked again--I felt the trellis-work
pillar under me shake from top to bottom.  The Count had started
to his feet, and had struck it with his hand in indignation.

"Percival! Percival!" he cried passionately, "do you know me no
better than that? Has all your experience shown you nothing of my
character yet? I am a man of the antique type! I am capable of the
most exalted acts of virtue--when I have the chance of performing
them.  It has been the misfortune of my life that I have had few
chances.  My conception of friendship is sublime! Is it my fault
that your skeleton has peeped out at me? Why do I confess my
curiosity? You poor superficial Englishman, it is to magnify my
own self-control.  I could draw your secret out of you, if I
liked, as I draw this finger out of the palm of my hand--you know
I could! But you have appealed to my friendship, and the duties of
friendship are sacred to me.  See! I trample my base curiosity
under my feet.  My exalted sentiments lift me above it.  Recognise
them, Percival! imitate them, Percival! Shake hands--I forgive
you."

His voice faltered over the last words--faltered, as if he were
actually shedding tears!

Sir Percival confusedly attempted to excuse himself, but the Count
was too magnanimous to listen to him.

"No!" he said.  "When my friend has wounded me, I can pardon him
without apologies.  Tell me, in plain words, do you want my help?"

"Yes, badly enough."

"And you can ask for it without compromising yourself?"

"I can try, at any rate."

"Try, then."

"Well, this is how it stands:--I told you to-day that I had done
my best to find Anne Catherick, and failed."

"Yes, you did."

"Fosco! I'm a lost man if I DON'T find her."

"Ha! Is it so serious as that?"

A little stream of light travelled out under the verandah, and
fell over the gravel-walk.  The Count had taken the lamp from the
inner part of the room to see his friend clearly by the light of
it.

"Yes!" he said.  "Your face speaks the truth this time.  Serious,
indeed--as serious as the money matters themselves."

"More serious.  As true as I sit here, more serious!"

The light disappeared again and the talk went on.

"I showed you the letter to my wife that Anne Catherick hid in the
sand," Sir Percival continued.  "There's no boasting in that
letter, Fosco--she DOES know the Secret."

"Say as little as possible, Percival, in my presence, of the
Secret.  Does she know it from you?"

"No, from her mother."

"Two women in possession of your private mind--bad, bad, bad, my
friend! One question here, before we go any farther.  The motive
of your shutting up the daughter in the asylum is now plain enough
to me, but the manner of her escape is not quite so clear.  Do you
suspect the people in charge of her of closing their eyes
purposely, at the instance of some enemy who could afford to make
it worth their while?"

"No, she was the best-behaved patient they had--and, like fools,
they trusted her.  She's just mad enough to be shut up, and just
sane enough to ruin me when she's at large--if you understand
that?"

"I do understand it.  Now, Percival, come at once to the point,
and then I shall know what to do.  Where is the danger of your
position at the present moment?"

"Anne Catherick is in this neighbourhood, and in communication
with Lady Glyde--there's the danger, plain enough.  Who can read
the letter she hid in the sand, and not see that my wife is in
possession of the Secret, deny it as she may?"

"One moment, Percival.  If Lady Glyde does know the Secret, she
must know also that it is a compromising secret for you.  As your
wife, surely it is her interest to keep it?"

"Is it? I'm coming to that.  It might be her interest if she cared
two straws about me.  But I happen to be an encumbrance in the way
of another man.  She was in love with him before she married me--
she's in love with him now--an infernal vagabond of a drawing-
master, named Hartright."

"My dear friend! what is there extraordinary in that? They are all
in love with some other man.  Who gets the first of a woman's
heart? In all my experience I have never yet met with the man who
was Number One.  Number Two, sometimes.  Number Three, Four, Five,
often.  Number One, never! He exists, of course--but I have not
met with him."

"Wait! I haven't done yet.  Who do you think helped Anne Catherick
to get the start, when the people from the mad-house were after
her? Hartright.  Who do you think saw her again in Cumberland?
Hartright.  Both times he spoke to her alone.  Stop! don't
interrupt me.  The scoundrel's as sweet on my wife as she is on
him.  He knows the Secret, and she knows the Secret.  Once let
them both get together again, and it's her interest and his
interest to turn their information against me."

"Gently, Percival--gently! Are you insensible to the virtue of
Lady Glyde?"

"That for the virtue of Lady Glyde! I believe in nothing about her
but her money.  Don't you see how the case stands? She might be
harmless enough by herself; but if she and that vagabond
Hartright----"

"Yes, yes, I see.  Where is Mr. Hartright?"

"Out of the country.  If he means to keep a whole skin on his
bones, I recommend him not to come back in a hurry."

"Are you sure he is out of the country?"

"Certain.  I had him watched from the time he left Cumberland to
the time he sailed.  Oh, I've been careful, I can tell you! Anne
Catherick lived with some people at a farm-house near Limmeridge. 
I went there myself, after she had given me the slip, and made
sure that they knew nothing.  I gave her mother a form of letter
to write to Miss Halcombe, exonerating me from any bad motive in
putting her under restraint.  I've spent, I'm afraid to say how
much, in trying to trace her, and in spite of it all, she turns up
here and escapes me on my own property! How do I know who else may
see her, who else may speak to her? That prying scoundrel,
Hartright, may come back with-out my knowing it, and may make use
of her to-morrow----"

"Not he, Percival! While I am on the spot, and while that woman is
in the neighbourhood, I will answer for our laying hands on her
before Mr. Hartright--even if he does come back.  I see! yes, yes,
I see! The finding of Anne Catherick is the first necessity--make
your mind easy about the rest.  Your wife is here, under your
thumb--Miss Halcombe is inseparable from her, and is, therefore,
under your thumb also--and Mr. Hartright is out of the country. 
This invisible Anne of yours is all we have to think of for the
present.  You have made your inquiries?"

"Yes.  I have been to her mother, I have ransacked the village--
and all to no purpose."

"Is her mother to be depended on?"

"Yes."

"She has told your secret once."

"She won't tell it again."

"Why not? Are her own interests concerned in keeping it, as well
as yours?"

"Yes--deeply concerned."

"I am glad to hear it, Percival, for your sake.  Don't be
discouraged, my friend.  Our money matters, as I told you, leave
me plenty of time to turn round in, and I may search for Anne
Catherick to-morrow to better purpose than you.  One last question
before we go to bed."

"What is it?"

"It is this.  When I went to the boat-house to tell Lady Glyde
that the little difficulty of her signature was put off, accident
took me there in time to see a strange woman parting in a very
suspicious manner from your wife.  But accident did not bring me
near enough to see this same woman's face plainly.  I must know
how to recognise our invisible Anne.  What is she like?"

"Like? Come! I'll tell you in two words.  She's a sickly likeness
of my wife."

The chair creaked, and the pillar shook once more.  The Count was
on his feet again--this time in astonishment.

"What!!!" he exclaimed eagerly.

"Fancy my wife, after a bad illness, with a touch of something
wrong in her head--and there is Anne Catherick for you," answered
Sir Percival.

"Are they related to each other?"

"Not a bit of it."

"And yet so like?"

"Yes, so like.  What are you laughing about?"

There was no answer, and no sound of any kind.  The Count was
laughing in his smooth silent internal way.

"What are you laughing about?" reiterated Sir Percival.

"Perhaps at my own fancies, my good friend.  Allow me my Italian
humour--do I not come of the illustrious nation which invented the
exhibition of Punch? Well, well, well, I shall know Anne Catherick
when I see her--and so enough for to-night.  Make your mind easy,
Percival.  Sleep, my son, the sleep of the just, and see what I
will do for you when daylight comes to help us both.  I have my
projects and my plans here in my big head.  You shall pay those
bills and find Anne Catherick--my sacred word of honour on it, but
you shall! Am I a friend to be treasured in the best corner of
your heart, or am I not?  Am I worth those loans of money which
you so delicately reminded me of a little while since? Whatever
you do, never wound me in my sentiments any more.  Recognise them,
Percival! imitate them, Percival! I forgive you again--I shake
hands again.  Good-night!"


Not another word was spoken.  I heard the Count close the library
door.  I heard Sir Percival barring up the window-shutters.  It
had been raining, raining all the time.  I was cramped by my
position and chilled to the bones.  When I first tried to move,
the effort was so painful to me that I was obliged to desist.  I
tried a second time, and succeeded in rising to my knees on the
wet roof.

As I crept to the wall, and raised myself against it, I looked
back, and saw the window of the Count's dressing-room gleam into
light.  My sinking courage flickered up in me again, and kept my
eyes fixed on his window, as I stole my way back, step by step,
past the wall of the house.

The clock struck the quarter after one, when I laid my hands on
the window-sill of my own room.  I had seen nothing and heard
nothing which could lead me to suppose that my retreat had been
discovered.



X


June 20th.--Eight o'clock.  The sun is shining in a clear sky.  I
have not been near my bed--I have not once closed my weary wakeful
eyes.  From the same window at which I looked out into the
darkness of last night, I look out now at the bright stillness of
the morning.

I count the hours that have passed since I escaped to the shelter
of this room by my own sensations--and those hours seem like
weeks.

How short a time, and yet how long to ME--since I sank down in the
darkness, here, on the floor--drenched to the skin, cramped in
every limb, cold to the bones, a useless, helpless, panic-stricken
creature.

I hardly know when I roused myself.  I hardly know when I groped
my way back to the bedroom, and lighted the candle, and searched
(with a strange ignorance, at first, of where to look for them)
for dry clothes to warm me.  The doing of these things is in my
mind, but not the time when they were done.

Can I even remember when the chilled, cramped feeling left me, and
the throbbing heat came in its place?

Surely it was before the sun rose? Yes, I heard the clock strike
three.  I remember the time by the sudden brightness and
clearness, the feverish strain and excitement of all my faculties
which came with it.  I remember my resolution to control myself,
to wait patiently hour after hour, till the chance offered of
removing Laura from this horrible place, without the danger of
immediate discovery and pursuit.  I remember the persuasion
settling itself in my mind that the words those two men had said
to each other would furnish us, not only with our justification
for leaving the house, but with our weapons of defence against
them as well.  I recall the impulse that awakened in me to
preserve those words in writing, exactly as they were spoken,
while the time was my own, and while my memory vividly retained
them.  All this I remember plainly: there is no confusion in my
head yet.  The coming in here from the bedroom, with my pen and
ink and paper, before sunrise--the sitting down at the widely-
opened window to get all the air I could to cool me--the ceaseless
writing, faster and faster, hotter and hotter, driving on more and
more wakefully, all through the dreadful interval before the house
was astir again--how clearly I recall it, from the beginning by
candle-light, to the end on the page before this, in the sunshine
of the new day!

Why do I sit here still? Why do I weary my hot eyes and my burning
head by writing more? Why not lie down and rest myself, and try to
quench the fever that consumes me, in sleep?

I dare not attempt it.  A fear beyond all other fears has got
possession of me.  I am afraid of this heat that parches my skin. 
I am afraid of the creeping and throbbing that I feel in my head. 
If I lie down now, how do I know that I may have the sense and the
strength to rise again?

Oh, the rain, the rain--the cruel rain that chilled me last night!

Nine o'clock.  Was it nine struck, or eight? Nine, surely? I am
shivering again--shivering, from head to foot, in the summer air. 
Have I been sitting here asleep? I don't know what I have been
doing.

Oh, my God! am I going to be ill?


Ill, at such a time as this!

My head--I am sadly afraid of my head.  I can write, but the lines
all run together.  I see the words.  Laura--I can write Laura, and
see I write it.  Eight or nine--which was it?

So cold, so cold--oh, that rain last night!--and the strokes of
the clock, the strokes I can't count, keep striking in my head----

*    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *

Note
[At this place the entry in the Diary ceases to be legible.  The
two or three lines which follow contain fragments of words only,
mingled with blots and scratches of the pen.  The last marks on
the paper bear some resemblance to the first two letters (L and A)
of the name of Lady Glyde.

On the next page of the Diary, another entry appears.  It is in a
man's handwriting, large, bold, and firmly regular, and the date
is "June the 21st." It contains these lines--]



POSTSCRIPT BY A SINCERE FRIEND


The illness of our excellent Miss Halcombe has afforded me the
opportunity of enjoying an unexpected intellectual pleasure.

I refer to the perusal (which I have just completed) of this
interesting Diary.

There are many hundred pages here.  I can lay my hand on my heart,
and declare that every page has charmed, refreshed, delighted me.

To a man of my sentiments it is unspeakably gratifying to be able
to say this.

Admirable woman!

I allude to Miss Halcombe.

Stupendous effort!

I refer to the Diary.

Yes! these pages are amazing.  The tact which I find here, the
discretion, the rare courage, the wonderful power of memory, the
accurate observation of character, the easy grace of style, the
charming outbursts of womanly feeling, have all inexpressibly
increased my admiration of this sublime creature, of this
magnificent Marian.  The presentation of my own character is
masterly in the extreme.  I certify, with my whole heart, to the
fidelity of the portrait.  I feel how vivid an impression I must
have produced to have been painted in such strong, such rich, such
massive colours as these.  I lament afresh the cruel necessity
which sets our interests at variance, and opposes us to each
other.  Under happier circumstances how worthy I should have been
of Miss Halcombe--how worthy Miss Halcombe would have been of ME.

The sentiments which animate my heart assure me that the lines I
have just written express a Profound Truth.

Those sentiments exalt me above all merely personal
considerations.  I bear witness, in the most disinterested manner,
to the excellence of the stratagem by which this unparalleled
woman surprised the private interview between Percival and myself--
also to the marvellous accuracy of her report of the whole
conversation from its beginning to its end.

Those sentiments have induced me to offer to the unimpressionable
doctor who attends on her my vast knowledge of chemistry, and my
luminous experience of the more subtle resources which medical and
magnetic science have placed at the disposal of mankind.  He has
hitherto declined to avail himself of my assistance.  Miserable
man!

Finally, those sentiments dictate the lines--grateful,
sympathetic, paternal lines--which appear in this place.  I close
the book.  My strict sense of propriety restores it (by the hands
of my wife) to its place on the writer's table.  Events are
hurrying me away.  Circumstances are guiding me to serious issues. 
Vast perspectives of success unroll themselves before my eyes.  I
accomplish my destiny with a calmness which is terrible to myself. 
Nothing but the homage of my admiration is my own.  I deposit it
with respectful tenderness at the feet of Miss Halcombe.

I breathe my wishes for her recovery.

I condole with her on the inevitable failure of every plan that
she has formed for her sister's benefit.  At the same time, I
entreat her to believe that the information which I have derived
from her Diary will in no respect help me to contribute to that
failure.  It simply confirms the plan of conduct which I had
previously arranged.  I have to thank these pages for awakening
the finest sensibilities in my nature--nothing more.

To a person of similar sensibility this simple assertion will
explain and excuse everything.

Miss Halcombe is a person of similar sensibility.

In that persuasion I sign myself,
                                    Fosco.



THE STORY CONTINUED BY FREDERICK FAIRLIE, ESQ., OF LIMMERIDGE
HOUSE[2]


[2] The manner in which Mr. Fairlie's Narrative and other
Narratives that are shortly to follow it, were originally
obtained, forms the subject of an explanation which will appear at
a later period.


It is the grand misfortune of my life that nobody will let me
alone.

Why--I ask everybody--why worry ME? Nobody answers that question,
and nobody lets me alone.  Relatives, friends, and strangers all
combine to annoy me.  What have I done? I ask myself, I ask my
servant, Louis, fifty times a day--what have I done? Neither of us
can tell.  Most extraordinary!

The last annoyance that has assailed me is the annoyance of being
called upon to write this Narrative.  Is a man in my state of
nervous wretchedness capable of writing narratives? When I put
this extremely reasonable objection, I am told that certain very
serious events relating to my niece have happened within my
experience, and that I am the fit person to describe them on that
account.  I am threatened if I fail to exert myself in the manner
required, with consequences which I cannot so much as think of
without perfect prostration.  There is really no need to threaten
me.  Shattered by my miserable health and my family troubles, I am
incapable of resistance.  If you insist, you take your unjust
advantage of me, and I give way immediately.  I will endeavour to
remember what I can (under protest), and to write what I can (also
under protest), and what I can't remember and can't write, Louis
must remember and write for me.  He is an ass, and I am an
invalid, and we are likely to make all sorts of mistakes between
us.  How humiliating!

I am told to remember dates.  Good heavens! I never did such a
thing in my life--how am I to begin now?

I have asked Louis.  He is not quite such an ass as I have
hitherto supposed.  He remembers the date of the event, within a
week or two--and I remember the name of the person.  The date was
towards the end of June, or the beginning of July, and the name
(in my opinion a remarkably vulgar one) was Fanny.

At the end of June, or the beginning of July, then, I was
reclining in my customary state, surrounded by the various objects
of Art which I have collected about me to improve the taste of the
barbarous people in my neighbourhood.  That is to say, I had the
photographs of my pictures, and prints, and coins, and so forth,
all about me, which I intend, one of these days, to present (the
photographs, I mean, if the clumsy English language will let me
mean anything) to present to the institution at Carlisle (horrid
place!), with a view to improving the tastes of the members (Goths
and Vandals to a man).  It might be supposed that a gentleman who
was in course of conferring a great national benefit on his
countrymen was the last gentleman in the world to be unfeelingly
worried about private difficulties and family affairs.  Quite a
mistake, I assure you, in my case.

However, there I was, reclining, with my art-treasures about me,
and wanting a quiet morning.  Because I wanted a quiet morning, of
course Louis came in.  It was perfectly natural that I should
inquire what the deuce he meant by making his appearance when I
had not rung my bell.  I seldom swear--it is such an
ungentlemanlike habit--but when Louis answered by a grin, I think
it was also perfectly natural that I should damn him for grinning. 
At any rate, I did.

This rigorous mode of treatment, I have observed, invariably
brings persons in the lower class of life to their senses.  It
brought Louis to HIS senses.  He was so obliging as to leave off
grinning, and inform me that a Young Person was outside wanting to
see me.  He added (with the odious talkativeness of servants),
that her name was Fanny.

"Who is Fanny?"

"Lady Glyde's maid, sir."

"What does Lady Glyde's maid want with me .

"A letter, sir----"

"Take it."

"She refuses to give it to anybody but you, sir."

"Who sends the letter?"

"Miss Halcombe, sir."

The moment I heard Miss Halcombe's name I gave up.  It is a habit
of mine always to give up to Miss Halcombe.  I find, by
experience, that it saves noise.  I gave up on this occasion. 
Dear Marian!

"Let Lady Glyde's maid come in, Louis.  Stop! Do her shoes creak?"

I was obliged to ask the question.  Creaking shoes invariably
upset me for the day.  I was resigned to see the Young Person, but
I was NOT resigned to let the Young Person's shoes upset me. 
There is a limit even to my endurance.

Louis affirmed distinctly that her shoes were to be depended upon. 
I waved my hand.  He introduced her.  Is it necessary to say that
she expressed her sense of embarrassment by shutting up her mouth
and breathing through her nose? To the student of female human
nature in the lower orders, surely not.

Let me do the girl justice.  Her shoes did NOT creak.  But why do
Young Persons in service all perspire at the hands? Why have they
all got fat noses and hard cheeks? And why are their faces so
sadly unfinished, especially about the corners of the eyelids? I
am not strong enough to think deeply myself on any subject, but I
appeal to professional men, who are.  Why have we no variety in
our breed of Young Persons?

"You have a letter for me, from Miss Halcombe? Put it down on the
table, please, and don't upset anything.  How is Miss Halcombe?"

"Very well, thank you, sir."

"And Lady Glyde?"

I received no answer.  The Young Person's face became more
unfinished than ever, and I think she began to cry.  I certainly
saw something moist about her eyes.  Tears or perspiration? Louis
(whom I have just consulted) is inclined to think, tears.  He is
in her class of life, and he ought to know best.  Let us say,
tears.

Except when the refining process of Art judiciously removes from
them all resemblance to Nature, I distinctly object to tears. 
Tears are scientifically described as a Secretion.  I can
understand that a secretion may be healthy or unhealthy, but I
cannot see the interest of a secretion from a sentimental point of
view.  Perhaps my own secretions being all wrong together, I am a
little prejudiced on the subject.  No matter.  I behaved, on this
occasion, with all possible propriety and feeling.  I closed my
eyes and said to Louis--

"Endeavour to ascertain what she means."

Louis endeavoured, and the Young Person endeavoured. They
succeeded in confusing each other to such an extent that I am
bound in common gratitude to say, they really amused me.  I think
I shall send for them again when I am in low spirits.  I have just
mentioned this idea to Louis.  Strange to say, it seems to make
him uncomfortable.  Poor devil!

Surely I am not expected to repeat my niece's maid's explanation
of her tears, interpreted in the English of my Swiss valet? The
thing is manifestly impossible.  I can give my own impressions and
feelings perhaps.  Will that do as well? Please say, Yes.

My idea is that she began by telling me (through Louis) that her
master had dismissed her from her mistress's service.  (Observe,
throughout, the strange irrelevancy of the Young Person.  Was it
my fault that she had lost her place?) On her dismissal, she had
gone to the inn to sleep.  (I don't keep the inn--why mention it
to ME?) Between six o'clock and seven Miss Halcombe had come to
say good-bye, and had given her two letters, one for me, and one
for a gentleman in London.  (I am not a gentleman in London--hang
the gentleman in London!) She had carefully put the two letters
into her bosom (what have I to do with her bosom?); she had been
very unhappy, when Miss Halcombe had gone away again; she had not
had the heart to put bit or drop between her lips till it was near
bedtime, and then, when it was close on nine o'clock, she had
thought she should like a cup of tea.  (Am I responsible for any
of these vulgar fluctuations, which begin with unhappiness and end
with tea?) Just as she was WARMING THE POT (I give the words on
the authority of Louis, who says he knows what they mean, and
wishes to explain, but I snub him on principle)--just as she was
warming the pot the door opened, and she was STRUCK OF A HEAP (her
own words again, and perfectly unintelligible this time to Louis,
as well as to myself) by the appearance in the inn parlour of her
ladyship the Countess.  I give my niece's maid's description of my
sister's title with a sense of the highest relish.  My poor dear
sister is a tiresome woman who married a foreigner.  To resume:
the door opened, her ladyship the Countess appeared in the
parlour, and the Young Person was struck of a heap.  Most
remarkable!


I must really rest a little before I can get on any farther.  When
I have reclined for a few minutes, with my eyes closed, and when
Louis has refreshed my poor aching temples with a little eau-de-
Cologne, I may be able to proceed.

Her ladyship the Countess----

No.  I am able to proceed, but not to sit up.  I will recline and
dictate.  Louis has a horrid accent, but he knows the language,
and can write.  How very convenient!


Her ladyship, the Countess, explained her unexpected appearance at
the inn by telling Fanny that she had come to bring one or two
little messages which Miss Halcombe in her hurry had forgotten. 
The Young Person thereupon waited anxiously to hear what the
messages were, but the Countess seemed disinclined to mention them
(so like my sister's tiresome way!) until Fanny had had her tea. 
Her ladyship was surprisingly kind and thoughtful about it
(extremely unlike my sister), and said, "I am sure, my poor girl,
you must want your tea.  We can let the messages wait till
afterwards.  Come, come, if nothing else will put you at your
ease, I'll make the tea and have a cup with you." I think those
were the words, as reported excitably, in my presence, by the
Young Person.  At any rate, the Countess insisted on making the
tea, and carried her ridiculous ostentation of humility so far as
to take one cup herself, and to insist on the girl's taking the
other.  The girl drank the tea, and according to her own account,
solemnised the extraordinary occasion five minutes afterwards by
fainting dead away for the first time in her life.  Here again I
use her own words.  Louis thinks they were accompanied by an
increased secretion of tears.  I can't say myself.  The effort of
listening being quite as much as I could manage, my eyes were
closed.

Where did I leave off? Ah, yes--she fainted after drinking a cup
of tea with the Countess--a proceeding which might have interested
me if I had been her medical man, but being nothing of the sort I
felt bored by hearing of it, nothing more.  When she came to
herself in half an hour's time she was on the sofa, and nobody was
with her but the landlady.  The Countess, finding it too late to
remain any longer at the inn, had gone away as soon as the girl
showed signs of recovering, and the landlady had been good enough
to help her upstairs to bed.

Left by herself, she had felt in her bosom (I regret the necessity
of referring to this part of the subject a second time), and had
found the two letters there quite safe, but strangely crumpled. 
She had been giddy in the night, but had got up well enough to
travel in the morning.  She had put the letter addressed to that
obtrusive stranger, the gentleman in London into the post, and had
now delivered the other letter into my hands as she was told. 
This was the plain truth, and though she could not blame herself
for any intentional neglect, she was sadly troubled in her mind,
and sadly in want of a word of advice.  At this point Louis thinks
the secretions appeared again.  Perhaps they did, but it is of
infinitely greater importance to mention that at this point also I
lost my patience, opened my eyes, and interfered.

"What is the purport of all this?" I inquired.

My niece's irrelevant maid stared, and stood speechless.

"Endeavour to explain," I said to my servant.  "Translate me,
Louis."

Louis endeavoured and translated.  In other words, he descended
immediately into a bottomless pit of confusion, and the Young
Person followed him down.  I really don't know when I have been so
amused.  I left them at the bottom of the pit as long as they
diverted me.  When they ceased to divert me, I exerted my
intelligence, and pulled them up again.

It is unnecessary to say that my interference enabled me, in due
course of time, to ascertain the purport of the Young Person's
remarks.

I discovered that she was uneasy in her mind, because the train of
events that she had just described to me had prevented her from
receiving those supplementary messages which Miss Halcombe had
intrusted to the Countess to deliver.  She was afraid the messages
might have been of great importance to her mistress's interests. 
Her dread of Sir Percival had deterred her from going to
Blackwater Park late at night to inquire about them, and Miss
Halcombe's own directions to her, on no account to miss the train
in the morning, had prevented her from waiting at the inn the next
day.  She was most anxious that the misfortune of her fainting-fit
should not lead to the second misfortune of making her mistress
think her neglectful, and she would humbly beg to ask me whether I
would advise her to write her explanations and excuses to Miss
Halcombe, requesting to receive the messages by letter, if it was
not too late.  I make no apologies for this extremely prosy
paragraph.  I have been ordered to write it.  There are people,
unaccountable as it may appear, who actually take more interest in
what my niece's maid said to me on this occasion than in what I
said to my niece's maid.  Amusing perversity!

"I should feel very much obliged to you, sir, if you would kindly
tell me what I had better do," remarked the Young Person.

"Let things stop as they are," I said, adapting my language to my
listener.  "I invariably let things stop as they are.  Yes.  Is
that all?"

"If you think it would be a liberty in me, sir, to write, of
course I wouldn't venture to do so.  But I am so very anxious to
do all I can to serve my mistress faithfully----"

People in the lower class of life never know when or how to go out
of a room.  They invariably require to be helped out by their
betters.  I thought it high time to help the Young Person out.  I
did it with two judicious words--

"Good-morning."

Something outside or inside this singular girl suddenly creaked. 
Louis, who was looking at her (which I was not), says she creaked
when she curtseyed.  Curious.  Was it her shoes, her stays, or her
bones? Louis thinks it was her stays.  Most extraordinary!



As soon as I was left by myself I had a little nap--I really
wanted it.  When I awoke again I noticed dear Marian's letter.  If
I had had the least idea of what it contained I should certainly
not have attempted to open it.  Being, unfortunately for myself,
quite innocent of all suspicion, I read the letter.  It
immediately upset me for the day.

I am, by nature, one of the most easy-tempered creatures that ever
lived--I make allowances for everybody, and I take offence at
nothing.  But as I have before remarked, there are limits to my
endurance.  I laid down Marian's letter, and felt myself--justly
felt myself--an injured man.

I am about to make a remark.  It is, of course, applicable to the
very serious matter now under notice, or I should not allow it to
appear in this place.

Nothing, in my opinion, sets the odious selfishness of mankind in
such a repulsively vivid light as the treatment, in all classes of
society, which the Single people receive at the hands of the
Married people.  When you have once shown yourself too considerate
and self-denying to add a family of your own to an already
overcrowded population, you are vindictively marked out by your
married friends, who have no similar consideration and no similar
self-denial, as the recipient of half their conjugal troubles, and
the born friend of all their children.  Husbands and wives TALK of
the cares of matrimony, and bachelors and spinsters BEAR them. 
Take my own case.  I considerately remain single, and my poor dear
brother Philip inconsiderately marries.  What does he do when he
dies? He leaves his daughter to ME.  She is a sweet girl--she is
also a dreadful responsibility.  Why lay her on my shoulders?
Because I am bound, in the harmless character of a single man, to
relieve my married connections of all their own troubles.  I do my
best with my brother's responsibility--I marry my niece, with
infinite fuss and difficulty, to the man her father wanted her to
marry.  She and her husband disagree, and unpleasant consequences
follow.  What does she do with those consequences? She transfers
them to ME.  Why transfer them to ME?  Because I am bound, in the
harmless character of a single man, to relieve my married
connections of all their own troubles.  Poor single people! Poor
human nature!

It is quite unnecessary to say that Marian's letter threatened me. 
Everybody threatens me.  All sorts of horrors were to fall on my
devoted head if I hesitated to turn Limmeridge House into an
asylum for my niece and her misfortunes.  I did hesitate,
nevertheless.

I have mentioned that my usual course, hitherto, had been to
submit to dear Marian, and save noise.  But on this occasion, the
consequences involved in her extremely inconsiderate proposal were
of a nature to make me pause.  If I opened Limmeridge House as an
asylum to Lady Glyde, what security had I against Sir Percival
Glyde's following her here in a state of violent resentment
against ME for harbouring his wife? I saw such a perfect labyrinth
of troubles involved in this proceeding that I determined to feel
my ground, as it were.  I wrote, therefore, to dear Marian to beg
(as she had no husband to lay claim to her) that she would come
here by herself, first, and talk the matter over with me.  If she
could answer my objections to my own perfect satisfaction, then I
assured her that I would receive our sweet Laura with the greatest
pleasure, but not otherwise.

I felt, of course, at the time, that this temporising on my part
would probably end in bringing Marian here in a state of virtuous
indignation, banging doors.  But then, the other course of
proceeding might end in bringing Sir Percival here in a state of
virtuous indignation, banging doors also, and of the two
indignations and bangings I preferred Marian's, because I was used
to her.  Accordingly I despatched the letter by return of post. 
It gained me time, at all events--and, oh dear me! what a point
that was to begin with.

When I am totally prostrated (did I mention that I was totally
prostrated by Marian's letter?) it always takes me three days to
get up again.  I was very unreasonable--I expected three days of
quiet.  Of course I didn't get them.

The third day's post brought me a most impertinent letter from a
person with whom I was totally unacquainted.  He described himself
as the acting partner of our man of business--our dear, pig-headed
old Gilmore--and he informed me that he had lately received, by
the post, a letter addressed to him in Miss Halcombe's
handwriting.  On opening the envelope, he had discovered, to his
astonishment, that it contained nothing but a blank sheet of
notepaper.  This circumstance appeared to him so suspicious (as
suggesting to his restless legal mind that the letter had been
tampered with) that he had at once written to Miss Halcombe, and
had received no answer by return of post.  In this difficulty,
instead of acting like a sensible man and letting things take
their proper course, his next absurd proceeding, on his own
showing, was to pester me by writing to inquire if I knew anything
about it.  What the deuce should I know about it? Why alarm me as
well as himself? I wrote back to that effect.  It was one of my
keenest letters.  I have produced nothing with a sharper
epistolary edge to it since I tendered his dismissal in writing to
that extremely troublesome person, Mr. Walter Hartright.

My letter produced its effect.  I heard nothing more from the
lawyer.

This perhaps was not altogether surprising.  But it was certainly
a remarkable circumstance that no second letter reached me from
Marian, and that no warning signs appeared of her arrival.  Her 
unexpected absence did me amazing good.  It was so very soothing
and pleasant to infer (as I did of course) that my married
connections had made it up again.  Five days of undisturbed
tranquillity, of delicious single blessedness, quite restored me. 
On the sixth day I felt strong enough to send for my photographer,
and to set him at work again on the presentation copies of my art-
treasures, with a view, as I have already mentioned, to the
improvement of taste in this barbarous neighbourhood.  I had just
dismissed him to his workshop, and had just begun coquetting with
my coins, when Louis suddenly made his appearance with a card in
his hand.

"Another Young Person?" I said.  "I won't see her.  In my state of
health Young Persons disagree with me.  Not at home."

"It is a gentleman this time, sir "

A gentleman of course made a difference.  I looked at the card.

Gracious Heaven! my tiresome sister's foreign husband, Count
Fosco.



Is it necessary to say what my first impression was when I looked
at my visitor's card? Surely not! My sister having married a
foreigner, there was but one impression that any man in his senses
could possibly feel.  Of course the Count had come to borrow money
of me.

"Louis," I said, "do you think he would go away if you gave him
five shillings?"

Louis looked quite shocked.  He surprised me inexpressibly by
declaring that my sister's foreign husband was dressed superbly,
and looked the picture of prosperity.  Under these circumstances
my first impression altered to a certain extent.  I now took it
for granted that the Count had matrimonial difficulties of his own
to contend with, and that he had come, like the rest of the
family, to cast them all on my shoulders.

"Did he mention his business?" I asked.

"Count Fosco said he had come here, sir, because Miss Halcombe was
unable to leave Blackwater Park."

Fresh troubles, apparently.  Not exactly his own, as I had
supposed, but dear Marian's.  Troubles, anyway.  Oh dear!

"Show him in," I said resignedly.

The Count's first appearance really startled me.  He was such an
alarmingly large person that I quite trembled.  I felt certain
that he would shake the floor and knock down my art-treasures.  He
did neither the one nor the other.  He was refreshingly dressed in
summer costume--his manner was delightfully self-possessed and
quiet--he had a charming smile.  My first impression of him was
highly favourable.  It is not creditable to my penetration--as the
sequel will show--to acknowledge this, but I am a naturally candid
man, and I DO acknowledge it notwithstanding.

"Allow me to present myself, Mr. Fairlie," he said.  "I come from
Blackwater Park, and I have the honour and the happiness of being
Madame Fosco's husband.  Let me take my first and last advantage
of that circumstance by entreating you not to make a stranger of
me.  I beg you will not disturb yourself--I beg you will not
move."

"You are very good," I replied.  "I wish I was strong enough to
get up.  Charmed to see you at Limmeridge.  Please take a chair."

"I am afraid you are suffering to-day," said the Count.

"As usual," I said.  "I am nothing but a bundle of nerves dressed
up to look like a man."

"I have studied many subjects in my time," remarked this
sympathetic person.  "Among others the inexhaustible subject of
nerves.  May I make a suggestion, at once the simplest and the
most profound? Will you let me alter the light in your room?

"Certainly--if you will be so very kind as not to let any of it in
on me."

He walked to the window.  Such a contrast to dear Marian! so
extremely considerate in all his movements!

"Light," he said, in that delightfully confidential tone which is
so soothing to an invalid, "is the first essential.  Light
stimulates, nourishes, preserves.  You can no more do without it,
Mr. Fairlie, than if you were a flower.  Observe.  Here, where you
sit, I close the shutters to compose you.  There, where you do NOT
sit, I draw up the blind and let in the invigorating sun.  Admit
the light into your room if you cannot bear it on yourself. 
Light, sir, is the grand decree of Providence.  You accept
Providence with your own restrictions.  Accept light on the same
terms."

I thought this very convincing and attentive.  He had taken me in
up to that point about the light, he had certainly taken me in.

"You see me confused," he said, returning to his place--"on my
word of honour, Mr. Fairlie, you see me confused in your
presence."

"Shocked to hear it, I am sure.  May I inquire why?"

"Sir, can I enter this room (where you sit a sufferer), and see
you surrounded by these admirable objects of Art, without
discovering that you are a man whose feelings are acutely
impressionable, whose sympathies are perpetually alive? Tell me,
can I do this?"

If I had been strong enough to sit up in my chair I should, of
course, have bowed.  Not being strong enough, I smiled my
acknowledgments instead.  It did just as well, we both understood
one another.

"Pray follow my train of thought," continued the Count.  "I sit
here, a man of refined sympathies myself, in the presence of
another man of refined sympathies also.  I am conscious of a
terrible necessity for lacerating those sympathies by referring to
domestic events of a very melancholy kind.  What is the inevitable
consequence? I have done myself the honour of pointing it out to
you already.  I sit confused."

Was it at this point that I began to suspect he was going to bore
me? I rather think it was.

"Is it absolutely necessary to refer to these unpleasant matters?"
I inquired.  "In our homely English phrase, Count Fosco, won't
they keep?"

The Count, with the most alarming solemnity, sighed and shook his
head.

"Must I really hear them?"

He shrugged his shoulders (it was the first foreign thing he had
done since he had been in the room), and looked at me in an
unpleasantly penetrating manner.  My instincts told me that I had
better close my eyes.  I obeyed my instincts.

"Please break it gently," I pleaded.  "Anybody dead?"

"Dead!" cried the Count, with unnecessary foreign fierceness. 
"Mr. Fairlie, your national composure terrifies me.  In the name
of Heaven, what have I said or done to make you think me the
messenger of death?"

"Pray accept my apologies," I answered.  "You have said and done
nothing.  I make it a rule in these distressing cases always to
anticipate the worst.  It breaks the blow by meeting it half-way,
and so on.  Inexpressibly relieved, I am sure, to hear that nobody
is dead.  Anybody ill?"

I opened my eyes and looked at him.  Was he very yellow when he
came in, or had he turned very yellow in the last minute or two? I
really can't say, and I can't ask Louis, because he was not in the
room at the time.

"Anybody ill?" I repeated, observing that my national composure
still appeared to affect him.

"That is part of my bad news, Mr. Fairlie.  Yes.  Somebody is
ill."

"Grieved, I am sure.  Which of them is it?"

"To my profound sorrow, Miss Halcombe.  Perhaps you were in some
degree prepared to hear this? Perhaps when you found that Miss
Halcombe did not come here by herself, as you proposed, and did
not write a second time, your affectionate anxiety may have made
you fear that she was ill?"

I have no doubt my affectionate anxiety had led to that melancholy
apprehension at some time or other, but at the moment my wretched
memory entirely failed to remind me of the circumstance.  However,
I said yes, in justice to myself.  I was much shocked.  It was so
very uncharacteristic of such a robust person as dear Marian to be
ill, that I could only suppose she had met with an accident.  A
horse, or a false step on the stairs, or something of that sort.

"Is it serious?" I asked.

"Serious--beyond a doubt," he replied.  "Dangerous--I hope and
trust not.  Miss Halcombe unhappily exposed herself to be wetted
through by a heavy rain.  The cold that followed was of an
aggravated kind, and it has now brought with it the worst
consequence--fever."

When I heard the word fever, and when I remembered at the same
moment that the unscrupulous person who was now addressing me had
just come from Blackwater Park, I thought I should have fainted on
the spot.

"Good God!" I said.  "Is it infectious?"

"Not at present," he answered, with detestable composure.  "It may
turn to infection--but no such deplorable complication had taken
place when I left Blackwater Park.  I have felt the deepest
interest in the case, Mr. Fairlie--I have endeavoured to assist
the regular medical attendant in watching it--accept my personal
assurances of the uninfectious nature of the fever when I last saw
it."

Accept his assurances! I never was farther from accepting anything
in my life.  I would not have believed him on his oath.  He was
too yellow to be believed.  He looked like a walking-West-Indian-
epidemic.  He was big enough to carry typhus by the ton, and to
dye the very carpet he walked on with scarlet fever.  In certain
emergencies my mind is remarkably soon made up.  I instantly
determined to get rid of him.

"You will kindly excuse an invalid," I said--"but long conferences
of any kind invariably upset me.  May I beg to know exactly what
the object is to which I am indebted for the honour of your
visit?"

I fervently hoped that this remarkably broad hint would throw him
off his balance--confuse him--reduce him to polite apologies--in
short, get him out of the room.  On the contrary, it only settled
him in his chair.  He became additionally solemn, and dignified,
and confidential.  He held up two of his horrid fingers and gave
me another of his unpleasantly penetrating looks.  What was I to
do? I was not strong enough to quarrel with him.  Conceive my
situation, if you please.  Is language adequate to describe it? I
think not.

"The objects of my visit," he went on, quite irrepressibly, "are
numbered on my fingers.  They are two.  First, I come to bear my
testimony, with profound sorrow, to the lamentable disagreements
between Sir Percival and Lady Glyde.  I am Sir Percival's oldest
friend--I am related to Lady Glyde by marriage--I am an eye-
witness of all that has happened at Blackwater Park.  In those
three capacities I speak with authority, with confidence, with
honourable regret.  Sir, I inform you, as the head of Lady Glyde's
family, that Miss Halcombe has exaggerated nothing in the letter
which she wrote to your address.  I affirm that the remedy which
that admirable lady has proposed is the only remedy that will
spare you the horrors of public scandal.  A temporary separation
between husband and wife is the one peaceable solution of this
difficulty.  Part them for the present, and when all causes of
irritation are removed, I, who have now the honour of addressing
you--I will undertake to bring Sir Percival to reason.  Lady Glyde
is innocent, Lady Glyde is injured, but--follow my thought here!--
she is, on that very account (I say it with shame), the cause of
irritation while she remains under her husband's roof.  No other
house can receive her with propriety but yours.  I invite you to
open it."

Cool.  Here was a matrimonial hailstorm pouring in the South of
England, and I was invited, by a man with fever in every fold of
his coat, to come out from the North of England and take my share
of the pelting.  I tried to put the point forcibly, just as I have
put it here.  The Count deliberately lowered one of his horrid
fingers, kept the other up, and went on--rode over me, as it were,
without even the common coach-manlike attention of crying "Hi!"
before he knocked me down.

"Follow my thought once more, if you please," he resumed.  "My
first object you have heard.  My second object in coming to this
house is to do what Miss Halcombe's illness has prevented her from
doing for herself.  My large experience is consulted on all
difficult matters at Blackwater Park, and my friendly advice was
requested on the interesting subject of your letter to Miss
Halcombe.  I understood at once--for my sympathies are your
sympathies--why you wished to see her here before you pledged
yourself to inviting Lady Glyde.  You are most right, sir, in
hesitating to receive the wife until you are quite certain that
the husband will not exert his authority to reclaim her.  I agree
to that.  I also agree that such delicate explanations as this
difficulty involves are not explanations which can be properly
disposed of by writing only.  My presence here (to my own great
inconvenience) is the proof that I speak sincerely.  As for the
explanations themselves, I--Fosco--I, who know Sir Percival much
better than Miss Halcombe knows him, affirm to you, on my honour
and my word, that he will not come near this house, or attempt to
communicate with this house, while his wife is living in it.  His
affairs are embarrassed.  Offer him his freedom by means of the
absence of Lady Glyde.  I promise you he will take his freedom,
and go back to the Continent at the earliest moment when he can
get away.  Is this clear to you as crystal? Yes, it is.  Have you
questions to address to me? Be it so, I am here to answer.  Ask,
Mr. Fairlie--oblige me by asking to your heart's content."

He had said so much already in spite of me, and he looked so
dreadfully capable of saying a great deal more also in spite of
me, that I declined his amiable invitation in pure self-defence.

"Many thanks," I replied.  "I am sinking fast.  In my state of
health I must take things for granted.  Allow me to do so on this
occasion.  We quite understand each other.  Yes.  Much obliged, I
am sure, for your kind interference.  If I ever get better, and
ever have a second opportunity of improving our acquaintance "

He got up.  I thought he was going.  No.  More talk, more time for
the development of infectious influences--in my room, too--
remember that, in my room!

"One moment yet," he said, "one moment before I take my leave.  I
ask permission at parting to impress on you an urgent necessity. 
It is this, sir.  You must not think of waiting till Miss Halcombe
recovers before you receive Lady Glyde.  Miss Halcombe has the
attendance of the doctor, of the housekeeper at Blackwater Park,
and of an experienced nurse as well--three persons for whose
capacity and devotion I answer with my life.  I tell you that.  I
tell you, also, that the anxiety and alarm of her sister's illness
has already affected the health and spirits of Lady Glyde, and has
made her totally unfit to be of use in the sick-room.  Her
position with her husband grows more and more deplorable and
dangerous every day.  If you leave her any longer at Blackwater
Park, you do nothing whatever to hasten her sister's recovery, and
at the same time, you risk the public scandal, which you and I,
and all of us, are bound in the sacred interests of the family to
avoid.  With all my soul, I advise you to remove the serious
responsibility of delay from your own shoulders by writing to Lady
Glyde to come here at once.  Do your affectionate, your
honourable, your inevitable duty, and whatever happens in the
future, no one can lay the blame on you.  I speak from my large
experience--I offer my friendly advice.  Is it accepted--Yes, or
No?"

I looked at him--merely looked at him--with my sense of his
amazing assurance, and my dawning resolution to ring for Louis and
have him shown out of the room expressed in every line of my face. 
It is perfectly incredible, but quite true, that my face did not
appear to produce the slightest impression on him.  Born without
nerves--evidently born without nerves.

"You hesitate?" he said.  "Mr. Fairlie! I understand that
hesitation.  You object--see, sir, how my sympathies look straight
down into your thoughts!--you object that Lady Glyde is not in
health and not in spirits to take the long journey, from Hampshire
to this place, by herself.  Her own maid is removed from her, as
you know, and of other servants fit to travel with her, from one
end of England to another, there are none at Blackwater Park.  You
object, again, that she cannot comfortably stop and rest in
London, on her way here, because she cannot comfortably go alone
to a public hotel where she is a total stranger.  In one breath, I
grant both objections--in another breath, I remove them.  Follow
me, if you please, for the last time.  It was my intention, when I
returned to England with Sir Percival, to settle myself in the
neighbourhood of London.  That purpose has just been happily
accomplished.  I have taken, for six months, a little furnished
house in the quarter called St. John's Wood.  Be so obliging as to
keep this fact in your mind, and observe the programme I now
propose.  Lady Glyde travels to London (a short journey)--I myself
meet her at the station--I take her to rest and sleep at my house,
which is also the house of her aunt--when she is restored I escort
her to the station again--she travels to this place, and her own
maid (who is now under your roof) receives her at the carriage-
door.  Here is comfort consulted--here are the interests of
propriety consulted--here is your own duty--duty of hospitality,
sympathy, protection, to an unhappy lady in need of all three--
smoothed and made easy, from the beginning to the end.  I
cordially invite you, sir, to second my efforts in the sacred
interests of the family.  I seriously advise you to write, by my
hands, offering the hospitality of your house (and heart), and the
hospitality of my house (and heart), to that injured and
unfortunate lady whose cause I plead to-day."

He waved his horrid hand at me--he struck his infectious breast--
he addressed me oratorically, as if I was laid up in the House of
Commons.  It was high time to take a desperate course of some
sort.  It was also high time to send for Louis, and adopt the
precaution of fumigating the room.

In this trying emergency an idea occurred to me--an inestimable
idea which, so to speak, killed two intrusive birds with one
stone.  I determined to get rid of the Count's tiresome eloquence,
and of Lady Glyde's tiresome troubles, by complying with this
odious foreigner's request, and writing the letter at once.  There
was not the least danger of the invitation being accepted, for
there was not the least chance that Laura would consent to leave
Blackwater Park while Marian was lying there ill.  How this
charmingly convenient obstacle could have escaped the officious
penetration of the Count, it was impossible to conceive--but it
HAD escaped him.  My dread that he might yet discover it, if I
allowed him any more time to think, stimulated me to such an
amazing degree, that I struggled into a sitting position--seized,
really seized, the writing materials by my side, and produced the
letter as rapidly as if I had been a common clerk in an office. 
"Dearest Laura, Please come, whenever you like.  Break the journey
by sleeping in London at your aunt's house.  Grieved to hear of
dear Marian's illness.  Ever affectionately yours." I handed these
lines, at arm's length, to the Count--I sank back in my chair--I
said, "Excuse me--I am entirely prostrated--I can do no more. 
Will you rest and lunch downstairs? Love to all, and sympathy, and
so on.  Good-morning."

He made another speech--the man was absolutely inexhaustible.  I
closed my eyes--I endeavoured to hear as little as possible.  In
spite of my endeavours I was obliged to hear a great deal.  My
sister's endless husband congratulated himself, and congratulated
me, on the result of our interview--he mentioned a great deal more
about his sympathies and mine--he deplored my miserable health--he
offered to write me a prescription--he impressed on me the
necessity of not forgetting what he had said about the importance
of light--he accepted my obliging invitation to rest and lunch--he
recommended me to expect Lady Glyde in two or three days' time--he
begged my permission to look forward to our next meeting, instead
of paining himself and paining me, by saying farewell--he added a
great deal more, which, I rejoice to think, I did not attend to at
the time, and do not remember now.  I heard his sympathetic voice
travelling away from me by degrees--but, large as he was, I never
heard him.  He had the negative merit of being absolutely
noiseless.  I don't know when he opened the door, or when he shut 
it.  I ventured to make use of my eyes again, after an interval of
silence--and he was gone.

I rang for Louis, and retired to my bathroom.  Tepid water,
strengthened with aromatic vinegar, for myself, and copious
fumigation for my study, were the obvious precautions to take, and
of course I adopted them.  I rejoice to say they proved
successful.  I enjoyed my customary siesta.  I awoke moist and
cool.

My first inquiries were for the Count.  Had we really got rid of
him? Yes--he had gone away by the afternoon train.  Had he
lunched, and if so, upon what? Entirely upon fruit-tart and cream. 
What a man! What a digestion!



Am I expected to say anything more? I believe not.  I believe I
have reached the limits assigned to me.  The shocking
circumstances which happened at a later period did not, I am
thankful to say, happen in my presence.  I do beg and entreat that
nobody will be so very unfeeling as to lay any part of the blame
of those circumstances on me.  I did everything for the best. I am
not answerable for a deplorable calamity, which it was quite
impossible to foresee.  I am shattered by it--I have suffered
under it, as nobody else has suffered.  My servant, Louis (who is
really attached to me in his unintelligent way), thinks I shall
never get over it.  He sees me dictating at this moment, with my
handkerchief to my eyes.  I wish to mention, in justice to myself,
that it was not my fault, and that I am quite exhausted and
heartbroken.  Need I say more?



THE STORY CONTINUED BY ELIZA MICHELSON
(Housekeeper at Blackwater Park)



I


I am asked to state plainly what I know of the progress of Miss
Halcombe's illness and of the circumstances under which Lady Glyde
left Blackwater Park for London.

The reason given for making this demand on me is, that my
testimony is wanted in the interests of truth.  As the widow of a
clergyman of the Church of England (reduced by misfortune to the
necessity of accepting a situation), I have been taught to place
the claims of truth above all other considerations.  I therefore
comply with a request which I might otherwise, through reluctance
to connect myself with distressing family affairs, have hesitated
to grant.

I made no memorandum at the time, and I cannot therefore be sure
to a day of the date, but I believe I am correct in stating that
Miss Halcombe's serious illness began during the last fortnight or
ten days in June.  The breakfast hour was late at Blackwater Park--
sometimes as late as ten, never earlier than half-past nine.  On
the morning to which I am now referring, Miss Halcombe (who was
usually the first to come down) did not make her appearance at the
table.  After the family had waited a quarter of an hour, the
upper housemaid was sent to see after her, and came running out of
the room dreadfully frightened.  I met the servant on the stairs,
and went at once to Miss Halcombe to see what was the matter.  The
poor lady was incapable of telling me.  She was walking about her
room with a pen in her hand, quite light-headed, in a state of
burning fever.

Lady Glyde (being no longer in Sir Percival's service, I may,
without impropriety, mention my former mistress by her name,
instead of calling her my lady) was the first to come in from her
own bedroom.  She was so dreadfully alarmed and distressed that
she was quite useless.  The Count Fosco, and his lady, who came
upstairs immediately afterwards, were both most serviceable and
kind.  Her ladyship assisted me to get Miss Halcombe to her bed. 
His lordship the Count remained in the sitting-room, and having
sent for my medicine-chest, made a mixture for Miss Halcombe, and
a cooling lotion to be applied to her head, so as to lose no time
before the doctor came.  We applied the lotion, but we could not
get her to take the mixture.  Sir Percival undertook to send for
the doctor.  He despatched a groom, on horseback, for the nearest
medical man, Mr. Dawson, of Oak Lodge.

Mr. Dawson arrived in less than an hour's time.  He was a
respectable elderly man, well known all round the country, and we
were much alarmed when we found that he considered the case to be
a very serious one.

His lordship the Count affably entered into conversation with Mr.
Dawson, and gave his opinions with a judicious freedom.  Mr.
Dawson, not over-courteously, inquired if his lordship's advice
was the advice of a doctor, and being informed that it was the
advice of one who had studied medicine unprofessionally, replied
that he was not accustomed to consult with amateur physicians. 
The Count, with truly Christian meekness of temper, smiled and
left the room.  Before he went out he told me that he might be
found, in case he was wanted in the course of the day, at the
boat-house on the banks of the lake.  Why he should have gone
there, I cannot say.  But he did go, remaining away the whole day
till seven o'clock, which was dinner-time.  Perhaps he wished to
set the example of keeping the house as quiet as possible.  It was
entirely in his character to do so.  He was a most considerate
nobleman.

Miss Halcombe passed a very bad night, the fever coming and going,
and getting worse towards the morning instead of better.  No nurse
fit to wait on her being at hand in the neighbourhood, her
ladyship the Countess and myself undertook the duty, relieving
each other.  Lady Glyde, most unwisely, insisted on sitting up
with us.  She was much too nervous and too delicate in health to
bear the anxiety of Miss Halcombe's illness calmly.  She only did
herself harm, without being of the least real assistance.  A more
gentle and affectionate lady never lived--but she cried, and she
was frightened, two weaknesses which made her entirely unfit to be
present in a sick-room.

Sir Percival and the Count came in the morning to make their
inquiries.

Sir Percival (from distress, I presume, at his lady's affliction
and at Miss Halcombe's illness) appeared much confused and
unsettled in his mind.  His lordship testified, on the contrary, a
becoming composure and interest. He had his straw hat in one hand,
and his book in the other, and he mentioned to Sir Percival in my
hearing that he would go out again and study at the lake.  "Let us
keep the house quiet," he said.  "Let us not smoke indoors, my
friend, now Miss Halcombe is ill.  You go your way, and I will go
mine.  When I study I like to be alone.  Good-morning, Mrs.
Michelson."

Sir Percival was not civil enough--perhaps I ought in justice to
say, not composed enough--to take leave of me with the same polite
attention.  The only person in the house, indeed, who treated me,
at that time or at any other, on the footing of a lady in
distressed circumstances, was the Count.  He had the manners of a
true nobleman--he was considerate towards every one.  Even the
young person (Fanny by name) who attended on Lady Glyde was not
beneath his notice.  When she was sent away by Sir Percival, his
lordship (showing me his sweet little birds at the time) was most
kindly anxious to know what had become of her, where she was to go
the day she left Blackwater Park, and so on.  It is in such little
delicate attentions that the advantages of aristocratic birth
always show themselves.  I make no apology for introducing these
particulars--they are brought forward in justice to his lordship,
whose character, I have reason to know, is viewed rather harshly
in certain quarters.  A nobleman who can respect a lady in
distressed circumstances, and can take a fatherly interest in the
fortunes of an humble servant girl, shows principles and feelings
of too high an order to be lightly called in question.  I advance
no opinions--I offer facts only.  My endeavour through life is to
judge not that I be not judged.  One of my beloved husband's
finest sermons was on that text.  I read it constantly--in my own
copy of the edition printed by subscription, in the first days of
my widowhood--and at every fresh perusal I derive an increase of
spiritual benefit and edification.

There was no improvement in Miss Halcombe, and the second night
was even worse than the first. Mr. Dawson was constant in his
attendance.  The practical duties of nursing were still divided
between the Countess and myself, Lady Glyde persisting in sitting
up with us, though we both entreated her to take some rest. "My
place is by Marian's bedside," was her only answer.  "Whether I am
ill, or well, nothing will induce me to lose sight of her."

Towards midday I went downstairs to attend to some of my regular
duties.  An hour afterwards, on my way back to the sick-room, I
saw the Count (who had gone out again early, for the third time)
entering the hall, to all appearance in the highest good spirits. 
Sir Percival, at the same moment, put his head out of the library
door, and addressed his noble friend, with extreme eagerness, in
these words--

"Have you found her?"

His lordship's large face became dimpled all over with placid
smiles, but he made no reply in words.  At the same time Sir
Percival turned his head, observed that I was approaching the
stairs, and looked at me in the most rudely angry manner possible.

"Come in here and tell me about it," he said to the Count. 
"Whenever there are women in a house they're always sure to be
going up or down stairs."

"My dear Percival," observed his lordship kindly, "Mrs. Michelson
has duties.  Pray recognise her admirable performance of them as
sincerely as I do! How is the sufferer, Mrs. Michelson?"

"No better, my lord, I regret to say."

"Sad--most sad!" remarked the Count.  "You look fatigued, Mrs.
Michelson.  It is certainly time you and my wife had some help in
nursing.  I think I may be the means of offering you that help. 
Circumstances have happened which will oblige Madame Fosco to
travel to London either to-morrow or the day after.  She will go
away in the morning and return at night, and she will bring back
with her, to relieve you, a nurse of excellent conduct and
capacity, who is now disengaged.  The woman is known to my wife as
a person to be trusted.  Before she comes here say nothing about
her, if you please, to the doctor, because he will look with an
evil eye on any nurse of my providing.  When she appears in this
house she will speak for herself, and Mr. Dawson will be obliged
to acknowledge that there is no excuse for not employing her. 
Lady Glyde will say the same.  Pray present my best respects and
sympathies to Lady Glyde."

I expressed my grateful acknowledgments for his lordship's kind
consideration.  Sir Percival cut them short by calling to his
noble friend (using, I regret to say, a profane expression) to
come into the library, and not to keep him waiting there any
longer.

I proceeded upstairs.  We are poor erring creatures, and however
well established a woman's principles may be she cannot always
keep on her guard against the temptation to exercise an idle
curiosity.  I am ashamed to say that an idle curiosity, on this
occasion, got the better of my principles, and made me unduly
inquisitive about the question which Sir Percival had addressed to
his noble friend at the library door.  Who was the Count expected
to find in the course of his studious morning rambles at
Blackwater Park? A woman, it was to be presumed, from the terms of
Sir Percival's inquiry.  I did not suspect the Count of any
impropriety--I knew his moral character too well.  The only
question I asked myself was--Had he found her?

To resume.  The night passed as usual without producing any change
for the better in Miss Halcombe.  The next day she seemed to
improve a little.  The day after that her ladyship the Countess,
without mentioning the object of her journey to any one in my
hearing, proceeded by the morning train to London--her noble
husband, with his customary attention, accompanying her to the
station.

I was now left in sole charge of Miss Halcombe, with every
apparent chance, in consequence of her sister's resolution not to
leave the bedside, of having Lady Glyde herself to nurse next.

The only circumstance of any importance that happened in the
course of the day was the occurrence of another unpleasant meeting
between the doctor and the Count.

His lordship, on returning from the station, stepped up into Miss
Halcombe's sitting-room to make his inquiries.  I went out from
the bedroom to speak to him, Mr. Dawson and Lady Glyde being both
with the patient at the time.  The Count asked me many questions
about the treatment and the symptoms.  I informed him that the
treatment was of the kind described as "saline," and that the
symptoms, between the attacks of fever, were certainly those of
increasing weakness and exhaustion.  Just as I was mentioning
these last particulars, Mr. Dawson came out from the bedroom.

"Good-morning, sir," said his lordship, stepping forward in the
most urbane manner, and stopping the doctor, with a high-bred
resolution impossible to resist, "I greatly fear you find no
improvement in the symptoms to-day?"

"I find decided improvement," answered Mr. Dawson.

"You still persist in your lowering treatment of this case of
fever?" continued his lordship.

"I persist in the treatment which is justified by my own
professional experience," said Mr. Dawson.

"Permit me to put one question to you on the vast subject of
professional experience," observed the Count.  "I presume to offer
no more advice--I only presume to make an inquiry.  You live at
some distance, sir, from the gigantic centres of scientific
activity--London and Paris.  Have you ever heard of the wasting
effects of fever being reasonably and intelligibly repaired by
fortifying the exhausted patient with brandy, wine, ammonia, and
quinine? Has that new heresy of the highest medical authorities
ever reached your ears--Yes or No?"

"When a professional man puts that question to me I shall be glad
to answer him," said the doctor, opening the door to go out.  "You
are not a professional man, and I beg to decline answering you."

Buffeted in this inexcusably uncivil way on one cheek, the Count,
like a practical Christian, immediately turned the other, and
said, in the sweetest manner, "Good-morning, Mr. Dawson."

If my late beloved husband had been so fortunate as to know his
lordship, how highly he and the Count would have esteemed each
other!

Her ladyship the Countess returned by the last train that night,
and brought with her the nurse from London.  I was instructed that
this person's name was Mrs. Rubelle.  Her personal appearance, and
her imperfect English when she spoke, informed me that she was a
foreigner.

I have always cultivated a feeling of humane indulgence for
foreigners.  They do not possess our blessings and advantages, and
they are, for the most part, brought up in the blind errors of
Popery.  It has also always been my precept and practice, as it
was my dear husband's precept and practice before me (see Sermon
XXIX. in the Collection by the late Rev. Samuel Michelson, M.A.),
to do as I would be done by.  On both these accounts I will not
say that Mrs. Rubelle struck me as being a small, wiry, sly
person, of fifty or thereabouts, with a dark brown or Creole
complexion and watchful light grey eyes.  Nor will I mention, for
the reasons just alleged, that I thought her dress, though it was
of the plainest black silk, inappropriately costly in texture and
unnecessarily refined in trimming and finish, for a person in her
position in life.  I should not like these things to be said of
me, and therefore it is my duty not to say them of Mrs. Rubelle. 
I will merely mention that her manners were, not perhaps
unpleasantly reserved, but only remarkably quiet and retiring--
that she looked about her a great deal, and said very little,
which might have arisen quite as much from her own modesty as from
distrust of her position at Blackwater Park; and that she declined
to partake of supper (which was curious perhaps, but surely not
suspicious?), although I myself politely invited her to that meal
in my own room.

At the Count's particular suggestion (so like his lordship's
forgiving kindness!), it was arranged that Mrs. Rubelle should not
enter on her duties until she had been seen and approved by the
doctor the next morning.  I sat up that night.  Lady Glyde
appeared to be very unwilling that the new nurse should be
employed to attend on Miss Halcombe.  Such want of liberality
towards a foreigner on the part of a lady of her education and
refinement surprised me.  I ventured to say, "My lady, we must all
remember not to be hasty in our judgments on our inferiors--
especially when they come from foreign parts." Lady Glyde did not
appear to attend to me.  She only sighed, and kissed Miss
Halcombe's hand as it lay on the counterpane.  Scarcely a
judicious proceeding in a sick-room, with a patient whom it was
highly desirable not to excite.  But poor Lady Glyde knew nothing
of nursing--nothing whatever, I am sorry to say.

The next morning Mrs. Rubelle was sent to the sitting-room, to be
approved by the doctor on his way through to the bedroom.

I left Lady Glyde with Miss Halcombe, who was slumbering at the
time, and joined Mrs. Rubelle, with the object of kindly
preventing her from feeling strange and nervous in consequence of
the uncertainty of her situation.  She did not appear to see it in
that light.  She seemed to be quite satisfied, beforehand, that
Mr. Dawson would approve of her, and she sat calmly looking out of
window, with every appearance of enjoying the country air.  Some
people might have thought such conduct suggestive of brazen
assurance.  I beg to say that I more liberally set it down to
extraordinary strength of mind.

Instead of the doctor coming up to us, I was sent for to see the
doctor.  I thought this change of affairs rather odd, but Mrs.
Rubelle did not appear to be affected by it in any way.  I left
her still calmly looking out of the window, and still silently
enjoying the country air.

Mr. Dawson was waiting for me by himself in the breakfast-room.

"About this new nurse, Mrs. Michelson," said the doctor.

"Yes, sir?"

"I find that she has been brought here from London by the wife of
that fat old foreigner, who is always trying to interfere with me. 
Mrs. Michelson, the fat old foreigner is a quack."

This was very rude.  I was naturally shocked at it.

"Are you aware, sir," I said, "that you are talking of a
nobleman?"

"Pooh! He isn't the first quack with a handle to his name. 
They're all Counts--hang 'em!"

"He would not be a friend of Sir Percival Glyde's, sir, if he was
not a member of the highest aristocracy--excepting the English
aristocracy, of course."

"Very well, Mrs. Michelson, call him what you like, and let us get
back to the nurse.  I have been objecting to her already."

"Without having seen her, sir?"

"Yes, without having seen her.  She may be the best nurse in
existence, but she is not a nurse of my providing.  I have put
that objection to Sir Percival, as the master of the house.  He
doesn't support me.  He says a nurse of my providing would have
been a stranger from London also, and he thinks the woman ought to
have a trial, after his wife's aunt has taken the trouble to fetch
her from London.  There is some justice in that, and I can't
decently say No.  But I have made it a condition that she is to go
at once, if I find reason to complain of her.  This proposal being
one which I have some right to make, as medical attendant, Sir
Percival has consented to it.  Now, Mrs. Michelson, I know I can
depend on you, and I want you to keep a sharp eye on the nurse for
the first day or two, and to see that she gives Miss Halcombe no
medicines but mine.  This foreign nobleman of yours is dying to
try his quack remedies (mesmerism included) on my patient, and a
nurse who is brought here by his wife may be a little too willing
to help him.  You understand? Very well, then, we may go upstairs. 
Is the nurse there? I'll say a word to her before she goes into
the sick-room."

We found Mrs. Rubelle still enjoying herself at the window.  When
I introduced her to Mr. Dawson, neither the doctor's doubtful
looks nor the doctor's searching questions appeared to confuse her
in the least.  She answered him quietly in her broken English, and
though he tried hard to puzzle her, she never betrayed the least
ignorance, so far, about any part of her duties.  This was
doubtless the result of strength of mind, as I said before, and
not of brazen assurance, by any means.

We all went into the bedroom.

Mrs. Rubelle looked very attentively at the patient, curtseyed to
Lady Glyde, set one or two little things right in the room, and
sat down quietly in a corner to wait until she was wanted.  Her
ladyship seemed startled and annoyed by the appearance of the
strange nurse.  No one said anything, for fear of rousing Miss
Halcombe, who was still slumbering, except the doctor, who
whispered a question about the night.  I softly answered, "Much as
usual," and then Mr. Dawson went out.  Lady Glyde followed him, I
suppose to speak about Mrs. Rubelle.  For my own part, I had made
up my mind already that this quiet foreign person would keep her
situation.  She had all her wits about her, and she certainly
understood her business.  So far, I could hardly have done much
better by the bedside myself.

Remembering Mr. Dawson's caution to me, I subjected Mrs. Rubelle
to a severe scrutiny at certain intervals for the next three or
four days.  I over and over again entered the room softly and
suddenly, but I never found her out in any suspicious action. 
Lady Glyde, who watched her as attentively as I did, discovered
nothing either.  I never detected a sign of the medicine bottles
being tampered with, I never saw Mrs. Rubelle say a word to the
Count, or the Count to her.  She managed Miss Halcombe with
unquestionable care and discretion.  The poor lady wavered
backwards and forwards between a sort of sleepy exhaustion, which
was half faintness and half slumbering, and attacks of fever which
brought with them more or less of wandering in her mind.  Mrs.
Rubelle never disturbed her in the first case, and never startled
her in the second, by appearing too suddenly at the bedside in the
character of a stranger.  Honour to whom honour is due (whether
foreign or English and I give her privilege impartially to Mrs.
Rubelle.  She was remarkably uncommunicative about herself, and
she was too quietly independent of all advice from experienced
persons who understood the duties of a sick-room--but with these
drawbacks, she was a good nurse, and she never gave either Lady
Glyde or Mr. Dawson the shadow of a reason for complaining of her.

The next circumstance of importance that occurred in the house was
the temporary absence of the Count, occasioned by business which
took him to London.  He went away (I think) on the morning of the
fourth day after the arrival of Mrs. Rubelle, and at parting he
spoke to Lady Glyde very seriously, in my presence, on the subject
of Miss Halcombe.

"Trust Mr. Dawson," he said, "for a few days more, if you please. 
But if there is not some change for the better in that time, send
for advice from London, which this mule of a doctor must accept in
spite of himself.  Offend Mr. Dawson, and save Miss Halcombe.  I
say this seriously, on my word of honour and from the bottom of my
heart."

His lordship spoke with extreme feeling and kindness.  But poor
Lady Glyde's nerves were so completely broken down that she seemed
quite frightened at him.  She trembled from head to foot, and
allowed him to take his leave without uttering a word on her side. 
She turned to me when he had gone, and said, "Oh, Mrs. Michelson,
I am heart-broken about my sister, and I have no friend to advise
me! Do you think Mr. Dawson is wrong? He told me himself this
morning that there was no fear, and no need to send for another
doctor."

"With all respect to Mr. Dawson," I answered, "in your ladyship's
place I should remember the Count's advice."

Lady Glyde turned away from me suddenly, with an appearance of
despair, for which I was quite unable to account.

"HIS advice!" she said to herself.  "God help us--HIS advice!"



The Count was away from Blackwater Park, as nearly as I remember,
a week.

Sir Percival seemed to feel the loss of his lordship in various
ways, and appeared also, I thought, much depressed and altered by
the sickness and sorrow in the house.  Occasionally he was so very
restless that I could not help noticing it, coming and going, and
wandering here and there and everywhere in the grounds.  His
inquiries about Miss Halcombe, and about his lady (whose failing
health seemed to cause him sincere anxiety), were most attentive. 
I think his heart was much softened.  If some kind clerical
friend--some such friend as he might have found in my late
excellent husband--had been near him at this time, cheering moral
progress might have been made with Sir Percival.  I seldom find
myself mistaken on a point of this sort, having had experience to
guide me in my happy married days.

Her ladyship the Countess, who was now the only company for Sir
Percival downstairs, rather neglected him, as I considered--or,
perhaps, it might have been that he neglected her.  A stranger
might almost have supposed that they were bent, now they were left
together alone, on actually avoiding one another.  This, of
course, could not be.  But it did so happen, nevertheless, that
the Countess made her dinner at luncheon-time, and that she always
came upstairs towards evening, although Mrs. Rubelle had taken the
nursing duties entirely off her hands.  Sir Percival dined by
himself, and William (the man out of livery) make the remark, in
my hearing, that his master had put himself on half rations of
food and on a double allowance of drink.  I attach no importance
to such an insolent observation as this on the part of a servant. 
I reprobated it at the time, and I wish to be understood as
reprobating it once more on this occasion.

In the course of the next few days Miss Halcombe did certainly
seem to all of us to be mending a little.  Our faith in Mr. Dawson
revived.  He appeared to be very confident about the case, and he
assured Lady Glyde, when she spoke to him on the subject, that he
would himself propose to send for a physician the moment he felt
so much as the shadow of a doubt crossing his own mind.

The only person among us who did not appear to be relieved by
these words was the Countess.  She said to me privately, that she
could not feel easy about Miss Halcombe on Mr. Dawson's authority,
and that she should wait anxiously for her husband's opinion on
his return.  That return, his letters informed her, would take
place in three days' time.  The Count and Countess corresponded
regularly every morning during his lordship's absence.  They were
in that respect, as in all others, a pattern to married people.

On the evening of the third day I noticed a change in Miss
Halcombe, which caused me serious apprehension.  Mrs. Rubelle
noticed it too.  We said nothing on the subject to Lady Glyde, who
was then lying asleep, completely overpowered by exhaustion, on
the sofa in the sitting-room.

Mr. Dawson did not pay his evening visit till later than usual. 
As soon as he set eyes on his patient I saw his face alter.  He
tried to hide it, but he looked both confused and alarmed.  A
messenger was sent to his residence for his medicine-chest,
disinfecting preparations were used in the room, and a bed was
made up for him in the house by his own directions.  "Has the
fever turned to infection?" I whispered to him.  "I am afraid it
has," he answered; "we shall know better to-morrow morning.

By Mr. Dawson's own directions Lady Glyde was kept in ignorance of
this change for the worse.  He himself absolutely forbade her, on
account of her health, to join us in the bed-room that night.  She
tried to resist--there was a sad scene--but he had his medical
authority to support him, and he carried his point.

The next morning one of the men-servants was sent to London at
eleven o'clock, with a letter to a physician in town, and with
orders to bring the new doctor back with him by the earliest
possible train.  Half an hour after the messenger had gone the
Count returned to Blackwater Park.

The Countess, on her own responsibility, immediately brought him
in to see the patient.  There was no impropriety that I could
discover in her taking this course.  His lordship was a married
man, he was old enough to be Miss Halcombe's father, and he saw
her in the presence of a female relative, Lady Glyde's aunt.  Mr.
Dawson nevertheless protested against his presence in the room,
but I could plainly remark the doctor was too much alarmed to make
any serious resistance on this occasion.

The poor suffering lady was past knowing any one about her.  She
seemed to take her friends for enemies.  When the Count approached
her bedside her eyes, which had been wandering incessantly round
and round the room before, settled on his face with a dreadful
stare of terror, which I shall remember to my dying day.  The
Count sat down by her, felt her pulse and her temples, looked at
her very attentively, and then turned round upon the doctor with
such an expression of indignation and contempt in his face, that
the words failed on Mr. Dawson's lips, and he stood for a moment,
pale with anger and alarm--pale and perfectly speechless.

His lordship looked next at me.

"When did the change happen?" he asked.

I told him the time.

"Has Lady Glyde been in the room since?"

I replied that she had not.  The doctor had absolutely forbidden
her to come into the room on the evening before, and had repeated
the order again in the morning.

"Have you and Mrs. Rubelle been made aware of the full extent of
the mischief?" was his next question.

We were aware, I answered, that the malady was considered
infectious.  He stopped me before I could add anything more.

"It is typhus fever," he said.

In the minute that passed, while these questions and answers were
going on, Mr. Dawson recovered himself, and addressed the Count
with his customary firmness.

"It is NOT typhus fever," he remarked sharply.  "I protest against
this intrusion, sir.  No one has a right to put questions here but
me.  I have done my duty to the best of my ability--"

The Count interrupted him--not by words, but only by pointing to
the bed.  Mr. Dawson seemed to feel that silent contradiction to
his assertion of his own ability, and to grow only the more angry
under it.

"I say I have done my duty," he reiterated.  "A physician has been
sent for from London.  I will consult on the nature of the fever
with him, and with no one else.  I insist on your leaving the
room."

"I entered this room, sir, in the sacred interests of humanity,"
said the Count.  "And in the same interests, if the coming of the
physician is delayed, I will enter it again.  I warn you once more
that the fever has turned to typhus, and that your treatment is
responsible for this lamentable change.  If that unhappy lady
dies, I will give my testimony in a court of justice that your
ignorance and obstinacy have been the cause of her death."

Before Mr. Dawson could answer, before the Count could leave us,
the door was opened from the sitting-room, and we saw Lady Glyde
on the threshold.

"I MUST and WILL come in," she said, with extraordinary firmness.

Instead of stopping her, the Count moved into the sitting-room,
and made way for her to go in.  On all other occasions he was the
last man in the world to forget anything, but in the surprise of
the moment he apparently forgot the danger of infection from
typhus, and the urgent necessity of forcing Lady Glyde to take
proper care of herself.

To my astonishment Mr. Dawson showed more presence of mind.  He
stopped her ladyship at the first step she took towards the
bedside.  "I am sincerely sorry, I am sincerely grieved," he said. 
"The fever may, I fear, be infectious.  Until I am certain that it
is not, I entreat you to keep out of the room."

She struggled for a moment, then suddenly dropped her arms and
sank forward.  She had fainted.  The Countess and I took her from
the doctor and carried her into her own room.  The Count preceded
us, and waited in the passage till I came out and told him that we
had recovered her from the swoon.

I went back to the doctor to tell him, by Lady Glyde's desire,
that she insisted on speaking to him immediately.  He withdrew at
once to quiet her ladyship's agitation, and to assure her of the
physician's arrival in the course of a few hours.  Those hours
passed very slowly.  Sir Percival and the Count were together
downstairs, and sent up from time to time to make their inquiries. 
At last, between five and six o'clock, to our great relief, the
physician came.

He was a younger man than Mr. Dawson, very serious and very
decided.  What he thought of the previous treatment I cannot say,
but it struck me as curious that he put many more questions to
myself and to Mrs. Rubelle than he put to the doctor, and that he
did not appear to listen with much interest to what Mr. Dawson
said, while he was examining Mr. Dawson's patient.  I began to
suspect, from what I observed in this way, that the Count had been
right about the illness all the way through, and I was naturally
confirmed in that idea when Mr. Dawson, after some little delay,
asked the one important question which the London doctor had been
sent for to set at rest.

"What is your opinion of the fever?" he inquired.

"Typhus," replied the physician "Typhus fever beyond all doubt."

That quiet foreign person, Mrs. Rubelle, crossed her thin brown
hands in front of her, and looked at me with a very significant
smile.  The Count himself could hardly have appeared more
gratified if he had been present in the room and had heard the
confirmation of his own opinion.

After giving us some useful directions about the management of the
patient, and mentioning that he would come again in five days'
time, the physician withdrew to consult in private with Mr.
Dawson.  He would offer no opinion on Miss Halcombe's chances of
recovery--he said it was impossible at that stage of the illness
to pronounce one way or the other.



The five days passed anxiously.

Countess Fosco and myself took it by turns to relieve Mrs.
Rubelle, Miss Halcombe's condition growing worse and worse, and
requiring our utmost care and attention.  It was a terribly trying
time.  Lady Glyde (supported, as Mr. Dawson said, by the constant
strain of her suspense on her sister's account) rallied in the
most extraordinary manner, and showed a firmness and determination
for which I should myself never have given her credit.  She
insisted on coming into the sick-room two or three times every
day, to look at Miss Halcombe with her own eyes, promising not to
go too close to the bed, if the doctor would consent to her wishes
so far.  Mr. Dawson very unwillingly made the concession required
of him--I think he saw that it was hopeless to dispute with her. 
She came in every day, and she self-denyingly kept her promise.  I
felt it personally so distressing (as reminding me of my own
affliction during my husband's last illness) to see how she
suffered under these circumstances, that I must beg not to dwell
on this part of the subject any longer.  It is more agreeable to
me to mention that no fresh disputes took place between Mr. Dawson
and the Count.  His lordship made all his inquiries by deputy, and
remained continually in company with Sir Percival downstairs.

On the fifth day the physician came again and gave us a little
hope.  He said the tenth day from the first appearance of the
typhus would probably decide the result of the illness, and he
arranged for his third visit to take place on that date.  The
interval passed as before--except that the Count went to London
again one morning and returned at night.

On the tenth day it pleased a merciful Providence to relieve our
household from all further anxiety and alarm.  The physician
positively assured us that Miss Halcombe was out of danger.  "She
wants no doctor now--all she requires is careful watching and
nursing for some time to come, and that I see she has."  Those
were his own words.  That evening I read my husband's touching
sermon on Recovery from Sickness, with more happiness and
advantage (in a spiritual point of view) than I ever remember to
have derived from it before.

The effect of the good news on poor Lady Glyde was, I grieve to
say, quite overpowering.  She was too weak to bear the violent
reaction, and in another day or two she sank into a state of
debility and depression which obliged her to keep her room.  Rest
and quiet, and change of air afterwards, were the best remedies
which Mr. Dawson could suggest for her benefit.  It was fortunate
that matters were no worse, for, on the very day after she took to
her room, the Count and the doctor had another disagreement--and
this time the dispute between them was of so serious a nature that
Mr. Dawson left the house.

I was not present at the time, but I understood that the subject
of dispute was the amount of nourishment which it was necessary to
give to assist Miss Halcombe's convalescence after the exhaustion
of the fever.  Mr. Dawson, now that his patient was safe, was less
inclined than ever to submit to unprofessional interference, and
the Count (I cannot imagine why) lost all the self-control which
he had so judiciously preserved on former occasions, and taunted
the doctor, over and over again, with his mistake about the fever
when it changed to typhus.  The unfortunate affair ended in Mr.
Dawson's appealing to Sir Percival, and threatening (now that he
could leave without absolute danger to Miss Halcombe) to withdraw
from his attendance at Blackwater Park if the Count's interference
was not peremptorily suppressed from that moment.  Sir Percival's
reply (though not designedly uncivil) had only resulted in making
matters worse, and Mr. Dawson had thereupon withdrawn from the
house in a state of extreme indignation at Count Fosco's usage of
him, and had sent in his bill the next morning.

We were now, therefore, left without the attendance of a medical
man.  Although there was no actual necessity for another doctor--
nursing and watching being, as the physician had observed, all
that Miss Halcombe required--I should still, if my authority had
been consulted, have obtained professional assistance from some
other quarter, for form's sake.

The matter did not seem to strike Sir Percival in that light.  He
said it would be time enough to send for another doctor if Miss
Halcombe showed any signs of a relapse.  In the meanwhile we had
the Count to consult in any minor difficulty, and we need not
unnecessarily disturb our patient in her present weak and nervous
condition by the presence of a stranger at her bedside.  There was
much that was reasonable, no doubt, in these considerations, but
they left me a little anxious nevertheless.  Nor was I quite
satisfied in my own mind of the propriety of our concealing the
doctor's absence as we did from Lady Glyde.  It was a merciful
deception, I admit--for she was in no state to bear any fresh
anxieties.  But still it was a deception, and, as such, to a
person of my principles, at best a doubtful proceeding.



A second perplexing circumstance which happened on the same day,
and which took me completely by surprise, added greatly to the
sense of uneasiness that was now weighing on my mind.

I was sent for to see Sir Percival in the library.  The Count, who
was with him when I went in, immediately rose and left us alone
together.  Sir Percival civilly asked me to take a seat, and then,
to my great astonishment, addressed me in these terms--

"I want to speak to you, Mrs. Michelson, about a matter which I
decided on some time ago, and which I should have mentioned
before, but for the sickness and trouble in the house.  In plain
words, I have reasons for wishing to break up my establishment
immediately at this place--leaving you in charge, of course, as
usual.  As soon as Lady Glyde and Miss Halcombe can travel they
must both have change of air.  My friends, Count Fosco and the
Countess, will leave us before that time to live in the
neighbourhood of London, and I have reasons for not opening the
house to any more company, with a view to economising as carefully
as I can.  I don't blame you, but my expenses here are a great
deal too heavy.  In short, I shall sell the horses, and get rid of
all the servants at once.  I never do things by halves, as you
know, and I mean to have the house clear of a pack of useless
people by this time to-morrow."

I listened to him, perfectly aghast with astonishment.

"Do you mean, Sir Percival, that I am to dismiss the indoor
servants under my charge without the usual month's warning?" I
asked.

"Certainly I do.  We may all be out of the house before another
month, and I am not going to leave the servants here in idleness,
with no master to wait on."

"Who is to do the cooking, Sir Percival, while you are still
staying here?"

"Margaret Porcher can roast and boil--keep her.  What do I want
with a cook if I don't mean to give any dinner-parties?"

"The servant you have mentioned is the most unintelligent servant
in the house, Sir Percival "

"Keep her, I tell you, and have a woman in from the village to do
the cleaning and go away again.  My weekly expenses must and shall
be lowered immediately.  I don't send for you to make objections,
Mrs. Michelson--I send for you to carry out my plans of economy. 
Dismiss the whole lazy pack of indoor servants to-morrow, except
Porcher.  She is as strong as a horse--and we'll make her work
like a horse."

"You will excuse me for reminding you, Sir Percival, that if the
servants go to-morrow they must have a month's wages in lieu of a
month's warning."

"Let them! A month's wages saves a month's waste and gluttony in
the servants' hall."

This last remark conveyed an aspersion of the most offensive kind
on my management.  I had too much self-respect to defend myself
under so gross an imputation.  Christian consideration for the
helpless position of Miss Halcombe and Lady Glyde, and for the
serious inconvenience which my sudden absence might inflict on
them, alone prevented me from resigning my situation on the spot. 
I rose immediately.  It would have lowered me in my own estimation
to have permitted the interview to continue a moment longer.

"After that last remark, Sir Percival, I have nothing more to say. 
Your directions shall be attended to." Pronouncing those words, I
bowed my head with the most distant respect, and went out of the
room.

The next day the servants left in a body.  Sir Percival himself
dismissed the grooms and stablemen, sending them, with all the
horses but one, to London.  Of the whole domestic establishment,
indoors and out, there now remained only myself, Margaret Porcher,
and the gardener--this last living in his own cottage, and being
wanted to take care of the one horse that remained in the stables.

With the house left in this strange and lonely condition--with the
mistress of it ill in her room--with Miss Halcombe still as
helpless as a child--and with the doctor's attendance withdrawn
from us in enmity--it was surely not unnatural that my spirits
should sink, and my customary composure be very hard to maintain. 
My mind was ill at ease.  I wished the poor ladies both well
again, and I wished myself away from Blackwater Park.



II


The next event that occurred was of so singular a nature that it
might have caused me a feeling of superstitious surprise, if my
mind had not been fortified by principle against any pagan
weakness of that sort.  The uneasy sense of something wrong in the
family which had made me wish myself away from Blackwater Park,
was actually followed, strange to say, by my departure from the
house.  It is true that my absence was for a temporary period
only, but the coincidence was, in my opinion, not the less
remarkable on that account.

My departure took place under the following circumstances--

A day or two after the servants all left I was again sent for to
see Sir Percival.  The undeserved slur which he had cast on my
management of the household did not, I am happy to say, prevent me
from returning good for evil to the best of my ability, by
complying with his request as readily and respectfully as ever. 
It cost me a struggle with that fallen nature, which we all share
in common, before I could suppress my feelings.  Being accustomed
to self-discipline, I accomplished the sacrifice.

I found Sir Percival and Count Fosco sitting together again.  On
this occasion his lordship remained present at the interview, and
assisted in the development of Sir Percival's views.

The subject to which they now requested my attention related to
the healthy change of air by which we all hoped that Miss Halcombe
and Lady Glyde might soon be enabled to profit.  Sir Percival
mentioned that both the ladies would probably pass the autumn (by
invitation of Frederick Fairlie, Esquire) at Limmeridge House,
Cumberland.  But before they went there, it was his opinion,
confirmed by Count Fosco (who here took up the conversation and
continued it to the end), that they would benefit by a short
residence first in the genial climate of Torquay.  The great
object, therefore, was to engage lodgings at that place, affording
all the comforts and advantages of which they stood in need, and
the great difficulty was to find an experienced person capable of
choosing the sort of residence which they wanted.  In this
emergency the Count begged to inquire, on Sir Percival's behalf,
whether I would object to give the ladies the benefit of my
assistance, by proceeding myself to Torquay in their interests.

It was impossible for a person in my situation to meet any
proposal, made in these terms, with a positive objection.

I could only venture to represent the serious inconvenience of my
leaving Blackwater Park in the extraordinary absence of all the
indoor servants, with the one exception of Margaret Porcher.  But
Sir Percival and his lordship declared that they were both willing
to put up with inconvenience for the sake of the invalids.  I next
respectfully suggested writing to an agent at Torquay, but I was
met here by being reminded of the imprudence of taking lodgings
without first seeing them.  I was also informed that the Countess
(who would otherwise have gone to Devonshire herself) could not,
in Lady Glyde's present condition, leave her niece, and that Sir
Percival and the Count had business to transact together which
would oblige them to remain at Blackwater Park.  In short, it was
clearly shown me that if I did not undertake the errand, no one
else could be trusted with it.  Under these circumstances, I could
only inform Sir Percival that my services were at the disposal of
Miss Halcombe and Lady Glyde.

It was thereupon arranged that I should leave the next morning,
that I should occupy one or two days in examining all the most
convenient houses in Torquay, and that I should return with my
report as soon as I conveniently could.  A memorandum was written
for me by his lordship, stating the requisites which the place I
was sent to take must be found to possess, and a note of the
pecuniary limit assigned to me was added by Sir Percival.

My own idea on reading over these instructions was, that no such
residence as I saw described could be found at any watering-place
in England, and that, even if it could by chance be discovered, it
would certainly not be parted with for any period on such terms as
I was permitted to offer.  I hinted at these difficulties to both
the gentlemen, but Sir Percival (who undertook to answer me) did
not appear to feel them.  It was not for me to dispute the
question.  I said no more, but I felt a very strong conviction
that the business on which I was sent away was so beset by
difficulties that my errand was almost hopeless at starting.

Before I left I took care to satisfy myself that Miss Halcombe was
going on favourably.

There was a painful expression of anxiety in her face which made
me fear that her mind, on first recovering itself, was not at
ease.  But she was certainly strengthening more rapidly than I
could have ventured to anticipate, and she was able to send kind
messages to Lady Glyde, saying that she was fast getting well, and
entreating her ladyship not to exert herself again too soon.  I
left her in charge of Mrs. Rubelle, who was still as quietly
independent of every one else in the house as ever.  When I
knocked at Lady Glyde's door before going away, I was told that
she was still sadly weak and depressed, my informant being the
Countess, who was then keeping her company in her room.  Sir
Percival and the Count were walking on the road to the lodge as I
was driven by in the chaise.  I bowed to them and quitted the
house, with not a living soul left in the servants' offices but
Margaret Porcher.

Every one must feel what I have felt myself since that time, that
these circumstances were more than unusual--they were! almost
suspicious.  Let me, however, say again that it was impossible for
me, in my dependent position, to act otherwise than I did.

The result of my errand at Torquay was exactly what I had
foreseen.  No such lodgings as I was instructed to take could be
found in the whole place, and the terms I was permitted to give
were much too low for the purpose, even if I had been able to
discover what I wanted.  I accordingly returned to Blackwater
Park, and informed Sir Percival, who met me at the door, that my
journey had been taken in vain.  He seemed too much occupied with
some other subject to care about the failure of my errand, and his
first words informed me that even in the short time of my absence
another remarkable change had taken place in the house.

The Count and Countess Fosco had left Blackwater Park for their
new residence in St. John's Wood.

I was not made aware of the motive for this sudden departure--I
was only told that the Count had been very particular in leaving
his kind compliments to me.  When I ventured on asking Sir
Percival whether Lady Glyde had any one to attend to her comforts
in the absence of the Countess, he replied that she had Margaret
Porcher to wait on her, and he added that a woman from the village
had been sent for to do the work downstairs.

The answer really shocked me--there was such a glaring impropriety
in permitting an under-housemaid to fill the place of confidential
attendant on Lady Glyde.  I went upstairs at once, and met
Margaret on the bedroom landing.  Her services had not been
required (naturally enough), her mistress having sufficiently
recovered that morning to be able to leave her bed.  I asked next
after Miss Halcombe, but I was answered in a I slouching, sulky
way, which left me no wiser than I was before.

I did not choose to repeat the question, and perhaps provoke an
impertinent reply.  It was in every respect more becoming to a
person in my position to present myself immediately in Lady
Glyde's room.

I found that her ladyship had certainly gained in health during
the last few days.  Although still sadly weak and nervous, she was
able to get up without assistance, and to walk slowly about her
room, feeling no worse effect from the exertion than a slight
sensation of fatigue.  She had been made a little anxious that
morning about Miss Halcombe, through having received no news of
her from any one.  I thought this seemed to imply a blamable want
of attention on the part of Mrs. Rubelle, but I said nothing, and
remained with Lady Glyde to assist her to dress.  When she was
ready we both left the room together to go to Miss Halcombe.

We were stopped in the passage by the appearance of Sir Percival. 
He looked as if he had been purposely waiting there to see us.

"Where are you going?" he said to Lady Glyde.

"To Marian's room," she answered.

"It may spare you a disappointment," remarked Sir Percival, "if I
tell you at once that you will not find her there."

"Not find her there!"

"No.  She left the house yesterday morning with Fosco and his
wife."

Lady Glyde was not strong enough to bear the surprise of this
extraordinary statement.  She turned fearfully pale, and leaned
back against the wall, looking at her husband in dead silence.

I was so astonished myself that I hardly knew what to say.  I
asked Sir Percival if he really meant that Miss Halcombe had left
Blackwater Park.

"I certainly mean it," he answered.

"In her state, Sir Percival! Without mentioning her intentions to
Lady Glyde!"

Before he could reply her ladyship recovered herself a little and
spoke.

"Impossible!" she cried out in a loud, frightened manner, taking a
step or two forward from the wall.  "Where was the doctor? where
was Mr. Dawson when Marian went away?"

"Mr. Dawson wasn't wanted, and wasn't here," said Sir Percival. 
"He left of his own accord, which is enough of itself to show that
she was strong enough to travel.  How you stare! If you don't
believe she has gone, look for yourself.  Open her room door, and
all the other room doors if you like."

She took him at his word, and I followed her.  There was no one in
Miss Halcombe's room but Margaret Porcher, who was busy setting it
to rights.  There was no one in the spare rooms or the dressing-
rooms when we looked into them afterwards.  Sir Percival still
waited for us in the passage.  As we were leaving the last room
that we had examined Lady Glyde whispered, "Don't go, Mrs.
Michelson! don't leave me, for God's sake!" Before I could say
anything in return she was out again in the passage, speaking to
her husband.

"What does it mean, Sir Percival? I insist--I beg and pray you
will tell me what it means."

"It means," he answered, "that Miss Halcombe was strong enough
yesterday morning to sit up and be dressed, and that she insisted
on taking advantage of Fosco's going to London to go there too."

"To London!"

"Yes--on her way to Limmeridge."

Lady Glyde turned and appealed to me.

"You saw Miss Halcombe last," she said.  "Tell me plainly, Mrs.
Michelson, did you think she looked fit to travel?"

"Not in MY opinion, your ladyship."

Sir Percival, on his side, instantly turned and appealed to me
also.

"Before you went away," he said, "did you, or did you not, tell
the nurse that Miss Halcombe looked much stronger and better?"

"I certainly made the remark, Sir Percival."

He addressed her ladyship again the moment I offered that reply.

"Set one of Mrs. Michelson's opinions fairly against the other,"
he said, "and try to be reasonable about a perfectly plain matter. 
If she had not been well enough to be moved do you think we should
any of us have risked letting her go? She has got three competent
people to look after her--Fosco and your aunt, and Mrs. Rubelle,
who went away with them expressly for that purpose.  They took a
whole carriage yesterday, and made a bed for her on the seat in
case she felt tired.  To-day, Fosco and Mrs. Rubelle go on with
her themselves to Cumberland "

"Why does Marian go to Limmeridge and leave me here by myself?"
said her ladyship, interrupting Sir Percival.

"Because your uncle won't receive you till he has seen your sister
first," he replied.  "Have you forgotten the letter he wrote to
her at the beginning of her illness? It was shown to you, you read
it yourself, and you ought to remember it."

"I do remember it."

"If you do, why should you be surprised at her leaving you? You
want to be back at Limmeridge, and she has gone there to get your
uncle's leave for you on his own terms."

Poor Lady Glyde's eyes filled with tears.

"Marian never left me before," she said, "without bidding me good-
bye."

"She would have bid you good-bye this time," returned Sir
Percival, "if she had not been afraid of herself and of you.  She
knew you would try to stop her, she knew you would distress her by
crying.  Do you want to make any more objections? If you do, you
must come downstairs and ask questions in the dining-room.  These
worries upset me.  I want a glass of wine."

He left us suddenly.

His manner all through this strange conversation had been very
unlike what it usually was.  He seemed to be almost as nervous and
fluttered, every now and then, as his lady herself.  I should
never have supposed that his health had been so delicate, or his
composure so easy to upset.

I tried to prevail on Lady Glyde to go back to her room, but it
was useless.  She stopped in the passage, with the look of a woman
whose mind was panic-stricken.

"Something has happened to my sister!" she said.

"Remember, my lady, what surprising energy there is in Miss
Halcombe," I suggested.  "She might well make an effort which
other ladies in her situation would be unfit for.  I hope and
believe there is nothing wrong--I do indeed."

"I must follow Marian," said her ladyship, with the same panic-
stricken look.  "I must go where she has gone, I must see that she
is alive and well with my own eyes.  Come! come down with me to
Sir Percival."

I hesitated, fearing that my presence might be considered an
intrusion.  I attempted to represent this to her ladyship, but she
was deaf to me.  She held my arm fast enough to force me to go
downstairs with her, and she still clung to me with all the little
strength she had at the moment when I opened the dining-room door.

Sir Percival was sitting at the table with a decanter of wine
before him.  He raised the glass to his lips as we went in and
drained it at a draught.  Seeing that he looked at me angrily when
he put it down again, I attempted to make some apology for my
accidental presence in the room.

"Do you suppose there are any secrets going on here?" he broke out
suddenly; "there are none--there is nothing underhand, nothing
kept from you or from any one." After speaking those strange words
loudly and sternly, he filled himself another glass of wine and
asked Lady Glyde what she wanted of him.

"If my sister is fit to travel I am fit to travel" said her
ladyship, with more firmness than she had yet shown.  "I come to
beg you will make allowances for my anxiety about Marian, and let
me follow her at once by the afternoon train."

"You must wait till to-morrow," replied Sir Percival, "and then if
you don't hear to the contrary you can go.  I don't suppose you
are at all likely to hear to the contrary, so I shall write to
Fosco by to-night's post."

He said those last words holding his glass up to the light, and
looking at the wine in it instead of at Lady Glyde.  Indeed he
never once looked at her throughout the conversation.  Such a
singular want of good breeding in a gentleman of his rank
impressed me, I own, very painfully.

"Why should you write to Count Fosco?" she asked, in extreme
surprise.

"To tell him to expect you by the midday train," said Sir
Percival.  "He will meet you at the station when you get to
London, and take you on to sleep at your aunt's in St. John's
Wood."

Lady Glyde's hand began to tremble violently round my arm--why I
could not imagine.

"There is no necessity for Count Fosco to meet me," she said.  "I
would rather not stay in London to sleep."

"You must. You can't take the whole journey to Cumberland in one
day.  You must rest a night in London--and I don't choose you to
go by yourself to an hotel.  Fosco made the offer to your uncle to
give you house-room on the way down, and your uncle has accepted
it.  Here! here is a letter from him addressed to yourself.  I
ought to have sent it up this morning, but I forgot.  Read it and
see what Mr. Fairlie himself says to you."

Lady Glyde looked at the letter for a moment and then placed it in
my hands.

"Read it," she said faintly.  "I don't know what is the matter
with me.  I can't read it myself."

It was a note of only four lines--so short and so careless that it
quite struck me.  If I remember correctly it contained no more
than these words--

"Dearest Laura, Please come whenever you like.  Break the journey
by sleeping at your aunt's house.  Grieved to hear of dear
Marian's illness.  Affectionately yours, Frederick Fairlie."

"I would rather not go there--I would rather not stay a night in
London," said her ladyship, breaking out eagerly with those words
before I had quite done reading the note, short as it was.  "Don't
write to Count Fosco! Pray, pray don't write to him!"

Sir Percival filled another glass from the decanter so awkwardly
that he upset it and spilt all the wine over the table.  "My sight
seems to be failing me," he muttered to himself, in an odd,
muffled voice.  He slowly set the glass up again, refilled it, and
drained it once more at a draught.  I began to fear, from his look
and manner, that the wine was getting into his head.

"Pray don't write to Count Fosco," persisted Lady Glyde, more
earnestly than ever.

"Why not, I should like to know?" cried Sir Percival, with a
sudden burst of anger that startled us both.  "Where can you stay
more properly in London than at the place your uncle himself
chooses for you--at your aunt's house? Ask Mrs. Michelson."

The arrangement proposed was so unquestionably the right and the
proper one, that I could make no possible objection to it.  Much
as I sympathised with Lady Glyde in other respects, I could not
sympathise with her in her unjust prejudices against Count Fosco. 
I never before met with any lady of her rank and station who was
so lamentably narrow-minded on the subject of foreigners.  Neither
her uncle's note nor Sir Percival's increasing impatience seemed
to have the least effect on her.  She still objected to staying a
night in London, she still implored her husband not to write to
the Count.

"Drop it!" said Sir Percival, rudely turning his back on us.  "If
you haven't sense enough to know what is best for yourself other
people must know it foe you.  The arrangement is made and there is
an end of it.  You are only wanted to do what Miss Halcombe has
done for you---"

"Marian?" repeated her Ladyship, in a bewildered manner; "Marian
sleeping in Count Fosco's house!"

"Yes, in Count Fosco's house.  She slept there last night to break
the journey, and you are to follow her example, and do what your
uncle tells you.  You are to sleep at Fosco's to-morrow night, as
your sister did, to break the journey.  Don't throw too many
obstacles in my way! don't make me repent of letting you go at
all!"

He started to his feet, and suddenly walked out into the verandah
through the open glass doors.

"Will your ladyship excuse me," I whispered, "if I suggest that we
had better not wait here till Sir Percival comes back? I am very
much afraid he is over-excited with wine."

She consented to leave the room in a weary, absent manner.

As soon as we were safe upstairs again, I did all I could to
compose her ladyship's spirits.  I reminded her that Mr. Fairlie's
letters to Miss Halcombe and to herself did certainly sanction,
and even render necessary, sooner or later, the course that had
been taken.  She agreed to this, and even admitted, of her own
accord, that both letters were strictly in character with her
uncle's peculiar disposition--but her fears about Miss Halcombe,
and her unaccountable dread of sleeping at the Count's house in
London, still remained unshaken in spite of every consideration
that I could urge.  I thought it my duty to protest against Lady
Glyde's unfavourable opinion of his lordship, and I did so, with
becoming forbearance and respect.

"Your ladyship will pardon my freedom," I remarked, in conclusion,
"but it is said, 'by their fruits ye shall know them.' I am sure
the Count's constant kindness and constant attention, from the
very beginning of Miss Halcombe's illness, merit our best
confidence and esteem.  Even his lordship's serious
misunderstanding with Mr. Dawson was entirely attributable to his
anxiety on Miss Halcombe's account."

"What misunderstanding?" inquired her ladyship, with a look of
sudden interest.

I related the unhappy circumstances under which Mr. Dawson had
withdrawn his attendance--mentioning them all the more readily
because I disapproved of Sir Percival's continuing to conceal what
had happened (as he had done in my presence) from the knowledge of
Lady Glyde.

Her ladyship started up, with every appearance of being
additionally agitated and alarmed by what I had told her.

"Worse! worse than I thought!" she said, walking about the room,
in a bewildered manner.  "The Count knew Mr. Dawson would never
consent to Marian's taking a journey--he purposely insulted the
doctor to get him out of the house."

"Oh, my lady! my lady!" I remonstrated.

"Mrs. Michelson!" she went on vehemently, "no words that ever were
spoken will persuade me that my sister is in that man's power and
in that man's house with her own consent.  My horror of him is 
such, that nothing Sir Percival could say and no letters my uncle
could write, would induce me, if I had only my own feelings to
consult, to eat, drink, or sleep under his roof.  Put my misery of
suspense about Marian gives me the courage to follow her anywhere,
to follow her even into Count Fosco's house."

I thought it right, at this point, to mention that Miss Halcombe
had already gone on to Cumberland, according to Sir Percival's
account of the matter.

"I am afraid to believe it!" answered her ladyship.  "I am afraid
she is still in that man's house.  If I am wrong, if she has
really gone on to Limmeridge, I am resolved I will not sleep to-
morrow night under Count Fosco's roof.  My dearest friend in the
world, next to my sister, lives near London.  You have heard me,
you have heard Miss Halcombe, speak of Mrs. Vesey? I mean to
write, and propose to sleep at her house.  I don't know how I
shall get there--I don't know how I shall avoid the Count--but to
that refuge I will escape in some way, if my sister has gone to
Cumberland.  All I ask of you to do, is to see yourself that my
letter to Mrs. Vesey goes to London to-night, as certainly as Sir
Percival's letter goes to Count Fosco.  I have reasons for not
trusting the post-bag downstairs.  Will you keep my secret, and
help me in this? it is the last favour, perhaps, that I shall ever
ask of you."

I hesitated, I thought it all very strange, I almost feared that
her ladyship's mind had been a little affected by recent anxiety
and suffering.  At my own risk, however, I ended by giving my
consent.  If the letter had been addressed to a stranger, or to
any one but a lady so well known to me by report as Mrs. Vesey, I
might have refused.  I thank God--looking to what happened
afterwards--I thank God I never thwarted that wish, or any other,
which Lady Glyde expressed to me, on the last day of her residence
at Blackwater Park.

The letter was written and given into my hands.  I myself put it
into the post-box in the village that evening.

We saw nothing more of Sir Percival for the rest of the day.

I slept, by Lady Glyde's own desire, in the next room to hers,
with the door open between us.  There was something so strange and
dreadful in the loneliness and emptiness of the house, that I was
glad, on my side, to have a companion near me.  Her ladyship sat
up late, reading letters and burning them, and emptying her
drawers and cabinets of little things she prized, as if she never
expected to return to Blackwater Park.  Her sleep was sadly
disturbed when she at last went to bed--she cried out in it
several times, once so loud that she woke herself.  Whatever her
dreams were, she did not think fit to communicate them to me. 
Perhaps, in my situation, I had no right to expect that she should
do so.  It matters little now.  I was sorry for her, I was indeed
heartily sorry for her all the same.

The next day was fine and sunny.  Sir Percival came up, after
breakfast, to tell us that the chaise would be at the door at a
quarter to twelve--the train to London stopping at our station at
twenty minutes after.  He informed Lady Glyde that he was obliged
to go out, but added that he hoped to be back before she left.  If
any unforeseen accident delayed him, I was to accompany her to the
station, and to take special care that she was in time for the
train.  Sir Percival communicated these directions very hastily--
walking here and there about the room all the time.  Her ladyship
looked attentively after him wherever he went.  He never once
looked at her in return.

She only spoke when he had done, and then she stopped him as he
approached the door, by holding out her hand.

"I shall see you no more," she said, in a very marked manner. 
"This is our parting--our parting, it may be for ever.  Will you
try to forgive me, Percival, as heartily as I forgive YOU?"

His face turned of an awful whiteness all over, and great beads of
perspiration broke out on his bald forehead.  "I shall come back,"
he said, and made for the door, as hastily as if his wife's
farewell words had frightened him out of the room.

I had never liked Sir Percival, but the manner in which he left
Lady Glyde made me feel ashamed of having eaten his bread and
lived in his service.  I thought of saying a few comforting and
Christian words to the poor lady, but there was something in her
face, as she looked after her husband when the door closed on him,
that made me alter my mind and keep silence.

At the time named the chaise drew up at the gates.  Her ladyship
was right--Sir Percival never came back.  I waited for him till
the last moment, and waited in vain.

No positive responsibility lay on my shoulders, and yet I did not
feel easy in my mind.  "It is of your own free will," I said, as
the chaise drove through the lodge-gates, "that your ladyship goes
to London?"

"I will go anywhere," she answered, "to end the dreadful suspense
that I am suffering at this moment."

She had made me feel almost as anxious and as uncertain about Miss
Halcombe as she felt herself.  I presumed to ask her to write me a
line, if all went well in London.  She answered, "Most willingly,
Mrs. Michelson."

"We all have our crosses to bear, my lady," I said, seeing her
silent and thoughtful, after she had promised to write.

She made no reply--she seemed to be too much wrapped up in her own
thoughts to attend to me.

"I fear your ladyship rested badly last night," I remarked, after
waiting a little.

"Yes," she said, "I was terribly disturbed by dreams."

"Indeed, my lady?" I thought she was going to tell me her dreams,
but no, when she spoke next it was only to ask a question.

"You posted the letter to Mrs. Vesey with your own hands?"

"Yes, my lady."

"Did Sir Percival say, yesterday, that Count Fosco was to meet me
at the terminus in London?"

"He did, my lady."

She sighed heavily when I answered that last question, and said no
more.

We arrived at the station, with hardly two minutes to spare.  The
gardener (who had driven us) managed about the luggage, while I
took the ticket.  The whistle of the train was sounding when I
joined her ladyship on the platform.  She looked very strangely,
and pressed her hand over her heart, as if some sudden pain or
fright had overcome her at that moment.

"I wish you were going with me!" she said, catching eagerly at my
arm when I gave her the ticket.

If there had been time, if I had felt the day before as I felt
then, I would have made my arrangements to accompany her, even
though the doing so had obliged me to give Sir Percival warning on
the spot.  As it was, her wishes, expressed at the last moment
only, were expressed too late for me to comply with them.  She
seemed to understand this herself before I could explain it, and
did not repeat her desire to have me for a travelling companion. 
The train drew up at the platform.  She gave the gardener a
present for his children, and took my hand, in her simple hearty
manner, before she got into the carriage.

"You have been very kind to me and to my sister," she said--"kind
when we were both friendless.  I shall remember you gratefully, as
long as I live to remember any one.  Good-bye--and God bless you!"

She spoke those words with a tone and a look which brought the
tears into my eyes--she spoke them as if she was bidding me
farewell for ever.

"Good-bye, my lady," I said, putting her into the carriage, and
trying to cheer her; "good-bye, for the present only; good-bye,
with my best and kindest wishes for happier times."

She shook her head, and shuddered as she settled herself in the
carriage.  The guard closed the door.  "Do you believe in dreams?"
she whispered to me at the window.  "My dreams, last night, were
dreams I have never had before.  The terror of them is hanging
over me still." The whistle sounded before I could answer, and the
train moved.  Her pale quiet face looked at me for the last time--
looked sorrowfully and solemnly from the window.  She waved her
hand, and I saw her no more.


Towards five o'clock on the afternoon of that same day, having a
little time to myself in the midst of the household duties which
now pressed upon me, I sat down alone in my own room, to try and
compose my mind with the volume of my husband's Sermons.  For the
first time in my life I found my attention wandering over those
pious and cheering words.  Concluding that Lady Glyde's departure
must have disturbed me far more seriously than I had myself
supposed, I put the book aside, and went out to take a turn in the
garden.  Sir Percival had not yet returned, to my knowledge, so I
could feel no hesitation about showing myself in the grounds.

On turning the corner of the house, and gaining a view of the
garden, I was startled by seeing a stranger walking in it.  The
stranger was a woman--she was lounging along the path with her
back to me, and was gathering the flowers.

As I approached she heard me, and turned round.

My blood curdled in my veins.  The strange woman in the garden was
Mrs. Rubelle!

I could neither move nor speak.  She came up to me, as composedly
as ever, with her flowers in her hand.

"What is the matter, ma'am?" she said quietly.

"You here!" I gasped out.  "Not gone to London! Not gone to
Cumberland!"

Mrs. Rubelle smelt at her flowers with a smile of malicious pity.

"Certainly not," she said.  "I have never left Blackwater Park."

I summoned breath enough and courage enough for another question.

"Where is Miss Halcombe?"

Mrs. Rubelle fairly laughed at me this time, and replied in these
words--

"Miss Halcombe, ma'am, has not left Blackwater Park either."

When I heard that astounding answer, all my thoughts were startled
back on the instant to my parting with Lady Glyde.  I can hardly
say I reproached myself, but at that moment I think I would have
given many a year's hard savings to have known four hours earlier
what I knew now.

Mrs. Rubelle waited, quietly arranging her nosegay, as if she
expected me to say something.

I could say nothing.  I thought of Lady Glyde's worn-out energies
and weakly health, and I trembled for the time when the shock of
the discovery that I had made would fall on her.  For a minute or
more my fears for the poor ladies silenced me.  At the end of that
time Mrs. Rubelle looked up sideways from her flowers, and said,
"Here is Sir Percival, ma'am, returned from his ride."

I saw him as soon as she did.  He came towards us, slashing
viciously at the flowers with his riding-whip.  When he was near
enough to see my face he stopped, struck at his boot with the
whip, and burst out laughing, so harshly and so violently that the
birds flew away, startled, from the tree by which he stood.

"Well, Mrs. Michelson," he said, "you have found it out at last,
have you?"

I made no reply.  He turned to Mrs. Rubelle.

"When did you show yourself in the garden?"

"I showed myself about half an hour ago, sir.  You said I might
take my liberty again as soon as Lady Glyde had gone away to
London."

"Quite right.  I don't blame you--I only asked the question." He
waited a moment, and then addressed himself once more to me.  "You
can't believe it, can you?" he said mockingly.  "Here! come along
and see for yourself."

He led the way round to the front of the house.  I followed him,
and Mrs. Rubelle followed me.  After passing through the iron
gates he stopped, and pointed with his whip to the disused middle
wing of the building.

"There!" he said.  "Look up at the first floor.  You know the old
Elizabethan bedrooms? Miss Halcombe is snug and safe in one of the
best of them at this moment.  Take her in, Mrs. Rubelle (you have
got your key?); take Mrs. Michelson in, and let her own eyes
satisfy her that there is no deception this time."

The tone in which he spoke to me, and the minute or two that had
passed since we left the garden, helped me to recover my spirits a
little.  What I might have done at this critical moment, if all my
life had been passed in service, I cannot say.  As it was,
possessing the feelings, the principles, and the bringing up of a
lady, I could not hesitate about the right course to pursue.  My
duty to myself, and my duty to Lady Glyde, alike forbade me to
remain in the employment of a man who had shamefully deceived us
both by a series of atrocious falsehoods.

"I must beg permission, Sir Percival, to speak a few words to you
in private," I said.  "Having done so, I shall be ready to proceed
with this person to Miss Halcombe's room."

Mrs. Rubelle, whom I had indicated by a slight turn of my head,
insolently sniffed at her nosegay and walked away, with great
deliberation, towards the house door.

"Well," said Sir Percival sharply, "what is it now?"

"I wish to mention, sir, that I am desirous of resigning the
situation I now hold at Blackwater Park."  That was literally how
I put it.  I was resolved that the first words spoken in his
presence should be words which expressed my intention to leave his
service.

He eyed me with one of his blackest looks, and thrust his hands
savagely into the pockets of his riding-coat.

"Why?" he said, "why, I should like to know?"

"It is not for me, Sir Percival, to express an opinion on what has
taken place in this house.  I desire to give no offence.  I merely
wish to say that I do not feel it consistent with my duty to Lady
Glyde and to myself to remain any longer in your service."

"Is it consistent with your duty to me to stand there, casting
suspicion on me to my face?" he broke out in his most violent
manner.  "I see what you're driving at.  You have taken your own
mean, underhand view of an innocent deception practised on Lady
Glyde for her own good.  It was essential to her health that she
should have a change of air immediately, and you know as well as I
do she would never have gone away if she had been told Miss
Halcombe was still left here.  She has been deceived in her own
interests--and I don't care who knows it.  Go, if you like--there
are plenty of housekeepers as good as you to be had for the
asking.  Go when you please--but take care how you spread scandals
about me and my affairs when you're out of my service.  Tell the
truth, and nothing but the truth, or it will be the worse for you!
See Miss Halcombe for yourself--see if she hasn't been as well
taken care of in one part of the house as in the other.  Remember
the doctor's own orders that Lady Glyde was to have a change of
air at the earliest possible opportunity.  Bear all that well in
mind, and then say anything against me and my proceedings if you
dare!"

He poured out these words fiercely, all in a breath, walking
backwards and forwards, and striking about him in the air with his
whip.

Nothing that he said or did shook my opinion of the disgraceful
series of falsehoods that he had told in my presence the day
before, or of the cruel deception by which he had separated Lady
Glyde from her sister, and had sent her uselessly to London, when
she was half distracted with anxiety on Miss Halcombe's account. 
I naturally kept these thoughts to myself, and said nothing more
to irritate him; but I was not the less resolved to persist in my
purpose.  A soft answer turneth away wrath, and I suppressed my
own feelings accordingly when it was my turn to reply.

"While I am in your service, Sir Percival," I said, "I hope I know
my duty well enough not to inquire into your motives.  When I am
out of your service, I hope I know my own place well enough not to
speak of matters which don't concern me "

"When do you want to go?" he asked, interrupting me without
ceremony.  "Don't suppose I am anxious to keep you--don't suppose
I care about your leaving the house.  I am perfectly fair and open
in this matter, from first to last. When do you want to go?"

"I should wish to leave at your earliest convenience, Sir
Percival."

"My convenience has nothing to do with it.  I shall be out of the
house for good and all to-morrow morning, and I can settle your
accounts to-night.  If you want to study anybody's convenience, it
had better be Miss Halcombe's.  Mrs. Rubelle's time is up to-day,
and she has reasons for wishing to be in London to-night.  If you
go at once, Miss Halcombe won't have a soul left here to look
after her."

I hope it is unnecessary for me to say that I was quite incapable
of deserting Miss Halcombe in such an emergency as had now
befallen Lady Glyde and herself.  After first distinctly
ascertaining from Sir Percival that Mrs. Rubelle was certain to
leave at once if I took her place, and after also obtaining
permission to arrange for Mr. Dawson's resuming his attendance on
his patient, I willingly consented to remain at Blackwater Park
until Miss Halcombe no longer required my services.  It was
settled that I should give Sir Percival's solicitor a week's
notice before I left, and that he was to undertake the necessary
arrangements for appointing my successor.  The matter was
discussed in very few words.  At its conclusion Sir Percival
abruptly turned on his heel, and left me free to join Mrs.
Rubelle.  That singular foreign person had been sitting composedly
on the doorstep all this time, waiting till I could follow her to
Miss Halcombe's room.

I had hardly walked half-way towards the house when Sir Percival,
who had withdrawn in the opposite direction, suddenly stopped and
called me back.

"Why are you leaving my service?" he asked.

The question was so extraordinary, after what had just passed
between us, that I hardly knew what to say in answer to it.

"Mind! I don't know why you are going," he went on.  "You must
give a reason for leaving me, I suppose, when you get another
situation.  What reason? The breaking up of the family? Is that
it?"

"There can be no positive objection, Sir Percival, to that reason----"

"Very well! That's all I want to know.  If people apply for your
character, that's your reason, stated by yourself.  You go in
consequence of the breaking up of the family."

He turned away again before I could say another word, and walked
out rapidly into the grounds.  His manner was as strange as his
language.  I acknowledge he alarmed me.

Even the patience of Mrs. Rubelle was getting exhausted, when I
joined her at the house door.

"At last!" she said, with a shrug of her lean foreign shoulders. 
She led the way into the inhabited side of the house, ascended the
stairs, and opened with her key the door at the end of the
passage, which communicated with the old Elizabethan rooms--a door
never previously used, in my time, at Blackwater Park.  The rooms
themselves I knew well, having entered them myself on various
occasions from the other side of the house.  Mrs. Rubelle stopped
at the third door along the old gallery, handed me the key of it,
with the key of the door of communication, and told me I should
find Miss Halcombe in that room.  Before I went in I thought it
desirable to make her understand that her attendance had ceased. 
Accordingly, I told her in plain words that the charge of the sick
lady henceforth devolved entirely on myself.

"I am glad to hear it, ma'am," said Mrs. Rubelle.  "I want to go
very much."

"Do you leave to-day?" I asked, to make sure of her.

"Now that you have taken charge, ma'am, I leave in half an hour's
time.  Sir Percival has kindly placed at my disposition the
gardener, and the chaise, whenever I want them.  I shall want them
in half an hour's time to go to the station.  I am packed up in
anticipation already.  I wish you good-day, ma'am."

She dropped a brisk curtsey, and walked back along the gallery,
humming a little tune, and keeping time to it cheerfully with the
nosegay in her hand.  I am sincerely thankful to say that was the
last I saw of Mrs. Rubelle.

When I went into the room Miss Halcombe was asleep.  I looked at
her anxiously, as she lay in the dismal, high, old-fashioned bed. 
She was certainly not in any respect altered for the worse since I
had seen her last.  She had not been neglected, I am bound to
admit, in any way that I could perceive.  The room was dreary, and
dusty, and dark, but the window (looking on a solitary court-yard
at the back of the house) was opened to let in the fresh air, and
all that could be done to make the place comfortable had been
done.  The whole cruelty of Sir Percival's deception had fallen on
poor Lady Glyde.  The only ill-usage which either he or Mrs.
Rubelle had inflicted on Miss Halcombe consisted, so far as I
could see, in the first offence of hiding her away.

I stole back, leaving the sick lady still peacefully asleep, to
give the gardener instructions about bringing the doctor.  I
begged the man, after he had taken Mrs. Rubelle to the station, to
drive round by Mr. Dawson's, and leave a message in my name,
asking him to call and see me.  I knew he would come on my
account, and I knew he would remain when he found Count Fosco had
left the house.

In due course of time the gardener returned, and said that he had
driven round by Mr. Dawson's residence, after leaving Mrs. Rubelle
at the station.  The doctor sent me word that he was poorly in
health himself, but that he would call, if possible, the next
morning.

Having delivered his message the gardener was about to withdraw,
but I stopped him to request that he would come back before dark,
and sit up that night, in one of the empty bedrooms, so as to be
within call in case I wanted him.  He understood readily enough my
unwillingness to be left alone all night in the most desolate part
of that desolate house, and we arranged that he should come in
between eight and nine.

He came punctually, and I found cause to be thankful that I had
adopted the precaution of calling him in.  Before midnight Sir
Percival's strange temper broke out in the most violent and most
alarming manner, and if the gardener had not been on the spot to
pacify him on the instant, I am afraid to think what might have
happened.

Almost all the afternoon and evening he had been walking about the
house and grounds in an unsettled, excitable manner, having, in
all probability, as I thought, taken an excessive quantity of wine
at his solitary dinner.  However that may be, I heard his voice
calling loudly and angrily in the new wing of the house, as I was
taking a turn backwards and forwards along the gallery the last
thing at night.  The gardener immediately ran down to him, and I
closed the door of communication, to keep the alarm, if possible,
from reaching Miss Halcombe's ears.  It was full half an hour
before the gardener came back.  He declared that his master was
quite out of his senses--not through the excitement of drink, as I
had supposed, but through a kind of panic or frenzy of mind, for
which it was impossible to account.  He had found Sir Percival
walking backwards and forwards by himself in the hall, swearing,
with every appearance of the most violent passion, that he would
not stop another minute alone in such a dungeon as his own house,
and that he would take the first stage of his journey immediately
in the middle of the night.  The gardener, on approaching him, had
been hunted out, with oaths and threats, to get the horse and
chaise ready instantly.  In a quarter of an hour Sir Percival had
joined him in the yard, had jumped into the chaise, and, lashing
the horse into a gallop, had driven himself away, with his face as
pale as ashes in the moonlight.  The gardener had heard him
shouting and cursing at the lodge-keeper to get up and open the
gate--had heard the wheels roll furiously on again in the still
night, when the gate was unlocked--and knew no more.

The next day, or a day or two after, I forget which, the chaise
was brought back from Knowlesbury, our nearest town, by the ostler
at the old inn.  Sir Percival had stopped there, and had
afterwards left by the train--for what destination the man could
not tell.  I never received any further information, either from
himself or from any one else, of Sir Percival's proceedings, and I
am not even aware, at this moment, whether he is in England or out
of it.  He and I have not met since he drove away like an escaped
criminal from his own house, and it is my fervent hope and prayer
that we may never meet again.



My own part of this sad family story is now drawing to an end.

I have been informed that the particulars of Miss Halcombe's
waking, and of what passed between us when she found me sitting by
her bedside, are not material to the purpose which is to be
answered by the present narrative.  It will be sufficient for me
to say in this place, that she was not herself conscious of the
means adopted to remove her from the inhabited to the uninhabited
part of the house.  She was in a deep sleep at the time, whether
naturally or artificially produced she could not say.  In my
absence at Torquay, and in the absence of all the resident
servants except Margaret Porcher (who was perpetually eating,
drinking, or sleeping, when she was not at work), the secret
transfer of Miss Halcombe from one part of the house to the other
was no doubt easily performed.  Mrs. Rubelle (as I discovered for
myself, in looking about the room) had provisions, and all other
necessaries, together with the means of heating water, broth, and
so on, without kindling a fire, placed at her disposal during the
few days of her imprisonment with the sick lady.  She had declined
to answer the questions which Miss Halcombe naturally put, but had
not, in other respects, treated her with unkindness or neglect. 
The disgrace of lending herself to a vile deception is the only
disgrace with which I can conscientiously charge Mrs. Rubelle.

I need write no particulars (and I am relieved to know it) of the
effect produced on Miss Halcombe by the news of Lady Glyde's
departure, or by the far more melancholy tidings which reached us
only too soon afterwards at Blackwater Park.  In both cases I
prepared her mind beforehand as gently and as carefully as
possible, having the doctor's advice to guide me, in the last case
only, through Mr. Dawson's being too unwell to come to the house
for some days after I had sent for him.  It was a sad time, a time
which it afflicts me to think of or to write of now.  The precious
blessings of religious consolation which I endeavoured to convey
were long in reaching Miss Halcombe's heart, but I hope and
believe they came home to her at last. I never left her till her
strength was restored.  The train which took me away from that
miserable house was the train which took her away also.  We parted
very mournfully in London.  I remained with a relative at
Islington, and she went on to Mr. Fairlie's house in Cumberland.

I have only a few lines more to write before I close this painful
statement.  They are dictated by a sense of duty.

In the first place, I wish to record my own personal conviction
that no blame whatever, in connection with the events which I have
now related, attaches to Count Fosco.  I am informed that a
dreadful suspicion has been raised, and that some very serious
constructions are placed upon his lordship's conduct.  My
persuasion of the Count's innocence remains, however, quite
unshaken.  If he assisted Sir Percival in sending me to Torquay,
he assisted under a delusion, for which, as a foreigner and a
stranger, he was not to blame.  If he was concerned in bringing
Mrs. Rubelle to Blackwater Park, it was his misfortune and not his
fault, when that foreign person was base enough to assist a
deception planned and carried out by the master of the house.  I
protest, in the interests of morality, against blame being
gratuitously and wantonly attached to the proceedings of the
Count.

In the second place, I desire to express my regret at my own
inability to remember the precise day on which Lady Glyde left
Blackwater Park for London.  I am told that it is of the last
importance to ascertain the exact date of that lamentable journey,
and I have anxiously taxed my memory to recall it.  The effort has
been in vain.  I can only remember now that it was towards the
latter part of July.  We all know the difficulty, after a lapse of
time, of fixing precisely on a past date unless it has been
previously written down.  That difficulty is greatly increased in
my case by the alarming and confusing events which took place
about the period of Lady Glyde's departure.  I heartily wish I had
made a memorandum at the time.  I heartily wish my memory of the
date was as vivid as my memory of that poor lady's face, when it
looked at me sorrowfully for the last time from the carriage
window.



THE STORY CONTINUED IN SEVERAL NARRATIVES

1.  THE NARRATIVE OF HESTER PINHORN, COOK IN THE SERVICE OF COUNT
FOSCO

[Taken down from her own statement]


I am sorry to say that I have never learnt to read or write.  I
have been a hard-working woman all my life, and have kept a good
character.  I know that it is a sin and wickedness to say the
thing which is not, and I will truly beware of doing so on this
occasion.  All that I know I will tell, and I humbly beg the
gentleman who takes this down to put my language right as he goes
on, and to make allowances for my being no scholar.

In this last summer I happened to be out of place (through no
fault of my own), and I heard of a situation as plain cook, at
Number Five, Forest Road, St. John's Wood.  I took the place on
trial.  My master's name was Fosco.  My mistress was an English
lady.  He was Count and she was Countess.  There was a girl to do
housemaid's work when I got there.  She was not over-clean or
tidy, but there was no harm in her.  I and she were the only
servants in the house.

Our master and mistress came after we got in; and as soon as they
did come we were told, downstairs, that company was expected from 
the country.

The company was my mistress's niece, and the back bedroom on the
first floor was got ready for her.  My mistress mentioned to me
that Lady Glyde (that was her name) was in poor health, and that I
must be particular in my cooking accordingly.  She was to come
that day, as well as I can remember--but whatever you do, don't
trust my memory in the matter.  I am sorry to say it's no use
asking me about days of the month, and such-like.  Except Sundays,
half my time I take no heed of them, being a hard-working woman
and no scholar.  All I know is Lady Glyde came, and when she did
come, a fine fright she gave us all surely.  I don't know how
master brought her to the house, being hard at work at the time. 
But he did bring her in the afternoon, I think, and the housemaid
opened the door to them, and showed them into the parlour.  Before
she had been long down in the kitchen again with me, we heard a
hurry-skurry upstairs, and the parlour bell ringing like mad, and
my mistress's voice calling out for help.

We both ran up, and there we saw the lady laid on the sofa, with
her face ghastly white, and her hands fast clenched, and her head
drawn down to one side.  She had been taken with a sudden fright,
my mistress said, and master he told us she was in a fit of
convulsions.  I ran out, knowing the neighbourhood a little better
than the rest of them, to fetch the nearest doctor's help.  The
nearest help was at Goodricke's and Garth's, who worked together
as partners, and had a good name and connection, as I have heard,
all round St. John's Wood.  Mr. Goodricke was in, and he came back
with me directly.

It was some time before he could make himself of much use.  The
poor unfortunate lady fell out of one fit into another, and went
on so till she was quite wearied out, and as helpless as a new-
born babe.  We then got her to bed.  Mr. Goodricke went away to
his house for medicine, and came back again in a quarter of an
hour or less.  Besides the medicine he brought a bit of hollow
mahogany wood with him, shaped like a kind of trumpet, and after
waiting a little while, he put one end over the lady's heart and
the other to his ear, and listened carefully.

When he had done he says to my mistress, who was in the room,
"This is a very serious case," he says, "I recommend you to write
to Lady Glyde's friends directly." My mistress says to him, "Is it
heart-disease?" And he says, "Yes, heart-disease of a most
dangerous kind." He told her exactly what he thought was the
matter, which I was not clever enough to understand.  But I know
this, he ended by saying that he was afraid neither his help nor
any other doctor's help was likely to be of much service.

My mistress took this ill news more quietly than my master.  He
was a big, fat, odd sort of elderly man, who kept birds and white
mice, and spoke to them as if they were so many Christian
children.  He seemed terribly cut up by what had happened.  "Ah!
poor Lady Glyde! poor dear Lady Glyde!" he says, and went stalking
about, wringing his fat hands more like a play-actor than a
gentleman.  For one question my mistress asked the doctor about
the lady's chances of getting round, he asked a good fifty at
least. I declare he quite tormented us all, and when he was quiet
at last, out he went into the bit of back garden, picking trumpery
little nosegays, and asking me to take them upstairs and make the
sick-room look pretty with them.  As if THAT did any good.  I
think he must have been, at times, a little soft in his head.  But
he was not a bad master--he had a monstrous civil tongue of his
own, and a jolly, easy, coaxing way with him.  I liked him a deal
better than my mistress.  She was a hard one, if ever there was a
hard one yet.

Towards night-time the lady roused up a little.  She had been so
wearied out, before that, by the convulsions, that she never
stirred hand or foot, or spoke a word to anybody.  She moved in
the bed now, and stared about her at the room and us in it.  She
must have been a nice-looking lady when well, with light hair, and
blue eyes and all that.  Her rest was troubled at night--at least
so I heard from my mistress, who sat up alone with her.  I only
went in once before going to bed to see if I could be of any use,
and then she was talking to herself in a confused, rambling
manner.  She seemed to want sadly to speak to somebody who was
absent from her somewhere.  I couldn't catch the name the first
time, and the second time master knocked at the door, with his
regular mouthful of questions, and another of his trumpery
nosegays.

When I went in early the next morning, the lady was clean worn out
again, and lay in a kind of faint sleep.  Mr. Goodricke brought
his partner, Mr. Garth, with him to advise.  They said she must
not be disturbed out of her rest on any account.  They asked my
mistress many questions, at the other end of the room, about what
the lady's health had been in past times, and who had attended
her, and whether she had ever suffered much and long together
under distress of mind.  I remember my mistress said "Yes" to that
last question.  And Mr. Goodricke looked at Mr. Garth, and shook
his head; and Mr. Garth looked at Mr. Goodricke, and shook his
head.  They seemed to think that the distress might have something
to do with the mischief at the lady's heart.  She was but a frail
thing to look at, poor creature! Very little strength at any time,
I should say--very little strength.

Later on the same morning, when she woke, the lady took a sudden
turn, and got seemingly a great deal better.  I was not let in
again to see her, no more was the housemaid, for the reason that
she was not to be disturbed by strangers.  What I heard of her
being better was through my master.  He was in wonderful good
spirits about the change, and looked in at the kitchen window from
the garden, with his great big curly-brimmed white hat on, to go
out.

"Good Mrs. Cook," says he, "Lady Glyde is better.  My mind is more
easy than it was, and I am going out to stretch my big legs with a
sunny little summer walk.  Shall I order for you, shall I market
for you, Mrs. Cook? What are you making there? A nice tart for
dinner? Much crust, if you please--much crisp crust, my dear, that
melts and crumbles delicious in the mouth." That was his way.  He
was past sixty, and fond of pastry.  Just think of that!

The doctor came again in the forenoon, and saw for himself that
Lady Glyde had woke up better.  He forbid us to talk to her, or to
let her talk to us, in case she was that way disposed, saying she
must be kept quiet before all things, and encouraged to sleep as
much as possible.  She did not seem to want to talk whenever I saw
her, except overnight, when I couldn't make out what she was
saying--she seemed too much worn down.  Mr. Goodricke was not
nearly in such good spirits about her as master.  He said nothing
when he came downstairs, except that he would call again at five
o'clock.

About that time (which was before master came home again) the bell
rang hard from the bedroom, and my mistress ran out into the
landing, and called to me to go for Mr. Goodricke, and tell him
the lady had fainted.  I got on my bonnet and shawl, when, as good
luck would have it, the doctor himself came to the house for his
promised visit.

I let him in, and went upstairs along with him.  "Lady Glyde was
just as usual," says my mistress to him at the door; "she was
awake, and looking about her in a strange, forlorn manner, when I
heard her give a sort of half cry, and she fainted in a moment."
The doctor went up to the bed, and stooped down over the sick
lady.  He looked very serious, all on a sudden, at the sight of
her, and put his hand on her heart.

My mistress stared hard in Mr. Goodricke's face.  "Not dead!" says
she, whispering, and turning all of a tremble from head to foot.

"Yes," says the doctor, very quiet and grave.  "Dead.  I was
afraid it would happen suddenly when I examined her heart
yesterday." My mistress stepped back from the bedside while he was
speaking, and trembled and trembled again.  "Dead!" she whispers
to herself; "dead so suddenly! dead so soon! What will the Count
say?" Mr. Goodricke advised her to go downstairs, and quiet
herself a little.  "You have been sitting up all night," says he,
"and your nerves are shaken.  This person," says he, meaning me,
"this person will stay in the room till I can send for the
necessary assistance." My mistress did as he told her.  "I must
prepare the Count," she says.  "I must carefully prepare the
Count." And so she left us, shaking from head to foot, and went
out.

"Your master is a foreigner," says Mr. Goodricke, when my mistress
had left us.  "Does he understand about registering the death?" 
"I can't rightly tell, sir," says I, "but I should think not." 
The doctor considered a minute, and then says he, "I don't usually
do such things," says he, "but it may save the family trouble in
this case if I register the death myself.  I shall pass the
district office in half an hour's time, and I can easily look in. 
Mention, if you please, that I will do so."  "Yes, sir," says I,
"with thanks, I'm sure, for your kindness in thinking of it." 
"You don't mind staying here till I can send you the proper
person?" says he.  "No, sir," says I; "I'll stay with the poor
lady till then.  I suppose nothing more could be done, sir, than
was done?" says I.  "No," says he, "nothing; she must have
suffered sadly before ever I saw her--the case was hopeless when I
was called in."  "Ah, dear me! we all come to it, sooner or later,
don't we, sir?" says I.  He gave no answer to that--he didn't seem
to care about talking.  He said, "Good-day," and went out.

I stopped by the bedside from that time till the time when Mr.
Goodricke sent the person in, as he had promised.  She was, by
name, Jane Gould.  I considered her to be a respectable-looking
woman.  She made no remark, except to say that she understood what
was wanted of her, and that she had winded a many of them in her
time.

How master bore the news, when he first heard it, is more than I
can tell, not having been present.  When I did see him he looked
awfully overcome by it, to be sure.  He sat quiet in a corner,
with his fat hands hanging over his thick knees, and his head
down, and his eyes looking at nothing.  He seemed not so much
sorry, as scared and dazed like, by what had happened.  My
mistress managed all that was to be done about the funeral.  It
must have cost a sight of money--the coffin, in particular, being
most beautiful.  The dead lady's husband was away, as we heard, in
foreign parts.  But my mistress (being her aunt) settled it with
her friends in the country (Cumberland, I think) that she should
be buried there, in the same grave along with her mother. 
Everything was done handsomely, in respect of the funeral, I say
again, and master went down to attend the burying in the country
himself.  He looked grand in his deep mourning, with his big
solemn face, and his slow walk, and his broad hatband--that he
did!

In conclusion.  I have to say, in answer to questions put to me--

(1) That neither I nor my fellow-servant ever saw my master give
Lady Glyde any medicine himself.

(2) That he was never, to my knowledge and belief, left alone in
the room with Lady Glyde.

(3) That I am not able to say what caused the sudden fright, which
my mistress informed me had seized the lady on her first coming
into the house.  The cause was never explained, either to me or to
my fellow-servant.

The above statement has been read over in my presence.  I have
nothing to add to it, or to take away from it.  I say, on my oath
as a Christian woman, this is the truth.

           (Signed) HESTER PINHORN, Her + Mark.



2.  THE NARRATIVE OF THE DOCTOR


To the Registrar of the Sub-District in which the undermentioned
death took place.--I hereby certify that I attended Lady Glyde,
aged Twenty-One last Birthday; that I last saw her on Thursday the
25th July 1850; that she died on the same day at No. 5 Forest
Road, St. John's Wood, and that the cause of her death was
Aneurism.  Duration of disease not known.

                    (Signed) Alfred Goodricke.

Profl. Title.  M.R.C.S. Eng., L.S.A.
  Address,  12 Croydon Gardens
     St. John's Wood.


3.  THE NARRATIVE OF JANE GOULD


I was the person sent in by Mr. Goodricke to do what was right and
needful by the remains of a lady who had died at the house named
in the certificate which precedes this.  I found the body in
charge of the servant, Hester Pinhorn.  I remained with it, and
prepared it at the proper time for the grave.  It was laid in the
coffin in my presence, and I afterwards saw the coffin screwed
down previous to its removal.  When that had been done, and not
before, I received what was due to me and left the house.  I refer
persons who may wish to investigate my character to Mr. Goodricke. 
He will bear witness that I can be trusted to tell the truth.

                      (Signed) JANE GOULD



4.  THE NARRATIVE OF THE TOMBSTONE


Sacred to the Memory of Laura, Lady Glyde, wife of Sir Percival
Glyde, Bart., of Blackwater Park, Hampshire, and daughter of the
late Philip Fairlie, Esq., of Limmeridge House, in this parish. 
Born March 27th, 1829; married December 22nd, 1849; died July
25th, 1850.



5.  THE NARRATIVE OF WALTER HARTRIGHT


Early in the summer of 1850 I and my surviving companions left the
wilds and forests of Central America for home.  Arrived at the
coast, we took ship there for England.  The vessel was wrecked in
the Gulf of Mexico--I was among the few saved from the sea.  It
was my third escape from peril of death.  Death by disease, death
by the Indians, death by drowning--all three had approached me;
all three had passed me by.

The survivors of the wreck were rescued by an American vessel
bound for Liverpool.  The ship reached her port on the thirteenth
day of October 1850.  We landed late in the afternoon, and I
arrived in London the same night.

These pages are not the record of my wanderings and my dangers
away from home.  The motives which led me from my country and my
friends to a new world of adventure and peril are known.  From
that self-imposed exile I came back, as I had hoped, prayed,
believed I should come back--a changed man.  In the waters of a
new life I had tempered my nature afresh.  In the stern school of
extremity and danger my will had learnt to be strong, my heart to
be resolute, my mind to rely on itself.  I had gone out to fly
from my own future.  I came back to face it, as a man should.

To face it with that inevitable suppression of myself which I knew
it would demand from me.  I had parted with the worst bitterness
of the past, but not with my heart's remembrance of the sorrow and
the tenderness of that memorable time.  I had not ceased to feel
the one irreparable disappointment of my life--I had only learnt
to bear it.  Laura Fairlie was in all my thoughts when the ship
bore me away, and I looked my last at England.  Laura Fairlie was
in all my thoughts when the ship brought me back, and the morning
light showed the friendly shore in view.

My pen traces the old letters as my heart goes back to the old
love.  I write of her as Laura Fairlie still.  It is hard to think
of her, it is hard to speak of her, by her husband's name.

There are no more words of explanation to add on my appearance for
the second time in these pages.  This narrative, if I have the
strength and the courage to write it, may now go on.


My first anxieties and first hopes when the morning came centred
in my mother and my sister.  I felt the necessity of preparing
them for the joy and surprise of my return, after an absence
during which it had been impossible for them to receive any
tidings of me for months past. Early in the morning I sent a
letter to the Hampstead Cottage, and followed it myself in an
hour's time.

When the first meeting was over, when our quiet and composure of
other days began gradually to return to us, I saw something in my
mother's face which told me that a secret oppression lay heavy on
her heart.  There was more than love--there was sorrow in the
anxious eyes that looked on me so tenderly--there was pity in the
kind hand that slowly and fondly strengthened its hold on mine. 
We had no concealments from each other.  She knew how the hope of
my life had been wrecked--she knew why I had left her.  It was on
my lips to ask as composedly as I could if any letter had come for
me from Miss Halcombe, if there was any news of her sister that I
might hear.  But when I looked in my mother's face I lost courage
to put the question even in that guarded form.  I could only say,
doubtingly and restrainedly--

"You have something to tell me."

My sister, who had been sitting opposite to us, rose suddenly
without a word of explanation--rose and left the room.

My mother moved closer to me on the sofa and put her arms round my
neck.  Those fond arms trembled--the tears flowed fast over the
faithful loving face.

"Walter!" she whispered, "my own darling! my heart is heavy for
you.  Oh, my son! my son! try to remember that I am still left!"

My head sank on her bosom.  She had said all in saying those
words.

*    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *

It was the morning of the third day since my return--the morning
of the sixteenth of October.

I had remained with them at the cottage--I had tried hard not to
embitter the happiness of my return to THEM as it was embittered
to ME.  I had done all man could to rise after the shock, and
accept my life resignedly--to let my great sorrow come in
tenderness to my heart, and not in despair.  It was useless and
hopeless.  No tears soothed my aching eyes, no relief came to me
from my sister's sympathy or my mother's love.

On that third morning I opened my heart to them.  At last the
words passed my lips which I had longed to speak on the day when
my mother told me of her death.

"Let me go away alone for a little while," I said.  "I shall bear
it better when I have looked once more at the place where I first
saw her--when I have knelt and prayed by the grave where they have
laid her to rest."

I departed on my journey--my journey to the grave of Laura
Fairlie.

It was a quiet autumn afternoon when I stopped at the solitary
station, and set forth alone on foot by the well-remembered road. 
The waning sun was shining faintly through thin white clouds--the
air was warm and still--the peacefulness of the lonely country was
overshadowed and saddened by the influence of the falling year.

I reached the moor--I stood again on the brow of the hill--I
looked on along the path--and there were the familiar garden trees
in the distance, the clear sweeping semicircle of the drive, the
high white walls of Limmeridge House.  The chances and changes,
the wanderings and dangers of months and months past, all shrank
and shrivelled to nothing in my mind.  It was like yesterday since
my feet had last trodden the fragrant heathy ground.  I thought I
should see her coming to meet me, with her little straw hat
shading her face, her simple dress fluttering in the air, and her
well-filled sketch-book ready in her hand.

Oh death, thou hast thy sting! oh, grave, thou hast thy victory!

I turned aside, and there below me in the glen was the lonesome
grey church, the porch where I had waited for the coming of the
woman in white, the hills encircling the quiet burial-ground, the
brook bubbling cold over its stony bed.  There was the marble
cross, fair and white, at the head of the tomb--the tomb that now
rose over mother and daughter alike.

I approached the grave.  I crossed once more the low stone stile,
and bared my head as I touched the sacred ground.  Sacred to
gentleness and goodness, sacred to reverence and grief.

I stopped before the pedestal from which the cross rose.  On one
side of it, on the side nearest to me, the newly-cut inscription
met my eyes--the hard, clear, cruel black letters which told the
story of her life and death.  I tried to read them.  I did read as
far as the name.  "Sacred to the Memory of Laura----" The kind
blue eyes dim with tears--the fair head drooping wearily--the
innocent parting words which implored me to leave her--oh, for a
happier last memory of her than this; the memory I took away with
me, the memory I bring back with me to her grave!

A second time I tried to read the inscription.  I saw at the end
the date of her death, and above it----

Above it there were lines on the marble--there was a name among
them which disturbed my thoughts of her.  I went round to the
other side of the grave, where there was nothing to read, nothing
of earthly vileness to force its way between her spirit and mine.

I knelt down by the tomb.  I laid my hands, I laid my head on the
broad white stone, and closed my weary eyes on the earth around,
on the light above.  I let her come back to me.  Oh, my love! my
love! my heart may speak to you NOW! I It is yesterday again since
we parted--yesterday, since your dear hand lay in mine--yesterday,
since my eyes looked their last on you.  My love! my love!

*    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *    *

Time had flowed on, and silence had fallen like thick night over
its course.

The first sound that came after the heavenly peace rustled faintly
like a passing breath of air over the grass of the burial-ground. 
I heard it nearing me slowly, until it came changed to my ear--
came like footsteps moving onward--then stopped.

I looked up.

The sunset was near at hand.  The clouds had parted--the slanting
light fell mellow over the hills.  The last of the day was cold
and clear and still in the quiet valley of the dead.

Beyond me, in the burial-ground, standing together in the cold
clearness of the lower light, I saw two women.  They were looking
towards the tomb, looking towards me.

Two.

They came a little on, and stopped again.  Their veils were down,
and hid their faces from me.  When they stopped, one of them
raised her veil.  In the still evening light I saw the face of
Marian Halcombe.

Changed, changed as if years had passed over it! The eyes large
and wild, and looking at me with a strange terror in them.  The
face worn and wasted piteously.  Pain and fear and grief written
on her as with a brand.

I took one step towards her from the grave.  She never moved--she
never spoke.  The veiled woman with her cried out faintly.  I
stopped.  The springs of my life fell low, and the shuddering of
an unutterable dread crept over me from head to foot.

The woman with the veiled face moved away from her companion, and
came towards me slowly.  Left by herself, standing by herself,
Marian Halcombe spoke.  It was the voice that I remembered--the
voice not changed, like the frightened eyes and the wasted face.

"My dream! my dream!" I heard her say those words softly in the
awful silence.  She sank on her knees, and raised her clasped
hands to heaven.  "Father! strengthen him.  Father! help him in
his hour of need."

The woman came on, slowly and silently came on.  I looked at her--
at her, and at none other, from that moment.

The voice that was praying for me faltered and sank low--then rose
on a sudden, and called affrightedly, called despairingly to me to
come away.

But the veiled woman had possession of me, body and soul.  She
stopped on one side of the grave.  We stood face to face with the
tombstone between us.  She was close to the inscription on the
side of the pedestal.  Her gown touched the black letters.

The voice came nearer, and rose and rose more passionately still. 
"Hide your face! don't look at her! Oh, for God's sake, spare him----"

The woman lifted her veil.


"Sacred to the Memory of Laura, Lady Glyde----"


Laura, Lady Glyde, was standing by the inscription, and was
looking at me over the grave.


[The Second Epoch of the Story closes here.]



THE THIRD EPOCH



THE STORY CONTINUED BY WALTER HARTRIGHT.


I


I open a new page.  I advance my narrative by one week.

The history of the interval which I thus pass over must remain
unrecorded.  My heart turns faint, my mind sinks in darkness and
confusion when I think of it.  This must not be, if I who write am
to guide, as I ought, you who read.  This must not be, if the clue
that leads through the windings of the story is to remain from end
to end untangled in my hands.

A life suddenly changed--its whole purpose created afresh, its
hopes and fears, its struggles, its interests, and its sacrifices
all turned at once and for ever into a new direction--this is the
prospect which now opens before me, like the burst of view from a
mountain's top.  I left my narrative in the quiet shadow of
Limmeridge church--I resume it, one week later, in the stir and
turmoil of a London street.


The street is in a populous and a poor neighbourhood.  The ground
floor of one of the houses in it is occupied by a small
newsvendor's shop, and the first floor and the second are let as
furnished lodgings of the humblest kind.

I have taken those two floors in an assumed name.  On the upper
floor I live, with a room to work in, a room to sleep in.  On the
lower floor, under the same assumed name, two women live, who are
described as my sisters.  I get my bread by drawing and engraving
on wood for the cheap periodicals.  My sisters are supposed to
help me by taking in a little needlework.  Our poor place of
abode, our humble calling, our assumed relationship, and our
assumed name, are all used alike as a means of hiding us in the
house-forest of London.  We are numbered no longer with the people
whose lives are open and known.  I am an obscure, unnoticed man,
without patron or friend to help me.  Marian Halcombe is nothing
now but my eldest sister, who provides for our household wants by
the toil of her own hands.  We two, in the estimation of others,
are at once the dupes and the agents of a daring imposture.  We
are supposed to be the accomplices of mad Anne Catherick, who
claims the name, the place, and the living personality of dead
Lady Glyde.

That is our situation.  That is the changed aspect in which we
three must appear, henceforth, in this narrative, for many and
many a page to come.

In the eye of reason and of law, in the estimation of relatives
and friends, according to every received formality of civilised
society, "Laura, Lady Glyde," lay buried with her mother in
Limmeridge churchyard.  Torn in her own lifetime from the list of
the living, the daughter of Philip Fairlie and the wife of
Percival Glyde might still exist for her sister, might still exist
for me, but to all the world besides she was dead.  Dead to her
uncle, who had renounced her; dead to the servants of the house,
who had failed to recognise her; dead to the persons in authority,
who had transmitted her fortune to her husband and her aunt; dead
to my mother and my sister, who believed me to be the dupe of an
adventuress and the victim of a fraud; socially, morally, legally--
dead.

And yet alive! Alive in poverty and in hiding.  Alive, with the
poor drawing-master to fight her battle, and to win the way back
for her to her place in the world of living beings.

Did no suspicion, excited by my own knowledge of Anne Catherick's
resemblance to her, cross my mind, when her face was first
revealed to me? Not the shadow of a suspicion, from the moment
when she lifted her veil by the side of the inscription which
recorded her death.

Before the sun of that day had set, before the last glimpse of the
home which was closed against her had passed from our view, the
farewell words I spoke, when we parted at Limmeridge House, had
been recalled by both of us--repeated by me, recognised by her. 
"If ever the time comes, when the devotion of my whole heart and
soul and strength will give you a moment's happiness, or spare you
a moment's sorrow, will you try to remember the poor drawing-
master who has taught you?" She, who now remembered so little of
the trouble and terror of a later time, remembered those words,
and laid her poor head innocently and trustingly on the bosom of
the man who had spoken them.  In that moment, when she called me
by my name, when she said, "They have tried to make me forget
everything, Walter, but I remember Marian, and I remember YOU"--in
that moment, I, who had long since given her my love, gave her my
life, and thanked God that it was mine to bestow on her.  Yes! the
time had come.  From thousands on thousands of miles away--through
forest and wilderness, where companions stronger than I had fallen
by my side, through peril of death thrice renewed, and thrice
escaped, the Hand that leads men on the dark road to the future
had led me to meet that time.  Forlorn and disowned, sorely tried
and sadly changed--her beauty faded, her mind clouded--robbed of
her station in the world, of her place among living creatures--the
devotion I had promised, the devotion of my whole heart and soul
and strength, might be laid blamelessly now at those dear feet. 
In the right of her calamity, in the right of her friendlessness,
she was mine at last! Mine to support, to protect, to cherish, to
restore.  Mine to love and honour as father and brother both. 
Mine to vindicate through all risks and all sacrifices--through
the hopeless struggle against Rank and Power, through the long
fight with armed deceit and fortified Success, through the waste
of my reputation, through the loss of my friends, through the
hazard of my life.



II


My position is defined--my motives are acknowledged.  The story of
Marian and the story of Laura must come next.

I shall relate both narratives, not in the words (often
interrupted, often inevitably confused) of the speakers
themselves, but in the words of the brief, plain, studiously
simple abstract which I committed to writing for my own guidance,
and for the guidance of my legal adviser.  So the tangled web will
be most speedily and most intelligibly unrolled.

The story of Marian begins where the narrative of the housekeeper
at Blackwater Park left off.


On Lady Glyde's departure from her husband's house, the fact of
that departure, and the necessary statement of the circumstances
under which it had taken place, were communicated to Miss Halcombe
by the housekeeper.  It was not till some days afterwards (how
many days exactly, Mrs. Michelson, in the absence of any written
memorandum on the subject, could not undertake to say) that a
letter arrived from Madame Fosco announcing Lady Glyde's sudden
death in Count Fosco's house.  The letter avoided mentioning
dates, and left it to Mrs. Michelson's discretion to break the
news at once to Miss Halcombe, or to defer doing so until that
lady's health should be more firmly established.

Having consulted Mr. Dawson (who had been himself delayed, by ill
health, in resuming his attendance at Blackwater Park), Mrs.
Michelson, by the doctor's advice, and in the doctor's presence,
communicated the news, either on the day when the letter was
received, or on the day after.  It is not necessary to dwell here
upon the effect which the intelligence of Lady Glyde's sudden
death produced on her sister.  It is only useful to the present
purpose to say that she was not able to travel for more than three
weeks afterwards.  At the end of that time she proceeded to London
accompanied by the housekeeper.  They parted there--Mrs. Michelson
previously informing Miss Halcombe of her address, in case they
might wish to communicate at a future period.

On parting with the housekeeper Miss Halcombe went at once to the
office of Messrs. Gilmore & Kyrle to consult with the latter
gentleman in Mr. Gilmore's absence.  She mentioned to Mr. Kyrle
what she had thought it desirable to conceal from every one else
(Mrs. Michelson included)--her suspicion of the circumstances
under which Lady Glyde was said to have met her death.  Mr. Kyrle,
who had previously given friendly proof of his anxiety to serve
Miss Halcombe, at once undertook to make such inquiries as the
delicate and dangerous nature of the investigation proposed to him
would permit.

To exhaust this part of the subject before going farther, it may
be mentioned that Count Fosco offered every facility to Mr. Kyrle,
on that gentleman's stating that he was sent by Miss Halcombe to
collect such particulars as had not yet reached her of Lady
Glyde's decease.  Mr. Kyrle was placed in communication with the
medical man, Mr. Goodricke, and with the two servants.  In the
absence of any means of ascertaining the exact date of Lady
Glyde's departure from Blackwater Park, the result of the doctor's
and the servants' evidence, and of the volunteered statements of
Count Fosco and his wife, was conclusive to the mind of Mr. Kyrle. 
He could only assume that the intensity of Miss Halcombe's
suffering, under the loss of her sister, had misled her judgment
in a most deplorable manner, and he wrote her word that the
shocking suspicion to which she had alluded in his presence was,
in his opinion, destitute of the smallest fragment of foundation
in truth.  Thus the investigation by Mr. Gilmore's partner began
and ended.

Meanwhile, Miss Halcombe had returned to Limmeridge House, and had
there collected all the additional information which she was able
to obtain.

Mr. Fairlie had received his first intimation of his niece's death
from his sister, Madame Fosco, this letter also not containing any
exact reference to dates.  He had sanctioned his sister's proposal
that the deceased lady should be laid in her mother's grave in
Limmeridge churchyard.  Count Fosco had accompanied the remains to
Cumberland, and had attended the funeral at Limmeridge, which took
place on the 30th of July.  It was followed, as a mark of respect,
by all the inhabitants of the village and the neighbourhood.  On
the next day the inscription (originally drawn out, it was said,
by the aunt of the deceased lady, and submitted for approval to
her brother, Mr. Fairlie) was engraved on one side of the monument
over the tomb.

On the day of the funeral, and for one day after it, Count Fosco
had been received as a guest at Limmeridge House, but no interview 
had taken place between Mr. Fairlie and himself, by the former
gentleman's desire.  They had communicated by writing, and through
this medium Count Fosco had made Mr. Fairlie acquainted with the
details of his niece's last illness and death.  The letter
presenting this information added no new facts to the facts
already known, but one very remarkable paragraph was contained in
the postscript.  It referred to Anne Catherick.

The substance of the paragraph in question was as follows--

It first informed Mr. Fairlie that Anne Catherick (of whom he
might hear full particulars from Miss Halcombe when she reached
Limmeridge) had been traced and recovered in the neighbourhood of
Blackwater Park, and had been for the second time placed under the
charge of the medical man from whose custody she had once escaped.

This was the first part of the postscript.  The second part warned
Mr. Fairlie that Anne Catherick's mental malady had been
aggravated by her long freedom from control, and that the insane
hatred and distrust of Sir Percival Glyde, which had been one of
her most marked delusions in former times, still existed under a
newly-acquired form.  The unfortunate woman's last idea in
connection with Sir Percival was the idea of annoying and
distressing him, and of elevating herself, as she supposed, in the
estimation of the patients and nurses, by assuming the character
of his deceased wife, the scheme of this personation having
evidently occurred to her after a stolen interview which she had
succeeded in obtaining with Lady Glyde, and at which she had
observed the extraordinary accidental likeness between the
deceased lady and herself.  It was to the last degree improbable
that she would succeed a second time in escaping from the Asylum,
but it was just possible she might find some means of annoying the
late Lady Glyde's relatives with letters, and in that case Mr.
Fairlie was warned beforehand how to receive them.

The postscript, expressed in these terms, was shown to Miss
Halcombe when she arrived at Limmeridge.  There were also placed
in her possession the clothes Lady Glyde had worn, and the other
effects she had brought with her to her aunt's house.  They had
been carefully collected and sent to Cumberland by Madame Fosco.

Such was the posture of affairs when Miss Halcombe reached
Limmeridge in the early part of September.

Shortly afterwards she was confined to her room by a relapse, her
weakened physical energies giving way under the severe mental
affliction from which she was now suffering.  On getting stronger
again, in a month's time, her suspicion of the circumstances
described as attending her sister's death still remained unshaken. 
She had heard nothing in the interim of Sir Percival Glyde, but
letters had reached her from Madame Fosco, making the most
affectionate inquiries on the part of her husband and herself. 
Instead of answering these letters, Miss Halcombe caused the house
in St. John's Wood, and the proceedings of its inmates, to be
privately watched.

Nothing doubtful was discovered.  The same result attended the
next investigations, which were secretly instituted on the subject
of Mrs. Rubelle.  She had arrived in London about six months
before with her husband.  They had come from Lyons, and they had
taken a house in the neighbourhood of Leicester Square, to be
fitted up as a boarding-house for foreigners, who were expected to
visit England in large numbers to see the Exhibition of 1851. 
Nothing was known against husband or wife in the neighbourhood. 
They were quiet people, and they had paid their way honestly up to
the present time.  The final inquiries related to Sir Percival
Glyde.  He was settled in Paris, and living there quietly in a
small circle of English and French friends.

Foiled at all points, but still not able to rest, Miss Halcombe
next determined to visit the Asylum in which she then supposed
Anne Catherick to be for the second time confined.  She had felt a
strong curiosity about the woman in former days, and she was now
doubly interested--first, in ascertaining whether the report of
Anne Catherick's attempted personation of Lady Glyde was true, and
secondly (if it proved to be true), in discovering for herself
what the poor creature's real motives were for attempting the
deceit.

Although Count Fosco's letter to Mr. Fairlie did not mention the
address of the Asylum, that important omission cast no
difficulties in Miss Halcombe's way.  When Mr. Hartright had met
Anne Catherick at Limmeridge, she had informed him of the locality
in which the house was situated, and Miss Halcombe had noted down
the direction in her diary, with all the other particulars of the
interview exactly as she heard them from Mr. Hartright's own lips. 
Accordingly she looked back at the entry and extracted the
address--furnished herself with the Count's letter to Mr. Fairlie
as a species of credential which might be useful to her, and
started by herself for the Asylum on the eleventh of October.

She passed the night of the eleventh in London.  It had been her
intention to sleep at the house inhabited by Lady Glyde's old
governess, but Mrs. Vesey's agitation at the sight of her lost
pupil's nearest and dearest friend was so distressing that Miss
Halcombe considerately refrained from remaining in her presence,
and removed to a respectable boarding-house in the neighbourhood,
recommended by Mrs. Vesey's married sister.  The next day she
proceeded to the Asylum, which was situated not far from London on
the northern side of the metropolis.

She was immediately admitted to see the proprietor.

At first he appeared to be decidedly unwilling to let her
communicate with his patient.  But on her showing him the
postscript to Count Fosco's letter--on her reminding him that she
was the "Miss Halcombe" there referred to--that she was a near
relative of the deceased Lady Glyde--and that she was therefore
naturally interested, for family reasons, in observing for herself
the extent of Anne Catherick's delusion in relation to her late
sister--the tone and manner of the owner of the Asylum altered,
and he withdrew his objections.  He probably felt that a continued
refusal, under these circumstances, would not only be an act of
discourtesy in itself, but would also imply that the proceedings
in his establishment were not of a nature to bear investigation by
respectable strangers.

Miss Halcombe's own impression was that the owner of the Asylum
had not been received into the confidence of Sir Percival and the
Count.  His consenting at all to let her visit his patient seemed
to afford one proof of this, and his readiness in making
admissions which could scarcely have escaped the lips of an
accomplice, certainly appeared to furnish another.

For example, in the course of the introductory conversation which
took place, he informed Miss Halcombe that Anne Catherick had been
brought back to him with the necessary order and certificates by
Count Fosco on the twenty-seventh of July--the Count also
producing a letter of explanations and instructions signed by Sir
Percival Glyde.  On receiving his inmate again, the proprietor of
the Asylum acknowledged that he had observed some curious personal
changes in her.  Such changes no doubt were not without precedent
in his experience of persons mentally afflicted.  Insane people
were often at one time, outwardly as well as inwardly, unlike what
they were at another--the change from better to worse, or from
worse to better, in the madness having a necessary tendency to
produce alterations of appearance externally.  He allowed for
these, and he allowed also for the modification in the form of
Anne Catherick's delusion, which was reflected no doubt in her
manner and expression.  But he was still perplexed at times by
certain differences between his patient before she had escaped and
his patient since she had been brought back.  Those differences
were too minute to be described.  He could not say of course that
she was absolutely altered in height or shape or complexion, or in
the colour of her hair and eyes, or in the general form of her
face--the change was something that he felt more than something
that he saw.  In short, the case had been a puzzle from the first,
and one more perplexity was added to it now.

It cannot be said that this conversation led to the result of even
partially preparing Miss Halcombe's mind for what was to come. 
But it produced, nevertheless, a very serious effect upon her. 
She was so completely unnerved by it, that some little time
elapsed before she could summon composure enough to follow the
proprietor of the Asylum to that part of the house in which the
inmates were confined.

On inquiry, it turned out that the supposed Anne Catherick was
then taking exercise in the grounds attached to the establishment. 
One of the nurses volunteered to conduct Miss Halcombe to the
place, the proprietor of the Asylum remaining in the house for a
few minutes to attend to a case which required his services, and
then engaging to join his visitor in the grounds.

The nurse led Miss Halcombe to a distant part of the property,
which was prettily laid out, and after looking about her a little,
turned into a turf walk, shaded by a shrubbery on either side. 
About half-way down this walk two women were slowly approaching. 
The nurse pointed to them and said, "There is Anne Catherick,
ma'am, with the attendant who waits on her.  The attendant will
answer any questions you wish to put." With those words the nurse
left her to return to the duties of the house.

Miss Halcombe advanced on her side, and the women advanced on
theirs.  When they were within a dozen paces of each other, one of
the women stopped for an instant, looked eagerly at the strange
lady, shook off the nurse's grasp on her, and the next moment
rushed into Miss Halcombe's arms.  In that moment Miss Halcombe
recognised her sister--recognised the dead-alive.

Fortunately for the success of the measures taken subsequently, no
one was present at that moment but the nurse.  She was a young
woman, and she was so startled that she was at first quite
incapable of interfering.  When she was able to do so her whole
services were required by Miss Halcombe, who had for the moment
sunk altogether in the effort to keep her own senses under the
shock of the discovery.  After waiting a few minutes in the fresh
air and the cool shade, her natural energy and courage helped her
a little, and she became sufficiently mistress of herself to feel
the necessity of recalling her presence of mind for her
unfortunate sister's sake.

She obtained permission to speak alone with the patient, on
condition that they both remained well within the nurse's view. 
There was no time for questions--there was only time for Miss
Halcombe to impress on the unhappy lady the necessity of
controlling herself, and to assure her of immediate help and
rescue if she did so.  The prospect of escaping from the Asylum by
obedience to her sister's directions was sufficient to quiet Lady
Glyde, and to make her understand what was required of her.  Miss
Halcombe next returned to the nurse, placed all the gold she then
had in her pocket (three sovereigns) in the nurse's hands, and
asked when and where she could speak to her alone.

The woman was at first surprised and distrustful.  But on Miss
Halcombe's declaring that she only wanted to put some questions
which she was too much agitated to ask at that moment, and that
she had no intention of misleading the nurse into any dereliction
of duty, the woman took the money, and proposed three o'clock on
the next day as the time for the interview.  She might then slip
out for half an hour, after the patients had dined, and she would
meet the lady in a retired place, outside the high north wall
which screened the grounds of the house.  Miss Halcombe had only
time to assent, and to whisper to her sister that she should hear
from her on the next day, when the proprietor of the Asylum joined
them.  He noticed his visitor's agitation, which Miss Halcombe
accounted for by saying that her interview with Anne Catherick had
a little startled her at first. She took her leave as soon after
as possible--that is to say, as soon as she could summon courage
to force herself from the presence of her unfortunate sister.

A very little reflection, when the capacity to reflect returned,
convinced her that any attempt to identify Lady Glyde and to
rescue her by legal means, would, even if successful, involve a
delay that might be fatal to her sister's intellects, which were
shaken already by the horror of the situation to which she had
been consigned.  By the time Miss Halcombe had got back to London,
she had determined to effect Lady Glyde's escape privately, by
means of the nurse.

She went at once to her stockbroker, and sold out of the funds all
the little property she possessed, amounting to rather less than
seven hundred pounds.  Determined, if necessary, to pay the price
of her sister's liberty with every farthing she had in the world,
she repaired the next day, having the whole sum about her in bank-
notes, to her appointment outside the Asylum wall.

The nurse was there.  Miss Halcombe approached the subject
cautiously by many preliminary questions.  She discovered, among
other particulars, that the nurse who had in former times attended
on the true Anne Catherick had been held responsible (although she
was not to blame for it) for the patient's escape, and had lost
her place in consequence.  The same penalty, it was added, would
attach to the person then speaking to her, if the supposed Anne
Catherick was missing a second time; and, moreover, the nurse in
this case had an especial interest in keeping her place.  She was
engaged to be married, and she and her future husband were waiting
till they could save, together, between two and three hundred
pounds to start in business.  The nurse's wages were good, and she
might succeed, by strict economy, in contributing her small share
towards the sum required in two years' time.

On this hint Miss Halcombe spoke.  She declared that the supposed
Anne Catherick was nearly related to her, that she had been placed
in the Asylum under a fatal mistake, and that the nurse would be
doing a good and a Christian action in being the means of
restoring them to one another.  Before there was time to start a
single objection, Miss Halcombe took four bank-notes of a hundred
pounds each from her pocket-book, and offered them to the woman,
as a compensation for the risk she was to run, and for the loss of
her place.

The nurse hesitated, through sheer incredulity and surprise.  Miss
Halcombe pressed the point on her firmly.

"You will be doing a good action," she repeated; "you will be
helping the most injured and unhappy woman alive.  There is your
marriage portion for a reward.  Bring her safely to me here, and I
will put these four bank-notes into your hand before I claim her."

"Will you give me a letter saying those words, which I can show to
my sweetheart when he asks how I got the money?" inquired the
woman.

"I will bring the letter with me, ready written and signed,"
answered Miss Halcombe.

"Then I'll risk it," said the nurse.

"When?"

"To-morrow."

It was hastily agreed between them that Miss Halcombe should
return early the next morning and wait out of sight among the
trees--always, however, keeping near the quiet spot of ground
under the north wall.  The nurse could fix no time for her
appearance, caution requiring that she should wait and be guided
by circumstances.  On that understanding they separated.

Miss Halcombe was at her place, with the promised letter and the
promised bank-notes, before ten the next morning.  She waited more
than an hour and a half.  At the end of that time the nurse came
quickly round the corner of the wall holding Lady Glyde by the
arm.  The moment they met Miss Halcombe put the bank-notes and the
letter into her hand, and the sisters were united again.

The nurse had dressed Lady Glyde, with excellent forethought, in a
bonnet, veil, and shawl of her own.  Miss Halcombe only detained
her to suggest a means of turning the pursuit in a false
direction, when the escape was discovered at the Asylum.  She was
to go back to the house, to mention in the hearing of the other
nurses that Anne Catherick had been inquiring latterly about the
distance from London to Hampshire, to wait till the last moment,
before discovery was inevitable, and then to give the alarm that
Anne was missing.  The supposed inquiries about Hampshire, when
communicated to the owner of the Asylum, would lead him to imagine
that his patient had returned to Blackwater Park, under the
influence of the delusion which made her persist in asserting
herself to be Lady Glyde, and the first pursuit would, in all
probability, be turned in that direction.

The nurse consented to follow these suggestions, the more readily
as they offered her the means of securing herself against any
worse consequences than the loss of her place, by remaining in the
Asylum, and so maintaining the appearance of innocence, at least.
She at once returned to the house, and Miss Halcombe lost no time
in taking her sister back with her to London.  They caught the
afternoon train to Carlisle the same afternoon, and arrived at
Limmeridge, without accident or difficulty of any kind, that
night.

During the latter part of their journey they were alone in the
carriage, and Miss Halcombe was able to collect such remembrances
of the past as her sister's confused and weakened memory was able
to recall.  The terrible story of the conspiracy so obtained was
presented in fragments, sadly incoherent in themselves, and widely
detached from each other.  Imperfect as the revelation was, it
must nevertheless be recorded here before this explanatory
narrative closes with the events of the next day at Limmeridge
House.


Lady Glyde's recollection of the events which followed her
departure from Blackwater Park began with her arrival at the
London terminus of the South Western Railway.  She had omitted to
make a memorandum beforehand of the day on which she took the
journey.  All hope of fixing that important date by any evidence
of hers, or of Mrs. Michelson's, must be given up for lost.

On the arrival of the train at the platform Lady Glyde found Count
Fosco waiting for her.  He was at the carriage door as soon as the
porter could open it.  The train was unusually crowded, and there
was great confusion in getting the luggage.  Some person whom
Count Fosco brought with him procured the luggage which belonged
to Lady Glyde.  It was marked with her name.  She drove away alone
with the Count in a vehicle which she did not particularly notice
at the time.

Her first question, on leaving the terminus, referred to Miss
Halcombe.  The Count informed her that Miss Halcombe had not yet
gone to Cumberland, after-consideration having caused him to doubt
the prudence of her taking so long a journey without some days'
previous rest.

Lady Glyde next inquired whether her sister was then staying in
the Count's house.  Her recollection of the answer was confused,
her only distinct impression in relation to it being that the
Count declared he was then taking her to see Miss Halcombe.  Lady
Glyde's experience of London was so limited that she could not
tell, at the time, through what streets they were driving.  But
they never left the streets, and they never passed any gardens or
trees.  When the carriage stopped, it stopped in a small street
behind a square--a square in which there were shops, and public
buildings, and many people.  From these recollections (of which
Lady Glyde was certain) it seems quite clear that Count Fosco did
not take her to his own residence in the suburb of St. John's
Wood.

They entered the house, and went upstairs to a back room, either
on the first or second floor.  The luggage was carefully brought
in.  A female servant opened the door, and a man with a dark
beard, apparently a foreigner, met them in the hall, and with
great politeness showed them the way upstairs.  In answer to Lady
Glyde's inquiries, the Count assured her that Miss Halcombe was in
the house, and that she should be immediately informed of her
sister's arrival.  He and the foreigner then went away and left
her by herself in the room.  It was poorly furnished as a sitting-
room, and it looked out on the backs of houses.

The place was remarkably quiet--no footsteps went up or down the
stairs--she only heard in the room beneath her a dull, rumbling
sound of men's voices talking.  Before she had been long left
alone the Count returned, to explain that Miss Halcombe was then
taking rest, and could not be disturbed for a little while.  He
was accompanied into the room by a gentleman (an Englishman), whom
he begged to present as a friend of his.

After this singular introduction--in the course of which no names,
to the best of Lady Glyde's recollection, had been mentioned--she
was left alone with the stranger.  He was perfectly civil, but he
startled and confused her by some odd questions about herself, and
by looking at her, while he asked them, in a strange manner. 
After remaining a short time he went out, and a minute or two
afterwards a second stranger--also an Englishman--came in.  This
person introduced himself as another friend of Count Fosco's, and
he, in his turn, looked at her very oddly, and asked some curious
questions--never, as well as she could remember, addressing her by
name, and going out again, after a little while, like the first
man.  By this time she was so frightened about herself, and so
uneasy about her sister, that she had thoughts of venturing
downstairs again, and claiming the protection and assistance of
the only woman she had seen in the house--the servant who answered
the door.

Just as she had risen from her chair, the Count came back into the
room.

The moment he appeared she asked anxiously how long the meeting
between her sister and herself was to be still delayed.  At first
he returned an evasive answer, but on being pressed, he
acknowledged, with great apparent reluctance, that Miss Halcombe
was by no means so well as he had hitherto represented her to be. 
His tone and manner, in making this reply, so alarmed Lady Glyde,
or rather so painfully increased the uneasiness which she had felt
in the company of the two strangers, that a sudden faintness
overcame her, and she was obliged to ask for a glass of water. 
The Count called from the door for water, and for a bottle of
smelling-salts.  Both were brought in by the foreign-looking man
with the beard.  The water, when Lady Glyde attempted to drink it,
had so strange a taste that it increased her faintness, and she
hastily took the bottle of salts from Count Fosco, and smelt at
it.  Her head became giddy on the instant.  The Count caught the
bottle as it dropped out of her hand, and the last impression of
which she was conscious was that he held it to her nostrils again.

From this point her recollections were found to be confused,
fragmentary, and difficult to reconcile with any reasonable
probability.

Her own impression was that she recovered her senses later in the
evening, that she then left the house, that she went (as she had 
previously arranged to go, at Blackwater Park) to Mrs. Vesey's--
that she drank tea there, and that she passed the night under Mrs.
Vesey's roof.  She was totally unable to say how, or when, or in
what company she left the house to which Count Fosco had brought
her.  But she persisted in asserting that she had been to Mrs.
Vesey's, and still more extraordinary, that she had been helped to
undress and get to bed by Mrs. Rubelle! She could not remember
what the conversation was at Mrs. Vesey's or whom she saw there
besides that lady, or why Mrs. Rubelle should have been present in
the house to help her.

Her recollection of what happened to her the next morning was
still more vague and unreliable.

She had some dim idea of driving out (at what hour she could not
say) with Count Fosco, and with Mrs. Rubelle again for a female
attendant.  But when, and why, she left Mrs. Vesey she could not
tell; neither did she know what direction the carriage drove in,
or where it set her down, or whether the Count and Mrs. Rubelle
did or did not remain with her all the time she was out.  At this
point in her sad story there was a total blank.  She had no
impressions of the faintest kind to communicate--no idea whether
one day, or more than one day, had passed--until she came to
herself suddenly in a strange place, surrounded by women who were
all unknown to her.

This was the Asylum.  Here she first heard herself called by Anne
Catherick's name, and here, as a last remarkable circumstance in
the story of the conspiracy, her own eyes informed her that she
had Anne Catherick's clothes on.  The nurse, on the first night in
the Asylum, had shown her the marks on each article of her
underclothing as it was taken off, and had said, not at all
irritably or unkindly, "Look at your own name on your own clothes,
and don't worry us all any more about being Lady Glyde.  She's
dead and buried, and you're alive and hearty.  Do look at your
clothes now!  There it is, in good marking ink, and there you will
find it on all your old things, which we have kept in the house--
Anne Catherick, as plain as print!" And there it was, when Miss
Halcombe examined the linen her sister wore, on the night of their
arrival at Limmeridge House.


These were the only recollections--all of them uncertain, and some
of them contradictory--which could be extracted from Lady Glyde by
careful questioning on the journey to Cumberland.  Miss Halcombe
abstained from pressing her with any inquiries relating to events
in the Asylum--her mind being but too evidently unfit to bear the
trial of reverting to them.  It was known, by the voluntary
admission of the owner of the mad-house, that she was received
there on the twenty-seventh of July.  From that date until the
fifteenth of October (the day of her rescue) she had been under
restraint, her identity with Anne Catherick systematically
asserted, and her sanity, from first to last, practically denied. 
Faculties less delicately balanced, constitutions less tenderly
organised, must have suffered under such an ordeal as this.  No
man could have gone through it and come out of it unchanged.

Arriving at Limmeridge late on the evening of the fifteenth, Miss
Halcombe wisely resolved not to attempt the assertion of Lady
Glyde's identity until the next day.

The first thing in the morning she went to Mr. Fairlie's room, and
using all possible cautions and preparations beforehand, at last
told him in so many words what had happened.  As soon as his first
astonishment and alarm had subsided, he angrily declared that Miss
Halcombe had allowed herself to be duped by Anne Catherick.  He
referred her to Count Fosco's letter, and to what she had herself
told him of the personal resemblance between Anne and his deceased
niece, and he positively declined to admit to his presence, even
for one minute only, a madwoman, whom it was an insult and an
outrage to have brought into his house at all.

Miss Halcombe left the room--waited till the first heat of her
indignation had passed away--decided on reflection that Mr.
Fairlie should see his niece in the interests of common humanity
before he closed his doors on her as a stranger--and thereupon,
without a word of previous warning, took Lady Glyde with her to
his room.  The servant was posted at the door to prevent their
entrance, but Miss Halcombe insisted on passing him, and made her
way into Mr. Fairlie's presence, leading her sister by the hand.

The scene that followed, though it only lasted for a few minutes,
was too painful to be described--Miss Halcombe herself shrank from
referring to it.  Let it be enough to say that Mr. Fairlie
declared, in the most positive terms, that he did not recognise
the woman who had been brought into his room--that he saw nothing
in her face and manner to make him doubt for a moment that his
niece lay buried in Limmeridge churchyard, and that he would call
on the law to protect him if before the day was over she was not
removed from the house.

Taking the very worst view of Mr. Fairlie's selfishness,
indolence, and habitual want of feeling, it was manifestly
impossible to suppose that he was capable of such infamy as
secretly recognising and openly disowning his brother's child. 
Miss Halcombe humanely and sensibly allowed all due force to the
influence of prejudice and alarm in preventing him from fairly
exercising his perceptions, and accounted for what had happened in
that way.  But when she next put the servants to the test, and
found that they too were, in every case, uncertain, to say the
least of it, whether the lady presented to them was their young
mistress or Anne Catherick, of whose resemblance to her they had
all heard, the sad conclusion was inevitable that the change
produced in Lady Glyde's face and manner by her imprisonment in
the Asylum was far more serious than Miss Halcombe had at first
supposed.  The vile deception which had asserted her death defied
exposure even in the house where she was born, and among the
people with whom she had lived.

In a less critical situation the effort need not have been given
up as hopeless even yet.

For example, the maid, Fanny, who happened to be then absent from
Limmeridge, was expected back in two days, and there would be a
chance of gaining her recognition to start with, seeing that she
had been in much more constant communication with her mistress,
and had been much more heartily attached to her than the other
servants.  Again, Lady Glyde might have been privately kept in the
house or in the village to wait until her health was a little
recovered and her mind was a little steadied again.  When her
memory could be once more trusted to serve her, she would
naturally refer to persons and events in the past with a certainty
and a familiarity which no impostor could simulate, and so the
fact of her identity, which her own appearance had failed to
establish, might subsequently be proved, with time to help her, by
the surer test of her own words.

But the circumstances under which she had regained her freedom
rendered all recourse to such means as these simply impracticable. 
The pursuit from the Asylum, diverted to Hampshire for the time
only, would infallibly next take the direction of Cumberland.  The
persons appointed to seek the fugitive might arrive at Limmeridge
House at a few hours' notice, and in Mr. Fairlie's present temper
of mind they might count on the immediate exertion of his local
influence and authority to assist them.  The commonest
consideration for Lady Glyde's safety forced on Miss Halcombe the
necessity of resigning the struggle to do her justice, and of
removing her at once from the place of all others that was now
most dangerous to her--the neighbourhood of her own home.

An immediate return to London was the first and wisest measure of
security which suggested itself.  In the great city all traces of
them might be most speedily and most surely effaced.  There were
no preparations to make--no farewell words of kindness to exchange
with any one.  On the afternoon of that memorable day of the
sixteenth Miss Halcombe roused her sister to a last exertion of
courage, and without a living soul to wish them well at parting,
the two took their way into the world alone, and turned their
backs for ever on Limmeridge House.

They had passed the hill above the churchyard, when Lady Glyde
insisted on turning back to look her last at her mother's grave. 
Miss Halcombe tried to shake her resolution, but, in this one
instance, tried in vain.  She was immovable.  Her dim eyes lit
with a sudden fire, and flashed through the veil that hung over
them--her wasted fingers strengthened moment by moment round the
friendly arm by which they had held so listlessly till this time. 
I believe in my soul that the hand of God was pointing their way
back to them, and that the most innocent and the most afflicted of
His creatures was chosen in that dread moment to see it.

They retraced their steps to the burial-ground, and by that act
sealed the future of our three lives.



III


This was the story of the past--the story so far as we knew it
then.

Two obvious conclusions presented themselves to my mind after
hearing it.  In the first place, I saw darkly what the nature of
the conspiracy had been, how chances had been watched, and how
circumstances had been handled to ensure impunity to a daring and
an intricate crime.  While all details were still a mystery to me,
the vile manner in which the personal resemblance between the
woman in white and Lady Glyde had been turned to account was clear
beyond a doubt.  It was plain that Anne Catherick had been
introduced into Count Fosco's house as Lady Glyde--it was plain
that Lady Glyde had taken the dead woman's place in the Asylum--
the substitution having been so managed as to make innocent people
(the doctor and the two servants certainly, and the owner of the
mad-house in all probability) accomplices in the crime

The second conclusion came as the necessary consequence of the
first. We three had no mercy to expect from Count Fosco and Sir
Percival Glyde.  The success of the conspiracy had brought with it
a clear gain to those two men of thirty thousand pounds--twenty
thousand to one, ten thousand to the other through his wife.  They
had that interest, as well as other interests, in ensuring their
impunity from exposure, and they would leave no stone unturned, no
sacrifice unattempted, no treachery untried, to discover the place
in which their victim was concealed, and to part her from the only
friends she had in the world--Marian Halcombe and myself.

The sense of this serious peril--a peril which every day and every
hour might bring nearer and nearer to us--was the one influence
that guided me in fixing the place of our retreat.  I chose it in
the far east of London, where there were fewest idle people to
lounge and look about them in the streets.  I chose it in a poor
and a populous neighbourhood--because the harder the struggle for
existence among the men and women about us, the less the risk of
their having the time or taking the pains to notice chance
strangers who came among them.  These were the great advantages I
looked to, but our locality was a gain to us also in another and a
hardly less important respect.  We could live cheaply by the daily
work of my hands, and could save every farthing we possessed to
forward the purpose, the righteous purpose, of redressing an
infamous wrong--which, from first to last, I now kept steadily in
view.

In a week's time Marian Halcombe and I had settled how the course
of our new lives should be directed.

There were no other lodgers in the house, and we had the means of
going in and out without passing through the shop.  I arranged,
for the present at least, that neither Marian nor Laura should
stir outside the door without my being with them, and that in my
absence from home they should let no one into their rooms on any
pretence whatever.  This rule established, I went to a friend whom
I had known in former days--a wood engraver in large practice--to
seek for employment, telling him, at the same time, that I had
reasons for wishing to remain unknown.

He at once concluded that I was in debt, expressed his regret in
the usual forms, and then promised to do what he could to assist
me.  I left his false impression undisturbed, and accepted the
work he had to give.  He knew that he could trust my experience
and my industry.  I had what he wanted, steadiness and facility,
and though my earnings were but small, they sufficed for our
necessities.  As soon as we could feel certain of this, Marian
Halcombe and I put together what we possessed.  She had between
two and three hundred pounds left of her own property, and I had
nearly as much remaining from the purchase-money obtained by the
sale of my drawing-master's practice before I left England. 
Together we made up between us more than four hundred pounds.  I
deposited this little fortune in a bank, to be kept for the
expense of those secret inquiries and investigations which I was
determined to set on foot, and to carry on by myself if I could
find no one to help me.  We calculated our weekly expenditure to
the last farthing, and we never touched our little fund except in
Laura's interests and for Laura's sake.

The house-work, which, if we had dared trust a stranger near us,
would have been done by a servant, was taken on the first day,
taken as her own right, by Marian Halcombe.  "What a woman's hands
ARE fit for," she said, "early and late, these hands of mine shall
do."  They trembled as she held them out.  The wasted arms told
their sad story of the past, as she turned up the sleeves of the
poor plain dress that she wore for safety's sake; but the
unquenchable spirit of the woman burnt bright in her even yet.  I
saw the big tears rise thick in her eyes, and fall slowly over her 
cheeks as she looked at me.  She dashed them away with a touch of
her old energy, and smiled with a faint reflection of her old good
spirits.  "Don't doubt my courage, Walter," she pleaded, "it's my
weakness that cries, not ME.  The house-work shall conquer it if I
can't."  And she kept her word--the victory was won when we met in
the evening, and she sat down to rest.  Her large steady black
eyes looked at me with a flash of their bright firmness of bygone
days.  "I am not quite broken down yet," she said.  "I am worth
trusting with my share of the work."  Before I could answer, she
added in a whisper, "And worth trusting with my share in the risk
and the danger too.  Remember that, if the time comes!"

I did remember it when the time came.



As early as the end of October the daily course of our lives had
assumed its settled direction, and we three were as completely
isolated in our place of concealment as if the house we lived in
had been a desert island, and the great network of streets and the
thousands of our fellow-creatures all round us the waters of an
illimitable sea.  I could now reckon on some leisure time for
considering what my future plan of action should be, and how I
might arm myself most securely at the outset for the coming
struggle with Sir Percival and the Count.

I gave up all hope of appealing to my recognition of Laura, or to
Marian's recognition of her, in proof of her identity.  If we had
loved her less dearly, if the instinct implanted in us by that
love had not been far more certain than any exercise of reasoning,
far keener than any process of observation, even we might have
hesitated on first seeing her.

The outward changes wrought by the suffering and the terror of the
past had fearfully, almost hopelessly, strengthened the fatal
resemblance between Anne Catherick and herself.  In my narrative
of events at the time of my residence in Limmeridge House, I have
recorded, from my own observation of the two, how the likeness,
striking as it was when viewed generally, failed in many important
points of similarity when tested in detail.  In those former days,
if they had both been seen together side by side, no person could
for a moment have mistaken them one for the other--as has happened
often in the instances of twins.  I could not say this now.  The
sorrow and suffering which I had once blamed myself for
associating even by a passing thought with the future of Laura
Fairlie, HAD set their profaning marks on the youth and beauty of
her face; and the fatal resemblance which I had once seen and
shuddered at seeing, in idea only, was now a real and living
resemblance which asserted itself before my own eyes.  Strangers,
acquaintances, friends even who could not look at her as we
looked, if she had been shown to them in the first days of her
rescue from the Asylum, might have doubted if she were the Laura
Fairlie they had once seen, and doubted without blame.

The one remaining chance, which I had at first thought might be
trusted to serve us--the chance of appealing to her recollection
of persons and events with which no impostor could be familiar,
was proved, by the sad test of our later experience, to be
hopeless.  Every little caution that Marian and I practised
towards her--every little remedy we tried, to strengthen and
steady slowly the weakened, shaken faculties, was a fresh protest
in itself against the risk of turning her mind back on the
troubled and the terrible past.

The only events of former days which we ventured on encouraging
her to recall were the little trivial domestic events of that
happy time at Limmeridge, when I first went there and taught her
to draw.  The day when I roused those remembrances by showing her
the sketch of the summer-house which she had given me on the
morning of our farewell, and which had never been separated from
me since, was the birthday of our first hope.  Tenderly and
gradually, the memory of the old walks and drives dawned upon her,
and the poor weary pining eyes looked at Marian and at me with a
new interest, with a faltering thoughtfulness in them, which from
that moment we cherished and kept alive.  I bought her a little
box of colours, and a sketch-book like the old sketch-book which I
had seen in her hands on the morning that we first met.  Once
again--oh me, once again!--at spare hours saved from my work, in
the dull London light, in the poor London room, I sat by her side
to guide the faltering touch, to help the feeble hand.  Day by day
I raised and raised the new interest till its place in the blank
of her existence was at last assured--till she could think of her
drawing and talk of it, and patiently practise it by herself, with
some faint reflection of the innocent pleasure in my
encouragement, the growing enjoyment in her own progress, which
belonged to the lost life and the lost happiness of past days.

We helped her mind slowly by this simple means, we took her out
between us to walk on fine days, in a quiet old City square near
at hand, where there was nothing to confuse or alarm her--we
spared a few pounds from the fund at the banker's to get her wine,
and the delicate strengthening food that she required--we amused
her in the evenings with children's games at cards, with scrap-
books full of prints which I borrowed from the engraver who
employed me--by these, and other trifling attentions like them, we
composed her and steadied her, and hoped all things, as cheerfully
as we could from time and care, and love that never neglected and
never despaired of her.  But to take her mercilessly from
seclusion and repose--to confront her with strangers, or with
acquaintances who were little better than strangers--to rouse the
painful impressions of her past life which we had so carefully
hushed to rest--this, even in her own interests, we dared not do. 
Whatever sacrifices it cost, whatever long, weary, heart-breaking
delays it involved, the wrong that had been inflicted on her, if
mortal means could grapple it, must be redressed without her
knowledge and without her help.

This resolution settled, it was next necessary to decide how the
first risk should be ventured, and what the first proceedings
should be.

After consulting with Marian, I resolved to begin by gathering
together as many facts as could be collected--then to ask the
advice of Mr. Kyrle (whom we knew we could trust), and to
ascertain from him, in the first instance, if the legal remedy lay
fairly within our reach.  I owed it to Laura's interests not to
stake her whole future on my own unaided exertions, so long as
there was the faintest prospect of strengthening our position by
obtaining reliable assistance of any kind.

The first source of information to which I applied was the journal
kept at Blackwater Park by Marian Halcombe.  There were passages
in this diary relating to myself which she thought it best that I
should not see.  Accordingly, she read to me from the manuscript,
and I took the notes I wanted as she went on.  We could only find
time to pursue this occupation by sitting up late at night.  Three
nights were devoted to the purpose, and were enough to put me in
possession of all that Marian could tell.

My next proceeding was to gain as much additional evidence as I
could procure from other people without exciting suspicion.  I
went myself to Mrs. Vesey to ascertain if Laura's impression of
having slept there was correct or not.  In this case, from
consideration for Mrs. Vesey's age and infirmity, and in all
subsequent cases of the same kind from considerations of caution,
I kept our real position a secret, and was always careful to speak
of Laura as "the late Lady Glyde."

Mrs. Vesey's answer to my inquiries only confirmed the
apprehensions which I had previously felt.  Laura had certainly
written to say she would pass the night under the roof of her old
friend--but she had never been near the house.

Her mind in this instance, and, as I feared, in other instances
besides, confusedly presented to her something which she had only
intended to do in the false light of something which she had
really done.  The unconscious contradiction of herself was easy to
account for in this way--but it was likely to lead to serious
results.  It was a stumble on the threshold at starting--it was a
flaw in the evidence which told fatally against us.

When I next asked for the letter which Laura had written to Mrs.
Vesey from Blackwater Park, it was given to me without the
envelope, which had been thrown into the wastepaper basket, and
long since destroyed.  In the letter itself no date was mentioned--
not even the day of the week.  It only contained these lines:--
"Dearest Mrs. Vesey, I am in sad distress and anxiety, and I may
come to your house to-morrow night, and ask for a bed.  I can't
tell you what is the matter in this letter--I write it in such
fear of being found out that I can fix my mind on nothing.  Pray
be at home to see me.  I will give you a thousand kisses, and tell
you everything.  Your affectionate Laura." What help was there in
those lines? None.

On returning from Mrs. Vesey's, I instructed Marian to write
(observing the same caution which I practised myself) to Mrs.
Michelson.  She was to express, if she pleased, some general
suspicion of Count Fosco's conduct, and she was to ask the
housekeeper to supply us with a plain statement of events, in the
interests of truth.  While we were waiting for the answer, which
reached us in a week's time, I went to the doctor in St. John's
Wood, introducing myself as sent by Miss Halcombe to collect, if
possible, more particulars of her sister's last illness than Mr.
Kyrle had found the time to procure.  By Mr. Goodricke's
assistance, I obtained a copy of the certificate of death, and an
interview with the woman (Jane Gould) who had been employed to
prepare the body for the grave.  Through this person I also
discovered a means of communicating with the servant, Hester
Pinhorn.  She had recently left her place in consequence of a
disagreement with her mistress, and she was lodging with some
people in the neighbourhood whom Mrs. Gould knew.  In the manner
here indicated I obtained the Narratives of the housekeeper, of
the doctor, of Jane Gould, and of Hester Pinhorn, exactly as they
are presented in these pages.

Furnished with such additional evidence as these documents
afforded, I considered myself to be sufficiently prepared for a
consultation with Mr. Kyrle, and Marian wrote accordingly to
mention my name to him, and to specify the day and hour at which I
requested to see him on private business.

There was time enough in the morning for me to take Laura out for
her walk as usual, and to see her quietly settled at her drawing
afterwards.  She looked up at me with a new anxiety in her face as
I rose to leave the room, and her fingers began to toy doubtfully,
in the old way, with the brushes and pencils on the table.

"You are not tired of me yet?" she said.  "You are not going away
because you are tired of me? I will try to do better--I will try
to get well.  Are you as fond of me, Walter as you used to be, now
I am so pale and thin, and so slow in learning to draw?"

She spoke as a child might have spoken, she showed me her thoughts
as a child might have shown them.  I waited a few minutes longer--
waited to tell her that she was dearer to me now than she had ever
been in the past times.  "Try to get well again," I said,
encouraging the new hope in the future which I saw dawning in her
mind, "try to get well again, for Marian's sake and for mine."

"Yes," she said to herself, returning to her drawing.  "I must
try, because they are both so fond of me." She suddenly looked up
again.  "Don't be gone long! I can't get on with my drawing,
Walter, when you are not here to help me."

"I shall soon be back, my darling--soon be back to see how you are
getting on."

My voice faltered a little in spite of me.  I forced myself from
the room.  It was no time, then, for parting with the self-control
which might yet serve me in my need before the day was out.

As I opened the door, I beckoned to Marian to follow me to the
stairs.  It was necessary to prepare her for a result which I felt
might sooner or later follow my showing myself openly in the
streets.

"I shall, in all probability, be back in a few hours," I said,
"and you will take care, as usual, to let no one inside the doors
in my absence.  But if anything happens----"

"What can happen?" she interposed quickly.  "Tell me plainly,
Walter, if there is any danger, and I shall know how to meet it."

"The only danger," I replied, "is that Sir Percival Glyde may have
been recalled to London by the news of Laura's escape.  You are
aware that he had me watched before I left England, and that he
probably knows me by sight, although I don't know him?"

She laid her hand on my shoulder and looked at me in anxious 
silence.  I saw she understood the serious risk that threatened
us.

"It is not likely," I said, "that I shall be seen in London again
so soon, either by Sir Percival himself or by the persons in his
employ.  But it is barely possible that an accident may happen. 
In that case, you will not be alarmed if I fail to return to-
night, and you will satisfy any inquiry of Laura's with the best
excuse that you can make for me? If I find the least reason to
suspect that I am watched, I will take good care that no spy
follows me back to this house.  Don't doubt my return, Marian,
however it may be delayed--and fear nothing."

"Nothing!" she answered firmly.  "You shall not regret, Walter,
that you have only a woman to help you." She paused, and detained
me for a moment longer.  "Take care!" she said, pressing my hand
anxiously--"take care!"

I left her, and set forth to pave the way for discovery--the dark
and doubtful way, which began at the lawyer's door.



IV


No circumstance of the slightest importance happened on my way to
the offices of Messrs.  Gilmore & Kyrle, in Chancery Lane.

While my card was being taken in to Mr. Kyrle, a consideration
occurred to me which I deeply regretted not having thought of
before.  The information derived from Marian's diary made it a
matter of certainty that Count Fosco had opened her first letter
from Blackwater Park to Mr. Kyrle, and had, by means of his wife,
intercepted the second.  He was therefore well aware of the
address of the office, and he would naturally infer that if Marian
wanted advice and assistance, after Laura's escape from the
Asylum, she would apply once more to the experience of Mr. Kyrle. 
In this case the office in Chancery Lane was the very first place
which he and Sir Percival would cause to be watched, and if the
same persons were chosen for the purpose who had been employed to
follow me, before my departure from England, the fact of my return
would in all probability be ascertained on that very day.  I had
thought, generally, of the chances of my being recognised in the
streets, but the special risk connected with the office had never
occurred to me until the present moment.  It was too late now to
repair this unfortunate error in judgment--too late to wish that I
had made arrangements for meeting the lawyer in some place
privately appointed beforehand.  I could only resolve to be
cautious on leaving Chancery Lane, and not to go straight home
again under any circumstances whatever.

After waiting a few minutes I was shown into Mr. Kyrle's private
room.  He was a pale, thin, quiet, self-possessed man, with a very
attentive eye, a very low voice, and a very undemonstrative
manner--not (as I judged) ready with his sympathy where strangers
were concerned, and not at all easy to disturb in his professional
composure.  A better man for my purpose could hardly have been
found.  If he committed himself to a decision at all, and if the
decision was favourable, the strength of our case was as good as
proved from that moment.

"Before I enter on the business which brings me here," I said, "I
ought to warn you, Mr. Kyrle, that the shortest statement I can
make of it may occupy some little time."

"My time is at Miss Halcombe's disposal," he replied.  "Where any
interests of hers are concerned, I represent my partner
personally, as well as professionally.  It was his request that I
should do so, when he ceased to take an active part in business."

"May I inquire whether Mr. Gilmore is in England?"

"He is not, he is living with his relatives in Germany.  His
health has improved, but the period of his return is still
uncertain.

While we were exchanging these few preliminary words, he had been
searching among the papers before him, and he now produced from
them a sealed letter.  I thought he was about to hand the letter
to me, but, apparently changing his mind, he placed it by itself
on the table, settled himself in his chair, and silently waited to
hear what I had to say.

Without wasting a moment in prefatory words of any sort, I entered
on my narrative, and put him in full possession of the events
which have already been related in these pages.

Lawyer as he was to the very marrow of his bones, I startled him
out of his professional composure.  Expressions of incredulity and
surprise, which he could not repress, interrupted me several times
before I had done.  I persevered, however, to the end, and as soon
as I reached it, boldly asked the one important question--

"What is your opinion, Mr. Kyrle?"

He was too cautious to commit himself to an answer without taking
time to recover his self-possession first.

"Before I give my opinion," he said, "I must beg permission to
clear the ground by a few questions."

He put the questions--sharp, suspicious, unbelieving questions,
which clearly showed me, as they proceeded, that he thought I was
the victim of a delusion, and that he might even have doubted, but
for my introduction to him by Miss Halcombe, whether I was not
attempting the perpetration of a cunningly-designed fraud.

"Do you believe that I have spoken the truth, Mr. Kyrle?" I asked,
when he had done examining me.

"So far as your own convictions are concerned, I am certain you
have spoken the truth," he replied.  "I have the highest esteem
for Miss Halcombe, and I have therefore every reason to respect a
gentleman whose mediation she trusts in a matter of this kind.  I
will even go farther, if you like, and admit, for courtesy's sake
and for argument's sake, that the identity of Lady Glyde as a
living person is a proved fact to Miss Halcombe and yourself.  But
you come to me for a legal opinion.  As a lawyer, and as a lawyer
only, it is my duty to tell you, Mr.  Hartright, that you have not
the shadow of a case."

"You put it strongly, Mr. Kyrle."

"I will try to put it plainly as well.  The evidence of Lady
Glyde's death is, on the face of it, clear and satisfactory. 
There is her aunt's testimony to prove that she came to Count
Fosco's house, that she fell ill, and that she died.  There is the
testimony of the medical certificate to prove the death, and to
show that it took place under natural circumstances.  There is the
fact of the funeral at Limmeridge, and there is the assertion of
the inscription on the tomb.  That is the case you want to
overthrow.  What evidence have you to support the declaration on
your side that the person who died and was buried was not Lady
Glyde? Let us run through the main points of your statement and
see what they are worth.  Miss Halcombe goes to a certain private
Asylum, and there sees a certain female patient.  It is known that
a woman named Anne Catherick, and bearing an extraordinary
personal resemblance to Lady Glyde, escaped from the Asylum; it is
known that the person received there last July was received as
Anne Catherick brought back; it is known that the gentleman who
brought her back warned Mr. Fairlie that it was part of her
insanity to be bent on personating his dead niece; and it is known
that she did repeatedly declare herself in the Asylum (where no
one believed her) to be Lady Glyde.  These are all facts.  What
have you to set against them? Miss Halcombe's recognition of the
woman, which recognition after-events invalidate or contradict. 
Does Miss Halcombe assert her supposed sister's identity to the
owner of the Asylum, and take legal means for rescuing her? No,
she secretly bribes a nurse to let her escape.  When the patient
has been released in this doubtful manner, and is taken to Mr.
Fairlie, does he recognise her? Is he staggered for one instant in
his belief of his niece's death?  No.  Do the servants recognise
her?  No.  Is she kept in the neighbourhood to assert her own
identity, and to stand the test of further proceedings? No, she is
privately taken to London.  In the meantime you have recognised
her also, but you are not a relative--you are not even an old
friend of the family.  The servants contradict you, and Mr.
Fairlie contradicts Miss Halcombe, and the supposed Lady Glyde
contradicts herself.  She declares she passed the night in London
at a certain house.  Your own evidence shows that she has never
been near that house, and your own admission is that her condition
of mind prevents you from producing her anywhere to submit to
investigation, and to speak for herself.  I pass over minor points
of evidence on both sides to save time, and I ask you, if this
case were to go now into a court of law--to go before a jury,
bound to take facts as they reasonably appear--where are your
proofs?"

I was obliged to wait and collect myself before I could answer
him.  It was the first time the story of Laura and the story of
Marian had been presented to me from a stranger's point of view--
the first time the terrible obstacles that lay across our path had
been made to show themselves in their true character.

"There can be no doubt," I said, "that the facts, as you have
stated them, appear to tell against us, but----"

"But you think those facts can be explained away," interposed Mr.
Kyrle.  "Let me tell you the result of my experience on that
point.  When an English jury has to choose between a plain fact ON
the surface and a long explanation UNDER the surface, it always
takes the fact in preference to the explanation.  For example,
Lady Glyde (I call the lady you represent by that name for
argument's sake) declares she has slept at a certain house, and it
is proved that she has not slept at that house.  You explain this
circumstance by entering into the state of her mind, and deducing
from it a metaphysical conclusion.  I don't say the conclusion is
wrong--I only say that the jury will take the fact of her
contradicting herself in preference to any reason for the
contradiction that you can offer."

"But is it not possible," I urged, "by dint of patience and
exertion, to discover additional evidence? Miss Halcombe and I
have a few hundred pounds----"

He looked at me with a half-suppressed pity, and shook his head.

"Consider the subject, Mr. Hartright, from your own point of
view," he said.  "If you are right about Sir Percival Glyde and
Count Fosco (which I don't admit, mind), every imaginable
difficulty would be thrown in the way of your getting fresh
evidence.  Every obstacle of litigation would be raised--every
point in the case would be systematically contested--and by the
time we had spent our thousands instead of our hundreds, the final
result would, in all probability, be against us.  Questions of
identity, where instances of personal resemblance are concerned,
are, in themselves, the hardest of all questions to settle--the
hardest, even when they are free from the complications which
beset the case we are now discussing.  I really see no prospect of
throwing any light whatever on this extraordinary affair.  Even if
the person buried in Limmeridge churchyard be not Lady Glyde, she
was, in life, on your own showing, so like her, that we should
gain nothing, if we applied for the necessary authority to have
the body exhumed.  In short, there is no case, Mr. Hartright--
there is really no case."

I was determined to believe that there WAS a case, and in that
determination shifted my ground, and appealed to him once more.

"Are there not other proofs that we might produce besides the
proof of identity?" I asked.

"Not as you are situated," he replied.  "The simplest and surest
of all proofs, the proof by comparison of dates, is, as I
understand, altogether out of your reach.  If you could show a
discrepancy between the date of the doctor's certificate and the
date of Lady Glyde's journey to London, the matter would wear a
totally different aspect, and I should be the first to say, Let us
go on."

"That date may yet be recovered, Mr. Kyrle."

"On the day when it is recovered, Mr. Hartright, you will have a
case.  If you have any prospect, at this moment, of getting at it--
tell me, and we shall see if I can advise you."

I considered.  The housekeeper could not help us--Laura could not
help us--Marian could not help us.  In all probability, the only
persons in existence who knew the date were Sir Percival and the
Count.

"I can think of no means of ascertaining the date at present," I
said, "because I can think of no persons who are sure to know it,
but Count Fosco and Sir Percival Glyde."

Mr. Kyrle's calmly attentive face relaxed, for the first time,
into a smile.

"With your opinion of the conduct of those two gentlemen," he
said, "you don't expect help in that quarter, I presume? If they
have combined to gain large sums of money by a conspiracy, they
are not likely to confess it, at any rate."

"They may be forced to confess it, Mr. Kyrle."

"By whom?"

"By me."

We both rose.  He looked me attentively in the face with more
appearance of interest than he had shown yet.  I could see that I
had perplexed him a little.

"You are very determined," he said.  "You have, no doubt, a
personal motive for proceeding, into which it is not my business
to inquire.  If a case can be produced in the future, I can only
say, my best assistance is at your service.  At the same time I
must warn you, as the money question always enters into the law
question, that I see little hope, even if you ultimately
established the fact of Lady Glyde's being alive, of recovering
her fortune.  The foreigner would probably leave the country
before proceedings were commenced, and Sir Percival's
embarrassments are numerous enough and pressing enough to transfer
almost any sum of money he may possess from himself to his
creditors.  You are of course aware----"

I stopped him at that point.

"Let me beg that we may not discuss Lady Glyde's affairs," I said. 
"I have never known anything about them in former times, and I
know nothing of them now--except that her fortune is lost. You are
right in assuming that I have personal motives for stirring in
this matter.  I wish those motives to be always as disinterested
as they are at the present moment----"

He tried to interpose and explain.  I was a little heated, I
suppose, by feeling that he had doubted me, and I went on bluntly,
without waiting to hear him.

"There shall be no money motive," I said, "no idea of personal
advantage in the service I mean to render to Lady Glyde.  She has
been cast out as a stranger from the house in which she was born--
a lie which records her death has been written on her mother's
tomb--and there are two men, alive and unpunished, who are
responsible for it.  That house shall open again to receive her in
the presence of every soul who followed the false funeral to the
grave--that lie shall be publicly erased from the tombstone by the
authority of the head of the family, and those two men shall
answer for their crime to ME, though the justice that sits in
tribunals is powerless to pursue them.  I have given my life to
that purpose, and, alone as I stand, if God spares me, I will
accomplish it."

He drew back towards his table, and said nothing.  His face showed
plainly that he thought my delusion had got the better of my
reason, and that he considered it totally useless to give me any
more advice.

"We each keep our opinion, Mr. Kyrle," I said, "and we must wait
till the events of the future decide between us.  In the meantime,
I am much obliged to you for the attention you have given to my
statement.  You have shown me that the legal remedy lies, in every
sense of the word, beyond our means.  We cannot produce the law
proof, and we are not rich enough to pay the law expenses.  It is
something gained to know that."

I bowed and walked to the door.  He called me back and gave me the
letter which I had seen him place on the table by itself at the
beginning of our interview.

"This came by post a few days ago," he said.  "Perhaps you will
not mind delivering it? Pray tell Miss Halcombe, at the same time,
that I sincerely regret being, thus far, unable to help her,
except by advice, which will not be more welcome, I am afraid, to
her than to you."

I looked at the letter while he was speaking.  It was addressed to
"Miss Halcombe.  Care of Messrs.  Gilmore & Kyrle, Chancery Lane."
The handwriting was quite unknown to me.

On leaving the room I asked one last question.

"Do you happen to know," I said, "if Sir Percival Glyde is still
in Paris?"

"He has returned to London," replied Mr. Kyrle.  "At least I heard
so from his solicitor, whom I met yesterday."

After that answer I went out.

On leaving the office the first precaution to be observed was to
abstain from attracting attention by stopping to look about me.  I
walked towards one of the quietest of the large squares on the
north of Holborn, then suddenly stopped and turned round at a
place where a long stretch of pavement was left behind me.

There were two men at the corner of the square who had stopped 
also, and who were standing talking together.  After a moment's
reflection I turned back so as to pass them.  One moved as I came
near, and turned the corner leading from the square into the
street.  The other remained stationary.  I looked at him as I
passed and instantly recognised one of the men who had watched me
before I left England.

If I had been free to follow my own instincts, I should probably
have begun by speaking to the man, and have ended by knocking him
down.  But I was bound to consider consequences.  If I once placed
myself publicly in the wrong, I put the weapons at once into Sir
Percival's hands.  There was no choice but to oppose cunning by
cunning.  I turned into the street down which the second man had
disappeared, and passed him, waiting in a doorway.  He was a
stranger to me, and I was glad to make sure of his personal
appearance in case of future annoyance.  Having done this, I again
walked northward till I reached the New Road.  There I turned
aside to the west (having the men behind me all the time), and
waited at a point where I knew myself to be at some distance from
a cab-stand, until a fast two-wheel cab, empty, should happen to
pass me.  One passed in a few minutes.  I jumped in and told the
man to drive rapidly towards Hyde Park.  There was no second fast
cab for the spies behind me.  I saw them dart across to the other
side of the road, to follow me by running, until a cab or a cab-
stand came in their way.  But I had the start of them, and when I
stopped the driver and got out, they were nowhere in sight.  I
crossed Hyde Park and made sure, on the open ground, that I was
free.  When I at last turned my steps homewards, it was not till
many hours later--not till after dark.



I found Marian waiting for me alone in the little sitting-room. 
She had persuaded Laura to go to rest, after first promising to
show me her drawing the moment I came in.  The poor little dim
faint sketch--so trifling in itself, so touching in its
associations--was propped up carefully on the table with two
books, and was placed where the faint light of the one candle we
allowed ourselves might fall on it to the best advantage.  I sat
down to look at the drawing, and to tell Marian, in whispers, what
had happened.  The partition which divided us from the next room
was so thin that we could almost hear Laura's breathing, and we
might have disturbed her if we had spoken aloud.

Marian preserved her composure while I described my interview with
Mr. Kyrle.  But her face became troubled when I spoke next of the
men who had followed me from the lawyer's office, and when I told
her of the discovery of Sir Percival's return.

"Bad news, Walter," she said, "the worst news you could bring. 
Have you nothing more to tell me?"

"I have something to give you," I replied, handing her the note
which Mr. Kyrle had confided to my care.

She looked at the address and recognised the handwriting
instantly.

"You know your correspondent?" I said.

"Too well," she answered.  "My correspondent is Count Fosco."

With that reply she opened the note.  Her face flushed deeply
while she read it--her eyes brightened with anger as she handed it
to me to read in my turn.

The note contained these lines--



"Impelled by honourable admiration--honourable to myself,
honourable to you--I write, magnificent Marian, in the interests
of your tranquillity, to say two consoling words--

"Fear nothing!

"Exercise your fine natural sense and remain in retirement.  Dear
and admirable woman, invite no dangerous publicity.  Resignation
is sublime--adopt it.  The modest repose of home is eternally
fresh--enjoy it.  The storms of life pass harmless over the valley
of Seclusion--dwell, dear lady, in the valley.

"Do this and I authorise you to fear nothing.  No new calamity
shall lacerate your sensibilities--sensibilities precious to me as
my own.  You shall not be molested, the fair companion of your
retreat shall not be pursued.  She has found a new asylum in your
heart.  Priceless asylum!--I envy her and leave her there.

"One last word of affectionate warning, of paternal caution, and I
tear myself from the charm of addressing you--I close these
fervent lines.

"Advance no farther than you have gone already, compromise no
serious interests, threaten nobody.  Do not, I implore you, force
me into action--ME, the Man of Action--when it is the cherished
object of my ambition to be passive, to restrict the vast reach of
my energies and my combinations for your sake.  If you have rash
friends, moderate their deplorable ardour.  If Mr. Hartright
returns to England, hold no communication with him.  I walk on a
path of my own, and Percival follows at my heels.  On the day when
Mr. Hartright crosses that path, he is a lost man."



The only signature to these lines was the initial letter F,
surrounded by a circle of intricate flourishes.  I threw the
letter on the table with all the contempt that I felt for it.

"He is trying to frighten you--a sure sign that he is frightened
himself," I said.

She was too genuine a woman to treat the letter as I treated it. 
The insolent familiarity of the language was too much for her
self-control.  As she looked at me across the table, her hands
clenched themselves in her lap, and the old quick fiery temper
flamed out again brightly in her cheeks and her eyes.

"Walter!" she said, "if ever those two men are at your mercy, and
if you are obliged to spare one of them, don't let it be the
Count."

"I will keep this letter, Marian, to help my memory when the time
comes."

She looked at me attentively as I put the letter away in my
pocket-book.

"When the time comes?" she repeated.  "Can you speak of the future
as if you were certain of it?--certain after what you have heard
in Mr. Kyrle's office, after what has happened to you to-day?"

"I don't count the time from to-day, Marian.  All I have done to-
day is to ask another man to act for me.  I count from to-morrow----"

"Why from to-morrow?"

"Because to-morrow I mean to act for myself."

"How?"

"I shall go to Blackwater by the first train, and return, I hope,
at night."

"To Blackwater!"

"Yes.  I have had time to think since I left Mr. Kyrle.  His
opinion on one point confirms my own.  We must persist to the last
in hunting down the date of Laura's journey.  The one weak point
in the conspiracy, and probably the one chance of proving that she
is a living woman, centre in the discovery of that date."

"You mean," said Marian, "the discovery that Laura did not leave
Blackwater Park till after the date of her death on the doctor's
certificate?"

"Certainly."

"What makes you think it might have been AFTER?  Laura can tell us
nothing of the time she was in London."

"But the owner of the Asylum told you that she was received there
on the twenty-seventh of July.  I doubt Count Fosco's ability to
keep her in London, and to keep her insensible to all that was
passing around her, more than one night.  In that case, she must
have started on the twenty-sixth, and must have come to London one
day after the date of her own death on the doctor's certificate. 
If we can prove that date, we prove our case against Sir Percival
and the Count."

"Yes, yes--I see! But how is the proof to be obtained?"

"Mrs. Michelson's narrative has suggested to me two ways of trying
to obtain it.  One of them is to question the doctor, Mr. Dawson,
who must know when he resumed his attendance at Blackwater Park
after Laura left the house.  The other is to make inquiries at the
inn to which Sir Percival drove away by himself at night.  We know
that his departure followed Laura's after the lapse of a few
hours, and we may get at the date in that way.  The attempt is at
least worth making, and to-morrow I am determined it shall be
made."

"And suppose it fails--I look at the worst now, Walter; but I will
look at the best if disappointments come to try us--suppose no one
can help you at Blackwater?"

"There are two men who can help me, and shall help me in London--
Sir Percival and the Count.  Innocent people may well forget the
date--but THEY are guilty, and THEY know it.  If I fail everywhere
else, I mean to force a confession out of one or both of them on
my own terms."

All the woman flushed up in Marian's face as I spoke.

"Begin with the Count," she whispered eagerly.  "For my sake,
begin with the Count."

"We must begin, for Laura's sake, where there is the best chance
of success," I replied.

The colour faded from her face again, and she shook her head
sadly.

"Yes," she said, "you are right--it was mean and miserable of me
to say that.  I try to be patient, Walter, and succeed better now
than I did in happier times.  But I have a little of my old temper
still left, and it will get the better of me when I think of the
Count!"

"His turn will come," I said.  "But, remember, there is no weak
place in his life that we know of yet." I waited a little to let
her recover her self-possession, and then spoke the decisive
words--

"Marian! There is a weak place we both know of in Sir Percival's
life----"

"You mean the Secret!"

"Yes: the Secret.  It is our only sure hold on him.  I can force
him from his position of security, I can drag him and his villainy
into the face of day, by no other means.  Whatever the Count may
have done, Sir Percival has consented to the conspiracy against
Laura from another motive besides the motive of gain.  You heard
him tell the Count that he believed his wife knew enough to ruin
him? You heard him say that he was a lost man if the secret of
Anne Catherick was known?"

"Yes! yes! I did."

"Well, Marian, when our other resources have failed us, I mean to
know the Secret.  My old superstition clings to me, even yet.  I
say again the woman in white is a living influence in our three
lives.  The End is appointed--the End is drawing us on--and Anne
Catherick, dead in her grave, points the way to it still!"


V


The story of my first inquiries in Hampshire is soon told.

My early departure from London enabled me to reach Mr. Dawson's
house in the forenoon.  Our interview, so far as the object of my
visit was concerned, led to no satisfactory result.

Mr. Dawson's books certainly showed when he had resumed his
attendance on Miss Halcombe at Blackwater Park, but it was not
possible to calculate back from this date with any exactness,
without such help from Mrs. Michelson as I knew she was unable to
afford.  She could not say from memory (who, in similar cases,
ever can?) how many days had elapsed between the renewal of the
doctor's attendance on his patient and the previous departure of
Lady Glyde.  She was almost certain of having mentioned the
circumstance of the departure to Miss Halcombe, on the day after
it happened--but then she was no more able to fix the date of the
day on which this disclosure took place, than to fix the date of
the day before, when Lady Glyde had left for London.  Neither
could she calculate, with any nearer approach to exactness, the
time that had passed from the departure of her mistress, to the
period when the undated letter from Madame Fosco arrived.  Lastly,
as if to complete the series of difficulties, the doctor himself,
having been ill at the time, had omitted to make his usual entry
of the day of the week and month when the gardener from Blackwater
Park had called on him to deliver Mrs. Michelson's message.

Hopeless of obtaining assistance from Mr. Dawson, I resolved to
try next if I could establish the date of Sir Percival's arrival
at Knowlesbury.

It seemed like a fatality! When I reached Knowlesbury the inn was
shut up, and bills were posted on the walls.  The speculation had
been a bad one, as I was informed, ever since the time of the
railway.  The new hotel at the station had gradually absorbed the
business, and the old inn (which we knew to be the inn at which
Sir Percival had put up), had been closed about two months since. 
The proprietor had left the town with all his goods and chattels,
and where he had gone I could not positively ascertain from any
one.  The four people of whom I inquired gave me four different
accounts of his plans and projects when he left Knowlesbury.

There were still some hours to spare before the last train left
for London, and I drove back again in a fly from the Knowlesbury
station to Blackwater Park, with the purpose of questioning the
gardener and the person who kept the lodge.  If they, too, proved
unable to assist me, my resources for the present were at an end,
and I might return to town.

I dismissed the fly a mile distant from the park, and getting my
directions from the driver, proceeded by myself to the house.

As I turned into the lane from the high-road, I saw a man, with a
carpet-bag, walking before me rapidly on the way to the lodge.  He
was a little man, dressed in shabby black, and wearing a
remarkably large hat.  I set him down (as well as it was possible
to judge) for a lawyer's clerk, and stopped at once to widen the
distance between us.  He had not heard me, and he walked on out of
sight, without looking back.  When I passed through the gates
myself, a little while afterwards, he was not visible--he had
evidently gone on to the house.

There were two women in the lodge.  One of them was old, the other
I knew at once, by Marian's description of her, to be Margaret
Porcher.

I asked first if Sir Percival was at the Park, and receiving a
reply in the negative, inquired next when he had left it.  Neither
of the women could tell me more than that he had gone away in the
summer.  I could extract nothing from Margaret Porcher but vacant
smiles and shakings of the head.  The old woman was a little more
intelligent, and I managed to lead her into speaking of the manner
of Sir Percival's departure, and of the alarm that it caused her. 
She remembered her master calling her out of bed, and remembered
his frightening her by swearing--but the date at which the
occurrence happened was, as she honestly acknowledged, "quite
beyond her."

On leaving the lodge I saw the gardener at work not far off.  When
I first addressed him, he looked at me rather distrustfully, but
on my using Mrs. Michelson's name, with a civil reference to
himself, he entered into conversation readily enough.  There is no
need to describe what passed between us--it ended, as all my other
attempts to discover the date had ended.  The gardener knew that
his master had driven away, at night, "some time in July, the last
fortnight or the last ten days in the month"--and knew no more.

While we were speaking together I saw the man in black, with the
large hat, come out from the house, and stand at some little
distance observing us.

Certain suspicions of his errand at Blackwater Park had already
crossed my mind.  They were now increased by the gardener's
inability (or unwillingness) to tell me who the man was, and I
determined to clear the way before me, if possible, by speaking to
him.  The plainest question I could put as a stranger would be to
inquire if the house was allowed to be shown to visitors.  I
walked up to the man at once, and accosted him in those words.

His look and manner unmistakably betrayed that he knew who I was,
and that he wanted to irritate me into quarrelling with him.  His
reply was insolent enough to have answered the purpose, if I had
been less determined to control myself.  As it was, I met him with
the most resolute politeness, apologised for my involuntary
intrusion (which he called a "trespass,") and left the grounds. 
It was exactly as I suspected.  The recognition of me when I left
Mr. Kyrle's office had been evidently communicated to Sir Percival
Glyde, and the man in black had been sent to the Park in
anticipation of my making inquiries at the house or in the
neighbourhood.  If I had given him the least chance of lodging any
sort of legal complaint against me, the interference of the local
magistrate would no doubt have been turned to account as a clog on
my proceedings, and a means of separating me from Marian and Laura
for some days at least.

I was prepared to be watched on the way from Blackwater Park to
the station, exactly as I had been watched in London the day
before.  But I could not discover at the time, whether I was
really followed on this occasion or not.  The man in black might
have had means of tracking me at his disposal of which I was not
aware, but I certainly saw nothing of him, in his own person,
either on the way to the station, or afterwards on my arrival at
the London terminus in the evening.  I reached home on foot,
taking the precaution, before I approached our own door, of
walking round by the loneliest street in the neighbourhood, and
there stopping and looking back more than once over the open space
behind me.  I had first learnt to use this stratagem against 
suspected treachery in the wilds of Central America--and now I was
practising it again, with the same purpose and with even greater
caution, in the heart of civilised London!

Nothing had happened to alarm Marian during my absence.  She asked
eagerly what success I had met with.  When I told her she could
not conceal her surprise at the indifference with which I spoke of
the failure of my investigations thus far.

The truth was, that the ill-success of my inquiries had in no
sense daunted me.  I had pursued them as a matter of duty, and I
had expected nothing from them.  In the state of my mind at that
time, it was almost a relief to me to know that the struggle was
now narrowed to a trial of strength between myself and Sir
Percival Glyde.  The vindictive motive had mingled itself all
along with my other and better motives, and I confess it was a
satisfaction to me to feel that the surest way, the only way left,
of serving Laura's cause, was to fasten my hold firmly on the
villain who had married her.

While I acknowledge that I was not strong enough to keep my
motives above the reach of this instinct of revenge, I can
honestly say something in my own favour on the other side.  No
base speculation on the future relations of Laura and myself, and
on the private and personal concessions which I might force from
Sir Percival if I once had him at my mercy, ever entered my mind. 
I never said to myself, "If I do succeed, it shall be one result
of my success that I put it out of her husband's power to take her
from me again." I could not look at her and think of the future
with such thoughts as those.  The sad sight of the change in her
from her former self, made the one interest of my love an interest
of tenderness and compassion which her father or her brother might
have felt, and which I felt, God knows, in my inmost heart.  All
my hopes looked no farther on now than to the day of her recovery. 
There, till she was strong again and happy again--there, till she
could look at me as she had once looked, and speak to me as she
had once spoken--the future of my happiest thoughts and my dearest
wishes ended.

These words are written under no prompting of idle self-
contemplation.  Passages in this narrative are soon to come which
will set the minds of others in judgment on my conduct.  It is
right that the best and the worst of me should be fairly balanced
before that time.



On the morning after my return from Hampshire I took Marian
upstairs into my working-room, and there laid before her the plan
that I had matured thus far, for mastering the one assailable
point in the life of Sir Percival Glyde.

The way to the Secret lay through the mystery, hitherto
impenetrable to all of us, of the woman in white.  The approach to
that in its turn might be gained by obtaining the assistance of
Anne Catherick's mother, and the only ascertainable means of
prevailing on Mrs. Catherick to act or to speak in the matter
depended on the chance of my discovering local particulars and
family particulars first of all from Mrs. Clements.  After
thinking the subject over carefully, I felt certain that I could
only begin the new inquiries by placing myself in communication
with the faithful friend and protectress of Anne Catherick.

The first difficulty then was to find Mrs. Clements.

I was indebted to Marian's quick perception for meeting this
necessity at once by the best and simplest means.  She proposed to
write to the farm near Limmeridge (Todd's Corner), to inquire
whether Mrs. Clements had communicated with Mrs. Todd during the
past few months.  How Mrs. Clements had been separated from Anne
it was impossible for us to say, but that separation once
effected, it would certainly occur to Mrs. Clements to inquire
after the missing woman in the neighbourhood of all others to
which she was known to be most attached--the neighbourhood of
Limmeridge.  I saw directly that Marian's proposal offered us a
prospect of success, and she wrote to Mrs. Todd accordingly by
that day's post.

While we were waiting for the reply, I made myself master of all
the information Marian could afford on the subject of Sir
Percival's family, and of his early life.  She could only speak on
these topics from hearsay, but she was reasonably certain of the
truth of what little she had to tell.

Sir Percival was an only child.  His father, Sir Felix Glyde, had
suffered from his birth under a painful and incurable deformity,
and had shunned all society from his earliest years.  His sole
happiness was in the enjoyment of music, and he had married a lady
with tastes similar to his own, who was said to be a most
accomplished musician.  He inherited the Blackwater property while
still a young man.  Neither he nor his wife after taking
possession, made advances of any sort towards the society of the
neighbourhood, and no one endeavoured to tempt them into
abandoning their reserve, with the one disastrous exception of the
rector of the parish.

The rector was the worst of all innocent mischief-makers--an over-
zealous man.  He had heard that Sir Felix had left College with
the character of being little better than a revolutionist in
politics and an infidel in religion, and he arrived
conscientiously at the conclusion that it was his bounden duty to
summon the lord of the manor to hear sound views enunciated in the
parish church.  Sir Felix fiercely resented the clergyman's well-
meant but ill-directed interference, insulting him so grossly and
so publicly, that the families in the neighbourhood sent letters
of indignant remonstrance to the Park, and even the tenants of the
Blackwater property expressed their opinion as strongly as they
dared.  The baronet, who had no country tastes of any kind, and no
attachment to the estate or to any one living on it, declared that
society at Blackwater should never have a second chance of
annoying him, and left the place from that moment.

After a short residence in London he and his wife departed for the
Continent, and never returned to England again.  They lived part
of the time in France and part in Germany--always keeping
themselves in the strict retirement which the morbid sense of his
own personal deformity had made a necessity to Sir Felix.  Their
son, Percival, had been born abroad, and had been educated there
by private tutors.  His mother was the first of his parents whom
he lost. His father had died a few years after her, either in 1825
or 1826.  Sir Percival had been in England, as a young man, once
or twice before that period, but his acquaintance with the late
Mr. Fairlie did not begin till after the time of his father's
death.  They soon became very intimate, although Sir Percival was
seldom, or never, at Limmeridge House in those days.  Mr.
Frederick Fairlie might have met him once or twice in Mr. Philip
Fairlie's company, but he could have known little of him at that
or at any other time.  Sir Percival's only intimate friend in the
Fairlie family had been Laura's father.

These were all the particulars that I could gain from Marian. 
They suggested nothing which was useful to my present purpose, but
I noted them down carefully, in the event of their proving to be
of importance at any future period.

Mrs. Todd's reply (addressed, by our own wish, to a post-office at
some distance from us) had arrived at its destination when I went
to apply for it.  The chances, which had been all against us
hitherto, turned from this moment in our favour.  Mrs. Todd's
letter contained the first item of information of which we were in
search.

Mrs. Clements, it appeared, had (as we had conjectured) written to
Todd's Corner, asking pardon in the first place for the abrupt
manner in which she and Anne had left their friends at the farm-
house (on the morning after I had met the woman in white in
Limmeridge churchyard), and then informing Mrs. Todd of Anne's
disappearance, and entreating that she would cause inquiries to be
made in the neighbourhood, on the chance that the lost woman might
have strayed back to Limmeridge. In making this request, Mrs.
Clements had been careful to add to it the address at which she
might always be heard of, and that address Mrs. Todd now
transmitted to Marian.  It was in London, and within half an
hour's walk of our own lodging.

In the words of the proverb, I was resolved not to let the grass
grow under my feet.  The next morning I set forth to seek an
interview with Mrs.  Clements.  This was my first step forward in
the investigation.  The story of the desperate attempt to which I
now stood committed begins here.



VI


The address communicated by Mrs. Todd took me to a lodging-house
situated in a respectable street near the Gray's Inn Road.

When I knocked the door was opened by Mrs. Clements herself.  She
did not appear to remember me, and asked what my business was.  I
recalled to her our meeting in Limmeridge churchyard at the close
of my interview there with the woman in white, taking special care
to remind her that I was the person who assisted Anne Catherick
(as Anne had herself declared) to escape the pursuit from the
Asylum.  This was my only claim to the confidence of Mrs.
Clements.  She remembered the circumstance the moment I spoke of
it, and asked me into the parlour, in the greatest anxiety to know
if I had brought her any news of Anne.

It was impossible for me to tell her the whole truth without, at
the same time, entering into particulars on the subject of the
conspiracy, which it would have been dangerous to confide to a
stranger.  I could only abstain most carefully from raising any
false hopes, and then explain that the object of my visit was to
discover the persons who were really responsible for Anne's
disappearance.  I even added, so as to exonerate myself from any
after-reproach of my own conscience, that I entertained not the
least hope of being able to trace her--that I believed we should
never see her alive again--and that my main interest in the affair
was to bring to punishment two men whom I suspected to be
concerned in luring her away, and at whose hands I and some dear
friends of mine had suffered a grievous wrong.  With this
explanation I left it to Mrs. Clements to say whether our interest
in the matter (whatever difference there might be in the motives
which actuated us) was not the same, and whether she felt any
reluctance to forward my object by giving me such information on
the subject of my inquiries as she happened to possess.

The poor woman was at first too much confused and agitated to
understand thoroughly what I said to her.  She could only reply
that I was welcome to anything she could tell me in return for the
kindness I had shown to Anne; but as she was not very quick and
ready, at the best of times, in talking to strangers, she would
beg me to put her in the right way, and to say where I wished her
to begin.

Knowing by experience that the plainest narrative attainable from
persons who are not accustomed to arrange their ideas, is the
narrative which goes far enough back at the beginning to avoid all
impediments of retrospection in its course, I asked Mrs. Clements
to tell me first what had happened after she had left Limmeridge,
and so, by watchful questioning, carried her on from point to
point, till we reached the period of Anne's disappearance.

The substance of the information which I thus obtained was as
follows:--

On leaving the farm at Todd's Corner, Mrs. Clements and Anne had
travelled that day as far as Derby, and had remained there a week
on Anne's account.  They had then gone on to London, and had lived
in the lodging occupied by Mrs. Clements at that time for a month
or more, when circumstances connected with the house and the
landlord had obliged them to change their quarters.  Anne's terror
of being discovered in London or its neighbourhood, whenever they
ventured to walk out, had gradually communicated itself to Mrs.
Clements, and she had determined on removing to one of the most
out-of-the-way places in England--to the town of Grimsby in
Lincolnshire, where her deceased husband had passed all his early
life.  His relatives were respectable people settled in the town--
they had always treated Mrs. Clements with great kindness, and she
thought it impossible to do better than go there and take the
advice of her husband's friends.  Anne would not hear of returning
to her mother at Welmingham, because she had been removed to the
Asylum from that place, and because Sir Percival would be certain
to go back there and find her again.  There was serious weight in
this objection, and Mrs. Clements felt that it was not to be
easily removed.

At Grimsby the first serious symptoms of illness had shown
themselves in Anne.  They appeared soon after the news of Lady
Glyde's marriage had been made public in the newspapers, and had
reached her through that medium.

The medical man who was sent for to attend the sick woman
discovered at once that she was suffering from a serious affection
of the heart.  The illness lasted long, left her very weak, and
returned at intervals, though with mitigated severity, again and
again.  They remained at Grimsby, in consequence, during the first
half of the new year, and there they might probably have stayed
much longer, but for the sudden resolution which Anne took at this
time to venture back to Hampshire, for the purpose of obtaining a 
private interview with Lady Glyde.

Mrs. Clements did all in her power to oppose the execution of this
hazardous and unaccountable project.  No explanation of her
motives was offered by Anne, except that she believed the day of
her death was not far off, and that she had something on her mind
which must be communicated to Lady Glyde, at any risk, in secret. 
Her resolution to accomplish this purpose was so firmly settled
that she declared her intention of going to Hampshire by herself
if Mrs. Clements felt any unwillingness to go with her.  The
doctor, on being consulted, was of opinion that serious opposition
to her wishes would, in all probability, produce another and
perhaps a fatal fit of illness, and Mrs. Clements, under this
advice, yielded to necessity, and once more, with sad forebodings
of trouble and danger to come, allowed Anne Catherick to have her
own way.

On the journey from London to Hampshire Mrs. Clements discovered
that one of their fellow-passengers was well acquainted with the
neighbourhood of Blackwater, and could give her all the
information she needed on the subject of localities.  In this way
she found out that the only place they could go to, which was not
dangerously near to Sir Percival's residence, was a large village
called Sandon.  The distance here from Blackwater Park was between
three and four miles--and that distance, and back again, Anne had
walked on each occasion when she had appeared in the neighbourhood
of the lake.

For the few days during which they were at Sandon without being
discovered they had lived a little away from the village, in the
cottage of a decent widow-woman who had a bedroom to let, and
whose discreet silence Mrs. Clements had done her best to secure,
for the first week at least.  She had also tried hard to induce
Anne to be content with writing to Lady Glyde, in the first
instance; but the failure of the warning contained in the
anonymous letter sent to Limmeridge had made Anne resolute to 
speak this time, and obstinate in the determination to go on her
errand alone.

Mrs. Clements, nevertheless, followed her privately on each
occasion when she went to the lake, without, however, venturing
near enough to the boat-house to be witness of what took place
there.  When Anne returned for the last time from the dangerous
neighbourhood, the fatigue of walking, day after day, distances
which were far too great for her strength, added to the exhausting
effect of the agitation from which she had suffered, produced the
result which Mrs. Clements had dreaded all along.  The old pain
over the heart and the other symptoms of the illness at Grimsby
returned, and Anne was confined to her bed in the cottage.

In this emergency the first necessity, as Mrs. Clements knew by
experience, was to endeavour to quiet Anne's anxiety of mind, and
for this purpose the good woman went herself the next day to the
lake, to try if she could find Lady Glyde (who would be sure, as
Anne said, to take her daily walk to the boat-house), and prevail
on her to come back privately to the cottage near Sandon.  On
reaching the outskirts of the plantation Mrs. Clements
encountered, not Lady Glyde, but a tall, stout, elderly gentleman,
with a book in his hand--in other words, Count Fosco.

The Count, after looking at her very attentively for a moment,
asked if she expected to see any one in that place, and added,
before she could reply, that he was waiting there with a message
from Lady Glyde, but that he was not quite certain whether the
person then before him answered the description of the person with
whom he was desired to communicate.

Upon this Mrs. Clements at once confided her errand to him, and
entreated that he would help to allay Anne's anxiety by trusting
his message to her.  The Count most readily and kindly complied
with her request.  The message, he said, was a very important one. 
Lady Glyde entreated Anne and her good friend to return
immediately to London, as she felt certain that Sir Percival would
discover them if they remained any longer in the neighbourhood of
Blackwater.  She was herself going to London in a short time, and
if Mrs. Clements and Anne would go there first, and would let her
know what their address was, they should hear from her and see her
in a fortnight or less.  The Count added that he had already
attempted to give a friendly warning to Anne herself, but that she
had been too much startled by seeing that he was a stranger to let
him approach and speak to her.

To this Mrs. Clements replied, in the greatest alarm and distress,
that she asked nothing better than to take Anne safely to London,
but that there was no present hope of removing her from the
dangerous neighbourhood, as she lay ill in her bed at that moment. 
The Count inquired if Mrs. Clements had sent for medical advice,
and hearing that she had hitherto hesitated to do so, from the
fear of making their position publicly known in the village,
informed her that he was himself a medical man, and that he would
go back with her if she pleased, and see what could be done for
Anne.  Mrs. Clements (feeling a natural confidence in the Count,
as a person trusted with a secret message from Lady Glyde)
gratefully accepted the offer, and they went back together to the
cottage.

Anne was asleep when they got there.  The Count started at the
sight of her (evidently from astonishment at her resemblance to
Lady Glyde).  Poor Mrs. Clements supposed that he was only shocked
to see how ill she was.  He would not allow her to be awakened--he
was contented with putting questions to Mrs. Clements about her
symptoms, with looking at her, and with lightly touching her
pulse.  Sandon was a large enough place to have a grocer's and
druggist's shop in it, and thither the Count went to write his
prescription and to get the medicine made up.  He brought it back
himself, and told Mrs. Clements that the medicine was a powerful
stimulant, and that it would certainly give Anne strength to get
up and bear the fatigue of a journey to London of only a few
hours.  The remedy was to be administered at stated times on that
day and on the day after.  On the third day she would be well
enough to travel, and he arranged to meet Mrs. Clements at the
Blackwater station, and to see them off by the mid-day train.  If
they did not appear he would assume that Anne was worse, and would
proceed at once to the cottage.

As events turned out, no such emergency as this occurred.

This medicine had an extraordinary effect on Anne, and the good
results of it were helped by the assurance Mrs. Clements could now
give her that she would soon see Lady Glyde in London.  At the
appointed day and time (when they had not been quite so long as a
week in Hampshire altogether), they arrived at the station.  The
Count was waiting there for them, and was talking to an elderly
lady, who appeared to be going to travel by the train to London
also.  He most kindly assisted them, and put them into the
carriage himself, begging Mrs. Clements not to forget to send her
address to Lady Glyde.  The elderly lady did not travel in the
same compartment, and they did not notice what became of her on
reaching the London terminus.  Mrs. Clements secured respectable
lodgings in a quiet neighbourhood, and then wrote, as she had
engaged to do, to inform Lady Glyde of the address.

A little more than a fortnight passed, and no answer came.

At the end of that time a lady (the same elderly lady whom they
had seen at the station) called in a cab, and said that she came
from Lady Glyde, who was then at an hotel in London, and who
wished to see Mrs. Clements, for the purpose of arranging a future
interview with Anne.  Mrs. Clements expressed her willingness
(Anne being present at the time, and entreating her to do so) to
forward the object in view, especially as she was not required to
be away from the house for more than half an hour at the most. 
She and the elderly lady (clearly Madame Fosco) then left in the
cab.  The lady stopped the cab, after it had driven some distance,
at a shop before they got to the hotel, and begged Mrs. Clements
to wait for her for a few minutes while she made a purchase that
had been forgotten.  She never appeared again.

After waiting some time Mrs. Clements became alarmed, and ordered
the cabman to drive back to her lodgings.  When she got there,
after an absence of rather more than half an hour, Anne was gone.

The only information to be obtained from the people of the house
was derived from the servant who waited on the lodgers.  She had
opened the door to a boy from the street, who had left a letter
for "the young woman who lived on the second floor" (the part of
the house which Mrs. Clements occupied).  The servant had
delivered the letter, had then gone downstairs, and five minutes
afterwards had observed Anne open the front door and go out,
dressed in her bonnet and shawl.  She had probably taken the
letter with her, for it was not to be found, and it was therefore
impossible to tell what inducement had been offered to make her
leave the house.  It must have been a strong one, for she would
never stir out alone in London of her own accord.  If Mrs.
Clements had not known this by experience nothing would have
induced her to go away in the cab, even for so short a time as
half an hour only.

As soon as she could collect her thoughts, the first idea that
naturally occurred to Mrs. Clements was to go and make inquiries
at the Asylum, to which she dreaded that Anne had been taken back.

She went there the next day, having been informed of the locality
in which the house was situated by Anne herself.  The answer she
received (her application having in all probability been made a
day or two before the false Anne Catherick had really been
consigned to safe keeping in the Asylum) was, that no such person
had been brought back there.  She had then written to Mrs.
Catherick at Welmingham to know if she had seen or heard anything
of her daughter, and had received an answer in the negative. 
After that reply had reached her, she was at the end of her
resources, and perfectly ignorant where else to inquire or what
else to do.  From that time to this she had remained in total
ignorance of the cause of Anne's disappearance and of the end of
Anne's story.



VII


Thus far the information which I had received from Mrs. Clements--
though it established facts of which I had not previously been
aware--was of a preliminary character only.

It was clear that the series of deceptions which had removed Anne
Catherick to London, and separated her from Mrs. Clements, had
been accomplished solely by Count Fosco and the Countess, and the
question whether any part of the conduct of husband or wife had
been of a kind to place either of them within reach of the law
might be well worthy of future consideration.  But the purpose I
had now in view led me in another direction than this.  The
immediate object of my visit to Mrs. Clements was to make some
approach at least to the discovery of Sir Percival's secret, and
she had said nothing as yet which advanced me on my way to that
important end.  I felt the necessity of trying to awaken her
recollections of other times, persons, and events than those on
which her memory had hitherto been employed, and when I next spoke
I spoke with that object indirectly in view.

"I wish I could be of any help to you in this sad calamity," I
said.  "All I can do is to feel heartily for your distress.  If
Anne had been your own child, Mrs. Clements, you could have shown
her no truer kindness--you could have made no readier sacrifices
for her sake."

"There's no great merit in that, sir," said Mrs. Clements simply. 
"The poor thing was as good as my own child to me.  I nursed her
from a baby, sir, bringing her up by hand--and a hard job it was
to rear her.  It wouldn't go to my heart so to lose her if I
hadn't made her first short clothes and taught her to walk.  I
always said she was sent to console me for never having chick or
child of my own.  And now she's lost the old times keep coming
back to my mind, and even at my age I can't help crying about her--
I can't indeed, sir!"

I waited a little to give Mrs. Clements time to compose herself. 
Was the light that I had been looking for so long glimmering on
me--far off, as yet--in the good woman's recollections of Anne's
early life?

"Did you know Mrs. Catherick before Anne was born?" I asked.

"Not very long, sir--not above four months.  We saw a great deal
of each other in that time, but we were never very friendly
together."

Her voice was steadier as she made that reply.  Painful as many of
her recollections might be, I observed that it was unconsciously a
relief to her mind to revert to the dimly-seen troubles of the
past, after dwelling so long on the vivid sorrows of the present.

"Were you and Mrs. Catherick neighbours?" I inquired, leading her
memory on as encouragingly as I could.

"Yes, sir--neighbours at Old Welmingham."

"OLD Welmingham? There are two places of that name, then, in
Hampshire?"

"Well, sir, there used to be in those days--better than three-and-
twenty years ago.  They built a new town about two miles off,
convenient to the river--and Old Welmingham, which was never much
more than a village, got in time to be deserted.  The new town is
the place they call Welmingham now--but the old parish church is
the parish church still.  It stands by itself, with the houses
pulled down or gone to ruin all round it.  I've lived to see sad
changes.  It was a pleasant, pretty place in my time.

"Did you live there before your marriage, Mrs. Clements?"

"No, sir--I'm a Norfolk woman.  It wasn't the place my husband
belonged to either.  He was from Grimsby, as I told you, and he
served his apprenticeship there.  But having friends down south,
and hearing of an opening, he got into business at Southampton. 
It was in a small way, but he made enough for a plain man to
retire on, and settled at Old Welmingham.  I went there with him
when he married me.  We were neither of us young, but we lived
very happy together--happier than our neighbour, Mr. Catherick,
lived along with his wife when they came to Old Welmingham a year
or two afterwards."

"Was your husband acquainted with them before that?"

"With Catherick, sir--not with his wife.  She was a stranger to
both of us.  Some gentlemen had made interest for Catherick, and
he got the situation of clerk at Welmingham church, which was the
reason of his coming to settle in our neighbourhood.  He brought
his newly-married wife along with him, and we heard in course of
time she had been lady's-maid in a family that lived at Varneck
Hall, near Southampton.  Catherick had found it a hard matter to
get her to marry him, in consequence of her holding herself
uncommonly high.  He had asked and asked, and given the thing up
at last, seeing she was so contrary about it.  When he HAD given
it up she turned contrary just the other way, and came to him of
her own accord, without rhyme or reason seemingly.  My poor
husband always said that was the time to have given her a lesson. 
But Catherick was too fond of her to do anything of the sort--he
never checked her either before they were married or after.  He
was a quick man in his feelings, letting them carry him a deal too
far, now in one way and now in another, and he would have spoilt a
better wife than Mrs. Catherick if a better had married him.  I
don't like to speak ill of any one, sir, but she was a heartless
woman, with a terrible will of her own--fond of foolish admiration
and fine clothes, and not caring to show so much as decent outward
respect to Catherick, kindly as he always treated her.  My husband
said he thought things would turn out badly when they first came
to live near us, and his words proved true.  Before they had been
quite four months in our neighbourhood there was a dreadful
scandal and a miserable break-up in their household.  Both of them
were in fault--I am afraid both of them were equally in fault."

"You mean both husband and wife?"

"Oh, no, sir! I don't mean Catherick--he was only to be pitied.  I
meant his wife and the person--"

"And the person who caused the scandal?"

"Yes, sir.  A gentleman born and brought up, who ought to have set
a better example.  You know him, sir--and my poor dear Anne knew
him only too well."

"Sir Percival Glyde?"

"Yes, Sir Percival Glyde."

My heart beat fast--I thought I had my hand on the clue.  How
little I knew then of the windings of the labyrinths which were
still to mislead me!

"Did Sir Percival live in your neighbourhood at that time?" I
asked.

"No, sir.  He came among us as a stranger.  His father had died
not long before in foreign parts.  I remember he was in mourning. 
He put up at the little inn on the river (they have pulled it down
since that time), where gentlemen used to go to fish.  He wasn't
much noticed when he first came--it was a common thing enough for
gentlemen to travel from all parts of England to fish in our
river."

"Did he make his appearance in the village before Anne was born?"

"Yes, sir.  Anne was born in the June month of eighteen hundred
and twenty-seven--and I think he came at the end of April or the
beginning of May."

"Came as a stranger to all of you? A stranger to Mrs. Catherick as
well as to the rest of the neighbours?"

"So we thought at first, sir.  But when the scandal broke out,
nobody believed they were strangers.  I remember how it happened
as well as if it was yesterday.  Catherick came into our garden
one night, and woke us by throwing up a handful of gravel from the
walk at our window.  I heard him beg my husband, for the Lord's
sake, to come down and speak to him.  They were a long time
together talking in the porch.  When my husband came back upstairs
he was all of a tremble.  He sat down on the side of the bed and
he says to me, 'Lizzie! I always told you that woman was a bad
one--I always said she would end ill, and I'm afraid in my own
mind that the end has come already.  Catherick has found a lot of
lace handkerchiefs, and two fine rings, and a new gold watch and
chain, hid away in his wife's drawer--things that nobody but a
born lady ought ever to have--and his wife won't say how she came
by them.' 'Does he think she stole them?' says I.  'No,' says he,
'stealing would be bad enough.  But it's worse than that, she's
had no chance of stealing such things as those, and she's not a
woman to take them if she had.  They're gifts, Lizzie--there's her
own initials engraved inside the watch--and Catherick has seen her
talking privately, and carrying on as no married woman should,
with that gentleman in mourning, Sir Percival Glyde.  Don't you
say anything about it--I've quieted Catherick for to-night.  I've
told him to keep his tongue to himself, and his eyes and his ears
open, and to wait a day or two, till he can be quite certain.' 'I
believe you are both of you wrong,' says I.  'It's not in nature,
comfortable and respectable as she is here, that Mrs. Catherick
should take up with a chance stranger like Sir Percival Glyde.'
'Ay, but is he a stranger to her?' says my husband.  'You forget
how Catherick's wife came to marry him.  She went to him of her
own accord, after saying No over and over again when he asked her. 
There have been wicked women before her time, Lizzie, who have
used honest men who loved them as a means of saving their
characters, and I'm sorely afraid this Mrs. Catherick is as wicked
as the worst of them.  We shall see,' says my husband, 'we shall
soon see.' And only two days afterwards we did see."

Mrs. Clements waited for a moment before she went on.  Even in
that moment, I began to doubt whether the clue that I thought I
had found was really leading me to the central mystery of the
labyrinth after all.  Was this common, too common, story of a
man's treachery and a woman's frailty the key to a secret which
had been the life-long terror of Sir Percival Glyde?

"Well, sir, Catherick took my husband's advice and waited," Mrs.
Clements continued.  "And as I told you, he hadn't long to wait. 
On the second day he found his wife and Sir Percival whispering
together quite familiar, close under the vestry of the church.  I
suppose they thought the neighbourhood of the vestry was the last
place in the world where anybody would think of looking after
them, but, however that may be, there they were.  Sir Percival,
being seemingly surprised and confounded, defended himself in such
a guilty way that poor Catherick (whose quick temper I have told
you of already) fell into a kind of frenzy at his own disgrace,
and struck Sir Percival.  He was no match (and I am sorry to say
it) for the man who had wronged him, and he was beaten in the
cruelest manner, before the neighbours, who had come to the place
on hearing the disturbance, could run in to part them.  All this
happened towards evening, and before nightfall, when my husband
went to Catherick's house, he was gone, nobody knew where.  No
living soul in the village ever saw him again.  He knew too well,
by that time, what his wife's vile reason had been for marrying
him, and he felt his misery and disgrace, especially after what
had happened to him with Sir Percival, too keenly.  The clergyman
of the parish put an advertisement in the paper begging him to
come back, and saying that he should not lose his situation or his
friends.  But Catherick had too much pride and spirit, as some
people said--too much feeling, as I think, sir--to face his
neighbours again, and try to live down the memory of his disgrace. 
My husband heard from him when he had left England, and heard a
second time, when he was settled and doing well in America.  He is
alive there now, as far as I know, but none of us in the old
country--his wicked wife least of all--are ever likely to set eyes
on him again."

"What became of Sir Percival?" I inquired.  "Did he stay in the
neighbourhood?"

"Not he, sir.  The place was too hot to hold him.  He was heard at
high words with Mrs. Catherick the same night when the scandal
broke out, and the next morning he took himself off."

"And Mrs. Catherick? Surely she never remained in the village
among the people who knew of her disgrace?"

"She did, sir.  She was hard enough and heartless enough to set
the opinions of all her neighbours at flat defiance.  She declared
to everybody, from the clergyman downwards, that she was the
victim of a dreadful mistake, and that all the scandal-mongers in
the place should not drive her out of it, as if she was a guilty
woman.  All through my time she lived at Old Welmingham, and after
my time, when the new town was building, and the respectable
neighbours began moving to it, she moved too, as if she was
determined to live among them and scandalise them to the very
last.  There she is now, and there she will stop, in defiance of
the best of them, to her dying day."

"But how has she lived through all these years?" I asked.  "Was
her husband able and willing to help her?"

"Both able and willing, sir," said Mrs. Clements.  "In the second
letter he wrote to my good man, he said she had borne his name,
and lived in his home, and, wicked as she was, she must not starve
like a beggar in the street.  He could afford to make her some
small allowance, and she might draw for it quarterly at a place in
London."

"Did she accept the allowance?"

"Not a farthing of it, sir.  She said she would never be beholden
to Catherick for bit or drop, if she lived to be a hundred.  And
she has kept her word ever since.  When my poor dear husband died,
and left all to me, Catherick's letter was put in my possession
with the other things, and I told her to let me know if she was
ever in want.  'I'll let all England know I'm in want,' she said,
'before I tell Catherick, or any friend of Catherick's.  Take that
for your answer, and give it to HIM for an answer, if he ever
writes again.' "

"Do you suppose that she had money of her own?"

"Very little, if any, sir.  It was said, and said truly, I am
afraid, that her means of living came privately from Sir Percival
Glyde."


After that last reply I waited a little, to reconsider what I had
heard.  If I unreservedly accepted the story so far, it was now
plain that no approach, direct or indirect, to the Secret had yet
been revealed to me, and that the pursuit of my object had ended
again in leaving me face to face with the most palpable and the
most disheartening failure.

But there was one point in the narrative which made me doubt the
propriety of accepting it unreservedly, and which suggested the
idea of something hidden below the surface.

I could not account to myself for the circumstance of the clerk's
guilty wife voluntarily living out all her after-existence on the
scene of her disgrace.  The woman's own reported statement that
she had taken this strange course as a practical assertion of her
innocence did not satisfy me.  It seemed, to my mind, more natural
and more probable to assume that she was not so completely a free
agent in this matter as she had herself asserted.  In that case,
who was the likeliest person to possess the power of compelling
her to remain at Welmingham? The person unquestionably from whom
she derived the means of living.  She had refused assistance from
her husband, she had no adequate resources of her own, she was a
friendless, degraded woman--from what source should she derive
help but from the source at which report pointed--Sir Percival
Glyde?

Reasoning on these assumptions, and always bearing in mind the one
certain fact to guide me, that Mrs. Catherick was in possession of
the Secret, I easily understood that it was Sir Percival's
interest to keep her at Welmingham, because her character in that
place was certain to isolate her from all communication with
female neighbours, and to allow her no opportunities of talking
incautiously in moments of free intercourse with inquisitive bosom
friends.  But what was the mystery to be concealed? Not Sir
Percival's infamous connection with Mrs. Catherick's disgrace, for
the neighbours were the very people who knew of it--not the
suspicion that he was Anne's father, for Welmingham was the place
in which that suspicion must inevitably exist.  If I accepted the
guilty appearances described to me as unreservedly as others had
accepted them, if I drew from them the same superficial conclusion
which Mr. Catherick and all his neighbours had drawn, where was
the suggestion, in all that I had heard, of a dangerous secret
between Sir Percival and Mrs. Catherick, which had been kept
hidden from that time to this?

And yet, in those stolen meetings, in those familiar whisperings
between the clerk's wife and "the gentleman in mourning," the clue
to discovery existed beyond a doubt.

Was it possible that appearances in this case had pointed one way
while the truth lay all the while unsuspected in another
direction? Could Mrs. Catherick's assertion, that she was the
victim of a dreadful mistake, by any possibility be true? Or,
assuming it to be false, could the conclusion which associated Sir
Percival with her guilt have been founded in some inconceivable
error? Had Sir Percival, by any chance, courted the suspicion that
was wrong for the sake of diverting from himself some other
suspicion that was right? Here--if I could find it--here was the
approach to the Secret, hidden deep under the surface of the
apparently unpromising story which I had just heard.


My next questions were now directed to the one object of
ascertaining whether Mr. Catherick had or had not arrived truly at
the conviction of his wife's misconduct.  The answers I received
from Mrs. Clements left me in no doubt whatever on that point. 
Mrs. Catherick had, on the clearest evidence, compromised her
reputation, while a single woman, with some person unknown, and
had married to save her character.  It had been positively
ascertained, by calculations of time and place into which I need
not enter particularly, that the daughter who bore her husband's
name was not her husband's child

The next object of inquiry, whether it was equally certain that
Sir Percival must have been the father of Anne, was beset by far
greater difficulties.  I was in no position to try the
probabilities on one side or on the other in this instance by any
better test than the test of personal resemblance.

"I suppose you often saw Sir Percival when he was in your
village?" I said.

"Yes, sir, very often," replied Mrs. Clements.

"Did you ever observe that Anne was like him?"

"She was not at all like him, sir."

"Was she like her mother, then?"

"Not like her mother either, sir.  Mrs. Catherick was dark, and
full in the face."

Not like her mother and not like her (supposed) father.  I knew
that the test by personal resemblance was not to be implicitly
trusted, but, on the other hand, it was not to be altogether
rejected on that account.  Was it possible to strengthen the
evidence by discovering any conclusive facts in relation to the
lives of Mrs. Catherick and Sir Percival before they either of
them appeared at Old Welmingham? When I asked my next questions I
put them with this view.

"When Sir Percival first arrived in your neighbourhood," I said,
"did you hear where he had come from last?"

"No, sir.  Some said from Blackwater Park, and some said from
Scotland--but nobody knew."

"Was Mrs. Catherick living in service at Varneck Hall immediately
before her marriage?"

"Yes, sir."

"And had she been long in her place?"

"Three or four years, sir; I am not quite certain which."

"Did you ever hear the name of the gentleman to whom Varneck Hall
belonged at that time?"

"Yes, sir.  His name was Major Donthorne."

"Did Mr. Catherick, or did any one else you knew, ever hear that
Sir Percival was a friend of Major Donthorne's, or ever see Sir
Percival in the neighbourhood of Varneck Hall?"

"Catherick never did, sir, that I can remember--nor any one else
either, that I know of."

I noted down Major Donthorne's name and address, on the chance
that he might still be alive, and that it might be useful at some
future time to apply to him.  Meanwhile, the impression on my mind
was now decidedly adverse to the opinion that Sir Percival was
Anne's father, and decidedly favourable to the conclusion that the
secret of his stolen interviews with Mrs. Catherick was entirely
unconnected with the disgrace which the woman had inflicted on her
husband's good name.  I could think of no further inquiries which
I might make to strengthen this impression--I could only encourage
Mrs. Clements to speak next of Anne's early days, and watch for
any chance-suggestion which might in this way offer itself to me.

"I have not heard yet," I said, "how the poor child, born in all
this sin and misery, came to be trusted, Mrs. Clements, to your
care."

"There was nobody else, sir, to take the little helpless creature
in hand," replied Mrs. Clements.  "The wicked mother seemed to
hate it--as if the poor baby was in fault!--from the day it was
born.  My heart was heavy for the child, and I made the offer to
bring it up as tenderly as if it was my own."

"Did Anne remain entirely under your care from that time?"

"Not quite entirely, sir.  Mrs. Catherick had her whims and
fancies about it at times, and used now and then to lay claim to
the child, as if she wanted to spite me for bringing it up.  But
these fits of hers never lasted for long.  Poor little Anne was
always returned to me, and was always glad to get back--though she
led but a gloomy life in my house, having no playmates, like other
children, to brighten her up.  Our longest separation was when her
mother took her to Limmeridge.  Just at that time I lost my
husband, and I felt it was as well, in that miserable affliction,
that Anne should not be in the house.  She was between ten and
eleven years old then, slow at her lessons, poor soul, and not so
cheerful as other children--but as pretty a little girl to look at
as you would wish to see.  I waited at home till her mother
brought her back, and then I made the offer to take her with me to
London--the truth being, sir, that I could not find it in my heart
to stop at Old Welmingham after my husband's death, the place was
so changed and so dismal to me."

"And did Mrs. Catherick consent to your proposal?"

"No, sir.  She came back from the north harder and bitterer than
ever.  Folks did say that she had been obliged to ask Sir
Percival's leave to go, to begin with; and that she only went to
nurse her dying sister at Limmeridge because the poor woman was
reported to have saved money--the truth being that she hardly left
enough to bury her.  These things may have soured Mrs. Catherick
likely enough, but however that may be, she wouldn't hear of my
taking the child away.  She seemed to like distressing us both by
parting us.  All I could do was to give Anne my direction, and to
tell her privately, if she was ever in trouble, to come to me. 
But years passed before she was free to come.  I never saw her
again, poor soul, till the night she escaped from the mad-house."

"You know, Mrs. Clements, why Sir Percival Glyde shut her up?"

"I only know what Anne herself told me, sir.  The poor thing used
to ramble and wander about it sadly.  She said her mother had got
some secret of Sir Percival's to keep, and had let it out to her
long after I left Hampshire--and when Sir Percival found she knew
it, he shut her up.  But she never could say what it was when I
asked her.  All she could tell me was, that her mother might be
the ruin and destruction of Sir Percival if she chose.  Mrs.
Catherick may have let out just as much as that, and no more.  I'm
next to certain I should have heard the whole truth from Anne, if
she had really known it as she pretended to do, and as she very
likely fancied she did, poor soul."

This idea had more than once occurred to my own mind.  I had
already told Marian that I doubted whether Laura was really on the
point of making any important discovery when she and Anne
Catherick were disturbed by Count Fosco at the boat-house.  It was
perfectly in character with Anne's mental affliction that she
should assume an absolute knowledge of the secret on no better
grounds than vague suspicion, derived from hints which her mother
had incautiously let drop in her presence.  Sir Percival's guilty
distrust would, in that case, infallibly inspire him with the
false idea that Anne knew all from her mother, just as it had
afterwards fixed in his mind the equally false suspicion that his
wife knew all from Anne.

The time was passing, the morning was wearing away.  It was
doubtful, if I stayed longer, whether I should hear anything more
from Mrs. Clements that would be at all useful to my purpose.  I
had already discovered those local and family particulars, in
relation to Mrs. Catherick, of which I had been in search, and I
had arrived at certain conclusions, entirely new to me, which
might immensely assist in directing the course of my future
proceedings.  I rose to take my leave, and to thank Mrs. Clements
for the friendly readiness she had shown in affording me
information.

"I am afraid you must have thought me very inquisitive," I said. 
"I have troubled you with more questions than many people would
have cared to answer."

"You are heartily welcome, sir, to anything I can tell you,"
answered Mrs. Clements.  She stopped and looked at me wistfully. 
"But I do wish," said the poor woman, "you could have told me a
little more about Anne, sir.  I thought I saw something in your
face when you came in which looked as if you could.  You can't
think how hard it is not even to know whether she is living or
dead.  I could bear it better if I was only certain.  You said you
never expected we should see her alive again.  Do you know, sir--
do you know for truth--that it has pleased God to take her?"

I was not proof against this appeal, it would have been
unspeakably mean and cruel of me if I had resisted it.

"I am afraid there is no doubt of the truth," I answered gently;
"I have the certainty in my own mind that her troubles in this
world are over."

The poor woman dropped into her chair and hid her face from me. 
"Oh, sir," she said, "how do you know it? Who can have told you?"

"No one has told me, Mrs. Clements.  But I have reasons for
feeling sure of it--reasons which I promise you shall know as soon
as I can safely explain them.  I am certain she was not neglected
in her last moments--I am certain the heart complaint from which
she suffered so sadly was the true cause of her death.  You shall
feel as sure of this as I do, soon--you shall know, before long,
that she is buried in a quiet country churchyard--in a pretty,
peaceful place, which you might have chosen for her yourself."

"Dead!" said Mrs. Clements, "dead so young, and I am left to hear
it! I made her first short frocks.  I taught her to walk.  The
first time she ever said Mother she said it to me--and now I am
left and Anne is taken! Did you say, sir," said the poor woman,
removing the handkerchief from her face, and looking up at me for
the first time, "did you say that she had been nicely buried? Was
it the sort of funeral she might have had if she had really been
my own child?"

I assured her that it was.  She seemed to take an inexplicable
pride in my answer--to find a comfort in it which no other and
higher considerations could afford.  "It would have broken my
heart," she said simply, "if Anne had not been nicely buried--but
how do you know it, sir? who told you?" I once more entreated her
to wait until I could speak to her unreservedly.  "You are sure to
see me again," I said, "for I have a favour to ask when you are a
little more composed--perhaps in a day or two."

"Don't keep it waiting, sir, on my account," said Mrs. Clements. 
"Never mind my crying if I can be of use.  If you have anything on
your mind to say to me, sir, please to say it now."

"I only wish to ask you one last question," I said.  "I only want
to know Mrs. Catherick's address at Welmingham."

My request so startled Mrs. Clements, that, for the moment, even
the tidings of Anne's death seemed to be driven from her mind. 
Her tears suddenly ceased to flow, and she sat looking at me in
blank amazement.

"For the Lord's sake, sir!" she said, "what do you want with Mrs.
Catherick!"

"I want this, Mrs. Clements," I replied, "I want to know the
secret of those private meetings of hers with Sir Percival Glyde. 
There is something more in what you have told me of that woman's
past conduct, and of that man's past relations with her, than you
or any of your neighbours ever suspected.  There is a secret we
none of us know between those two, and I am going to Mrs.
Catherick with the resolution to find it out."

"Think twice about it, sir!" said Mrs. Clements, rising in her
earnestness and laying her hand on my arm.  "She's an awful woman--
you don't know her as I do.  Think twice about it."

"I am sure your warning is kindly meant, Mrs. Clements.  But I am
determined to see the woman, whatever comes of it."

Mrs. Clements looked me anxiously in the face.

"I see your mind is made up, sir," she said.  "I will give you the
address."

I wrote it down in my pocket-book and then took her hand to say
farewell.

"You shall hear from me soon," I said; "you shall know all that I
have promised to tell you."

Mrs. Clements sighed and shook her head doubtfully.

"An old woman's advice is sometimes worth taking, sir," she said. 
"Think twice before you go to Welmingham."



VIII


When I reached home again after my interview with Mrs. Clements, I
was struck by the appearance of a change in Laura.

The unvarying gentleness and patience which long misfortune had
tried so cruelly and had never conquered yet, seemed now to have
suddenly failed her.  Insensible to all Marian's attempts to
soothe and amuse her, she sat, with her neglected drawing pushed
away on the table, her eyes resolutely cast down, her fingers
twining and untwining themselves restlessly in her lap.  Marian
rose when I came in, with a silent distress in her face, waited
for a moment to see if Laura would look up at my approach,
whispered to me, "Try if you can rouse her," and left the room.

I sat down in the vacant chair--gently unclasped the poor, worn,
restless fingers, and took both her hands in mine.

"What are you thinking of, Laura? Tell me, my darling--try and
tell me what it is."

She struggled with herself, and raised her eyes to mine.  "I can't
feel happy," she said, "I can't help thinking----" She stopped,
bent forward a little, and laid her head on my shoulder, with a
terrible mute helplessness that struck me to the heart.

"Try to tell me," I repeated gently; "try to tell me why you are
not happy."

"I am so useless--I am such a burden on both of you," she
answered, with a weary, hopeless sigh.  "You work and get money,
Walter, and Marian helps you.  Why is there nothing I can do? You
will end in liking Marian better than you like me--you will,
because I am so helpless! Oh, don't, don't, don't treat me like a
child!"

I raised her head, and smoothed away the tangled hair that fell
over her face, and kissed her--my poor, faded flower! my lost,
afflicted sister! "You shall help us, Laura," I said, "you shall
begin, my darling, to-day."

She looked at me with a feverish eagerness, with a breathless
interest, that made me tremble for the new life of hope which I
had called into being by those few words.

I rose, and set her drawing materials in order, and placed them
near her again.

"You know that I work and get money by drawing," I said.  "Now you
have taken such pains, now you are so much improved, you shall
begin to work and get money too.  Try to finish this little sketch
as nicely and prettily as you can.  When it is done I will take it
away with me, and the same person will buy it who buys all that I
do.  You shall keep your own earnings in your own purse, and
Marian shall come to you to help us, as often as she comes to me. 
Think how useful you are going to make yourself to both of us, and
you will soon be as happy, Laura, as the day is long."

Her face grew eager, and brightened into a smile.  In the moment
while it lasted, in the moment when she again took up the pencils
that had been laid aside, she almost looked like the Laura of past
days.

I had rightly interpreted the first signs of a new growth and
strength in her mind, unconsciously expressing themselves in the
notice she had taken of the occupations which filled her sister's
life and mine.  Marian (when I told her what had passed) saw, as I
saw, that she was longing to assume her own little position of
importance, to raise herself in her own estimation and in ours--
and, from that day, we tenderly helped the new ambition which gave
promise of the hopeful, happier future, that might now not be far
off.  Her drawings, as she finished them, or tried to finish them,
were placed in my hands.  Marian took them from me and hid them
carefully, and I set aside a little weekly tribute from my
earnings, to be offered to her as the price paid by strangers for
the poor, faint, valueless sketches, of which I was the only
purchaser.  It was hard sometimes to maintain our innocent
deception, when she proudly brought out her purse to contribute
her share towards the expenses, and wondered with serious
interest, whether I or she had earned the most that week.  I have
all those hidden drawings in my possession still--they are my
treasures beyond price--the dear remembrances that I love to keep
alive--the friends in past adversity that my heart will never part
from, my tenderness never forget.

Am I trifling, here, with the necessities of my task? am I looking
forward to the happier time which my narrative has not yet
reached? Yes.  Back again--back to the days of doubt and dread,
when the spirit within me struggled hard for its life, in the icy
stillness of perpetual suspense.  I have paused and rested for a
while on my forward course.  It is not, perhaps, time wasted, if
the friends who read these pages have paused and rested too.


I took the first opportunity I could find of speaking to Marian in
private, and of communicating to her the result of the inquiries
which I had made that morning.  She seemed to share the opinion on
the subject of my proposed journey to Welmingham, which Mrs.
Clements had already expressed to me.

"Surely, Walter," she said, "you hardly know enough yet to give
you any hope of claiming Mrs. Catherick's confidence? Is it wise
to proceed to these extremities, before you have really exhausted
all safer and simpler means of attaining your object? When you
told me that Sir Percival and the Count were the only two people
in existence who knew the exact date of Laura's journey, you
forgot, and I forgot, that there was a third person who must
surely know it--I mean Mrs. Rubelle.  Would it not be far easier,
and far less dangerous, to insist on a confession from her, than
to force it from Sir Percival?"

"It might be easier," I replied, "but we are not aware of the full
extent of Mrs. Rubelle's connivance and interest in the
conspiracy, and we are therefore not certain that the date has
been impressed on her mind, as it has been assuredly impressed on
the minds of Sir Percival and the Count.  It is too late, now, to
waste the time on Mrs. Rubelle, which may be all-important to the
discovery of the one assailable point in Sir Percival's life? Are
you thinking a little too seriously, Marian, of the risk I may run
in returning to Hampshire? Are you beginning to doubt whether Sir
Percival Glyde may not in the end be more than a match for me?"

"He will not be more than your match," she replied decidedly,
"because he will not be helped in resisting you by the
impenetrable wickedness of the Count."

"What has led you to that conclusion?" I replied, in some
surprise.

"My own knowledge of Sir Percival's obstinacy and impatience of
the Count's control," she answered.  "I believe he will insist on
meeting you single-handed--just as he insisted at first on acting
for himself at Blackwater Park.  The time for suspecting the
Count's interference will be the time when you have Sir Percival
at your mercy.  His own interests will then be directly
threatened, and he will act, Walter, to terrible purpose in his
own defence."

"We may deprive him of his weapons beforehand," I said.  "Some of
the particulars I have heard from Mrs. Clements may yet be turned
to account against him, and other means of strengthening the case
may be at our disposal.  There are passages in Mrs. Michelson's
narrative which show that the Count found it necessary to place
himself in communication with Mr. Fairlie, and there may be
circumstances which compromise him in that proceeding.  While I am
away, Marian, write to Mr. Fairlie and say that you want an answer
describing exactly what passed between the Count and himself, and
informing you also of any particulars that may have come to his
knowledge at the same time in connection with his niece.  Tell him
that the statement you request will, sooner or later, be insisted
on, if he shows any reluctance to furnish you with it of his own
accord."

"The letter shall be written, Walter.  But are you really
determined to go to Welmingham?"

"Absolutely determined.  I will devote the next two days to
earning what we want for the week to come, and on the third day I
go to Hampshire."

When the third day came I was ready for my journey.

As it was possible that I might be absent for some little time, I
arranged with Marian that we were to correspond every day--of
course addressing each other by assumed names, for caution's sake. 
As long as I heard from her regularly, I should assume that
nothing was wrong.  But if the morning came and brought me no
letter, my return to London would take place, as a matter of
course, by the first train.  I contrived to reconcile Laura to my
departure by telling her that I was going to the country to find
new purchasers for her drawings and for mine, and I left her
occupied and happy.  Marian followed me downstairs to the street
door.

"Remember what anxious hearts you leave here," she whispered, as
we stood together in the passage.  "Remember all the hopes that
hang on your safe return.  If strange things happen to you on this
journey--if you and Sir Percival meet----"

"What makes you think we shall meet?" I asked.

"I don't know--I have fears and fancies that I cannot account for. 
Laugh at them, Walter, if you like--but, for God's sake, keep your
temper if you come in contact with that man!"

"Never fear, Marian! I answer for my self-control."

With those words we parted.

I walked briskly to the station.  There was a glow of hope in me. 
There was a growing conviction in my mind that my journey this
time would not be taken in vain.  It was a fine, clear, cold
morning.  My nerves were firmly strung, and I felt all the
strength of my resolution stirring in me vigorously from head to
foot.

As I crossed the railway platform, and looked right and left among
the people congregated on it, to search for any faces among them
that I knew, the doubt occurred to me whether it might not have
been to my advantage if I had adopted a disguise before setting
out for Hampshire.  But there was something so repellent to me in
the idea--something so meanly like the common herd of spies and
informers in the mere act of adopting a disguise--that I dismissed
the question from consideration almost as soon as it had risen in
my mind.  Even as a mere matter of expediency the proceeding was
doubtful in the extreme.  If I tried the experiment at home the
landlord of the house would sooner or later discover me, and would
have his suspicions aroused immediately.  If I tried it away from
home the same persons might see me, by the commonest accident,
with the disguise and without it, and I should in that way be
inviting the notice and distrust which it was my most pressing
interest to avoid.  In my own character I had acted thus far--and
in my own character I was resolved to continue to the end.

The train left me at Welmingham early in the afternoon.


Is there any wilderness of sand in the deserts of Arabia, is there
any prospect of desolation among the ruins of Palestine, which can
rival the repelling effect on the eye, and the depressing
influence on the mind, of an English country town in the first
stage of its existence, and in the transition state of its
prosperity? I asked myself that question as I passed through the
clean desolation, the neat ugliness, the prim torpor of the
streets of Welmingham.  And the tradesmen who stared after me from
their lonely shops--the trees that drooped helpless in their arid
exile of unfinished crescents and squares--the dead house-
carcasses that waited in vain for the vivifying human element to
animate them with the breath of life--every creature that I saw,
every object that I passed, seemed to answer with one accord: The
deserts of Arabia are innocent of our civilised desolation--the
ruins of Palestine are incapable of our modern gloom!

I inquired my way to the quarter of the town in which Mrs.
Catherick lived, and on reaching it found myself in a square of
small houses, one story high.  There was a bare little plot of
grass in the middle, protected by a cheap wire fence.  An elderly
nursemaid and two children were standing in a corner of the
enclosure, looking at a lean goat tethered to the grass.  Two
foot-passengers were talking together on one side of the pavement
before the houses, and an idle little boy was leading an idle
little dog along by a string on the other.  I heard the dull
tinkling of a piano at a distance, accompanied by the intermittent
knocking of a hammer nearer at hand.  These were all the sights
and sounds of life that encountered me when I entered the square.

I walked at once to the door of Number Thirteen--the number of
Mrs. Catherick's house--and knocked, without waiting to consider
beforehand how I might best present myself when I got in.  The
first necessity was to see Mrs. Catherick.  I could then judge,
from my own observation, of the safest and easiest manner of
approaching the object of my visit.

The door was opened by a melancholy middle-aged woman servant.  I
gave her my card, and asked if I could see Mrs. Catherick.  The
card was taken into the front parlour, and the servant returned
with a message requesting me to mention what my business was.

"Say, if you please, that my business relates to Mrs. Catherick's
daughter," I replied.  This was the best pretext I could think of,
on the spur of the moment, to account for my visit.

The servant again retired to the parlour, again returned, and this
time begged me, with a look of gloomy amazement, to walk in.

I entered a little room, with a flaring paper of the largest
pattern on the walls.  Chairs, tables, cheffonier, and sofa, all
gleamed with the glutinous brightness of cheap upholstery.  On the
largest table, in the middle of the room, stood a smart Bible,
placed exactly in the centre on a red and yellow woollen mat and
at the side of the table nearest to the window, with a little
knitting-basket on her lap, and a wheezing, blear-eyed old spaniel
crouched at her feet, there sat an elderly woman, wearing a black
net cap and a black silk gown, and having slate-coloured mittens
on her hands.  Her iron-grey hair hung in heavy bands on either
side of her face--her dark eyes looked straight forward, with a
hard, defiant, implacable stare.  She had full square cheeks, a
long, firm chin, and thick, sensual, colourless lips.  Her figure
was stout and sturdy, and her manner aggressively self-possessed. 
This was Mrs. Catherick.

"You have come to speak to me about my daughter," she said, before
I could utter a word on my side.  "Be so good as to mention what
you have to say."

The tone of her voice was as hard, as defiant, as implacable as
the expression of her eyes.  She pointed to a chair, and looked me
all over attentively, from head to foot, as I sat down in it.  I
saw that my only chance with this woman was to speak to her in her
own tone, and to meet her, at the outset of our interview, on her
own ground.

"You are aware," I said, "that your daughter has been lost?"

"I am perfectly aware of it."

"Have you felt any apprehension that the misfortune of her loss
might be followed by the misfortune of her death?"

"Yes.  Have you come here to tell me she is dead?"

"I have."

"Why?"

She put that extraordinary question without the slightest change
in her voice, her face, or her manner.  She could not have
appeared more perfectly unconcerned if I had told her of the death
of the goat in the enclosure outside.

"Why?" I repeated.  "Do you ask why I come here to tell you of
your daughter's death?"

"Yes.  What interest have you in me, or in her? How do you come to
know anything about my daughter?"

"In this way.  I met her on the night when she escaped from the
Asylum, and I assisted her in reaching a place of safety."

"You did very wrong."

"I am sorry to hear her mother say so."

"Her mother does say so.  How do you know she is dead?"

"I am not at liberty to say how I know it--but I DO know it."

"Are you at liberty to say how you found out my address?"

"Certainly.  I got your address from Mrs. Clements."

"Mrs. Clements is a foolish woman.  Did she tell you to come
here?"

"She did not."

"Then, I ask you again, why did you come?"

As she was determined to have her answer, I gave it to her in the
plainest possible form.

"I came," I said, "because I thought Anne Catherick's mother might
have some natural interest in knowing whether she was alive or
dead."

"Just so," said Mrs. Catherick, with additional self-possession. 
"Had you no other motive?"

I hesitated.  The right answer to that question was not easy to
find at a moment's notice.

"If you have no other motive," she went on, deliberately taking
off her slate-coloured mittens, and rolling them up, "I have only
to thank you for your visit, and to say that I will not detain you
here any longer.  Your information would be more satisfactory if
you were willing to explain how you became possessed of it. 
However, it justifies me, I suppose, in going into mourning. 
There is not much alteration necessary in my dress, as you see. 
When I have changed my mittens, I shall be all in black."

She searched in the pocket of her gown, drew out a pair of black
lace mittens, put them on with the stoniest and steadiest
composure, and then quietly crossed her hands in her lap.

"I wish you good morning," she said.

The cool contempt of her manner irritated me into directly avowing
that the purpose of my visit had not been answered yet.

"I HAVE another motive in coming here," I said.

"Ah! I thought so," remarked Mrs. Catherick.

"Your daughter's death----"

"What did she die of?"

"Of disease of the heart."

"Yes.  Go on."

"Your daughter's death has been made the pretext for inflicting
serious injury on a person who is very dear to me.  Two men have
been concerned, to my certain knowledge, in doing that wrong.  One
of them is Sir Percival Glyde."

"Indeed!"

I looked attentively to see if she flinched at the sudden mention
of that name.  Not a muscle of her stirred--the hard, defiant,
implacable stare in her eyes never wavered for an instant.

"You may wonder," I went on, "how the event of your daughter's
death can have been made the means of inflicting injury on another
person."

"No," said Mrs. Catherick; "I don't wonder at all.  This appears
to be your affair.  You are interested in my affairs.  I am not
interested in yours."

"You may ask, then," I persisted, "why I mention the matter in
your presence."

"Yes, I DO ask that."

"I mention it because I am determined to bring Sir Percival Glyde
to account for the wickedness he has committed."

"What have I to do with your determination?"

"You shall hear.  There are certain events in Sir Percival's past
life which it is necessary for my purpose to be fully acquainted
with.  YOU know them--and for that reason I come to YOU."

"What events do you mean?"

"Events that occurred at Old Welmingham when your husband was
parish-clerk at that place, and before the time when your daughter
was born."

I had reached the woman at last through the barrier of
impenetrable reserve that she had tried to set up between us.  I
saw her temper smouldering in her eyes--as plainly as I saw her
hands grow restless, then unclasp themselves, and begin
mechanically smoothing her dress over her knees.

"What do you know of those events?" she asked.

"All that Mrs. Clements could tell me," I answered.

There was a momentary flush on her firm square face, a momentary
stillness in her restless hands, which seemed to betoken a coming
outburst of anger that might throw her off her guard.  But no--she
mastered the rising irritation, leaned back in her chair, crossed
her arms on her broad bosom, and with a smile of grim sarcasm on
her thick lips, looked at me as steadily as ever.

"Ah! I begin to understand it all now," she said, her tamed and
disciplined anger only expressing itself in the elaborate mockery
of her tone and manner.  "You have got a grudge of your own
against Sir Percival Glyde, and I must help you to wreak it.  I
must tell you this, that, and the other about Sir Percival and
myself, must I? Yes, indeed? You have been prying into my private
affairs.  You think you have found a lost woman to deal with, who
lives here on sufferance, and who will do anything you ask for
fear you may injure her in the opinions of the town's-people.  I
see through you and your precious speculation--I do! and it amuses
me.  Ha! ha!"

She stopped for a moment, her arms tightened over her bosom, and
she laughed to herself--a hard, harsh, angry laugh.

"You don't know how I have lived in this place, and what I have
done in this place, Mr. What's-your-name," she went on.  "I'll
tell you, before I ring the bell and have you shown out.  I came
here a wronged woman--I came here robbed of my character and
determined to claim it back.  I've been years and years about it--
and I HAVE claimed it back.  I have matched the respectable people
fairly and openly on their own ground.  If they say anything
against me now they must say it in secret--they can't say it, they
daren't say it, openly.  I stand high enough in this town to be
out of your reach. THE CLERGYMAN BOWS TO ME.  Aha! you didn't
bargain for that when you came here.  Go to the church and inquire
about me--you will find Mrs. Catherick has her sitting like the
rest of them, and pays the rent on the day it's due.  Go to the
town-hall.  There's a petition lying there--a petition of the
respectable inhabitants against allowing a circus to come and
perform here and corrupt our morals--yes! OUR morals.  I signed
that petition this morning.  Go to the bookseller's shop.  The
clergyman's Wednesday evening Lectures on Justification by Faith
are publishing there by subscription--I'm down on the list. The
doctor's wife only put a shilling in the plate at our last charity
sermon--I put half-a-crown.  Mr. Churchwarden Soward held the
plate, and bowed to me.  Ten years ago he told Pigrum the chemist
I ought to be whipped out of the town at the cart's tail.  Is your
mother alive? Has she got a better Bible on her table than I have
got on mine? Does she stand better with her trades-people than I
do with mine? Has she always lived within her income? I have
always lived within mine.  Ah! there IS the clergyman coming along
the square.  Look, Mr. What's-your-name--look, if you please!"

She started up with the activity of a young woman, went to the
window, waited till the clergyman passed, and bowed to him
solemnly.  The clergyman ceremoniously raised his hat, and walked
on.  Mrs. Catherick returned to her chair, and looked at me with a
grimmer sarcasm than ever.

"There!" she said.  "What do you think of that for a woman with a
lost character? How does your speculation look now?"

The singular manner in which she had chosen to assert herself, the
extraordinary practical vindication of her position in the town
which she had just offered, had so perplexed me that I listened to
her in silent surprise.  I was not the less resolved, however, to
make another effort to throw her off her guard.  If the woman's
fierce temper once got beyond her control, and once flamed out on
me, she might yet say the words which would put the clue in my
hands.

"How does your speculation look now?" she repeated.

"Exactly as it looked when I first came in," I answered.  "I don't
doubt the position you have gained in the town, and I don't wish
to assail it even if I could.  I came here because Sir Percival
Glyde is, to my certain knowledge, your enemy, as well as mine. 
If I have a grudge against him, you have a grudge against him too. 
You may deny it if you like, you may distrust me as much as you
please, you may be as angry as you will--but, of all the women in
England, you, if you have any sense of injury, are the woman who
ought to help me to crush that man."

"Crush him for yourself," she said; "then come back here, and see
what I say to you."

She spoke those words as she had not spoken yet, quickly,
fiercely, vindictively.  I had stirred in its lair the serpent-
hatred of years, but only for a moment.  Like a lurking reptile it
leaped up at me as she eagerly bent forward towards the place in
which I was sitting.  Like a lurking reptile it dropped out of
sight again as she instantly resumed her former position in the
chair.

"You won't trust me?" I said.

"No."

"You are afraid?"

"Do I look as if I was?"

"You are afraid of Sir Percival Glyde?"

"Am I?"

Her colour was rising, and her hands were at work again smoothing
her gown.  I pressed the point farther and farther home, I went on
without allowing her a moment of delay.

"Sir Percival has a high position in the world," I said; "it would
be no wonder if you were afraid of him.  Sir Percival is a
powerful man, a baronet, the possessor of a fine estate, the
descendant of a great family----"

She amazed me beyond expression by suddenly bursting out laughing.

"Yes," she repeated, in tones of the bitterest, steadiest
contempt.  "A baronet, the possessor of a fine estate, the
descendant of a great family.  Yes, indeed! A great family--
especially by the mother's side."

There was no time to reflect on the words that had just escaped
her, there was only time to feel that they were well worth
thinking over the moment I left the house.

"I am not here to dispute with you about family questions," I
said.  "I know nothing of Sir Percival's mother----"

"And you know as little of Sir Percival himself," she interposed
sharply.

"I advise you not to be too sure of that," I rejoined.  "I know
some things about him, and I suspect many more."

"What do you suspect?"

"I'll tell you what I DON'T suspect.  I DON'T suspect him of being
Anne's father."

She started to her feet, and came close up to me with a look of
fury.

"How dare you talk to me about Anne's father! How dare you say who
was her father, or who wasn't!" she broke out, her face quivering,
her voice trembling with passion.

"The secret between you and Sir Percival is not THAT secret," I
persisted.  "The mystery which darkens Sir Percival's life was not
born with your daughter's birth, and has not died with your
daughter's death."

She drew back a step.  "Go!" she said, and pointed sternly to the
door.

"There was no thought of the child in your heart or in his,' I
went on, determined to press her back to her last defences. 
"There was no bond of guilty love between you and him when you
held those stolen meetings, when your husband found you whispering
together under the vestry of the church."

Her pointing hand instantly dropped to her side, and the deep
flush of anger faded from her face while I spoke.  I saw the
change pass over her--I saw that hard, firm, fearless, self-
possessed woman quail under a terror which her utmost resolution
was not strong enough to resist when I said those five last words,
"the vestry of the church."

For a minute or more we stood looking at each other in silence.  I
spoke first.

"Do you still refuse to trust me?" I asked.

She could not call the colour that had left it back to her face,
but she had steadied her voice, she had recovered the defiant
self-possession of her manner when she answered me.

"I do refuse," she said.

"Do you still tell me to go?"

"Yes.  Go--and never come back."

I walked to the door, waited a moment before I opened it, and
turned round to look at her again.

"I may have news to bring you of Sir Percival which you don't
expect," I said, "and in that case I shall come back."

"There is no news of Sir Percival that I don't expect, except----"

She stopped, her pale face darkened, and she stole back with a
quiet, stealthy, cat-like step to her chair.

"Except the news of his death," she said, sitting down again, with
the mockery of a smile just hovering on her cruel lips, and the
furtive light of hatred lurking deep in her steady eyes.

As I opened the door of the room to go out, she looked round at me
quickly.  The cruel smile slowly widened her lips--she eyed me,
with a strange stealthy interest, from head to foot--an
unutterable expectation showed itself wickedly all over her face. 
Was she speculating, in the secrecy of her own heart, on my youth
and strength, on the force of my sense of injury and the limits of
my self-control, and was she considering the lengths to which they
might carry me, if Sir Percival and I ever chanced to meet? The
bare doubt that it might be so drove me from her presence, and
silenced even the common forms of farewell on my lips.  Without a
word more, on my side or on hers, I left the room.

As I opened the outer door, I saw the same clergyman who had
already passed the house once, about to pass it again, on his way
back through the square.  I waited on the door-step to let him go
by, and looked round, as I did so, at the parlour window.

Mrs. Catherick had heard his footsteps approaching, in the silence
of that lonely place, and she was on her feet at the window again,
waiting for him.  Not all the strength of all the terrible
passions I had roused in that woman's heart, could loosen her
desperate hold on the one fragment of social consideration which
years of resolute effort had just dragged within her grasp.  There
she was again, not a minute after I had left her, placed purposely
in a position which made it a matter of common courtesy on the
part of the clergyman to bow to her for a second time.  He raised
his hat once more.  I saw the hard ghastly face behind the window
soften, and light up with gratified pride--I saw the head with the
grim black cap bend ceremoniously in return.  The clergyman had
bowed to her, and in my presence, twice in one day!



IX


I Left the house, feeling that Mrs. Catherick had helped me a step
forward, in spite of herself.  Before I had reached the turning
which led out of the square, my attention was suddenly aroused by
the sound of a closing door behind me.

I looked round, and saw an undersized man in black on the door-
step of a house, which, as well as I could judge, stood next to 
Mrs. Catherick's place of abode--next to it, on the side nearest
to me.  The man did not hesitate a moment about the direction he
should take.  He advanced rapidly towards the turning at which I
had stopped.  I recognised him as the lawyer's clerk, who had
preceded me in my visit to Blackwater Park, and who had tried to
pick a quarrel with me, when I asked him if I could see the house.

I waited where I was, to ascertain whether his object was to come
to close quarters and speak on this occasion.  To my surprise he
passed on rapidly, without saying a word, without even looking up
in my face as he went by.  This was such a complete inversion of
the course of proceeding which I had every reason to expect on his
part, that my curiosity, or rather my suspicion, was aroused, and
I determined on my side to keep him cautiously in view, and to
discover what the business might be in which he was now employed. 
Without caring whether he saw me or not, I walked after him.  He
never looked back, and he led me straight through the streets to
the railway station.

The train was on the point of starting, and two or three
passengers who were late were clustering round the small opening
through which the tickets were issued.  I joined them, and
distinctly heard the lawyer's clerk demand a ticket for the
Blackwater station I satisfied myself that he had actually left by
the train before I came away.

There was only one interpretation that I could place on what I had
just seen and heard.  I had unquestionably observed the man
leaving a house which closely adjoined Mrs. Catherick's residence. 
He had been probably placed there, by Sir Percival's directions,
as a lodger, in anticipation of my inquiries leading me, sooner or
later, to communicate with Mrs. Catherick.  He had doubtless seen
me go in and come out, and he had hurried away by the first train
to make his report at Blackwater Park, to which place Sir Percival
would naturally betake himself (knowing what he evidently knew of
my movements), in order to be ready on the spot, if I returned to
Hampshire.  Before many days were over, there seemed every
likelihood now that he and I might meet.

Whatever result events might be destined to produce, I resolved to
pursue my own course, straight to the end in view, without
stopping or turning aside for Sir Percival or for any one.  The
great responsibility which weighed on me heavily in London--the
responsibility of so guiding my slightest actions as to prevent
them from leading accidentally to the discovery of Laura's place
of refuge--was removed, now that I was in Hampshire.  I could go
and come as I pleased at Welmingham, and if I chanced to fail in
observing any necessary precautions, the immediate results, at
least, would affect no one but myself.

When I left the station the winter evening was beginning to close
in.  There was little hope of continuing my inquiries after dark
to any useful purpose in a neighbourhood that was strange to me. 
Accordingly, I made my way to the nearest hotel, and ordered my
dinner and my bed.  This done, I wrote to Marian, to tell her that
I was safe and well, and that I had fair prospects of success.  I
had directed her, on leaving home, to address the first letter she
wrote to me (the letter I expected to receive the next morning) to
"The Post-Office, Welmingham," and I now begged her to send her
second day's letter to the same address.

I could easily receive it by writing to the postmaster if I
happened to be away from the town when it arrived.

The coffee-room of the hotel, as it grew late in the evening,
became a perfect solitude.  I was left to reflect on what I had
accomplished that afternoon as uninterruptedly as if the house had
been my own.  Before I retired to rest I had attentively thought
over my extraordinary interview with Mrs. Catherick from beginning
to end, and had verified at my leisure the conclusions which I had
hastily drawn in the earlier part of the day.

The vestry of Old Welmingham church was the starting-point from
which my mind slowly worked its way back through all that I had
heard Mrs. Catherick say, and through all I had seen Mrs.
Catherick do.

At the time when the neighbourhood of the vestry was first
referred to in my presence by Mrs. Clements, I had thought it the
strangest and most unaccountable of all places for Sir Percival to
select for a clandestine meeting with the clerk's wife. 
Influenced by this impression, and by no other, I had mentioned
"the vestry of the church" before Mrs. Catherick on pure
speculation--it represented one of the minor peculiarities of the
story which occurred to me while I was speaking.  I was prepared
for her answering me confusedly or angrily, but the blank terror
that seized her when I said the words took me completely by
surprise.  I had long before associated Sir Percival's Secret with
the concealment of a serious crime which Mrs. Catherick knew of,
but I had gone no further than this.  Now the woman's paroxysm of
terror associated the crime, either directly or indirectly, with
the vestry, and convinced me that she had been more than the mere
witness of it--she was also the accomplice, beyond a doubt.

What had been the nature of the crime? Surely there was a
contemptible side to it, as well as a dangerous side, or Mrs.
Catherick would not have repeated my own words, referring to Sir
Percival's rank and power, with such marked disdain as she had
certainly displayed.  It was a contemptible crime then and a
dangerous crime, and she had shared in it, and it was associated
with the vestry of the church.

The next consideration to be disposed of led me a step farther
from this point.

Mrs. Catherick's undisguised contempt for Sir Percival plainly
extended to his mother as well.  She had referred with the
bitterest sarcasm to the great family he had descended from--"
especially by the mother's side." What did this mean?

There appeared to be only two explanations of it.  Either his
mother's birth had been low, or his mother's reputation was
damaged by some hidden flaw with which Mrs. Catherick and Sir
Percival were both privately acquainted? I could only put the
first explanation to the test by looking at the register of her
marriage, and so ascertaining her maiden name and her parentage as
a preliminary to further inquiries.

On the other hand, if the second case supposed were the true one,
what had been the flaw in her reputation? Remembering the account
which Marian had given me of Sir Percival's father and mother, and
of the suspiciously unsocial secluded life they had both led, I
now asked myself whether it might not be possible that his mother
had never been married at all.  Here again the register might, by
offering written evidence of the marriage, prove to me, at any
rate, that this doubt had no foundation in truth.  But where was
the register to be found? At this point I took up the conclusions
which I had previously formed, and the same mental process which
had discovered the locality of the concealed crime, now lodged the
register also in the vestry of Old Welmingham church.

These were the results of my interview with Mrs. Catherick--these
were the various considerations, all steadily converging to one
point, which decided the course of my proceedings on the next day.


The morning was cloudy and lowering, but no rain fell.  I left my
bag at the hotel to wait there till I called for it, and, after
inquiring the way, set forth on foot for Old Welmingham church.

It was a walk of rather more than two miles, the ground rising
slowly all the way.

On the highest point stood the church--an ancient, weather-beaten
building, with heavy buttresses at its sides, and a clumsy square
tower in front.  The vestry at the back was built out from the
church, and seemed to be of the same age.  Round the building at
intervals appeared the remains of the village which Mrs. Clements
had described to me as her husband's place of abode in former
years, and which the principal inhabitants had long since deserted
for the new town.  Some of the empty houses had been dismantled to
their outer walls, some had been left to decay with time, and some
were still inhabited by persons evidently of the poorest class. 
It was a dreary scene, and yet, in the worst aspect of its ruin,
not so dreary as the modern town that I had just left.  Here there
was the brown, breezy sweep of surrounding fields for the eye to 
repose on--here the trees, leafless as they were, still varied the
monotony of the prospect, and helped the mind to look forward to
summer-time and shade.

As I moved away from the back of the church, and passed some of
the dismantled cottages in search of a person who might direct me
to the clerk, I saw two men saunter out after me from behind a
wall.  The tallest of the two--a stout muscular man in the dress
of a gamekeeper--was a stranger to me.  The other was one of the
men who had followed me in London on the day when I left Mr.
Kyrle's office.  I had taken particular notice of him at the time;
and I felt sure that I was not mistaken in identifying the fellow
on this occasion.

Neither he nor his companion attempted to speak to me, and both
kept themselves at a respectful distance, but the motive of their
presence in the neighbourhood of the church was plainly apparent. 
It was exactly as I had supposed--Sir Percival was already
prepared for me.  My visit to Mrs. Catherick had been reported to
him the evening before, and those two men had been placed on the
look-out near the church in anticipation of my appearance at Old
Welmingham.  If I had wanted any further proof that my
investigations had taken the right direction at last, the plan now
adopted for watching me would have supplied it.

I walked on away from the church till I reached one of the
inhabited houses, with a patch of kitchen garden attached to it on
which a labourer was at work.  He directed me to the clerk's
abode, a cottage at some little distance off, standing by itself
on the outskirts of the forsaken village.  The clerk was indoors,
and was just putting on his greatcoat.  He was a cheerful,
familiar, loudly-talkative old man, with a very poor opinion (as I
soon discovered) of the place in which he lived, and a happy sense
of superiority to his neighbours in virtue of the great personal
distinction of having once been in London.

"It's well you came so early, sir," said the old man, when I had
mentioned the object of my visit.  "I should have been away in ten
minutes more.  Parish business, sir, and a goodish long trot
before it's all done for a man at my age.  But, bless you, I'm
strong on my legs still! As long as a man don't give at his legs,
there's a deal of work left in him.  Don't you think so yourself,
sir?"

He took his keys down while he was talking from a hook behind the
fireplace, and locked his cottage door behind us.

"Nobody at home to keep house for me," said the clerk, with a
cheerful sense of perfect freedom from all family encumbrances. 
"My wife's in the churchyard there, and my children are all
married.  A wretched place this, isn't it, sir? But the parish is
a large one--every man couldn't get through the business as I do. 
It's learning does it, and I've had my share, and a little more. 
I can talk the Queen's English (God bless the Queen!), and that's
more than most of the people about here can do.  You're from
London, I suppose, sir? I've been in London a matter of five-and-
twenty year ago.  What's the news there now, if you please?"

Chattering on in this way, he led me back to the vestry.  I looked
about to see if the two spies were still in sight.  They were not
visible anywhere.  After having discovered my application to the
clerk, they had probably concealed themselves where they could
watch my next proceedings in perfect freedom.

The vestry door was of stout old oak, studded with strong nails,
and the clerk put his large heavy key into the lock with the air
of a man who knew that he had a difficulty to encounter, and who
was not quite certain of creditably conquering it.

"I'm obliged to bring you this way, sir," he said, "because the
door from the vestry to the church is bolted on the vestry side. 
We might have got in through the church otherwise.  This is a
perverse lock, if ever there was one yet.  It's big enough for a
prison-door--it's been hampered over and over again, and it ought
to be changed for a new one.  I've mentioned that to the
churchwarden fifty times over at least--he's always saying, 'I'll
see about it'--and he never does see.  Ah, It's a sort of lost
corner, this place.  Not like London--is it, sir? Bless you, we
are all asleep here! We don't march with the times."

After some twisting and turning of the key, the heavy lock
yielded, and he opened the door.

The vestry was larger than I should have supposed it to be,
judging from the outside only.  It was a dim, mouldy, melancholy
old room, with a low, raftered ceiling.  Round two sides of it,
the sides nearest to the interior of the church, ran heavy wooden
presses, worm-eaten and gaping with age.  Hooked to the inner
corner of one of these presses hung several surplices, all bulging
out at their lower ends in an irreverent-looking bundle of limp
drapery.  Below the surplices, on the floor, stood three packing-
cases, with the lids half off, half on, and the straw profusely
bursting out of their cracks and crevices in every direction. 
Behind them, in a corner, was a litter of dusty papers, some large
and rolled up like architects' plans, some loosely strung together
on files like bills or letters.  The room had once been lighted by
a small side window, but this had been bricked up, and a lantern
skylight was now substituted for it.  The atmosphere of the place
was heavy and mouldy, being rendered additionally oppressive by
the closing of the door which led into the church.  This door also
was composed of solid oak, and was bolted at the top and bottom on
the vestry side.

"We might be tidier, mightn't we, sir?" said the cheerful clerk;
"but when you're in a lost corner of a place like this, what are
you to do? Why, look here now, just look at these packing-cases. 
There they've been, for a year or more, ready to go down to
London--there they are, littering the place, and there they'll
stop as long as the nails hold them together.  I'll tell you what,
sir, as I said before, this is not London.  We are all asleep
here.  Bless you, WE don't march with the times!"

"What is there in the packing-cases?" I asked.

"Bits of old wood carvings from the pulpit, and panels from the
chancel, and images from the organ-loft," said the clerk. 
"Portraits of the twelve apostles in wood, and not a whole nose
among 'em.  All broken, and worm-eaten, and crumbling to dust at
the edges.  As brittle as crockery, sir, and as old as the church,
if not older."

"And why were they going to London? To be repaired?"

"That's it, sir, to be repaired, and where they were past repair,
to be copied in sound wood.  But, bless you, the money fell short,
and there they are, waiting for new subscriptions, and nobody to
subscribe.  It was all done a year ago, sir.  Six gentlemen dined
together about it, at the hotel in the new town.  They made
speeches, and passed resolutions, and put their names down, and
printed off thousands of prospectuses.  Beautiful prospectuses,
sir, all flourished over with Gothic devices in red ink, saying it
was a disgrace not to restore the church and repair the famous
carvings, and so on.  There are the prospectuses that couldn't be
distributed, and the architect's plans and estimates, and the
whole correspondence which set everybody at loggerheads and ended
in a dispute, all down together in that corner, behind the
packing-cases.  The money dribbled in a little at first--but what
CAN you expect out of London? There was just enough, you know, to
pack the broken carvings, and get the estimates, and pay the
printer's bill, and after that there wasn't a halfpenny left. 
There the things are, as I said before.  We have nowhere else to
put them--nobody in the new town cares about accommodating us--
we're in a lost corner--and this is an untidy vestry--and who's to
help it?--that's what I want to know."

My anxiety to examine the register did not dispose me to offer
much encouragement to the old man's talkativeness.  I agreed with
him that nobody could help the untidiness of the vestry, and then
suggested that we should proceed to our business without more
delay.

"Ay, ay, the marriage-register, to be sure," said the clerk,
taking a little bunch of keys from his pocket.  "How far do you
want to look back, sir?"

Marian had informed me of Sir Percival's age at the time when we
had spoken together of his marriage engagement with Laura.  She
had then described him as being forty-five years old.  Calculating
back from this, and making due allowance for the year that had
passed since I had gained my information, I found that he must
have been born in eighteen hundred and four, and that I might
safely start on my search through the register from that date.

"I want to begin with the year eighteen hundred and four," I said.

"Which way after that, sir?" asked the clerk.  "Forwards to our
time or backwards away from us?"

"Backwards from eighteen hundred and four."

He opened the door of one of the presses--the press from the side
of which the surplices were hanging--and produced a large volume
bound in greasy brown leather.  I was struck by the insecurity of
the place in which the register was kept.  The door of the press
was warped and cracked with age, and the lock was of the smallest
and commonest kind.  I could have forced it easily with the
walking-stick I carried in my hand.

"Is that considered a sufficiently secure place for the register?"
I inquired.  "Surely a book of such importance as this ought to be
protected by a better lock, and kept carefully in an iron safe?"

"Well, now, that's curious!" said the clerk, shutting up the book
again, just after he had opened it, and smacking his hand
cheerfully on the cover.  "Those were the very words my old master
was always saying years and years ago, when I was a lad.  'Why
isn't the register' (meaning this register here, under my hand)--
'why isn't it kept in an iron safe?' If I've heard him say that
once, I've heard him say it a hundred times.  He was the solicitor
in those days, sir, who had the appointment of vestry-clerk to
this church.  A fine hearty old gentleman, and the most particular
man breathing.  As long as he lived he kept a copy of this book in
his office at Knowlesbury, and had it posted up regular, from time
to time, to correspond with the fresh entries here.  You would
hardly think it, but he had his own appointed days, once or twice
in every quarter, for riding over to this church on his old white
pony, to check the copy, by the register, with his own eyes and
hands.  'How do I know?' (he used to say) 'how do I know that the
register in this vestry may not be stolen or destroyed? Why isn't
it kept in an iron safe? Why can't I make other people as careful
as I am myself? Some of these days there will be an accident
happen, and when the register's lost, then the parish will find
out the value of my copy.' He used to take his pinch of snuff
after that, and look about him as bold as a lord.  Ah! the like of
him for doing business isn't easy to find now.  You may go to
London and not match him, even THERE.  Which year did you say,
sir? Eighteen hundred and what?"

"Eighteen hundred and four," I replied, mentally resolving to give
the old man no more opportunities of talking, until my examination
of the register was over.

The clerk put on his spectacles, and turned over the leaves of the
register, carefully wetting his finger and thumb at every third
page.  "There it is, sir," said he, with another cheerful smack on
the open volume.  "There's the year you want."

As I was ignorant of the month in which Sir Percival was born, I
began my backward search with the early part of the year.  The
register-book was of the old-fashioned kind, the entries being all
made on blank pages in manuscript, and the divisions which
separated them being indicated by ink lines drawn across the page
at the close of each entry.

I reached the beginning of the year eighteen hundred and four
without encountering the marriage, and then travelled back through
December eighteen hundred and three--through November and October--
through----

No! not through September also.  Under the heading of that month
in the year I found the marriage.

I looked carefully at the entry.  It was at the bottom of a page,
and was for want of room compressed into a smaller space than that
occupied by the marriages above.  The marriage immediately before
it was impressed on my attention by the circumstance of the
bridegroom's Christian name being the same as my own.  The entry
immediately following it (on the top of the next page) was
noticeable in another way from the large space it occupied, the
record in this case registering the marriages of two brothers at
the same time.  The register of the marriage of Sir Felix Glyde
was in no respect remarkable except for the narrowness of the
space into which it was compressed at the bottom of the page.  The
information about his wife was the usual information given in such
cases.  She was described as "Cecilia Jane Elster, of Park-View
Cottages, Knowlesbury, only daughter of the late Patrick Elster,
Esq., formerly of Bath."

I noted down these particulars in my pocket-book, feeling as I did
so both doubtful and disheartened about my next proceedings.  The
Secret which I had believed until this moment to be within my
grasp seemed now farther from my reach than ever.

What suggestions of any mystery unexplained had arisen out of my
visit to the vestry? I saw no suggestions anywhere.  What progress
had I made towards discovering the suspected stain on the
reputation of Sir Percival's mother? The one fact I had
ascertained vindicated her reputation.  Fresh doubts, fresh
difficulties, fresh delays began to open before me in interminable
prospect.  What was I to do next? The one immediate resource left
to me appeared to be this.  I might institute inquiries about
"Miss Elster of Knowlesbury," on the chance of advancing towards
the main object of my investigation, by first discovering the
secret of Mrs. Catherick's contempt for Sir Percival's mother.

"Have you found what you wanted, sir?" said the clerk, as I closed
the register-book.

"Yes," I replied, "but I have some inquiries still to make.  I
suppose the clergyman who officiated here in the year eighteen
hundred and three is no longer alive?"

"No, no, sir, he was dead three or four years before I came here,
and that was as long ago as the year twenty-seven.  I got this
place, sir," persisted my talkative old friend, "through the clerk
before me leaving it.  They say he was driven out of house and
home by his wife--and she's living still down in the new town
there.  I don't know the rights of the story myself--all I know is
I got the place.  Mr. Wansborough got it for me--the son of my old
master that I was tell you of.  He's a free pleasant gentleman as
ever lived--rides to the hounds, keeps his pointers and all that. 
He's vestry-clerk here now as his father was before him."

"Did you not tell me your former master lived at Knowlesbury?" I
asked, calling to mind the long story about the precise gentleman
of the old school with which my talkative friend had wearied me
before he opened the register-book.

"Yes, to be sure, sir," replied the clerk.  "Old Mr. Wansborough
lived at Knowlesbury, and young Mr. Wansborough lives there too."

"You said just now he was vestry-clerk, like his father before
him.  I am not quite sure that I know what a vestry-clerk is."

"Don't you indeed, sir?--and you come from London too! Every
parish church, you know, has a vestry-clerk and a parish-clerk. 
The parish-clerk is a man like me (except that I've got a deal
more learning than most of them--though I don't boast of it).  The
vestry-clerk is a sort of an appointment that the lawyers get, and
if there's any business to be done for the vestry, why there they
are to do it.  It's just the same in London.  Every parish church
there has got its vestry-clerk--and you may take my word for it
he's sure to be a lawyer."

"Then young Mr. Wansborough is a lawyer, I suppose?"

"Of course he is, sir! A lawyer in High Street, Knowlesbury--the
old offices that his father had before him.  The number of times
I've swept those offices out, and seen the old gentleman come
trotting in to business on his white pony, looking right and left
all down the street and nodding to everybody! Bless you, he was a
popular character!--he'd have done in London!"

"How far is it to Knowlesbury from this place?"

"A long stretch, sir," said the clerk, with that exaggerated idea
of distances, and that vivid perception of difficulties in getting
from place to place, which is peculiar to all country people. 
"Nigh on five mile, I can tell you!"

It was still early in the forenoon.  There was plenty of time for
a walk to Knowlesbury and back again to Welmingham; and there was
no person probably in the town who was fitter to assist my
inquiries about the character and position of Sir Percival's
mother before her marriage than the local solicitor.  Resolving to
go at once to Knowlesbury on foot, I led the way out of the
vestry.

"Thank you kindly, sir," said the clerk, as I slipped my little
present into his hand.  "Are you really going to walk all the way
to Knowlesbury and back? Well! you're strong on your legs, too--
and what a blessing that is, isn't it? There's the road, you can't
miss it.  I wish I was going your way--it's pleasant to meet with
gentlemen from London in a lost corner like this.  One hears the
news.  Wish you good-morning, sir, and thank you kindly once
more."

We parted.  As I left the church behind me I looked back, and
there were the two men again on the road below, with a third in
their company, that third person being the short man in black whom
I had traced to the railway the evening before.

The three stood talking together for a little while, then
separated.  The man in black went away by himself towards
Welmingham--the other two remained together, evidently waiting to
follow me as soon as I walked on.

I proceeded on my way without letting the fellows see that I took
any special notice of them.  They caused me no conscious
irritation of feeling at that moment--on the contrary, they rather
revived my sinking hopes.  In the surprise of discovering the
evidence of the marriage, I had forgotten the inference I had
drawn on first perceiving the men in the neighbourhood of the
vestry.  Their reappearance reminded me that Sir Percival had
anticipated my visit to Old Welmingham church as the next result
of my interview with Mrs. Catherick--otherwise he would never have
placed his spies there to wait for me.  Smoothly and fairly as
appearances looked in the vestry, there was something wrong
beneath them--there was something in the register-book, for aught
I knew, that I had not discovered yet.



X


Once out of sight of the church, I pressed forward briskly on my
way to Knowlesbury.

The road was, for the most part, straight and level.  Whenever I
looked back over it I saw the two spies steadily following me. 
For the greater part of the way they kept at a safe distance
behind.  But once or twice they quickened their pace, as if with
the purpose of overtaking me, then stopped, consulted together,
and fell back again to their former position.  They had some
special object evidently in view, and they seemed to be hesitating
or differing about the best means of accomplishing it.  I could
not guess exactly what their design might be, but I felt serious
doubts of reaching Knowlesbury without some mischance happening to
me on the way.  These doubts were realised.

I had just entered on a lonely part of the road, with a sharp turn
at some distance ahead, and had just concluded (calculating by
time) that I must be getting near to the town, when I suddenly
heard the steps of the men close behind me.

Before I could look round, one of them (the man by whom I had been
followed in London) passed rapidly on my left side and hustled me
with his shoulder.  I had been more irritated by the manner in
which he and his companion had dogged my steps all the way from
Old Welmingham than I was myself aware of, and I unfortunately
pushed the fellow away smartly with my open hand.  He instantly
shouted for help.  His companion, the tall man in the gamekeeper's
clothes, sprang to my right side, and the next moment the two
scoundrels held me pinioned between them in the middle of the
road.

The conviction that a trap had been laid for me, and the vexation
of knowing that I had fallen into it, fortunately restrained me
from making my position still worse by an unavailing struggle with
two men, one of whom would, in all probability, have been more
than a match for me single-handed.  I repressed the first natural
movement by which I had attempted to shake them off, and looked
about to see if there was any person near to whom I could appeal.

A labourer was at work in an adjoining field who must have
witnessed all that had passed.  I called to him to follow us to
the town.  He shook his head with stolid obstinacy, and walked
away in the direction of a cottage which stood back from the high-
road.  At the same time the men who held me between them declared
their intention of charging me with an assault.  I was cool enough
and wise enough now to make no opposition.  "Drop your hold of my
arms," I said, "and I will go with you to the town." The man in
the gamekeeper's dress roughly refused.  But the shorter man was
sharp enough to look to consequences, and not to let his companion
commit himself by unnecessary violence.  He made a sign to the
other, and I walked on between them with my arms free.

We reached the turning in the road, and there, close before us,
were the suburbs of Knowlesbury.  One of the local policemen was
walking along the path by the roadside.  The men at once appealed
to him.  He replied that the magistrate was then sitting at the
town-hall, and recommended that we should appear before him
immediately.

We went on to the town-hall.  The clerk made out a formal summons,
and the charge was preferred against me, with the customary
exaggeration and the customary perversion of the truth on such
occasions.  The magistrate (an ill-tempered man, with a sour
enjoyment in the exercise of his own power) inquired if any one on
or near the road had witnessed the assault, and, greatly to my
surprise, the complainant admitted the presence of the labourer in
the field.  I was enlightened, however, as to the object of the
admission by the magistrate's next words.  He remanded me at once
for the production of the witness, expressing, at the same time,
his willingness to take bail for my reappearance if I could
produce one responsible surety to offer it.  If I had been known
in the town he would have liberated me on my own recognisances,
but as I was a total stranger it was necessary that I should find
responsible bail.

The whole object of the stratagem was now disclosed to me.  It had
been so managed as to make a remand necessary in a town where I
was a perfect stranger, and where I could not hope to get my
liberty on bail.  The remand merely extended over three days,
until the next sitting of the magistrate.  But in that time, while
I was in confinement, Sir Percival might use any means he pleased
to embarrass my future proceedings--perhaps to screen himself from
detection altogether--without the slightest fear of any hindrance
on my part.  At the end of the three days the charge would, no
doubt, be withdrawn, and the attendance of the witness would be
perfectly useless.

My indignation, I may almost say, my despair, at this mischievous
check to all further progress--so base and trifling in itself, and
yet so disheartening and so serious in its probable results--quite
unfitted me at first to reflect on the best means of extricating
myself from the dilemma in which I now stood.  I had the folly to
call for writing materials, and to think of privately
communicating my real position to the magistrate.  The
hopelessness and the imprudence of this proceeding failed to
strike me before I had actually written the opening lines of the
letter.  It was not till I had pushed the paper away--not till, I
am ashamed to say, I had almost allowed the vexation of my
helpless position to conquer me--that a course of action suddenly
occurred to my mind, which Sir Percival had probably not
anticipated, and which might set me free again in a few hours.  I
determined to communicate the situation in which I was placed to
Mr. Dawson, of Oak Lodge.

I had visited this gentleman's house, it may be remembered, at the
time of my first inquiries in the Blackwater Park neighbourhood,
and I had presented to him a letter of introduction from Miss
Halcombe, in which she recommended me to his friendly attention in
the strongest terms.  I now wrote, referring to this letter, and
to what I had previously told Mr. Dawson of the delicate and
dangerous nature of my inquiries.  I had not revealed to him the
truth about Laura, having merely described my errand as being of
the utmost importance to private family interests with which Miss
Halcombe was concerned.  Using the same caution still, I now
accounted for my presence at Knowlesbury in the same manner, and I
put it to the doctor to say whether the trust reposed in me by a
lady whom he well knew, and the hospitality I had myself received
in his house, justified me or not in asking him to come to my
assistance in a place where I was quite friendless.

I obtained permission to hire a messenger to drive away at once
with my letter in a conveyance which might be used to bring the
doctor back immediately.  Oak Lodge was on the Knowlesbury side of
Blackwater.  The man declared he could drive there in forty
minutes, and could bring Mr. Dawson back in forty more.  I
directed him to follow the doctor wherever he might happen to be,
if he was not at home, and then sat down to wait for the result
with all the patience and all the hope that I could summon to help
me.

It was not quite half-past one when the messenger departed. 
Before half-past three he returned, and brought the doctor with
him.  Mr. Dawson's kindness, and the delicacy with which he
treated his prompt assistance quite as a matter of course, almost
overpowered me.  The bail required was offered, and accepted
immediately.  Before four o'clock, on that afternoon, I was
shaking hands warmly with the good old doctor--a free man again--
in the streets of Knowlesbury.

Mr. Dawson hospitably invited me to go back with him to Oak Lodge,
and take up my quarters there for the night.  I could only reply
that my time was not my own, and I could only ask him to let me
pay my visit in a few days, when I might repeat my thanks, and
offer to him all the explanations which I felt to be only his due,
but which I was not then in a position to make.  We parted with
friendly assurances on both sides, and I turned my steps at once
to Mr. Wansborough's office in the High Street.

Time was now of the last importance.

The news of my being free on bail would reach Sir Percival, to an
absolute certainty, before night.  If the next few hours did not
put me in a position to justify his worst fears, and to hold him
helpless at my mercy, I might lose every inch of the ground I had
gained, never to recover it again.  The unscrupulous nature of the
man, the local influence he possessed, the desperate peril of
exposure with which my blindfold inquiries threatened him--all
warned me to press on to positive discovery, without the useless
waste of a single minute.  I had found time to think while I was
waiting for Mr. Dawson's arrival, and I had well employed it. 
Certain portions of the conversation of the talkative old clerk,
which had wearied me at the time, now recurred to my memory with a
new significance, and a suspicion crossed my mind darkly which had
not occurred to me while I was in the vestry.  On my way to
Knowlesbury, I had only proposed to apply to Mr. Wansborough for
information on the subject of Sir Percival's mother.  My object
now was to examine the duplicate register of Old Welmingham
Church.

Mr. Wansborough was in his office when I inquired for him.

He was a jovial, red-faced, easy-looking man--more like a country
squire than a lawyer--and he seemed to be both surprised and
amused by my application.  He had heard of his father's copy of
the register, but had not even seen it himself.  It had never been
inquired after, and it was no doubt in the strong room among other
papers that had not been disturbed since his father's death.  It
was a pity (Mr. Wansborough said) that the old gentleman was not
alive to hear his precious copy asked for at last. He would have
ridden his favourite hobby harder than ever now.  How had I come
to hear of the copy? was it through anybody in the town?

I parried the question as well as I could.  It was impossible at
this stage of the investigation to be too cautious, and it was
just as well not to let Mr. Wansborough know prematurely that I
had already examined the original register.  I described myself,
therefore, as pursuing a family inquiry, to the object of which
every possible saving of time was of great importance.  I was
anxious to send certain particulars to London by that day's post,
and one look at the duplicate register (paying, of course, the
necessary fees) might supply what I required, and save me a
further journey to Old Welmingham.  I added that, in the event of
my subsequently requiring a copy of the original register, I
should make application to Mr. Wansborough's office to furnish me
with the document.

After this explanation no objection was made to producing the
copy.  A clerk was sent to the strong room, and after some delay
returned with the volume.  It was of exactly the same size as the
volume in the vestry, the only difference being that the copy was
more smartly bound.  I took it with me to an unoccupied desk.  My
hands were trembling--my head was burning hot--I felt the
necessity of concealing my agitation as well as I could from the
persons about me in the room, before I ventured on opening the
book.

On the blank page at the beginning, to which I first turned, were
traced some lines in faded ink.  They contained these words--

"Copy of the Marriage Register of Welmingham Parish Church. 
Executed under my orders, and afterwards compared, entry by entry,
with the original, by myself.  (Signed) Robert Wansborough,
vestry-clerk."  Below this note there was a line added, in another
handwriting, as follows: "Extending from the first of January,
1800, to the thirtieth of June, 1815."

I turned to the month of September, eighteen hundred and three.  I
found the marriage of the man whose Christian name was the same as
my own.  I found the double register of the marriages of the two
brothers.  And between these entries, at the bottom of the page?

Nothing! Not a vestige of the entry which recorded the marriage of
Sir Felix Glyde and Cecilia Jane Elster in the register of the
church!

My heart gave a great bound, and throbbed as if it would stifle
me.  I looked again--I was afraid to believe the evidence of my
own eyes.  No! not a doubt.  The marriage was not there.  The
entries on the copy occupied exact]y the same places on the page
as the entries in the original.  The last entry on one page
recorded the marriage of the man with my Christian name.  Below it
there was a blank space--a space evidently left because it was too
narrow to contain the entry of the marriages of the two brothers,
which in the copy, as in the original, occupied the top of the
next page.  That space told the whole story! There it must have
remained in the church register from eighteen hundred and three
(when the marriages had been solemnised and the copy had been
made) to eighteen hundred and twenty-seven, when Sir Percival
appeared at Old Welmingham.  Here, at Knowlesbury, was the chance
of committing the forgery shown to me in the copy, and there, at
Old Welmingham) was the forgery committed in the register of the
church.

My head turned giddy--I held by the desk to keep myself from
falling.  Of all the suspicions which had struck me in relation to
that desperate man, not one had been near the truth.

The idea that he was not Sir Percival Glyde at all, that he had no
more claim to the baronetcy and to Blackwater Park than the
poorest labourer who worked on the estate, had never once occurred
to my mind.  At one time I had thought he might be Anne
Catherick's father--at another time I had thought he might have
been Anne Catherick's husband--the offence of which he was really
guilty had been, from first to last, beyond the widest reach of my
imagination.

The paltry means by which the fraud had been effected, the
magnitude and daring of the crime that it represented, the horror
of the consequences involved in its discovery, overwhelmed me. 
Who could wonder now at the brute-restlessness of the wretch's
life--at his desperate alternations between abject duplicity and
reckless violence--at the madness of guilty distrust which had
made him imprison Anne Catherick in the Asylum, and had given him
over to the vile conspiracy against his wife, on the bare
suspicion that the one and the other knew his terrible secret? The
disclosure of that secret might, in past years, have hanged him--
might now transport him for life.  The disclosure of that secret,
even if the sufferers by his deception spared him the penalties of
the law, would deprive him at one blow of the name, the rank, the
estate, the whole social existence that he had usurped.  This was
the Secret, and it was mine! A word from me, and house, lands,
baronetcy, were gone from him for ever--a word from me, and he was
driven out into the world, a nameless, penniless, friendless
outcast! The man's whole future hung on my lips--and he knew it by
this time as certainly as I did!

That last thought steadied me.  Interests far more precious than
my own depended on the caution which must now guide my slightest
actions.  There was no possible treachery which Sir Percival might
not attempt against me.  In the danger and desperation of his
position he would be staggered by no risks, he would recoil at no
crime--he would literally hesitate at nothing to save himself.

I considered for a minute.  My first necessity was to secure
positive evidence in writing of the discovery that I had just
made, and in the event of any personal misadventure happening to
me, to place that evidence beyond Sir Percival's reach.  The copy
of the register was sure to be safe in Mr. Wansborough's strong
room.  But the position of the original in the vestry was, as I
had seen with my own eyes, anything but secure.

In this emergency I resolved to return to the church, to apply
again to the clerk, and to take the necessary extract from the
register before I slept that night.  I was not then aware that a
legally-certified copy was necessary, and that no document merely
drawn out by myself could claim the proper importance as a proof. 
I was not aware of this, and my determination to keep my present
proceedings a secret prevented me from asking any questions which
might have procured the necessary information.  My one anxiety was
the anxiety to get back to Old Welmingham.  I made the best
excuses I could for the discomposure in my face and manner which
Mr. Wansborough had already noticed, laid the necessary fee on his
table, arranged that I should write to him in a day or two, and
left the office, with my head in a whirl and my blood throbbing
through my veins at fever heat.

It was just getting dark.  The idea occurred to me that I might be
followed again and attacked on the high-road.

My walking-stick was a light one, of little or no use for purposes
of defence.  I stopped before leaving Knowlesbury and bought a
stout country cudgel, short, and heavy at the head.  With this
homely weapon, if any one man tried to stop me I was a match for
him.  If more than one attacked me I could trust to my heels.  In
my school-days I had been a noted runner, and I had not wanted for
practice since in the later time of my experience in Central
America.

I started from the town at a brisk pace, and kept the middle of
the road.

A small misty rain was falling, and it was impossible for the
first half of the way to make sure whether I was followed or not. 
But at the last half of my journey, when I supposed myself to be
about two miles from the church, I saw a man run by me in the
rain, and then heard the gate of a field by the roadside shut to
sharply.  I kept straight on, with my cudgel ready in my hand, my
ears on the alert, and my eyes straining to see through the mist
and the darkness.  Before I had advanced a hundred yards there was
a rustling in the hedge on my right, and three men sprang out into
the road.

I drew aside on the instant to the footpath.  The two foremost men
were carried beyond me before they could check themselves.  The
third was as quick as lightning.  He stopped, half turned, and
struck at me with his stick.  The blow was aimed at hazard, and
was not a severe one.  It fell on my left shoulder.  I returned it
heavily on his head.  He staggered back and jostled his two
companions just as they were both rushing at me.  This
circumstance gave me a moment's start.  I slipped by them, and
took to the middle of the road again at the top of my speed.

The two unhurt men pursued me.  They were both good runners--the
road was smooth and level, and for the first five minutes or more
I was conscious that I did not gain on them.  It was perilous work
to run for long in the darkness.  I could barely see the dim black
line of the hedges on either side, and any chance obstacle in the
road would have thrown me down to a certainty.  Ere long I felt
the ground changing--it descended from the level at a turn, and
then rose again beyond.  Downhill the men rather gained on me, but
uphill I began to distance them.  The rapid, regular thump of
their feet grew fainter on my ear, and I calculated by the sound
that I was far enough in advance to take to the fields with a good
chance of their passing me in the darkness.  Diverging to the
footpath, I made for the first break that I could guess at, rather
than see, in the hedge.  It proved to be a closed gate.  I vaulted
over, and finding myself in a field, kept across it steadily with
my back to the road.  I heard the men pass the gate, still
running, then in a minute more heard one of them call to the other
to come back.  It was no matter what they did now, I was out of
their sight and out of their hearing.  I kept straight across the
field, and when I had reached the farther extremity of it, waited
there for a minute to recover my breath.

It was impossible to venture back to the road, but I was
determined nevertheless to get to Old Welmingham that evening.

Neither moon nor stars appeared to guide me.  I only knew that I
had kept the wind and rain at my back on leaving Knowlesbury, and
if I now kept them at my back still, I might at least be certain
of not advancing altogether in the wrong direction.

Proceeding on this plan, I crossed the country--meeting with no
worse obstacles than hedges, ditches, and thickets, which every
now and then obliged me to alter my course for a little while--
until I found myself on a hillside, with the ground sloping away
steeply before me.  I descended to the bottom of the hollow,
squeezed my way through a hedge, and got out into a lane.  Having
turned to the right on leaving the road, I now turned to the left,
on the chance of regaining the line from which I had wandered. 
After following the muddy windings of the lane for ten minutes or
more, I saw a cottage with a light in one of the windows.  The
garden gate was open to the lane, and I went in at once to inquire
my way.

Before I could knock at the door it was suddenly opened, and a man
came running out with a lighted lantern in his hand.  He stopped
and held it up at the sight of me.  We both started as we saw each
other.  My wanderings had led me round the outskirts of the
village, and had brought me out at the lower end of it.  I was
back at Old Welmingham, and the man with the lantern was no other
than my acquaintance of the morning, the parish clerk.

His manner appeared to have altered strangely in the interval
since I had last seen him.  He looked suspicious and confused--his
ruddy cheeks were deeply flushed--and his first words, when he
spoke, were quite unintelligible to me.

"Where are the keys?" he asked.  "Have you taken them?"

"What keys?" I repeated.  "I have this moment come from
Knowlesbury.  What keys do you mean?"

"The keys of the vestry.  Lord save us and help us! what shall I
do? The keys are gone! Do you hear?" cried the old man, shaking
the lantern at me in his agitation, "the keys are gone!"

"How? When? Who can have taken them?"

"I don't know," said the clerk, staring about him wildly in the
darkness.  "I've only just got back.  I told you I had a long
day's work this morning--I locked the door and shut the window
down--it's open now, the window's open.  Look! somebody has got in
there and taken the keys."

He turned to the casement window to show me that it was wide open. 
The door of the lantern came loose from its fastening as he swayed
it round, and the wind blew the candle out instantly.

"Get another light," I said, "and let us both go to the vestry
together.  Quick! quick!"

I hurried him into the house.  The treachery that I had every
reason to expect, the treachery that might deprive me of every
advantage I had gained, was at that moment, perhaps, in process of
accomplishment.  My impatience to reach the church was so great
that I could not remain inactive in the cottage while the clerk
lit the lantern again.  I walked out, down the garden path, into
the lane.

Before I had advanced ten paces a man approached me from the
direction leading to the church.  He spoke respectfully as we met. 
I could not see his face, but judging by his voice only, he was a
perfect stranger to me.

"I beg your pardon, Sir Percival----" he began.

I stopped him before he could say more.

"The darkness misleads you," I said.  "I am not Sir Percival."

The man drew back directly.

"I thought it was my master," he muttered, in a confused, doubtful
way.

"You expected to meet your master here?"

"I was told to wait in the lane."

With that answer he retraced his steps.  I looked back at the
cottage and saw the clerk coming out, with the lantern lighted
once more.  I took the old man's arm to help him on the more
quickly.  We hastened along the lane, and passed the person who
had accosted me.  As well as I could see by the light of the
lantern, he was a servant out of livery.

"Who's that?" whispered the clerk.  "Does he know anything about
the keys?"

"We won't wait to ask him," I replied.  "We will go on to the
vestry first."

The church was not visible, even by daytime, until the end of the
lane was reached.  As we mounted the rising ground which led to
the building from that point, one of the village children--a boy--
came close up to us, attracted by the light we carried, and
recognised the clerk.

"I say, measter," said the boy, pulling officiously at the clerk's
coat, "there be summun up yander in the church.  I heerd un lock
the door on hisself--I heerd un strike a loight wi' a match."

The clerk trembled and leaned against me heavily.

"Come! come!" I said encouragingly.  "We are not too late.  We
will catch the man, whoever he is.  Keep the lantern, and follow
me as fast as you can."

I mounted the hill rapidly.  The dark mass of the church-tower was
the first object I discerned dimly against the night sky.  As I
turned aside to get round to the vestry, I heard heavy footsteps
close to me.  The servant had ascended to the church after us.  "I
don't mean any harm," he said, when I turned round on him, "I'm
only looking for my master."  The tones in which he spoke betrayed
unmistakable fear.  I took no notice of him and went on.

The instant I turned the corner and came in view of the vestry, I
saw the lantern-skylight on the roof brilliantly lit up from
within.  It shone out with dazzling brightness against the murky,
starless sky.

I hurried through the churchyard to the door.

As I got near there was a strange smell stealing out on the damp
night air.  I heard a snapping noise inside--I saw the light above
grow brighter and brighter--a pane of the glass cracked--I ran to
the door and put my hand on it.  The vestry was on fire!

Before I could move, before I could draw my breath after that
discovery, I was horror-struck by a heavy thump against the door
from the inside.  I heard the key worked violently in the lock--I
heard a man's voice behind the door, raised to a dreadful
shrillness, screaming for help.

The servant who had followed me staggered back shuddering, and
dropped to his knees.  "Oh, my God!" he said, "it's Sir Percival!"

As the words passed his lips the clerk joined us, and at the same
moment there was another and a last grating turn of the key in the
lock.

"The Lord have mercy on his soul!" said the old man.  "He is
doomed and dead.  He has hampered the lock."

I rushed to the door.  The one absorbing purpose that had filled
all my thoughts, that had controlled all my actions, for weeks and
weeks past, vanished in an instant from my mind.  All remembrance
of the heartless injury the man's crimes had inflicted--of the
love, the innocence, the happiness he had pitilessly laid waste--
of the oath I had sworn in my own heart to summon him to the
terrible reckoning that he deserved--passed from my memory like a
dream.  I remembered nothing but the horror of his situation.  I
felt nothing but the natural human impulse to save him from a
frightful death.

"Try the other door!" I shouted.  "Try the door into the church!
The lock's hampered.  You're a dead man if you waste another
moment on it."

There had been no renewed cry for help when the key was turned for
the last time.  There was no sound now of any kind, to give token
that he was still alive.  I heard nothing but the quickening
crackle of the flames, and the sharp snap of the glass in the
skylight above.

I looked round at my two companions.  The servant had risen to his
feet--he had taken the lantern, and was holding it up vacantly at
the door.  Terror seemed to have struck him with downright idiocy--
he waited at my heels, he followed me about when I moved like a
dog.  The clerk sat crouched up on one of the tombstones,
shivering, and moaning to himself.  The one moment in which I
looked at them was enough to show me that they were both helpless.

Hardly knowing what I did, acting desperately on the first impulse
that occurred to me, I seized the servant and pushed him against
the vestry wall.  "Stoop!" I said, "and hold by the stones.  I am
going to climb over you to the roof--I am going to break the
skylight, and give him some air!"

The man trembled from head to foot, but he held firm.  I got on
his back, with my cudgel in my mouth, seized the parapet with both
hands, and was instantly on the roof.  In the frantic hurry and
agitation of the moment, it never struck me that I might let out
the flame instead of letting in the air.  I struck at the
skylight, and battered in the cracked, loosened glass at a blow. 
The fire leaped out like a wild beast from its lair.  If the wind
had not chanced, in the position I occupied, to set it away from
me, my exertions might have ended then and there.  I crouched on
the roof as the smoke poured out above me with the flame.  The
gleams and flashes of the light showed me the servant's face
staring up vacantly under the wall--the clerk risen to his feet on
the tombstone, wringing his hands in despair--and the scanty
population of the village, haggard men and terrified women,
clustered beyond in the churchyard--all appearing and
disappearing, in the red of the dreadful glare, in the black of
the choking smoke.  And the man beneath my feet!--the man,
suffocating, burning, dying so near us all, so utterly beyond our
reach!

The thought half maddened me.  I lowered myself from the roof, by
my hands, and dropped to the ground.

"The key of the church!" I shouted to the clerk.  "We must try it
that way--we may save him yet if we can burst open the inner
door."

"No, no, no!" cried the old man.  "No hope! the church key and the
vestry key are on the same ring--both inside there! Oh, sir, he's
past saving--he's dust and ashes by this time!"

"They'll see the fire from the town," said a voice from among the
men behind me.  "There's a ingine in the town.  They'll save the
church."

I called to that man--HE had his wits about him--I called to him
to come and speak to me.  It would be a quarter of an hour at
least before the town engine could reach us.  The horror of
remaining inactive all that time was more than I could face.  In
defiance of my own reason I persuaded myself that the doomed and
lost wretch in the vestry might still be lying senseless on the
floor, might not be dead yet.  If we broke open the door, might we
save him? I knew the strength of the heavy lock--I knew the
thickness of the nailed oak--I knew the hopelessness of assailing
the one and the other by ordinary means.  But surely there were
beams still left in the dismantled cottages near the church? What
if we got one, and used it as a battering-ram against the door?

The thought leaped through me like the fire leaping out of the
shattered skylight.  I appealed to the man who had spoken first of
the fire-engine in the town.  "Have you got your pick-axes handy?"
Yes, they had.  "And a hatchet, and a saw, and a bit of rope?"
Yes! yes! yes! I ran down among the villagers, with the lantern in
my hand.  "Five shillings apiece to every man who helps me!" They
started into life at the words.  That ravenous second hunger of
poverty--the hunger for money--roused them into tumult and
activity in a moment.  "Two of you for more lanterns, if you have
them! Two of you for the pickaxes and the tools! The rest after me
to find the beam!" They cheered--with shrill starveling voices
they cheered.  The women and the children fled back on either
side.  We rushed in a body down the churchyard path to the first
empty cottage.  Not a man was left behind but the clerk--the poor
old clerk standing on the flat tombstone sobbing and wailing over
the church.  The servant was still at my heels--his white,
helpless, panic-stricken face was close over my shoulder as we
pushed into the cottage.  There were rafters from the torn-down
floor above, lying loose on the ground--but they were too light. 
A beam ran across over our heads, but not out of reach of our arms
and our pickaxes--a beam fast at each end in the ruined wall, with
ceiling and flooring all ripped away, and a great gap in the roof
above, open to the sky.  We attacked the beam at both ends at
once.  God! how it held--how the brick and mortar of the wall
resisted us! We struck, and tugged, and tore.  The beam gave at
one end--it came down with a lump of brickwork after it.  There
was a scream from the women all huddled in the doorway to look at
us--a shout from the men--two of them down but not hurt.  Another
tug all together--and the beam was loose at both ends.  We raised
it, and gave the word to clear the doorway.  Now for the work! now
for the rush at the door! There is the fire streaming into the
sky, streaming brighter than ever to light us! Steady along the
churchyard path--steady with the beam for a rush at the door. 
One, two, three--and off.  Out rings the cheering again,
irrepressibly.  We have shaken it already, the hinges must give if
the lock won't.  Another run with the beam! One, two, three--and
off.  It's loose! the stealthy fire darts at us through the
crevice all round it.  Another, and a last rush! The door falls in
with a crash.  A great hush of awe, a stillness of breathless
expectation, possesses every living soul of us.  We look for the
body.  The scorching heat on our faces drives us back: we see
nothing--above, below, all through the room, we see nothing but a
sheet of living fire.


"Where is he?" whispered the servant, staring vacantly at the
flames.

"He's dust and ashes," said the clerk.  "And the books are dust
and ashes--and oh, sirs! the church will be dust and ashes soon."

Those were the only two who spoke.  When they were silent again,
nothing stirred in the stillness but the bubble and the crackle of
the flames.

Hark!

A harsh rattling sound in the distance--then the hollow beat of
horses' hoofs at full gallop--then the low roar, the all-
predominant tumult of hundreds of human voices clamouring and
shouting together.  The engine at last.

The people about me all turned from the fire, and ran eagerly to
the brow of the hill.  The old clerk tried to go with the rest,
but his strength was exhausted.  I saw him holding by one of the
tombstones.  "Save the church!" he cried out faintly, as if the
firemen could hear him already.

Save the church!

The only man who never moved was the servant.  There he stood, his
eyes still fastened on the flames in a changeless, vacant stare. 
I spoke to him, I shook him by the arm.  He was past rousing.  He
only whispered once more, "Where is he?"

In ten minutes the engine was in position, the well at the back of
the church was feeding it, and the hose was carried to the doorway
of the vestry.  If help had been wanted from me I could not have
afforded it now.  My energy of will was gone--my strength was
exhausted--the turmoil of my thoughts was fearfully and suddenly
stilled, now I knew that he was dead.

I stood useless and helpless--looking, looking, looking into the
burning room.

I saw the fire slowly conquered.  The brightness of the glare
faded--the steam rose in white clouds, and the smouldering heaps
of embers showed red and black through it on the floor.  There was
a pause--then an advance all together of the firemen and the
police which blocked up the doorway--then a consultation in low
voices--and then two men were detached from the rest, and sent out
of the churchyard through the crowd.  The crowd drew back on
either side in dead silence to let them pass.

After a while a great shudder ran through the people, and the
living lane widened slowly.  The men came back along it with a
door from one of the empty houses.  They carried it to the vestry
and went in.  The police closed again round the doorway, and men
stole out from among the crowd by twos and threes and stood behind
them to be the first to see.  Others waited near to be the first
to hear.  Women and children were among these last.

The tidings from the vestry began to flow out among the crowd--
they dropped slowly from mouth to mouth till they reached the
place where I was standing.  I heard the questions and answers
repeated again and again in low, eager tones all round me.

"Have they found him?" "Yes."--" Where?" "Against the door, on his
face."--"Which door?" "The door that goes into the church.  His
head was against it--he was down on his face."--"Is his face
burnt?" "No." "Yes, it is." "No, scorched, not burnt--he lay on
his face, I tell you."--"Who was he? A lord, they say." "No, not a
lord.  SIR Something; Sir means Knight." "And Baronight, too."
"No." "Yes, it does."--"What did he want in there?" "No good, you
may depend on it."--"Did he do it on purpose?"--" Burn himself on
purpose!"--"I don't mean himself, I mean the vestry."--"Is he
dreadful to look at?" "Dreadful!"--"Not about the face, though?"
"No, no, not so much about the face.  Don't anybody know him?"
"There's a man says he does."--"Who?" "A servant, they say.  But
he's struck stupid-like, and the police don't believe him."--
"Don't anybody else know who it is?" "Hush----!"

The loud, clear voice of a man in authority silenced the low hum
of talking all round me in an instant.

"Where is the gentleman who tried to save him?" said the voice.

"Here, sir--here he is!" Dozens of eager faces pressed about me--
dozens of eager arms parted the crowd.  The man in authority came
up to me with a lantern in his hand.

"This way, sir, if you please," he said quietly.

I was unable to speak to him, I was unable to resist him when he
took my arm.  I tried to say that I had never seen the dead man in
his lifetime--that there was no hope of identifying him by means
of a stranger like me.  But the words failed on my lips.  I was
faint, and silent, and helpless.

"Do you know him, sir?"

I was standing inside a circle of men.  Three of them opposite to
me were holding lanterns low down to the ground.  Their eyes, and
the eyes of all the rest, were fixed silently and expectantly on
my face.  I knew what was at my feet--I knew why they were holding
the lanterns so low to the ground.

"Can you identify him, sir?"

My eyes dropped slowly.  At first I saw nothing under them but a
coarse canvas cloth.  The dripping of the rain on it was audible
in the dreadful silence.  I looked up, along the cloth, and there
at the end, stark and grim and black, in the yellow light--there
was his dead face.

So, for the first and last time, I saw him.  So the Visitation of
God ruled it that he and I should meet.



XI


The inquest was hurried for certain local reasons which weighed
with the coroner and the town authorities.  It was held on the
afternoon of the next day.  I was necessarily one among the
witnesses summoned to assist the objects of the investigation.

My first proceeding in the morning was to go to the post-office,
and inquire for the letter which I expected from Marian.  No
change of circumstances, however extraordinary, could affect the
one great anxiety which weighed on my mind while I was away from
London.  The morning's letter, which was the only assurance I
could receive that no misfortune had happened in my absence, was
still the absorbing interest with which my day began.

To my relief, the letter from Marian was at the office waiting for
me.

Nothing had happened--they were both as safe and as well as when I
had left them.  Laura sent her love, and begged that I would let
her know of my return a day beforehand.  Her sister added, in
explanation of this message, that she had saved "nearly a
sovereign" out of her own private purse, and that she had claimed
the privilege of ordering the dinner and giving the dinner which
was to celebrate the day of my return.  I read these little
domestic confidences in the bright morning with the terrible
recollection of what had happened the evening before vivid in my
memory.  The necessity of sparing Laura any sudden knowledge of
the truth was the first consideration which the letter suggested
to me.  I wrote at once to Marian to tell her what I have told in
these pages--presenting the tidings as gradually and gently as I
could, and warning her not to let any such thing as a newspaper
fall in Laura's way while I was absent.  In the case of any other
woman, less courageous and less reliable, I might have hesitated
before I ventured on unreservedly disclosing the whole truth.  But
I owed it to Marian to be faithful to my past experience of her,
and to trust her as I trusted herself.

My letter was necessarily a long one.  It occupied me until the
time came for proceeding to the inquest.

The objects of the legal inquiry were necessarily beset by
peculiar complications and difficulties.  Besides the
investigation into the manner in which the deceased had met his
death, there were serious questions to be settled relating to the
cause of the fire, to the abstraction of the keys, and to the
presence of a stranger in the vestry at the time when the flames
broke out.  Even the identification of the dead man had not yet
been accomplished.  The helpless condition of the servant had made
the police distrustful of his asserted recognition of his master. 
They had sent to Knowlesbury over-night to secure the attendance
of witnesses who were well acquainted with the personal appearance
of Sir Percival Glyde, and they had communicated, the first thing
in the morning, with Blackwater Park.  These precautions enabled
the coroner and jury to settle the question of identity, and to
confirm the correctness of the servant's assertion; the evidence
offered by competent witnesses, and by the discovery of certain
facts, being subsequently strengthened by an examination of the
dead man's watch.  The crest and the name of Sir Percival Glyde
were engraved inside it.

The next inquiries related to the fire.

The servant and I, and the boy who had heard the light struck in
the vestry, were the first witnesses called.  The boy gave his
evidence clearly enough, but the servant's mind had not yet
recovered the shock inflicted on it--he was plainly incapable of
assisting the objects of the inquiry, and he was desired to stand
down.

To my own relief, my examination was not a long one.  I had not
known the deceased--I had never seen him--I was not aware of his
presence at Old Welmingham--and I had not been in the vestry at
the finding of the body.  All I could prove was that I had stopped
at the clerk's cottage to ask my way--that I had heard from him of
the loss of the keys--that I had accompanied him to the church to
render what help I could--that I had seen the fire--that I had
heard some person unknown, inside the vestry, trying vainly to
unlock the door--and that I had done what I could, from motives of
humanity, to save the man.  Other witnesses, who had been
acquainted with the deceased, were asked if they could explain the
mystery of his presumed abstraction of the keys, and his presence
in the burning room.  But the coroner seemed to take it for
granted, naturally enough, that I, as a total stranger in the
neighbourhood, and a total stranger to Sir Percival Glyde, could
not be in a position to offer any evidence on these two points.

The course that I was myself bound to take, when my formal
examination had closed, seemed clear to me.  I did not feel called
on to volunteer any statement of my own private convictions, in
the first place, because my doing so could serve no practical
purpose, now that all proof in support of any surmises of mine was
burnt with the burnt register; in the second place, because I
could not have intelligibly stated my opinion--my unsupported
opinion--without disclosing the whole story of the conspiracy, and
producing beyond a doubt the same unsatisfactory effect an the
mind of the coroner and the jury, which I had already produced on
the mind of Mr. Kyrle.

In these pages, however, and after the time that has now elapsed,
no such cautions and restraints as are here described need fetter
the free expression of my opinion.  I will state briefly, before
my pen occupies itself with other events, how my own convictions
lead me to account for the abstraction of the keys, for the
outbreak of the fire, and for the death of the man.

The news of my being free on bail drove Sir Percival, as I
believe, to his last resources.  The attempted attack on the road
was one of those resources, and the suppression of all practical
proof of his crime, by destroying the page of the register on
which the forgery had been committed, was the other, and the
surest of the two.  If I could produce no extract from the
original book to compare with the certified copy at Knowlesbury, I
could produce no positive evidence, and could threaten him with no
fatal exposure.  All that was necessary to the attainment of his
end was, that he should get into the vestry unperceived, that he
should tear out the page in the register, and that he should leave
the vestry again as privately as he had entered it.

On this supposition, it is easy to understand why he waited until
nightfall before he made the attempt, and why he took advantage of
the clerk's absence to possess himself of the keys.  Necessity
would oblige him to strike a light to find his way to the right
register, and common caution would suggest his locking the door on
the inside in case of intrusion on the part of any inquisitive
stranger, or on my part, if I happened to be in the neighbourhood
at the time.

I cannot believe that it was any part of his intention to make the
destruction of the register appear to be the result of accident,
by purposely setting the vestry on fire.  The bare chance that
prompt assistance might arrive, and that the books might, by the
remotest possibility, be saved, would have been enough, on a
moment's consideration, to dismiss any idea of this sort from his
mind.  Remembering the quantity of combustible objects in the
vestry--the straw, the papers, the packing-cases, the dry wood,
the old worm-eaten presses--all the probabilities, in my
estimation, point to the fire as the result of an accident with
his matches or his light.

His first impulse, under these circumstances, was doubtless to try
to extinguish the flames, and failing in that, his second impulse
(ignorant as he was of the state of the lock) had been to attempt
to escape by the door which had given him entrance.  When I had
called to him, the flames must have reached across the door
leading into the church, on either side of which the presses
extended, and close to which the other combustible objects were
placed.  In all probability, the smoke and flame (confined as they
were to the room) had been too much for him when he tried to
escape by the inner door.  He must have dropped in his death-
swoon, he must have sunk in the place where he was found, just as
I got on the roof to break the skylight window.  Even if we had
been able, afterwards, to get into the church, and to burst open
the door from that side, the delay must have been fatal.  He would
have been past saving, long past saving, by that time.  We should
only have given the flames free ingress into the church--the
church, which was now preserved, but which, in that event, would
have shared the fate of the vestry.  There is no doubt in my mind,
there can be no doubt in the mind of any one, that he was a dead
man before ever we got to the empty cottage, and worked with might
and main to tear down the beam.

This is the nearest approach that any theory of mine can make
towards accounting for a result which was visible matter of fact. 
As I have described them, so events passed to us out-side.  As I
have related it, so his body was found.



The inquest was adjourned over one day--no explanation that the
eye of the law could recognise having been discovered thus far to
account for the mysterious circumstances of the case.

It was arranged that more witnesses should be summoned, and that
the London solicitor of the deceased should be invited to attend. 
A medical man was also charged with the duty of reporting on the
mental condition of the servant, which appeared at present to
debar him from giving any evidence of the least importance.  He
could only declare, in a dazed way, that he had been ordered, on
the night of the fire, to wait in the lane, and that he knew
nothing else, except that the deceased was certainly his master.

My own impression was, that he had been first used (without any
guilty knowledge on his own part) to ascertain the fact of the
clerk's absence from home on the previous day, and that he had
been afterwards ordered to wait near the church (but out of sight
of the vestry) to assist his master, in the event of my escaping
the attack on the road, and of a collision occurring between Sir
Percival and myself.  It is necessary to add, that the man's own
testimony was never obtained to confirm this view.  The medical
report of him declared that what little mental faculty he
possessed was seriously shaken; nothing satisfactory was extracted
from him at the adjourned inquest, and for aught I know to the
contrary, he may never have recovered to this day.

I returned to the hotel at Welmingham so jaded in body and mind,
so weakened and depressed by all that I had gone through, as to be
quite unfit to endure the local gossip about the inquest, and to
answer the trivial questions that the talkers addressed to me in
the coffee-room.  I withdrew from my scanty dinner to my cheap
garret-chamber to secure myself a little quiet, and to think
undisturbed of Laura and Marian.

If I had been a richer man I would have gone back to London, and
would have comforted myself with a sight of the two dear faces
again that night.  But I was bound to appear, if called on, at the
adjourned inquest, and doubly bound to answer my bail before the
magistrate at Knowlesbury.  Our slender resources had suffered
already, and the doubtful future--more doubtful than ever now--
made me dread decreasing our means unnecessarily by allowing
myself an indulgence even at the small cost of a double railway
journey in the carriages of the second class.

The next day--the day immediately following the inquest--was left
at my own disposal.  I began the morning by again applying at the
post-office for my regular report from Marian.  It was waiting for
me as before, and it was written throughout in good spirits.  I
read the letter thankfully, and then set forth with my mind at
ease for the day to go to Old Welmingham, and to view the scene of
the fire by the morning light.

What changes met me when I got there!

Through all the ways of our unintelligible world the trivial and
the terrible walk hand in hand together.  The irony of
circumstances holds no mortal catastrophe in respect.  When I
reached the church, the trampled condition of the burial-ground
was the only serious trace left to tell of the fire and the death. 
A rough hoarding of boards had been knocked up before the vestry
doorway.  Rude caricatures were scrawled on it already, and the
village children were fighting and shouting for the possession of
the best peep-hole to see through.  On the spot where I had heard
the cry for help from the burning room, on the spot where the
panic-stricken servant had dropped on his knees, a fussy flock of
poultry was now scrambling for the first choice of worms after the
rain; and on the ground at my feet, where the door and its
dreadful burden had been laid, a workman's dinner was waiting for
him, tied up in a yellow basin, and his faithful cur in charge was
yelping at me for coming near the food.  The old clerk, looking
idly at the slow commencement of the repairs, had only one
interest that he could talk about now--the interest of escaping
all blame for his own part on account of the accident that had
happened.  One of the village women, whose white wild face I
remembered the picture of terror when we pulled down the beam, was
giggling with another woman, the picture of inanity, over an old
washing-tub.  There is nothing serious in mortality!  Solomon in
all his glory was Solomon with the elements of the contemptible
lurking in every fold of his robes and in every corner of his
palace.

As I left the place, my thoughts turned, not for the first time,
to the complete overthrow that all present hope of establishing
Laura's identity had now suffered through Sir Percival's death. 
He was gone--and with him the chance was gone which had been the
one object of all my labours and all my hopes.

Could I look at my failure from no truer point of view than this?

Suppose he had lived, would that change of circumstance have
altered the result? Could I have made my discovery a marketable
commodity, even for Laura's sake, after I had found out that
robbery of the rights of others was the essence of Sir Percival's
crime? Could I have offered the price of MY silence for HIS
confession of the conspiracy, when the effect of that silence must
have been to keep the right heir from the estates, and the right
owner from the name? Impossible! If Sir Percival had lived, the
discovery, from which (In my ignorance of the true nature of the
Secret) I had hoped so much, could not have been mine to suppress
or to make public, as I thought best, for the vindication of
Laura's rights.  In common honesty and common honour I must have
gone at once to the stranger whose birthright had been usurped--I
must have renounced the victory at the moment when it was mine by
placing my discovery unreservedly in that stranger's hands--and I
must have faced afresh all the difficulties which stood between me
and the one object of my life, exactly as I was resolved in my
heart of hearts to face them now!

I returned to Welmingham with my mind composed, feeling more sure
of myself and my resolution than I had felt yet.

On my way to the hotel I passed the end of the square in which
Mrs. Catherick lived.  Should I go back to the house, and make
another attempt to see her.  No.  That news of Sir Percival's
death, which was the last news she ever expected to hear, must
have reached her hours since.  All the proceedings at the inquest
had been reported in the local paper that morning--there was
nothing I could tell her which she did not know already.  My
interest in making her speak had slackened.  I remembered the
furtive hatred in her face when she said, "There is no news of Sir
Percival that I don't expect--except the news of his death." I
remembered the stealthy interest in her eyes when they settled on
me at parting, after she had spoken those words.  Some instinct,
deep in my heart, which I felt to be a true one, made the prospect
of again entering her presence repulsive to me--I turned away from
the square, and went straight back to the hotel.

Some hours later, while I was resting in the coffee-room, a letter
was placed in my hands by the waiter.  It was addressed to me by
name, and I found on inquiry that it had been left at the bar by a
woman just as it was near dusk, and just before the gas was
lighted.  She had said nothing, and she had gone away again before
there was time to speak to her, or even to notice who she was.

I opened the letter.  It was neither dated nor signed, and the
handwriting was palpably disguised.  Before I had read the first
sentence, however, I knew who my correspondent was--Mrs.
Catherick.

The letter ran as follows--I copy it exactly, word for word:--



THE STORY CONTINUED BY MRS. CATHERICK


SIR,--You have not come back, as you said you would.  No matter--I
know the news, and I write to tell you so.  Did you see anything
particular in my face when you left me? I was wondering, in my own
mind, whether the day of his downfall had come at last, and
whether you were the chosen instrument for working it.  You were,
and you HAVE worked it.

You were weak enough, as I have heard, to try and save his life. 
If you had succeeded, I should have looked upon you as my enemy. 
Now you have failed, I hold you as my friend.  Your inquiries
frightened him into the vestry by night--your inquiries, without
your privity and against your will, have served the hatred and
wreaked the vengeance of three-and-twenty vears.  Thank you, sir,
in spite of yourself.

I owe something to the man who has done this.  How can I pay my
debt? If I was a young woman still I might say, "Come, put your
arm round my waist, and kiss me, if you like." I should have been
fond enough of you even to go that length, and you would have
accepted my invitation--you would, sir, twenty years ago! But I am
an old woman now.  Well! I can satisfy your curiosity, and pay my
debt in that way.  You HAD a great curiosity to know certain
private affairs of mine when you came to see me--private affairs
which all your sharpness could not look into without my help--
private affairs which you have not discovered, even now.  You
SHALL discover them--your curiosity shall be satisfied.  I will
take any trouble to please you, my estimable young friend!

You were a little boy, I suppose, in the year twenty-seven? I was
a handsome young woman at that time, living at Old Welmingham.  I
had a contemptible fool for a husband.  I had also the honour of
being acquainted (never mind how) with a certain gentleman (never
mind whom).  I shall not call him by his name.  Why should I? It
was not his own.  He never had a name: you know that, by this
time, as well as I do.

It will be more to the purpose to tell you how he worked himself
into my good graces.  I was born with the tastes of a lady, and he
gratified them--in other words, he admired me, and he made me
presents.  No woman can resist admiration and presents--especially
presents, provided they happen to be just the thing she wants.  He
was sharp enough to know that--most men are.  Naturally he wanted
something in return--all men do.  And what do you think was the
something? The merest trifle.  Nothing but the key of the vestry,
and the key of the press inside it, when my husband's back was
turned.  Of course he lied when I asked him why he wished me to
get him the keys in that private way.  He might have saved himself
the trouble--I didn't believe him.  But I liked my presents, and I
wanted more.  So I got him the keys, without my husband's
knowledge, and I watched him, without his own knowledge.  Once,
twice, four times I watched him, and the fourth time I found him
out.

I was never over-scrupulous where other people's affairs were
concerned, and I was not over-scrupulous about his adding one to
the marriages in the register on his own account.

Of course I knew it was wrong, but it did no harm to me, which was
one good reason for not making a fuss about it.  And I had not got
a gold watch and chain, which was another, still better--and he
had promised me one from London only the day before, which was a
third, best of all.  If I had known what the law considered the
crime to be, and how the law punished it, I should have taken
proper care of myself, and have exposed him then and there.  But I
knew nothing, and I longed for the gold watch.  All the conditions
I insisted on were that he should take me into his confidence and
tell me everything.  I was as curious about his affairs then as
you are about mine now.  He granted my conditions--why, you will
see presently.

This, put in short, is what I heard from him.  He did not
willingly tell me all that I tell you here.  I drew some of it
from him by persuasion and some of it by questions.  I was
determined to have all the truth, and I believe I got it.

He knew no more than any one else of what the state of things
really was between his father and mother till after his mother's
death.  Then his father confessed it, and promised to do what he
could for his son.  He died having done nothing--not having even
made a will.  The son (who can blame him?) wisely provided for
himself.  He came to England at once, and took possession of the
property.  There was no one to suspect him, and no one to say him
nay.  His father and mother had always lived as man and wife--none
of the few people who were acquainted with them ever supposed them
to be anything else.  The right person to claim the property (if
the truth had been known) was a distant relation, who had no idea
of ever getting it, and who was away at sea when his father died. 
He had no difficulty so far--he took possession, as a matter of
course.  But he could not borrow money on the property as a matter
of course.  There were two things wanted of him before he could do
this.  One was a certificate of his birth, and the other was a
certificate of his parents' marriage.  The certificate of his
birth was easily got--he was born abroad, and the certificate was
there in due form.  The other matter was a difficulty, and that
difficulty brought him to Old Welmingham.

But for one consideration he might have gone to Knowlesbury
instead.

His mother had been living there just before she met with his
father--living under her maiden name, the truth being that she was
really a married woman, married in Ireland, where her husband had
ill-used her, and had afterwards gone off with some other person. 
I give you this fact on good authority--Sir Felix mentioned it to
his son as the reason why he had not married.  You may wonder why
the son, knowing that his parents had met each other at
Knowlesbury, did not play his first tricks with the register of
that church, where it might have been fairly presumed his father
and mother were married.  The reason was that the clergyman who
did duty at Knowlesbury church, in the year eighteen hundred and
three (when, according to his birth certificate, his father and
mother OUGHT to have been married), was alive still when he took
possession of the property in the New Year of eighteen hundred and
twenty-seven.  This awkward circumstance forced him to extend his
inquiries to our neighbourhood.  There no such danger existed, the
former clergyman at our church having been dead for some years.

Old Welmingham suited his purpose as well as Knowlesbury.  His
father had removed his mother from Knowlesbury, and had lived with
her at a cottage on the river, a little distance from our village. 
People who had known his solitary ways when he was single did not
wonder at his solitary ways when he was supposed to be married. 
If he had not been a hideous creature to look at, his retired life
with the lady might have raised suspicions; but, as things were,
his hiding his ugliness and his deformity in the strictest privacy
surprised nobody.  He lived in our neighbourhood till he came in
possession of the Park.  After three or four and twenty years had
passed, who was to say (the clergyman being dead) that his
marriage had not been as private as the rest of his life, and that
it had not taken place at Old Welmingham church?

So, as I told you, the son found our neighbourhood the surest
place he could choose to set things right secretly in his own
interests.  It may surprise you to hear that what he really did to
the marriage register was done on the spur of the moment--done on
second thoughts.

His first notion was only to tear the leaf out (in the right year
and month), to destroy it privately, to go back to London, and to
tell the lawyers to get him the necessary certificate of his
father's marriage, innocently referring them of course to the date
on the leaf that was gone.  Nobody could say his father and mother
had NOT been married after that, and whether, under the
circumstances, they would stretch a point or not about lending him
the money (he thought they would), he had his answer ready at all
events, if a question was ever raised about his right to the name
and the estate.

But when he came to look privately at the register for himself, he
found at the bottom of one of the pages for the year eighteen
hundred and three a blank space left, seemingly through there
being no room to make a long entry there, which was made instead
at the top of the next page.  The sight of this chance altered all
his plans.  It was an opportunity he had never hoped for, or
thought of--and he took it--you know how.  The blank space, to
have exactly tallied with his birth certificate, ought to have
occurred in the July part of the register.  It occurred in the
September part instead.  However, in this case, if suspicious
questions were asked, the answer was not hard to find.  He had
only to describe himself as a seven months' child.

I was fool enough, when he told me his story, to feel some
interest and some pity for him--which was just what he calculated
on, as you will see.  I thought him hardly used.  It was not his
fault that his father and mother were not married, and it was not
his father's and mother's fault either.  A more scrupulous woman
than I was--a woman who had not set her heart on a gold watch and
chain--would have found some excuses for him.  At all events, I
held my tongue, and helped to screen what he was about.

He was some time getting the ink the right colour (mixing it over
and over again in pots and bottles of mine), and some time
afterwards in practising the handwriting.  But he succeeded in the
end, and made an honest woman of his mother after she was dead in
her grave! So far, I don't deny that he behaved honourably enough
to myself.  He gave me my watch and chain, and spared no expense
in buying them; both were of superior workmanship, and very
expensive.  I have got them still--the watch goes beautifully.

You said the other day that Mrs. Clements had told you everything
she knew.  In that case there is no need for me to write about the
trumpery scandal by which I was the sufferer--the innocent
sufferer, I positively assert.  You must know as well as I do what
the notion was which my husband took into his head when he found
me and my fine-gentleman acquaintance meeting each other privately
and talking secrets together.  But what you don't know is how it
ended between that same gentleman and myself.  You shall read and
see how he behaved to me.

The first words I said to him, when I saw the turn things had
taken, were, "Do me justice--clear my character of a stain on it
which you know I don't deserve.  I don't want you to make a clean
breast of it to my husband--only tell him, on your word of honour
as a gentleman, that he is wrong, and that I am not to blame in
the way he thinks I am.  Do me that justice, at least, after all I
have done for you." He flatly refused, in so many words.  He told
me plainly that it was his interest to let my husband and all my
neighbours believe the falsehood--because, as long as they did so
they were quite certain never to suspect the truth.  I had a
spirit of my own, and I told him they should know the truth from
my lips.  His reply was short, and to the point.  If I spoke, I
was a lost woman, as certainly as he was a lost man.

Yes! it had come to that.  He had deceived me about the risk I ran
in helping him.  He had practised on my ignorance, he had tempted
me with his gifts, he had interested me with his story--and the
result of it was that he made me his accomplice.  He owned this
coolly, and he ended by telling me, for the first time, what the
frightful punishment really was for his offence, and for any one
who helped him to commit it.  In those days the law was not so
tender-hearted as I hear it is now.  Murderers were not the only
people liable to be hanged, and women convicts were not treated
like ladies in undeserved distress.  I confess he frightened me--
the mean impostor! the cowardly blackguard! Do you understand now
how I hated him? Do you understand why I am taking all this
trouble--thankfully taking it--to gratify the curiosity of the
meritorious young gentleman who hunted him down?

Well, to go on.  He was hardly fool enough to drive me to
downright desperation.  I was not the sort of woman whom it was
quite safe to hunt into a corner--he knew that, and wisely quieted
me with proposals for the future.

I deserved some reward (he was kind enough to say) for the service
I had done him, and some compensation (he was so obliging as to
add) for what I had suffered.  He was quite willing--generous
scoundrel!--to make me a handsome yearly allowance, payable
quarterly, on two conditions.  First, I was to hold my tongue--in
my own interests as well as in his.  Secondly, I was not to stir
away from Welmingham without first letting him know, and waiting
till I had obtained his permission.  In my own neighbourhood, no
virtuous female friends would tempt me into dangerous gossiping at
the tea-table.  In my own neighbourhood, he would always know
where to find me.  A hard condition, that second one--but I
accepted it.

What else was I to do? I was left helpless, with the prospect of a
coming incumbrance in the shape of a child.  What else was I to
do? Cast myself on the mercy of my runaway idiot of a husband who
had raised the scandal against me? I would have died first. 
Besides, the allowance WAS a handsome one.  I had a better income,
a better house over my head, better carpets on my floors, than
half the women who turned up the whites of their eyes at the sight
of me.  The dress of Virtue, in our parts, was cotton print.  I
had silk.

So I accepted the conditions he offered me, and made the best of
them, and fought my battle with my respectable neighbours on their
own ground, and won it in course of time--as you saw yourself. 
How I kept his Secret (and mine) through all the years that have
passed from that time to this, and whether my late daughter, Anne,
ever really crept into my confidence, and got the keeping of the
Secret too--are questions, I dare say, to which you are curious to
find an answer.  Well! my gratitude refuses you nothing.  I will
turn to a fresh page and give you the answer immediately.  But you
must excuse one thing--you must excuse my beginning, Mr.
Hartright, with an expression of surprise at the interest which
you appear to have felt in my late daughter.  It is quite
unaccountable to me.  If that interest makes you anxious for any
particulars of her early life, I must refer you to Mrs. Clements,
who knows more of the subject than I do.  Pray understand that I
do not profess to have been at all over-fond of my late daughter. 
She was a worry to me from first to last, with the additional
disadvantage of being always weak in the head.  You like candour,
and I hope this satisfies you.

There is no need to trouble you with many personal particulars
relating to those past times.  It will be enough to say that I
observed the terms of the bargain on my side, and that I enjoyed
my comfortable income in return, paid quarterly.

Now and then I got away and changed the scene for a short time,
always asking leave of my lord and master first, and generally
getting it.  He was not, as I have already told you, fool enough
to drive me too hard, and he could reasonably rely on my holding
my tongue for my own sake, if not for his.  One of my longest
trips away from home was the trip I took to Limmeridge to nurse a
half-sister there, who was dying.  She was reported to have saved
money, and I thought it as well (in case any accident happened to
stop my allowance) to look after my own interests in that
direction.  As things turned out, however, my pains were all
thrown away, and I got nothing, because nothing was to be had.

I had taken Anne to the north with me, having my whims and
fancies, occasionally, about my child, and getting, at such times,
jealous of Mrs. Clements' influence over her.  I never liked Mrs.
Clements.  She was a poor, empty-headed, spiritless woman--what
you call a born drudge--and I was now and then not averse to
plaguing her by taking Anne away.  Not knowing what else to do
with my girl while I was nursing in Cumberland, I put her to
school at Limmeridge.  The lady of the manor, Mrs. Fairlie (a
remarkably plain-looking woman, who had entrapped one of the
handsomest men in England into marrying her), amused me
wonderfully by taking a violent fancy to my girl.  The consequence
was, she learnt nothing at school, and was petted and spoilt at
Limmeridge House.  Among other whims and fancies which they taught
her there, they put some nonsense into her head about always
wearing white.  Hating white and liking colours myself, I
determined to take the nonsense out of her head as soon as we got
home again.

Strange to say, my daughter resolute]y resisted me.  When she HAD
got a notion once fixed in her mind she was, like other half-
witted people, as obstinate as a mule in keeping it.  We
quarrelled finely, and Mrs. Clements, not liking to see it, I
suppose, offered to take Anne away to live in London with her.  I
should have said Yes, if Mrs. Clements had not sided with my
daughter about her dressing herself in white.  But being
determined she should NOT dress herself in white, and disliking
Mrs. Clements more than ever for taking part against me, I said
No, and meant No, and stuck to No.  The consequence was, my
daughter remained with me, and the consequence of that, in its
turn, was the first serious quarrel that happened about the
Secret.

The circumstance took place long after the time I have just been
writing of.  I had been settled for years in the new town, and was
steadily living down my bad character and slowly gaining ground
among the respectable inhabitants.  It helped me forward greatly
towards this object to have my daughter with me.  Her harmlessness
and her fancy for dressing in white excited a certain amount of
sympathy.  I left off opposing her favourite whim on that account,
because some of the sympathy was sure, in course of time, to fall
to my share.  Some of it did fall.  I date my getting a choice of
the two best sittings to let in the church from that time, and I
date the clergyman's first bow from my getting the sittings.

Well, being settled in this way, I received a letter one morning
from that highly born gentleman (now deceased) in answer to one of
mine, warning him, according to agreement, of my wishing to leave
the town for a little change of air and scene.

The ruffianly side of him must have been uppermost, I suppose,
when he got my letter, for he wrote back, refusing me in such
abominably insolent language, that I lost all command over myself,
and abused him, in my daughter's presence, as "a low impostor whom
I could ruin for life if I chose to open my lips and let out his
Secret." I said no more about him than that, being brought to my
senses as soon as those words had escaped me by the sight of my
daughter's face looking eagerly and curiously at mine.  I
instantly ordered her out of the room until I had composed myself
again.

My sensations were not pleasant, I can tell you, when I came to
reflect on my own folly.  Anne had been more than usually crazy
and queer that year, and when I thought of the chance there might
be of her repeating my words in the town, and mentioning HIS name
in connection with them, if inquisitive people got hold of her, I
was finely terrified at the possible consequences.  My worst fears
for myself, my worst dread of what he might do, led me no farther
than this.  I was quite unprepared for what really did happen only
the next day.

On that next day, without any warning to me to expect him, he came
to the house.

His first words, and the tone in which he spoke them, surly as it
was, showed me plainly enough that he had repented already of his
insolent answer to my application, and that he had come in a
mighty bad temper to try and set matters right again before it was
too late.  Seeing my daughter in the room with me (I had been
afraid to let her out of my sight after what had happened the day
before) he ordered her away.  They neither of them liked each
other, and he vented the ill-temper on HER which he was afraid to
show to ME.

"Leave us," he said, looking at her over his shoulder.  She looked
back over HER shoulder and waited as if she didn't care to go. 
"Do you hear?" he roared out, "leave the room." "Speak to me
civilly," says she, getting red in the face.  "Turn the idiot
out," says he, looking my way.  She had always had crazy notions
of her own about her dignity, and that word "idiot " upset her in
a moment.  Before I could interfere she stepped up to him in a
fine passion.  "Beg my pardon, directly," says she, "or I'll make
it the worse for you.  I'll let out your Secret.  I can ruin you
for life if I choose to open my lips." My own words!--repeated
exactly from what I had said the day before--repeated, in his
presence, as if they had come from herself.  He sat speechless, as
white as the paper I am writing on, while I pushed her out of the
room.  When he recovered himself----

No! I am too respectable a woman to mention what he said when he
recovered himself.  My pen is the pen of a member of the rector's
congregation, and a subscriber to the "Wednesday Lectures on
Justification by Faith"--how can you expect me to employ it in
writing bad language? Suppose, for yourself, the raging, swearing
frenzy of the lowest ruffian in England, and let us get on
together, as fast as may be, to the way in which it all ended.

It ended, as you probably guess by this time, in his insisting on
securing his own safety by shutting her up.

I tried to set things right.  I told him that she had merely
repeated, like a parrot, the words she had heard me say and that
she knew no particulars whatever, because I had mentioned none.  I
explained that she had affected, out of crazy spite against him,
to know what she really did NOT know--that she only wanted to
threaten him and aggravate him for speaking to her as he had just
spoken--and that my unlucky words gave her just the chance of
doing mischief of which she was in search.  I referred him to
other queer ways of hers, and to his own experience of the
vagaries of half-witted people--it was all to no purpose--he would
not believe me on my oath--he was absolutely certain I had
betrayed the whole Secret.  In short, he would hear of nothing but
shutting her up.

Under these circumstances, I did my duty as a mother.  "No pauper
Asylum," I said, "I won't have her put in a pauper Asylum.  A
Private Establishment, if you please.  I have my feelings as a
mother, and my character to preserve in the town, and I will
submit to nothing but a Private Establishment, of the sort which
my genteel neighbours would choose for afflicted relatives of
their own." Those were my words.  It is gratifying to me to
reflect that I did my duty.  Though never overfond of my late
daughter, I had a proper pride about her.  No pauper stain--thanks
to my firmness and resolution--ever rested on MY child.

Having carried my point (which I did the more easily, in
consequence of the facilities offered by private Asylums), I could
not refuse to admit that there were certain advantages gained by
shutting her up.  In the first place, she was taken excellent care
of--being treated (as I took care to mention in the town) on the
footing of a lady.  In the second place, she was kept away from
Welmingham, where she might have set people suspecting and
inquiring, by repeating my own incautious words.

The only drawback of putting her under restraint was a very slight
one.  We merely turned her empty boast about knowing the Secret
into a fixed delusion.  Having first spoken in sheer crazy
spitefulness against the man who had offended her, she was cunning
enough to see that she had seriously frightened him, and sharp
enough afterwards to discover that HE was concerned in shutting
her up.  The consequence was she flamed out into a perfect frenzy
of passion against him, going to the Asylum, and the first words
she said to the nurses, after they had quieted her, were, that she
was put in confinement for knowing his Secret, and that she meant
to open her lips and ruin him, when the right time came.

She may have said the same thing to you, when you thoughtlessly
assisted her escape.  She certainly said it (as I heard last
summer) to the unfortunate woman who married our sweet-tempered,
nameless gentleman lately deceased.  If either you, or that
unlucky lady, had questioned my daughter closely, and had insisted
on her explaining what she really meant, you would have found her
lose all her self-importance suddenly, and get vacant, and
restless, and confused--you would have discovered that I am
writing nothing here but the plain truth.  She knew that there was
a Secret--she knew who was connected with it--she knew who would
suffer by its being known--and beyond that, whatever airs of
importance she may have given herself, whatever crazy boasting she
may have indulged in with strangers, she never to her dying day
knew more.

Have I satisfied your curiosity? I have taken pains enough to
satisfy it at any rate.  There is really nothing else I have to
tell you about myself or my daughter.  My worst responsibilities,
so far as she was concerned, were all over when she was secured in
the Asylum.  I had a form of letter relating to the circumstances
under which she was shut up, given me to write, in answer to one
Miss Halcombe, who was curious in the matter, and who must have
heard plenty of lies about me from a certain tongue well
accustomed to the telling of the same.  And I did what I could
afterwards to trace my runaway daughter, and prevent her from
doing mischief by making inquiries myself in the neighbourhood
where she was falsely reported to have been seen.  But these, and
other trifles like them, are of little or no interest to you after
what you have heard already.

So far, I have written in the friendliest possible spirit.  But I
cannot close this letter without adding a word here of serious
remonstrance and reproof, addressed to yourself.

In the course of your personal interview with me, you audaciously
referred to my late daughter's parentage on the father's side, as
if that parentage was a matter of doubt.  This was highly improper
and very ungentlemanlike on your part! If we see each other again,
remember, if you please, that I will allow no liberties to be
taken with my reputation, and that the moral atmosphere of
Welmingham (to use a favourite expression of my friend the
rector's) must not be tainted by loose conversation of any kind. 
If you allow yourself to doubt that my husband was Anne's father,
you personally insult me in the grossest manner.  If you have
felt, and if you still continue to feel, an unhallowed curiosity
on this subject, I recommend you, in your own interests, to check
it at once, and for ever.  On this side of the grave, Mr.
Hartright, whatever may happen on the other, THAT curiosity will
never be gratified.

Perhaps, after what I have just said, you will see the necessity
of writing me an apology.  Do so, and I will willingly receive it. 
I will, afterwards, if your wishes point to a second interview
with me, go a step farther, and receive you.  My circumstances
only enable me to invite you to tea--not that they are at all
altered for the worse by what has happened.  I have always lived,
as I think I told you, well within my income, and I have saved
enough, in the last twenty years, to make me quite comfortable for
the rest of my life.  It is not my intention to leave Welmingham. 
There are one or two little advantages which I have still to gain
in the town.  The clergyman bows to me--as you saw.  He is
married, and his wife is not quite so civil.  I propose to join
the Dorcas Society, and I mean to make the clergyman's wife bow to
me next.

If you favour me with your company, pray understand that the
conversation must be entirely on general subjects.  Any attempted
reference to this letter will be quite useless--I am determined
not to acknowledge having written it.  The evidence has been
destroyed in the fire, I know, but I think it desirable to err on
the side of caution, nevertheless.

On this account no names are mentioned here, nor is any signature
attached to these lines: the handwriting is disguised throughout,
and I mean to deliver the letter myself, under circumstances which
will prevent all fear of its being traced to my house.  You can
have no possible cause to complain of these precautions, seeing
that they do not affect the information I here communicate, in
consideration of the special indulgence which you have deserved at
my hands.  My hour for tea is half-past five, and my buttered
toast waits for nobody.



THE STORY CONTINUED BY WALTER HARTRIGHT

I


My first impulse, after reading Mrs. Catherick's extraordinary
narrative, was to destroy it.  The hardened shameless depravity of
the whole composition, from beginning to end--the atrocious
perversity of mind which persistently associated me with a
calamity for which I was in no sense answerable, and with a death
which I had risked my life in trying to avert--so disgusted me,
that I was on the point of tearing the letter, when a
consideration suggested itself which warned me to wait a little
before I destroyed it.

This consideration was entirely unconnected with Sir Percival. 
The information communicated to me, so far as it concerned him,
did little more than confirm the conclusions at which I had
already arrived.

He had committed his offence, as I had supposed him to have
committed it, and the absence of all reference, on Mrs.
Catherick's part, to the duplicate register at Knowlesbury,
strengthened my previous conviction that the existence of the
book, and the risk of detection which it implied, must have been
necessarily unknown to Sir Percival.  My interest in the question
of the forgery was now at an end, and my only object in keeping
the letter was to make it of some future service in clearing up
the last mystery that still remained to baffle me--the parentage
of Anne Catherick on the father's side.  There were one or two
sentences dropped in her mother's narrative, which it might be
useful to refer to again, when matters of more immediate
importance allowed me leisure to search for the missing evidence. 
I did not despair of still finding that evidence, and I had lost
none of my anxiety to discover it, for I had lost none of my
interest in tracing the father of the poor creature who now lay at
rest in Mrs. Fairlie's grave.

Accordingly, I sealed up the letter and put it away carefully in
my pocket-book, to be referred to again when the time came.

The next day was my last in Hampshire.  When I had appeared again
before the magistrate at Knowlesbury, and when I had attended at
the adjourned inquest, I should be free to return to London by the
afternoon or the evening train.

My first errand in the morning was, as usual, to the post-office. 
The letter from Marian was there, but I thought when it was handed
to me that it felt unusually light.  I anxiously opened the
envelope.  There was nothing inside but a small strip of paper
folded in two.  The few blotted hurriedly-written lines which were
traced on it contained these words:

"Come back as soon as you can.  I have been obliged to move.  Come
to Gower's Walk, Fulham (number five).  I will be on the look-out
for you.  Don't be alarmed about us, we are both safe and well. 
But come back.--Marian."

The news which those lines contained--news which I instantly
associated with some attempted treachery on the part of Count
Fosco--fairly overwhelmed me.  I stood breathless with the paper
crumpled up in my hand.  What had happened? What subtle wickedness
had the Count planned and executed in my absence? A night had
passed since Marian's note was written--hours must elapse still
before I could get back to them--some new disaster might have
happened already of which I was ignorant.  And here, miles and
miles away from them, here I must remain--held, doubly held, at
the disposal of the law!

I hardly know to what forgetfulness of my obligations anxiety and
alarm might not have tempted me, but for the quieting influence of
my faith in Marian.  My absolute reliance on her was the one
earthly consideration which helped me to restrain myself, and gave
me courage to wait.  The inquest was the first of the impediments
in the way of my freedom of action.  I attended it at the
appointed time, the legal formalities requiring my presence in the
room, but as it turned out, not calling on me to repeat my
evidence.  This useless delay was a hard trial, although I did my
best to quiet my impatience by following the course of the
proceedings as closely as I could.

The London solicitor of the deceased (Mr. Merriman) was among the
persons present.  But he was quite unable to assist the objects of
the inquiry.  He could only say that he was inexpressibly shocked
and astonished, and that he could throw no light whatever on the
mysterious circumstances of the case.  At intervals during the
adjourned investigation, he suggested questions which the Coroner
put, but which led to no results.  After a patient inquiry, which
lasted nearly three hours, and which exhausted every available
source of information, the jury pronounced the customary verdict
in cases of sudden death by accident.  They added to the formal
decision a statement, that there had been no evidence to show how
the keys had been abstracted, how the fire had been caused, or
what the purpose was for which the deceased had entered the
vestry.  This act closed the proceedings.  The legal
representative of the dead man was left to provide for the
necessities of the interment, and the witnesses were free to
retire.

Resolved not to lose a minute in getting to Knowlesbury, I paid my
bill at the hotel, and hired a fly to take me to the town.  A
gentleman who heard me give the order, and who saw that I was
going alone, informed me that he lived in the neighbourhood of
Knowlesbury, and asked if I would have any objection to his
getting home by sharing the fly with me.  I accepted his proposal
as a matter of course.

Our conversation during the drive was naturally occupied by the
one absorbing subject of local interest.

My new acquaintance had some knowledge of the late Sir Percival's
solicitor, and he and Mr. Merriman had been discussing the state
of the deceased gentleman's affairs and the succession to the
property.  Sir Percival's embarrassments were so well known all
over the county that his solicitor could only make a virtue of
necessity and plainly acknowledge them.  He had died without
leaving a will, and he had no personal property to bequeath, even
if he had made one, the whole fortune which he had derived from
his wife having been swallowed up by his creditors.  The heir to
the estate (Sir Percival having left no issue) was a son of Sir
Felix Glyde's first cousin, an officer in command of an East
Indiaman.  He would find his unexpected inheritance sadly
encumbered, but the property would recover with time, and, if "the
captain" was careful, he might be a rich man yet before he died.

Absorbed as I was in the one idea of getting to London, this
information (which events proved to be perfectly correct) had an
interest of its own to attract my attention.  I thought it
justified me in keeping secret my discovery of Sir Percival's
fraud.  The heir, whose rights he had usurped, was the heir who
would now have the estate.  The income from it, for the last
three-and-twenty years, which should properly have been his, and
which the dead man had squandered to the last farthing, was gone
beyond recall.  If I spoke, my speaking would confer advantage on
no one.  If I kept the secret, my silence concealed the character
of the man who had cheated Laura into marrying him.  For her sake,
I wished to conceal it--for her sake, still, I tell this story
under feigned names.

I parted with my chance companion at Knowlesbury, and went at once
to the town-hall.  As I had anticipated, no one was present to
prosecute the case against me--the necessary formalities were
observed, and I was discharged.  On leaving the court a letter
from Mr. Dawson was put into my hand.  It informed me that he was
absent on professional duty, and it reiterated the offer I had
already received from him of any assistance which I might require
at his hands.  I wrote back, warmly acknowledging my obligations
to his kindness, and apologising for not expressing my thanks
personally, in consequence of my immediate recall on pressing
business to town.

Half an hour later I was speeding back to London by the express
train.



II


It was between nine and ten o'clock before I reached Fulham, and
found my way to Gower's Walk.

Both Laura and Marian came to the door to let me in.  I think we
had hardly known how close the tie was which bound us three
together, until the evening came which united us again.  We met as
if we had been parted for months instead of for a few days only. 
Marian's face was sadly worn and anxious.  I saw who had known all
the danger and borne all the trouble in my absence the moment I
looked at her.  Laura's brighter looks and better spirits told me
how carefully she had been spared all knowledge of the dreadful
death at Welmingham, and of the true reason of our change of
abode.

The stir of the removal seemed to have cheered and interested her. 
She only spoke of it as a happy thought of Marian's to surprise me
on my return with a change from the close, noisy street to the
pleasant neighbourhood of trees and fields and the river.  She was
full of projects for the future--of the drawings she was to
finish--of the purchasers I had found in the country who were to
buy them--of the shillings and sixpences she had saved, till her
purse was so heavy that she proudly asked me to weigh it in my own
hand.  The change for the better which had been wrought in her
during the few days of my absence was a surprise to me for which I
was quite unprepared--and for all the unspeakable happiness of
seeing it, I was indebted to Marian's courage and to Marian's
love.

When Laura had left us, and when we could speak to one another
without restraint, I tried to give some expression to the
gratitude and the admiration which filled my heart.  But the
generous creature would not wait to hear me.  That sublime self-
forgetfulness of women, which yields so much and asks so little,
turned all her thoughts from herself to me.

"I had only a moment left before post-time," she said, "or I
should have written less abruptly.  You look worn and weary,
Walter.  I am afraid my letter must have seriously alarmed you?"

"Only at first," I replied.  "My mind was quieted, Marian, by my
trust in you.  Was I right in attributing this sudden change of
place to some threatened annoyance on the part of Count Fosco?"

"Perfectly right," she said.  "I saw him yesterday, and worse than
that, Walter--I spoke to him."

"Spoke to him? Did he know where we lived? Did he come to the
house?"

"He did.  To the house--but not upstairs.  Laura never saw him--
Laura suspects nothing.  I will tell you how it happened: the
danger, I believe and hope, is over now.  Yesterday, I was in the
sitting-room, at our old lodgings.  Laura was drawing at the
table, and I was walking about and setting things to rights.  I
passed the window, and as I passed it, looked out into the street. 
There, on the opposite side of the way, I saw the Count, with a
man talking to him----"

"Did he notice you at the window?"

"No--at least, I thought not.  I was too violently startled to be
quite sure."

"Who was the other man? A stranger?"

"Not a stranger, Walter.  As soon as I could draw my breath again,
I recognised him.  He was the owner of the Lunatic Asylum."

"Was the Count pointing out the house to him?"

"No, they were talking together as if they had accidentally met in
the street.  I remained at the window looking at them from behind
the curtain.  If I had turned round, and if Laura had seen my face
at that moment----Thank God, she was absorbed over her drawing!
They soon parted.  The man from the Asylum went one way, and the
Count the other.  I began to hope they were in the street by
chance, till I saw the Count come back, stop opposite to us again,
take out his card-case and pencil, write something, and then cross
the road to the shop below us.  I ran past Laura before she could
see me, and said I had forgotten something upstairs.  As soon as I
was out of the room I went down to the first landing and waited--I
was determined to stop him if he tried to come upstairs.  He made
no such attempt.  The girl from the shop came through the door
into the passage, with his card in her hand--a large gilt card
with his name, and a coronet above it, and these lines underneath
in pencil: 'Dear lady' (yes! the villain could address me in that
way still)--'dear lady, one word, I implore you, on a matter
serious to us both.' If one can think at all, in serious
difficulties, one thinks quick.  I felt directly that it might be
a fatal mistake to leave myself and to leave you in the dark, 
where such a man as the Count was concerned.  I felt that the
doubt of what he might do, in your absence, would be ten times
more trying to me if I declined to see him than if I consented. 
'Ask the gentleman to wait in the shop,' I said.  'I will be with
him in a moment.' I ran upstairs for my bonnet, being determined
not to let him speak to me indoors.  I knew his deep ringing
voice, and I was afraid Laura might hear it, even in the shop.  In
less than a minute I was down again in the passage, and had opened
the door into the street.  He came round to meet me from the shop. 
There he was in deep mourning, with his smooth bow and his deadly
smile, and some idle boys and women near him, staring at his great
size, his fine black clothes, and his large cane with the gold
knob to it.  All the horrible time at Blackwater came back to me
the moment I set eyes on him.  All the old loathing crept and
crawled through me, when he took off his hat with a flourish and
spoke to me, as if we had parted on the friendliest terms hardly a
day since."

"You remember what he said?"

"I can't repeat it, Walter.  You shall know directly what he said
about you---but I can't repeat what he said to me.  It was worse
than the polite insolence of his letter.  My hands tingled to
strike him, as if I had been a man! I only kept them quiet by
tearing his card to pieces under my shawl.  Without saying a word
on my side, I walked away from the house (for fear of Laura seeing
us), and he followed, protesting softly all the way.  In the first
by-street I turned, and asked him what he wanted with me.  He
wanted two things.  First, if I had no objection, to express his
sentiments.  I declined to hear them.  Secondly, to repeat the
warning in his letter.  I asked, what occasion there was for
repeating it.  He bowed and smiled, and said he would explain. 
The explanation exactly confirmed the fears I expressed before you
left us.  I told you, if you remember, that Sir Percival would be
too headstrong to take his friend's advice where you were
concerned, and that there was no danger to be dreaded from the
Count till his own interests were threatened, and he was roused
into acting for himself?"

"I recollect, Marian."

"Well, so it has really turned out.  The Count offered his advice,
but it was refused.  Sir Percival would only take counsel of his
own violence, his own obstinacy, and his own hatred of you.  The
Count let him have his way, first privately ascertaining, in case
of his own interests being threatened next, where we lived.  You
were followed, Walter, on returning here, after your first journey
to Hampshire, by the lawyer's men for some distance from the
railway, and by the Count himself to the door of the house.  How
he contrived to escape being seen by you he did not tell me, but
he found us out on that occasion, and in that way.  Having made
the discovery, he took no advantage of it till the news reached
him of Sir Percival's death, and then, as I told you, he acted for
himself, because he believed you would next proceed against the
dead man's partner in the conspiracy.  He at once made his
arrangements to meet the owner of the Asylum in London, and to
take him to the place where his runaway patient was hidden,
believing that the results, whichever way they ended, would be to
involve you in interminable legal disputes and difficulties, and
to tie your hands for all purposes of offence, so far as he was
concerned.  That was his purpose, on his own confession to me. 
The only consideration which made him hesitate, at the last
moment----"

"Yes?"

"It is hard to acknowledge it, Walter, and yet I must. I was the
only consideration.  No words can say how degraded I feel in my
own estimation when I think of it, but the one weak point in that
man's iron character is the horrible admiration he feels for me. 
I have tried, for the sake of my own self-respect, to disbelieve
it as long as I could; but his looks, his actions, force on me the
shameful conviction of the truth.  The eyes of that monster of
wickedness moistened while he was speaking to me--they did,
Walter! He declared that at the moment of pointing out the house
to the doctor, he thought of my misery if I was separated from
Laura, of my responsibility if I was called on to answer for
effecting her escape, and he risked the worst that you could do to
him, the second time, for my sake.  All he asked was that I would
remember the sacrifice, and restrain your rashness, in my own
interests--interests which he might never be able to consult
again.  I made no such bargain with him--I would have died first. 
But believe him or not, whether it is true or false that he sent
the doctor away with an excuse, one thing is certain, I saw the
man leave him without so much as a glance at our window, or even
at our side of the way."

"I believe it, Marian.  The best men are not consistent in good--
why should the worst men be consistent in evil? At the same time,
I suspect him of merely attempting to frighten you, by threatening
what he cannot really do.  I doubt his power of annoying us, by
means of the owner of the Asylum, now that Sir Percival is dead,
and Mrs. Catherick is free from all control.  But let me hear
more.  What did the Count say of me?"

"He spoke last of you.  His eyes brightened and hardened, and his
manner changed to what I remember it in past times--to that
mixture of pitiless resolution and mountebank mockery which makes
it so impossible to fathom him.  'Warn Mr. Hartright!' he said in
his loftiest manner.  'He has a man of brains to deal with, a man
who snaps his big fingers at the laws and conventions of society,
when he measures himself with ME.  If my lamented friend had taken
my advice, the business of the inquest would have been with the
body of Mr. Hartright.  But my lamented friend was obstinate. 
See! I mourn his loss--inwardly in my soul, outwardly on my hat. 
This trivial crape expresses sensibilities which I summon Mr.
Hartright to respect.  They may be transformed to immeasurable
enmities if he ventures to disturb them.  Let him be content with
what he has got--with what I leave unmolested, for your sake, to
him and to you.  Say to him (with my compliments), if he stirs me,
he has Fosco to deal with.  In the English of the Popular Tongue,
I inform him--Fosco sticks at nothing.  Dear lady, good morning.'
His cold grey eyes settled on my face--he took off his hat
solemnly--bowed, bare-headed--and left me."

"Without returning? without saying more last words?"

"He turned at the corner of the street, and waved his hand, and
then struck it theatrically on his breast.  I lost sight of him
after that.  He disappeared in the opposite direction to our
house, and I ran back to Laura.  Before I was indoors again, I had
made up my mind that we must go.  The house (especially in your
absence) was a place of danger instead of a place of safety, now
that the Count had discovered it.  If I could have felt certain of
your return, I should have risked waiting till you came back.  But
I was certain of nothing, and I acted at once on my own impulse. 
You had spoken, before leaving us, of moving into a quieter
neighbourhood and purer air, for the sake of Laura's health.  I
had only to remind her of that, and to suggest surprising you and
saving you trouble by managing the move in your absence, to make
her quite as anxious for the change as I was.  She helped me to
pack up your things, and she has arranged them all for you in your
new working-room here."

"What made you think of coming to this place?"

"My ignorance of other localities in the neighbourhood of London. 
I felt the necessity of getting as far away as possible from our
old lodgings, and I knew something of Fulham, because I had once
been at school there.  I despatched a messenger with a note, on
the chance that the school might still be in existence.  It was in
existence--the daughters of my old mistress were carrying it on
for her, and they engaged this place from the instructions I had
sent.  It was just post-time when the messenger returned to me
with the address of the house.  We moved after dark--we came here
quite unobserved.  Have I done right, Walter? Have I justified
your trust in me?"

I answered her warmly and gratefully, as I really felt.  But the
anxious look still remained on her face while I was speaking, and
the first question she asked, when I had done, related to Count
Fosco.

I saw that she was thinking of him now with a changed mind.  No
fresh outbreak of anger against him, no new appeal to me to hasten
the day of reckoning escaped her.  Her conviction that the man's
hateful admiration of herself was really sincere, seemed to have
increased a hundredfold her distrust of his unfathomable cunning,
her inborn dread of the wicked energy and vigilance of all his
faculties.  Her voice fell low, her manner was hesitating, her
eyes searched into mine with an eager fear when she asked me what
I thought of his message, and what I meant to do next after
hearing it.

"Not many weeks have passed, Marian," I answered, "since my
interview with Mr. Kyrle.  When he and I parted, the last words I
said to him about Laura were these: 'Her uncle's house shall open
to receive her, in the presence of every soul who followed the
false funeral to the grave; the lie that records her death shall
be publicly erased from the tombstone by the authority of the head
of the family, and the two men who have wronged her shall answer
for their crime to ME, though the justice that sits in tribunals
is powerless to pursue them.' One of those men is beyond mortal
reach.  The other remains, and my resolution remains."

Her eyes lit up--her colour rose.  She said nothing, but I saw all
her sympathies gathering to mine in her face.

"I don't disguise from myself, or from you," I went on, "that the
prospect before us is more than doubtful.  The risks we have run
already are, it may be, trifles compared with the risks that
threaten us in the future, but the venture shall be tried, Marian,
for all that.  I am not rash enough to measure myself against such
a man as the Count before I am well prepared for him.  I have
learnt patience--I can wait my time.  Let him believe that his
message has produced its effect--let him know nothing of us, and
hear nothing of us--let us give him full time to feel secure--his
own boastful nature, unless I seriously mistake him, will hasten
that result.  This is one reason for waiting, but there is another
more important still.  My position, Marian, towards you and
towards Laura ought to be a stronger one than it is now before I
try our last chance."

She leaned near to me, with a look of surprise.

"How can it be stronger?" she asked.

"I will tell you," I replied, "when the time comes.  It has not
come yet--it may never come at all.  I may be silent about it to
Laura for ever--I must be silent now, even to YOU, till I see for
myself that I can harmlessly and honourably speak.  Let us leave
that subject.  There is another which has more pressing claims on
our attention.  You have kept Laura, mercifully kept her, in
ignorance of her husband's death----"

"Oh, Walter, surely it must be long yet before we tell her of it?"

"No, Marian.  Better that you should reveal it to her now, than
that accident, which no one can guard against, should reveal it to
her at some future time.  Spare her all the details--break it to
her very tenderly, but tell her that he is dead."

"You have a reason, Walter, for wishing her to know of her
husband's death besides the reason you have just mentioned?"

"I have."

"A reason connected with that subject which must not be mentioned
between us yet?--which may never be mentioned to Laura at all?"

She dwelt on the last words meaningly.  When I answered her in the
affirmative, I dwelt on them too.

Her face grew pale.  For a while she looked at me with a sad,
hesitating interest.  An unaccustomed tenderness trembled in her
dark eyes and softened her firm lips, as she glanced aside at the
empty chair in which the dear companion of all our joys and
sorrows had been sitting.

"I think I understand," she said.  "I think I owe it to her and to
you, Walter, to tell her of her husband's death."

She sighed, and held my hand fast for a moment--then dropped it
abruptly, and left the room.  On the next day Laura knew that his
death had released her, and that the error and the calamity of her
life lay buried in his tomb.


His name was mentioned among us no more.  Thenceforward, we shrank
from the slightest approach to the subject of his death, and in
the same scrupulous manner, Marian and I avoided all further
reference to that other subject, which, by her consent and mine,
was not to be mentioned between us yet.  It was not the less
present in our minds--it was rather kept alive in them by the
restraint which we had imposed on ourselves.  We both watched
Laura more anxiously than ever, sometimes waiting and hoping,
sometimes waiting and fearing, till the time came.

By degrees we returned to our accustomed way of life.  I resumed
the daily work, which had been suspended during my absence in
Hampshire.  Our new lodgings cost us more than the smaller and
less convenient rooms which we had left, and the claim thus
implied on my increased exertions was strengthened by the
doubtfulness of our future prospects.  Emergencies might yet
happen which would exhaust our little fund at the banker's, and
the work of my hands might be, ultimately, all we had to look to
for support.  More permanent and more lucrative employment than
had yet been offered to me was a necessity of our position--a
necessity for which I now diligently set myself to provide.

It must not be supposed that the interval of rest and seclusion of
which I am now writing, entirely suspended, on my part, all
pursuit of the one absorbing purpose with which my thoughts and
actions are associated in these pages.  That purpose was, for
months and months yet, never to relax its claims on me.  The slow
ripening of it still left me a measure of precaution to take, an
obligation of gratitude to perform, and a doubtful question to
solve.

The measure of precaution related, necessarily, to the Count.  It
was of the last importance to ascertain, if possible, whether his
plans committed him to remaining in England--or, in other words,
to remaining within my reach.  I contrived to set this doubt at
rest by very simple means.  His address in St. John's Wood being
known to me, I inquired in the neighbourhood, and having found out
the agent who had the disposal of the furnished house in which he
lived, I asked if number five, Forest Road, was likely to be let
within a reasonable time.  The reply was in the negative.  I was
informed that the foreign gentleman then residing in the house had
renewed his term of occupation for another six months, and would
remain in possession until the end of June in the following year. 
We were then at the beginning of December only.  I left the agent
with my mind relieved from all present fear of the Count's
escaping me.

The obligation I had to perform took me once more into the
presence of Mrs. Clements.  I had promised to return, and to
confide to her those particulars relating to the death and burial
of Anne Catherick which I had been obliged to withhold at our
first interview.  Changed as circumstances now were, there was no
hindrance to my trusting the good woman with as much of the story
of the conspiracy as it was necessary to tell.  I had every reason
that sympathy and friendly feeling could suggest to urge on me the
speedy performance of my promise, and I did conscientiously and
carefully perform it.  There is no need to burden these pages with
any statement of what passed at the interview.  It will be more to
the purpose to say, that the interview itself necessarily brought
to my mind the one doubtful question still remaining to be solved--
the question of Anne Catherick's parentage on the father's side.

A multitude of small considerations in connection with this
subject--trifling enough in themselves, but strikingly important
when massed together--had latterly led my mind to a conclusion
which I resolved to verify.  I obtained Marian's permission to
write to Major Donthorne, of Varneck Hall (where Mrs. Catherick
had lived in service for some years previous to her marriage), to
ask him certain questions.  I made the inquiries in Marian's name,
and described them as relating to matters of personal history in
her family, which might explain and excuse my application.  When I
wrote the letter I had no certain knowledge that Major Donthorne
was still alive--I despatched it on the chance that he might be
living, and able and willing to reply.

After a lapse of two days proof came, in the shape of a letter,
that the Major was living, and that he was ready to help us.

The idea in my mind when I wrote to him, and the nature of my
inquiries.  will be easily inferred from his reply.  His letter
answered my questions by communicating these important facts--

In the first place, "the late Sir Percival Glyde, of Blackwater
Park," had never set foot in Varneck Hall.  The deceased gentleman
was a total stranger to Major Donthorne, and to all his family.

In the second place, "the late Mr. Philip Fairlie, of Limmeridge
House," had been, in his younger days, the intimate friend and
constant guest of Major Donthorne.  Having refreshed his memory by
looking back to old letters and other papers, the Major was in a
position to say positively that Mr. Philip Fairlie was staying at
Varneck Hall in the month of August, eighteen hundred and twenty-
six, and that he remained there for the shooting during the month
of September and part of October following.  He then left, to the
best of the Major's belief, for Scotland, and did not return to
Varneck Hall till after a lapse of time, when he reappeared in the
character of a newly-married man.

Taken by itself, this statement was, perhaps, of little positive
value, but taken in connection with certain facts, every one of
which either Marian or I knew to be true, it suggested one plain
conclusion that was, to our minds, irresistible.

Knowing, now, that Mr. Philip Fairlie had been at Varneck Hall in
the autumn of eighteen hundred and twenty-six, and that Mrs.
Catherick had been living there in service at the same time, we
knew also--first, that Anne had been born in June, eighteen
hundred and twenty-seven; secondly, that she had always presented
an extraordinary personal resemblance to Laura; and, thirdly, that
Laura herself was strikingly like her father.  Mr. Philip Fairlie
had been one of the notoriously handsome men of his time.  In
disposition entirely unlike his brother Frederick, he was the
spoilt darling of society, especially of the women--an easy,
light-hearted, impulsive, affectionate man--generous to a fault--
constitutionally lax in his principles, and notoriously
thoughtless of moral obligations where women were concerned.  Such
were the facts we knew--such was the character of the man.  Surely
the plain inference that follows needs no pointing out?

Read by the new light which had now broken upon me, even Mrs.
Catherick's letter, in despite of herself, rendered its mite of
assistance towards strengthening the conclusion at which I had
arrived.  She had described Mrs. Fairlie (in writing to me) as
"plain-looking," and as having "entrapped the handsomest man in
England into marrying her." Both assertions were gratuitously
made, and both were false.  Jealous dislike (which, in such a
woman as Mrs. Catherick, would express itself in petty malice
rather than not express itself at all) appeared to me to be the
only assignable cause for the peculiar insolence of her reference
to Mrs. Fairlie, under circumstances which did not necessitate any
reference at all.

The mention here of Mrs. Fairlie's name naturally suggests one
other question.  Did she ever suspect whose child the little girl
brought to her at Limmeridge might be?

Marian's testimony was positive on this point.  Mrs. Fairlie's
letter to her husband, which had been read to me in former days--
the letter describing Anne's resemblance to Laura, and
acknowledging her affectionate interest in the little stranger--
had been written, beyond all question, in perfect innocence of
heart.  It even seemed doubtful, on consideration, whether Mr.
Philip Fairlie himself had been nearer than his wife to any
suspicion of the truth.  The disgracefully deceitful circumstances
under which Mrs. Catherick had married, the purpose of concealment
which the marriage was intended to answer, might well keep her
silent for caution's sake, perhaps for her own pride's sake also,
even assuming that she had the means, in his absence, of
communicating with the father of her unborn child.

As this surmise floated through my mind, there rose on my memory
the remembrance of the Scripture denunciation which we have all
thought of in our time with wonder and with awe: "The sins of the
fathers shall be visited on the children." But for the fatal
resemblance between the two daughters of one father, the
conspiracy of which Anne had been the innocent instrument and
Laura the innocent victim could never have been planned.  With
what unerring and terrible directness the long chain of
circumstances led down from the thoughtless wrong committed by the
father to the heartless injury inflicted on the child!

These thoughts came to me, and others with them, which drew my
mind away to the little Cumberland churchyard where Anne Catherick
now lay buried.  I thought of the bygone days when I had met her
by Mrs. Fairlie's grave, and met her for the last time.  I thought
of her poor helpless hands beating on the tombstone, and her
weary, yearning words, murmured to the dead remains of her
protectress and her friend: "Oh, if I could die, and be hidden and
at rest with YOU!" Little more than a year had passed since she
breathed that wish; and how inscrutably, how awfully, it had been
fulfilled! The words she had spoken to Laura by the shores of the
lake, the very words had now come true.  "Oh, if I could only be
buried with your mother! If I could only wake at her side when the
angel's trumpet sounds and the graves give up their dead at the
resurrection!" Through what mortal crime and horror, through what
darkest windings of the way down to death--the lost creature had
wandered in God's leading to the last home that, living, she never
hoped to reach! In that sacred rest I leave her--in that dread
companionship let her remain undisturbed.


So the ghostly figure which has haunted these pages, as it haunted
my life, goes down into the impenetrable gloom.  Like a shadow she
first came to me in the loneliness of the night.  Like a shadow
she passes away in the loneliness of the dead.



III


Four months elapsed.  April came--the month of spring--the month
of change.

The course of time had flowed through the interval since the
winter peacefully and happily in our new home.  I had turned my
long leisure to good account, had largely increased my sources of
employment, and had placed our means of subsistence on surer
grounds.  Freed from the suspense and the anxiety which had tried
her so sorely and hung over her so long, Marian's spirits rallied,
and her natural energy of character began to assert itself again,
with something, if not all, of the freedom and the vigour of
former times.

More pliable under change than her sister, Laura showed more
plainly the progress made by the healing influences of her new
life.  The worn and wasted look which had prematurely aged her
face was fast leaving it, and the expression which had been the
first of its charms in past days was the first of its beauties
that now returned.  My closest observations of her detected but
one serious result of the conspiracy which had once threatened her
reason and her life.  Her memory of events, from the period of her
leaving Blackwater Park to the period of our meeting in the
burial-ground of Limmeridge Church, was lost beyond all hope of
recovery.  At the slightest reference to that time she changed and
trembled still, her words became confused, her memory wandered and
lost itself as helplessly as ever.  Here, and here only, the
traces of the past lay deep--too deep to be effaced.

In all else she was now so far on the way to recovery that, on her
best and brightest days, she sometimes looked and spoke like the
Laura of old times.  The happy change wrought its natural result
in us both.  From their long slumber, on her side and on mine,
those imperishable memories of our past life in Cumberland now
awoke, which were one and all alike, the memories of our love.

Gradually and insensibly our daily relations towards each other
became constrained.  The fond words which I had spoken to her so
naturally, in the days of her sorrow and her suffering, faltered
strangely on my lips.  In the time when my dread of losing her was
most present to my mind, I had always kissed her when she left me
at night and when she met me in the morning.  The kiss seemed now
to have dropped between us--to be lost out of our lives.  Our
hands began to tremble again when they met.  We hardly ever looked
long at one another out of Marian's presence.  The talk often
flagged between us when we were alone.  When I touched her by
accident I felt my heart beating fast, as it used to beat at
Limmeridge House--I saw the lovely answering flush glowing again
in her cheeks, as if we were back among the Cumberland Hills in
our past characters of master and pupil once more.  She had long
intervals of silence and thoughtfulness, and denied she had been
thinking when Marian asked her the question.  I surprised myself
one day neglecting my work to dream over the little water-colour
portrait of her which I had taken in the summer-house where we
first met--just as I used to neglect Mr. Fairlie's drawings to
dream over the same likeness when it was newly finished in the
bygone time.  Changed as all the circumstances now were, our
position towards each other in the golden days of our first
companionship seemed to be revived with the revival of our love. 
It was as if Time had drifted us back on the wreck of our early
hopes to the old familiar shore!

To any other woman I could have spoken the decisive words which I
still hesitated to speak to HER.  The utter helplessness of her
position--her friendless dependence on all the forbearing
gentleness that I could show her--my fear of touching too soon
some secret sensitiveness in her which my instinct as a man might
not have been fine enough to discover--these considerations, and
others like them, kept me self-distrustfully silent. And yet I
knew that the restraint on both sides must be ended, that the
relations in which we stood towards one another must be altered in
some settled manner for the future, and that it rested with me, in
the first instance, to recognise the necessity for a change.

The more I thought of our position, the harder the attempt to
alter it appeared, while the domestic conditions on which we three
had been living together since the winter remained undisturbed.  I
cannot account for the capricious state of mind in which this
feeling originated, but the idea nevertheless possessed me that
some previous change of place and circumstances, some sudden break
in the quiet monotony of our lives, so managed as to vary the home
aspect under which we had been accustomed to see each other, might
prepare the way for me to speak, and might make it easier and less
embarrassing for Laura and Marian to hear.

With this purpose in view, I said, one morning, that I thought we
had all earned a little holiday and a change of scene.  After some
consideration, it was decided that we should go for a fortnight to
the seaside.

On the next day we left Fulham for a quiet town on the south
coast.  At that early season of the year we were the only visitors
in the place.  The cliffs, the beach, and the walks inland were
all in the solitary condition which was most welcome to us.  The
air was mild--the prospects over hill and wood and down were
beautifully varied by the shifting April light and shade, and the
restless sea leapt under our windows, as if it felt, like the
land, the glow and freshness of spring.

I owed it to Marian to consult her before I spoke to Laura, and to
be guided afterwards by her advice.

On the third day from our arrival I found a fit opportunity of
speaking to her alone.  The moment we looked at one another, her
quick instinct detected the thought in my mind before I could give
it expression.  With her customary energy and directness she spoke
at once, and spoke first.

"You are thinking of that subject which was mentioned between us
on the evening of your return from Hampshire," she said.  "I have
been expecting you to allude to it for some time past.  There must
be a change in our little household, Walter, we cannot go on much
longer as we are now.  I see it as plainly as you do--as plainly
as Laura sees it, though she says nothing.  How strangely the old
times in Cumberland seem to have come back! You and I are together
again, and the one subject of interest between us is Laura once
more.  I could almost fancy that this room is the summer-house at
Limmeridge, and that those waves beyond us are beating on our
seashore."

"I was guided by your advice in those past days," I said, "and
now, Marian, with reliance tenfold greater I will be guided by it
again."

She answered by pressing my hand.  I saw that she was deeply
touched by my reference to the past.  We sat together near the
window, and while I spoke and she listened, we looked at the glory
of the sunlight shining on the majesty of the sea.

"Whatever comes of this confidence between us," I said, "whether
it ends happily or sorrowfully for ME, Laura's interests will
still be the interests of my life.  When we leave this place, on
whatever terms we leave it, my determination to wrest from Count
Fosco the confession which I failed to obtain from his accomplice,
goes back with me to London, as certainly as I go back myself. 
Neither you nor I can tell how that man may turn on me, if I bring
him to bay; we only know, by his own words and actions, that he is
capable of striking at me through Laura, without a moment's
hesitation, or a moment's remorse.  In our present position I have
no claim on her which society sanctions, which the law allows, to
strengthen me in resisting him, and in protecting HER.  This
places me at a serious disadvantage.  If I am to fight our cause
with the Count, strong in the consciousness of Laura's safety, I
must fight it for my Wife.  Do you agree to that, Marian, so far?"

"To every word of it," she answered.

"I will not plead out of my own heart," I went on; "I will not
appeal to the love which has survived all changes and all shocks--
I will rest my only vindication of myself for thinking of her, and
speaking of her as my wife, on what I have just said.  If the
chance of forcing a confession from the Count is, as I believe it
to be, the last chance left of publicly establishing the fact of
Laura's existence, the least selfish reason that I can advance for
our marriage is recognised by us both.  But I may be wrong in my
conviction--other means of achieving our purpose may be in our
power, which are less uncertain and less dangerous.  I have
searched anxiously, in my own mind, for those means, and I have
not found them.  Have you?"

"No.  I have thought about it too, and thought in vain."

"In all likelihood," I continued, "the same questions have
occurred to you, in considering this difficult subject, which have
occurred to me.  Ought we to return with her to Limmeridge, now
that she is like herself again, and trust to the recognition of
her by the people of the village, or by the children at the
school?  Ought we to appeal to the practical test of her
handwriting? Suppose we did so.  Suppose the recognition of her
obtained, and the identity of the handwriting established.  Would
success in both those cases do more than supply an excellent
foundation for a trial in a court of law? Would the recognition
and the handwriting prove her identity to Mr. Fairlie and take her
back to Limmeridge House, against the evidence of her aunt,
against the evidence of the medical certificate, against the fact
of the funeral and the fact of the inscription on the tomb? No! We
could only hope to succeed in throwing a serious doubt on the
assertion of her death, a doubt which nothing short of a legal
inquiry can settle.  I will assume that we possess (what we have
certainly not got) money enough to carry this inquiry on through
all its stages.  I will assume that Mr. Fairlie's prejudices might
be reasoned away--that the false testimony of the Count and his
wife, and all the rest of the false testimony, might be confuted--
that the recognition could not possibly be ascribed to a mistake
between Laura and Anne Catherick, or the handwriting be declared
by our enemies to be a clever fraud--all these are assumptions
which, more or less, set plain probabilities at defiance; but let
them pass--and let us ask ourselves what would be the first
consequence or the first questions put to Laura herself on the
subject of the conspiracy.  We know only too well what the
consequence would be, for we know that she has never recovered her
memory of what happened to her in London.  Examine her privately,
or examine her publicly, she is utterly incapable of assisting the
assertion of her own case.  If you don't see this, Marian, as
plainly as I see it, we will go to Limmeridge and try the
experiment to-morrow."

"I DO see it, Walter.  Even if we had the means of paying all the
law expenses, even if we succeeded in the end, the delays would be
unendurable, the perpetual suspense, after what we have suffered
already, would be heartbreaking.  You are right about the
hopelessness of going to Limmeridge.  I wish I could feel sure
that you are right also in determining to try that last chance
with the Count.  IS it a chance at all?"

"Beyond a doubt, Yes.  It is the chance of recovering the lost
date of Laura's journey to London.  Without returning to the
reasons I gave you some time since, I am still as firmly persuaded
as ever that there is a discrepancy between the date of that
journey and the date on the certificate of death.  There lies the
weak point of the whole conspiracy--it crumbles to pieces if we
attack it in that way, and the means of attacking it are in
possession of the Count.  If I succeed in wresting them from him,
the object of your life and mine is fulfilled.  If I fail, the
wrong that Laura has suffered will, in this world, never be
redressed."

"Do you fear failure yourself, Walter?"

"I dare not anticipate success, and for that very reason, Marian,
I speak openly and plainly as I have spoken now.  In my heart and
my conscience I can say it, Laura's hopes for the future are at
their lowest ebb.  I know that her fortune is gone--I know that
the last chance of restoring her to her place in the world lies at
the mercy of her worst enemy, of a man who is now absolutely
unassailable, and who may remain unassailable to the end.  With
every worldly advantage gone from her, with all prospect of
recovering her rank and station more than doubtful, with no
clearer future before her than the future which her husband can
provide, the poor drawing-master may harmlessly open his heart at
last. In the days of her prosperity, Marian, I was only the
teacher who guided her hand--I ask for it, in her adversity, as
the hand of my wife!"

Marian's eyes met mine affectionately--I could say no more.  My
heart was full, my lips were trembling.  In spite of myself I was
in danger of appealing to her pity.  I got up to leave the room. 
She rose at the same moment, laid her hand gently on my shoulder,
and stopped me.

"Walter!" she said, "I once parted you both, for your good and for
hers.  Wait here, my brother!--wait, my dearest, best friend, till
Laura comes, and tells you what I have done now!"

For the first time since the farewell morning at Limmeridge she
touched my forehead with her lips.  A tear dropped on my face as
she kissed me.  She turned quickly, pointed to the chair from
which I had risen, and left the room.

I sat down alone at the window to wait through the crisis of my
life.  My mind in that breathless interval felt like a total
blank.  I was conscious of nothing but a painful intensity of all
familiar perceptions.  The sun grew blinding bright, the white sea
birds chasing each other far beyond me seemed to be flitting
before my face, the mellow murmur of the waves on the beach was
like thunder in my ears.

The door opened, and Laura came in alone.  So she had entered the
breakfast-room at Limmeridge House on the morning when we parted. 
Slowly and falteringly, in sorrow and in hesitation, she had once
approached me.  Now she came with the haste of happiness in her
feet, with the light of happiness radiant in her face.  Of their
own accord those dear arms clasped themselves round me, of their
own accord the sweet lips came to meet mine.  "My darling!" she
whispered, "we may own we love each other now?" Her head nestled
with a tender contentedness on my bosom.  "Oh," she said
innocently, "I am so happy at last!"


Ten days later we were happier still.  We were married.



IV


The course of this narrative, steadily flowing on, bears me away
from the morning-time of our married life, and carries me forward
to the end.

In a fortnight more we three were back in London, and the shadow
was stealing over us of the struggle to come.

Marian and I were careful to keep Laura in ignorance of the cause
that had hurried us back--the necessity of making sure of the
Count.  It was now the beginning of May, and his term of
occupation at the house in Forest Road expired in June.  If he
renewed it (and I had reasons, shortly to be mentioned, for
anticipating that he would), I might be certain of his not
escaping me.  But if by any chance he disappointed my expectations
and left the country, then I had no time to lose in arming myself
to meet him as I best might.

In the first fulness of my new happiness, there had been moments
when my resolution faltered--moments when I was tempted to be
safely content, now that the dearest aspiration of my life was
fulfilled in the possession of Laura's love.  For the first time I
thought faint-heartedly of the greatness of the risk, of the
adverse chances arrayed against me, of the fair promise of our new
life, and of the peril in which I might place the happiness which
we had so hardly earned.  Yes! let me own it honestly.  For a
brief time I wandered, in the sweet guiding of love, far from the
purpose to which I had been true under sterner discipline and in
darker days.  Innocently Laura had tempted me aside from the hard
path--innocently she was destined to lead me back again.

At times, dreams of the terrible past still disconnectedly
recalled to her, in the mystery of sleep, the events of which her
waking memory had lost all trace.  One night (barely two weeks
after our marriage), when I was watching her at rest, I saw the
tears come slowly through her closed eyelids, I heard the faint
murmuring words escape her which told me that her spirit was back
again on the fatal journey from Blackwater Park.  That unconscious
appeal, so touching and so awful in the sacredness of her sleep,
ran through me like fire.  The next day was the day we came back
to London--the day when my resolution returned to me with tenfold 
strength.

The first necessity was to know something of the man.  Thus far,
the true story of his life was an impenetrable mystery to me.

I began with such scanty sources of information as were at my own
disposal.  The important narrative written by Mr. Frederick
Fairlie (which Marian had obtained by following the directions I
had given to her in the winter) proved to be of no service to the
special object with which I now looked at it.  While reading it I
reconsidered the disclosure revealed to me by Mrs. Clements of the
series of deceptions which had brought Anne Catherick to London,
and which had there devoted her to the interests of the
conspiracy.  Here, again, the Count had not openly committed
himself--here, again, he was, to all practical purpose, out of my
reach.

I next returned to Marian's journal at Blackwater Park.  At my
request she read to me again a passage which referred to her past
curiosity about the Count, and to the few particulars which she
had discovered relating to him.

The passage to which I allude occurs in that part of her journal
which delineates his character and his personal appearance.  She
describes him as "not having crossed the frontiers of his native
country for years past"--as "anxious to know if any Italian
gentlemen were settled in the nearest town to Blackwater Park"--as
"receiving letters with all sorts of odd stamps on them, and one
with a large official-looking seal on it." She is inclined to
consider that his long absence from his native country may be
accounted for by assuming that he is a political exile.  But she
is, on the other hand, unable to reconcile this idea with the
reception of the letter from abroad bearing "the large official-
looking seal"--letters from the Continent addressed to political
exiles being usually the last to court attention from foreign
post-offices in that way.

The considerations thus presented to me in the diary, joined to
certain surmises of my own that grew out of them, suggested a
conclusion which I wondered I had not arrived at before.  I now
said to myself--what Laura had once said to Marian at Blackwater
Park, what Madame Fosco had overheard by listening at the door--
the Count is a spy!

Laura had applied the word to him at hazard, in natural anger at
his proceedings towards herself.  I applied it to him with the
deliberate conviction that his vocation in life was the vocation
of a spy.  On this assumption, the reason for his extraordinary
stay in England so long after the objects of the conspiracy had
been gained, became, to my mind, quite intelligible.

The year of which I am now writing was the year of the famous
Crystal Palace Exhibition in Hyde Park.  Foreigners in unusually
large numbers had arrived already, and were still arriving in
England.  Men were among us by hundreds whom the ceaseless
distrustfulness of their governments had followed privately, by
means of appointed agents, to our shores.  My surmises did not for
a moment class a man of the Count's abilities and social position
with the ordinary rank and file o~ foreign spies.  I suspected him
of holding a position of authority, of being entrusted by the
government which he secretly served with the organisation and
management of agents specially employed in this country, both men
and women, and I believed Mrs. Rubelle, who had been so
opportunely found to act as nurse at Blackwater Park, to be, in
all probability, one of the number.

Assuming that this idea of mine had a foundation in truth, the
position of the Count might prove to be more assailable than I had
hitherto ventured to hope.  To whom could I apply to know
something more of the man's history and of the man himself than I
knew now?

In this emergency it naturally occurred to my mind that a
countryman of his own, on whom I could rely, might be the fittest
person to help me.  The first man whom I thought of under these
circumstances was also the only Italian with whom I was intimately
acquainted--my quaint little friend, Professor Pesca.


The professor has been so long absent from these pages that he has
run some risk of being forgotten altogether.

It is the necessary law of such a story as mine that the persons
concerned in it only appear when the course of events takes them
up--they come and go, not by favour of my personal partiality, but
by right of their direct connection with the circumstances to be
detailed.  For this reason, not Pesca alone, but my mother and
sister as well, have been left far in the background of the
narrative.  My visits to the Hampstead cottage, my mother's belief
in the denial of Laura's identity which the conspiracy had
accomplished, my vain efforts to overcome the prejudice on her
part and on my sister's to which, in their jealous affection for
me, they both continued to adhere, the painful necessity which
that prejudice imposed on me of concealing my marriage from them
till they had learnt to do justice to my wife--all these little
domestic occurrences have been left unrecorded because they were
not essential to the main interest of the story.  It is nothing
that they added to my anxieties and embittered my disappointments--
the steady march of events has inexorably passed them by.

For the same reason I have said nothing here of the consolation
that I found in Pesca's brotherly affection for me, when I saw him
again after the sudden cessation of my residence at Limmeridge
House.  I have not recorded the fidelity with which my warm-
hearted little friend followed me to the place of embarkation when
I sailed for Central America, or the noisy transport of joy with
which he received me when we next met in London.  If I had felt
justified in accepting the offers of service which he made to me
on my return, he would have appeared again long ere this.  But,
though I knew that his honour and his courage were to be
implicitly relied on, I was not so sure that his discretion was to
be trusted, and, for that reason only, I followed the course of
all my inquiries alone.  It will now be sufficiently understood
that Pesca was not separated from all connection with me and my
interests, although he has hitherto been separated from all
connection with the progress of this narrative.  He was as true
and as ready a friend of mine still as ever he had been in his
life.


Before I summoned Pesca to my assistance it was necessary to see
for myself what sort of man I had to deal with.  Up to this time I
had never once set eyes on Count Fosco.

Three days after my return with Laura and Marian to London, I set
forth alone for Forest Road, St. John's Wood, between ten and
eleven o'clock in the morning.  It was a fine day--I had some
hours to spare--and I thought it likely, if I waited a little for
him, that the Count might be tempted out.  I had no great reason
to fear the chance of his recognising me in the daytime, for the
only occasion when I had been seen by him was the occasion on
which he had followed me home at night.

No one appeared at the windows in the front of the house.  I
walked down a turning which ran past the side of it, and looked
over the low garden wall.  One of the back windows on the lower
floor was thrown up and a net was stretched across the opening.  I
saw nobody, but I heard, in the room, first a shrill whistling and
singing of birds, then the deep ringing voice which Marian's
description had made familiar to me.  "Come out on my little
finger, my pret-pret-pretties!" cried the voice.  "Come out and
hop upstairs! One, two, three--and up! Three, two, one--and down!
One, two, three--twit-twit-twit-tweet!" The Count was exercising
his canaries as he used to exercise them in Marian's time at
Blackwater Park.

I waited a little while, and the singing and the whistling ceased. 
"Come, kiss me, my pretties!" said the deep voice.  There was a
responsive twittering and chirping--a low, oily laugh--a silence
of a minute or so, and then I heard the opening of the house door. 
I turned and retraced my steps.  The magnificent melody of the
Prayer in Rossini's Moses, sung in a sonorous bass voice, rose
grandly through the suburban silence of the place.  The front
garden gate opened and closed.  The Count had come out.

He crossed the road and walked towards the western boundary of the
Regent's Park.  I kept on my own side of the way, a little behind
him, and walked in that direction also.

Marian had prepared me for his high stature, his monstrous
corpulence, and his ostentatious mourning garments, but not for
the horrible freshness and cheerfulness and vitality of the man. 
He carried his sixty years as if they had been fewer than forty. 
He sauntered along, wearing his hat a little on one side, with a
light jaunty step, swinging his big stick, humming to himself,
looking up from time to time at the houses and gardens on either
side of him with superb, smiling patronage.  If a stranger had
been told that the whole neighbourhood belonged to him, that
stranger would not have been surprised to hear it.  He never
looked back, he paid no apparent attention to me, no apparent
attention to any one who passed him on his own side of the road,
except now and then, when he smiled and smirked, with an easy
paternal good humour, at the nursery-maids and the children whom
he met.  In this way he led me on, till we reached a colony of
shops outside the western terraces of the Park.

Here he stopped at a pastrycook's, went in (probably to give an
order), and came out again immediately with a tart in his hand. 
An Italian was grinding an organ before the shop, and a miserable
little shrivelled monkey was sitting on the instrument.  The Count
stopped, bit a piece for himself out of the tart, and gravely
handed the rest to the monkey.  "My poor little man!" he said,
with grotesque tenderness, "you look hungry.  In the sacred name
of humanity, I offer you some lunch!" The organ-grinder piteously
put in his claim to a penny from the benevolent stranger.  The
Count shrugged his shoulders contemptuously, and passed on.

We reached the streets and the better class of shops between the
New Road and Oxford Street.  The Count stopped again and entered a
small optician's shop, with an inscription in the window
announcing that repairs were neatly executed inside.  He came out
again with an opera-glass in his hand, walked a few paces on, and
stopped to look at a bill of the opera placed outside a music-
seller's shop.  He read the bill attentively, considered a moment,
and then hailed an empty cab as it passed him.  "Opera Box-
office," he said to the man, and was driven away.

I crossed the road, and looked at the bill in my turn.  The
performance announced was Lucrezia Borgia, and it was to take
place that evening.  The opera-glass in the Count's hand, his
careful reading of the bill, and his direction to the cabman, all
suggested that he proposed making one of the audience.  I had the
means of getting an admission for myself and a friend to the pit
by applying to one of the scene-painters attached to the theatre,
with whom I had been well acquainted in past times.  There was a
chance at least that the Count might be easily visible among the
audience to me and to any one with me, and in this case I had the
means of ascertaining whether Pesca knew his countryman or not
that very night.

This consideration at once decided the disposal of my evening.  I
procured the tickets, leaving a note at the Professor's lodgings
on the way.  At a quarter to eight I called to take him with me to
the theatre.  My little friend was in a state of the highest
excitement, with a festive flower in his button-hole, and the
largest opera-glass I ever saw hugged up under his arm.

"Are you ready?" I asked.

"Right-all-right," said Pesca.

We started for the theatre.



V


The last notes of the introduction to the opera were being played,
and the seats in the pit were all filled, when Pesca and I reached
the theatre.

There was plenty of room, however, in the passage that ran round
the pit--precisely the position best calculated to answer the
purpose for which I was attending the performance.  I went first
to the barrier separating us from the stalls, and looked for the
Count in that part of the theatre.  He was not there.  Returning
along the passage, on the left-hand side from the stage, and
looking about me attentively, I discovered him in the pit.  He
occupied an excellent place, some twelve or fourteen seats from
the end of a bench, within three rows of the stalls.  I placed
myself exactly on a line with him.  Pesca standing by my side. 
The Professor was not yet aware of the purpose for which I had
brought him to the theatre, and he was rather surprised that we
did not move nearer to the stage.

The curtain rose, and the opera began.

Throughout the whole of the first act we remained in our position--
the Count, absorbed by the orchestra and the stage, never casting
so much as a chance glance at us.  Not a note of Donizetti's
delicious music was lost on him.  There he sat, high above his
neighbours, smiling, and nodding his great head enjoyingly from
time to time.  When the people near him applauded the close of an
air (as an English audience in such circumstances always WILL
applaud), without the least consideration for the orchestral
movement which immediately followed it, he looked round at them
with an expression of compassionate remonstrance, and held up one
hand with a gesture of polite entreaty.  At the more refined
passages of the singing, at the more delicate phases of the music,
which passed unapplauded by others, his fat hands, adorned with
perfectly-fitting black kid gloves, softly patted each other, in
token of the cultivated appreciation of a musical man.  At such
times, his oily murmur of approval, "Bravo! Bra-a-a-a!" hummed
through the silence, like the purring of a great cat.  His
immediate neighbours on either side--hearty, ruddy-faced people
from the country, basking amazedly in the sunshine of fashionable
London--seeing and hearing him, began to follow his lead.  Many a
burst of applause from the pit that night started from the soft,
comfortable patting of the black-gloved hands.  The man's
voracious vanity devoured this implied tribute to his local and
critical supremacy with an appearance of the highest relish. 
Smiles rippled continuously over his fat face.  He looked about
him, at the pauses in the music, serenely satisfied with himself
and his fellow-creatures.  "Yes! yes! these barbarous English
people are learning something from ME.  Here, there, and
everywhere, I--Fosco--am an influence that is felt, a man who sits
supreme!" If ever face spoke, his face spoke then, and that was
its language.

The curtain fell on the first act, and the audience rose to look
about them.  This was the time I had waited for--the time to try
if Pesca knew him.

He rose with the rest, and surveyed the occupants of the boxes
grandly with his opera-glass.  At first his back was towards us,
but he turned round in time, to our side of the theatre, and
looked at the boxes above us, using his glass for a few minutes--
then removing it, but still continuing to look up.  This was the
moment I chose, when his full face was in view, for directing
Pesca's attention to him.

"Do you know that man?" I asked.

"Which man, my friend?"

"The tall, fat man, standing there, with his face towards us."

Pesca raised himself on tiptoe, and looked at the Count.

"No," said the Professor.  "The big fat man is a stranger to me. 
Is he famous? Why do you point him out?"

"Because I have particular reasons for wishing to know something
of him.  He is a countryman of yours--his name is Count Fosco.  Do
you know that name?"

"Not I, Walter.  Neither the name nor the man is known to me."

"Are you quite sure you don't recognise him? Look again--look
carefully.  I will tell you why I am so anxious about it when we
leave the theatre.  Stop! let me help you up here, where you can
see him better."

I helped the little man to perch himself on the edge of the raised
dais upon which the pit-seats were all placed.  His small stature
was no hindrance to him--here he could see over the heads of the
ladies who were seated near the outermost part of the bench.

A slim, light-haired man standing by us, whom I had not noticed
before--a man with a scar on his left cheek--looked attentively at 
Pesca as I helped him up, and then looked still more attentively,
following the direction of Pesca's eyes, at the Count.  Our
conversation might have reached his ears, and might, as it struck
me, have roused his curiosity.

Meanwhile, Pesca fixed his eyes earnestly on the broad, full,
smiling face turned a little upward, exactly opposite to him.

"No," he said, "I have never set my two eyes on that big fat man
before in all my life."

As he spoke the Count looked downwards towards the boxes behind us
on the pit tier.

The eyes of the two Italians met.

The instant before I had been perfectly satisfied, from his own
reiterated assertion, that Pesca did not know the Count.  The
instant afterwards I was equally certain that the Count knew
Pesca!

Knew him, and--more surprising still--FEARED him as well! There
was no mistaking the change that passed over the villain's face. 
The leaden hue that altered his yellow complexion in a moment, the
sudden rigidity of all his features, the furtive scrutiny of his
cold grey eyes, the motionless stillness of him from head to foot
told their own tale.  A mortal dread had mastered him body and
soul--and his own recognition of Pesca was the cause of it!

The slim man with the scar on his cheek was still close by us.  He
had apparently drawn his inference from the effect produced on the
Count by the sight of Pesca as I had drawn mine.  He was a mild,
gentlemanlike man, looking like a foreigner, and his interest in
our proceedings was not expressed in anything approaching to an
offensive manner.

For my own part I was so startled by the change in the Count's
face, so astounded at the entirely unexpected turn which events
had taken, that I knew neither what to say or do next.  Pesca
roused me by stepping back to his former place at my side and
speaking first.

"How the fat man stares!" he exclaimed.  "Is it at ME?

Am I famous? How can he know me when I don't know him?"

I kept my eye still on the Count.  I saw him move for the first
time when Pesca moved, so as not to lose sight of the little man
in the lower position in which he now stood.  I was curious to see
what would happen if Pesca's attention under these circumstances
was withdrawn from him, and I accordingly asked the Professor if
he recognised any of his pupils that evening among the ladies in
the boxes.  Pesca immediately raised the large opera-glass to his
eyes, and moved it slowly all round the upper part of the theatre,
searching for his pupils with the most conscientious scrutiny.

The moment he showed himself to be thus engaged the Count turned
round, slipped past the persons who occupied seats on the farther
side of him from where we stood, and disappeared in the middle
passage down the centre of the pit.  I caught Pesca by the arm,
and to his inexpressible astonishment, hurried him round with me
to the back of the pit to intercept the Count before he could get
to the door.  Somewhat to my surprise, the slim man hastened out
before us, avoiding a stoppage caused by some people on our side
of the pit leaving their places, by which Pesca and myself were
delayed.  When we reached the lobby the Count had disappeared, and
the foreigner with the scar was gone too.

"Come home," I said; "come home, Pesca to your lodgings.  I must
speak to you in private--I must speak directly."

"My-soul-bless-my-soul!" cried the Professor, in a state of the
extremest bewilderment.  "What on earth is the matter?"

I walked on rapidly without answering.  The circumstances under
which the Count had left the theatre suggested to me that his
extraordinary anxiety to escape Pesca might carry him to further
extremities still.  He might escape me, too, by leaving London.  I
doubted the future if I allowed him so much as a day's freedom to
act as he pleased.  And I doubted that foreign stranger, who had
got the start of us, and whom I suspected of intentionally
following him out.

With this double distrust in my mind, I was not long in making
Pesca understand what I wanted.  As soon as we two were alone in
his room, I increased his confusion and amazement a hundredfold by
telling him what my purpose was as plainly and unreservedly as I
have acknowledged it here.

"My friend, what can I do?" cried the Professor, piteously
appealing to me with both hands.  "Deuce-what-the-deuce! how can I
help you, Walter, when I don't know the man?"

"HE knows YOU--he is afraid of you--he has left the theatre to
escape you.  Pesca! there must be a reason for this.  Look back
into your own life before you came to England.  You left Italy, as
you have told me yourself, for political reasons.  You have never
mentioned those reasons to me, and I don't inquire into them now. 
I only ask you to consult your own recollections, and to say if
they suggest no past cause for the terror which the first sight of
you produced in that man."

To my unutterable surprise, these words, harmless as they appeared
to ME, produced the same astounding effect on Pesca which the
sight of Pesca had produced on the Count.  The rosy face of my
little friend whitened in an instant, and he drew back from me
slowly, trembling from head to foot.

"Walter!" he said.  "You don't know what you ask."

He spoke in a whisper--he looked at me as if I had suddenly
revealed to him some hidden danger to both of us.  In less than
one minute of time he was so altered from the easy, lively, quaint
little man of all my past experience, that if I had met him in the
street, changed as I saw him now, I should most certainly not have
known him again.

"Forgive me, if I have unintentionally pained and shocked you," I
replied.  "Remember the cruel wrong my wife has suffered at Count
Fosco's hands.  Remember that the wrong can never be redressed,
unless the means are in my power of forcing him to do her justice. 
I spoke in HER interests, Pesca--I ask you again to forgive me--I
can say no more."

I rose to go.  He stopped me before I reached the door.

"Wait," he said.  "You have shaken me from head to foot.  You
don't know how I left my country, and why I left my country.  Let
me compose myself, let me think, if I can."

I returned to my chair.  He walked up and down the room, talking
to himself incoherently in his own language.  After several turns
backwards and forwards, he suddenly came up to me, and laid his
little hands with a strange tenderness and solemnity on my breast.

"On your heart and soul, Walter," he said, "is there no other way
to get to that man but the chance-way through ME?"

"There is no other way," I answered.

He left me again, opened the door of the room and looked out
cautiously into the passage, closed it once more, and came back.

"You won your right over me, Walter," he said, "on the day when
you saved my life.  It was yours from that moment, when you
pleased to take it.  Take it now.  Yes! I mean what I say.  My
next words, as true as the good God is above us, will put my life 
into your hands."

The trembling earnestness with which he uttered this extraordinary
warning, carried with it, to my mind, the conviction that he spoke
the truth.

"Mind this!" he went on, shaking his hands at me in the vehemence
of his agitation.  "I hold no thread, in my own mind, between that
man Fosco, and the past time which I call back to me for your
sake.  If you find the thread, keep it to yourself--tell me
nothing--on my knees I beg and pray, let me be ignorant, let me be
innocent, let me be blind to all the future as I am now!"

He said a few words more, hesitatingly and disconnectedly, then
stopped again.

I saw that the effort of expressing himself in English, on an
occasion too serious to permit him the use of the quaint turns and
phrases of his ordinary vocabulary, was painfully increasing the
difficulty he had felt from the first in speaking to me at all. 
Having learnt to read and understand his native language (though
not to speak it), in the earlier days of our intimate
companionship, I now suggested to him that he should express
himself in Italian, while I used English in putting any questions
which might be necessary to my enlightenment.  He accepted the
proposal.  In his smooth-flowing language, spoken with a vehement
agitation which betrayed itself in the perpetual working of his
features, in the wildness and the suddenness of his foreign
gesticulations, but never in the raising of his voice, I now heard
the words which armed me to meet the last struggle, that is left
for this story to record.[3]

[3] It is only right to mention here, that I repeat Pesco's
statement to me with the careful suppressions and alterations
which the serious nature of the subject and my own sense of duty
to my friend demand.  My first and last concealments from the
reader are those which caution renders absolutely necessary in
this portion of the narrative.

"You know nothing of my motive for leaving Italy," he began,
"except that it was for political reasons.  If I had been driven
to this country by the persecution of my government, I should not
have kept those reasons a secret from you or from any one.  I have
concealed them because no government authority has pronounced the
sentence of my exile.  You have heard, Walter, of the political
societies that are hidden in every great city on the continent of
Europe? To one of those societies I belonged in Italy--and belong
still in England.  When I came to this country, I came by the
direction of my chief.  I was over-zealous in my younger time--I
ran the risk of compromising myself and others.  For those reasons
I was ordered to emigrate to England and to wait.  I emigrated--I
have waited--I wait still.  To-morrow I may be called away--ten
years hence I may be called away.  It is all one to me--I am here,
I support myself by teaching, and I wait.  I violate no oath (you
shall hear why presently) in making my confidence complete by
telling you the name of the society to which I belong.  All I do
is to put my life in your hands.  If what I say to you now is ever
known by others to have passed my lips, as certainly as we two sit
here, I am a dead man."

He whispered the next words in my ear.  I keep the secret which he
thus communicated.  The society to which he belonged will be
sufficiently individualised for the purpose of these pages, if I
call it "The Brotherhood," on the few occasions when any reference
to the subject will be needed in this place.

"The object of the Brotherhood," Pesca went on, "is, briefly, the
object of other political societies of the same sort--the
destruction of tyranny and the assertion of the rights of the
people.  The principles of the Brotherhood are two.  So long as a
man's life is useful, or even harmless only, he has the right to
enjoy it.  But, if his life inflicts injury on the well-being of
his fellow-men, from that moment he forfeits the right, and it is
not only no crime, but a positive merit, to deprive him of it.  It
is not for me to say in what frightful circumstances of oppression
and suffering this society took its rise.  It is not for you to
say--you Englishmen, who have conquered your freedom so long ago,
that you have conveniently forgotten what blood you shed, and what
extremities you proceeded to in the conquering--it is not for you
to say how far the worst of all exasperations may, or may not,
carry the maddened men of an enslaved nation.  The iron that has
entered into our souls has gone too deep for you to find it. 
Leave the refugee alone! Laugh at him, distrust him, open your
eyes in wonder at that secret self which smoulders in him,
sometimes under the every-day respectability and tranquillity of a
man like me--sometimes under the grinding poverty, the fierce
squalor, of men less lucky, less pliable, less patient than I am--
but judge us not! In the time of your first Charles you might have
done us justice--the long luxury of your own freedom has made you
incapable of doing us justice now.

All the deepest feelings of his nature seemed to force themselves
to the surface in those words--all his heart was poured out to me
for the first time in our lives--but still his voice never rose,
still his dread of the terrible revelation he was making to me
never left him.

"So far," he resumed, "you think the society like other societies. 
Its object (in your English opinion) is anarchy and revolution. 
It takes the life of a bad king or a bad minister, as if the one
and the other were dangerous wild beasts to be shot at the first
opportunity.  I grant you this.  But the laws of the Brotherhood
are the laws of no other political society on the face of the
earth.  The members are not known to one another.  There is a
president in Italy; there are presidents abroad.  Each of these
has his secretary.  The presidents and the secretaries know the
members, but the members, among themselves, are all strangers,
until their chiefs see fit, in the political necessity of the
time, or in the private necessity of the society, to make them
known to each other.  With such a safeguard as this there is no
oath among us on admittance.  We are identified with the
Brotherhood by a secret mark, which we all bear, which lasts while
our lives last.  We are told to go about our ordinary business,
and to report ourselves to the president, or the secretary, four
times a year, in the event of our services being required.  We are
warned, if we betray the Brotherhood, or if we injure it by
serving other interests, that we die by the principles of the
Brotherhood--die by the hand of a stranger who may be sent from
the other end of the world to strike the blow--or by the hand of
our own bosom-friend, who may have been a member unknown to us
through all the years of our intimacy.  Sometimes the death is
delayed--sometimes it follows close on the treachery.  It is our
first business to know how to wait--our second business to know
how to obey when the word is spoken.  Some of us may wait our
lives through, and may not be wanted.  Some of us may be called to
the work, or to the preparation for the work, the very day of our
admission.  I myself--the little, easy, cheerful man you know,
who, of his own accord, would hardly lift up his handkerchief to
strike down the fly that buzzes about his face--I, in my younger
time, under provocation so dreadful that I will not tell you of
it, entered the Brotherhood by an impulse, as I might have killed
myself by an impulse.  I must remain in it now--it has got me,
whatever I may think of it in my better circumstances and my
cooler manhood, to my dying day.  While I was still in Italy I was
chosen secretary, and all the members of that time, who were
brought face to face with my president, were brought face to face
also with me."

I began to understand him--I saw the end towards which his
extraordinary disclosure was now tending.  He waited a moment,
watching me earnestly--watching till he had evidently guessed what
was passing in my mind before he resumed.

"You have drawn your own conclusion already," he said.  "I see it
in your face.  Tell me nothing--keep me out of the secret of your
thoughts.  Let me make my one last sacrifice of myself, for your
sake, and then have done with this subject, never to return to it
again."

He signed to me not to answer him--rose--removed his coat--and
rolled up the shirt-sleeve on his left arm.

"I promised you that this confidence should be complete," he
whispered, speaking close at my ear, with his eyes looking
watchfully at the door.  "Whatever comes of it you shall not
reproach me with having hidden anything from you which it was
necessary to your interests to know.  I have said that the
Brotherhood identifies its members by a mark that lasts for life. 
See the place, and the mark on it for yourself."

He raised his bare arm, and showed me, high on the upper part of
it and in the inner side, a brand deeply burnt in the flesh and
stained of a bright blood-red colour.  I abstain from describing
the device which the brand represented.  It will be sufficient to
say that it was circular in form, and so small that it would have
been completely covered by a shilling coin.

"A man who has this mark, branded in this place," he said,
covering his arm again, "is a member of the Brotherhood.  A man
who has been false to the Brotherhood is discovered sooner or
later by the chiefs who know him--presidents or secretaries, as
the case may be.  And a man discovered by the chiefs is dead. NO
HUMAN LAWS CAN PROTECT HIM.  Remember what you have seen and
heard--draw what conclusions YOU like--act as you please.  But, in
the name of God, whatever you discover, whatever you do, tell me
nothing! Let me remain free from a responsibility which it
horrifies me to think of--which I know, in my conscience, is not
my responsibility now.  For the last time I say it--on my honour
as a gentleman, on my oath as a Christian, if the man you pointed
out at the Opera knows ME, he is so altered, or so disguised, that
I do not know him.  I am ignorant of his proceedings or his
purposes in England.  I never saw him, I never heard the name he
goes by, to my knowledge, before to-night.  I say no more.  Leave
me a little, Walter.  I am overpowered by what has happened--I am
shaken by what I have said.  Let me try to be like myself again
when we meet next.

He dropped into a chair, and turning away from me, hid his face in
his hands.  I gently opened the door so as not to disturb him, and
spoke my few parting words in low tones, which he might hear or
not, as he pleased.

"I will keep the memory of to-night in my heart of hearts," I
said.  "You shall never repent the trust you have reposed in me. 
May I come to you to-morrow? May I come as early as nine o'clock?"

"Yes, Walter," he replied, looking up at me kindly, and speaking
in English once more, as if his one anxiety now was to get back to
our former relations towards each other.  "Come to my little bit
of breakfast before I go my ways among the pupils that I teach."

"Good-night, Pesca."

"Good-night, my friend."



VI


MY first conviction as soon as I found myself outside the house,
was that no alternative was left me but to act at once on the
information I had received--to make sure of the Count that night,
or to risk the loss, if I only delayed till the morning, of
Laura's last chance.  I looked at my watch--it was ten o'clock.

Not the shadow of a doubt crossed my mind of the purpose for which
the Count had left the theatre.  His escape from us, that evening,
was beyond all question the preliminary only to his escape from
London.  The mark of the Brotherhood was on his arm--I felt as
certain of it as if he had shown me the brand; and the betrayal of
the Brotherhood was on his conscience--I had seen it in his
recognition of Pesca.

It was easy to understand why that recognition had not been
mutual.  A man of the Count's character would never risk the
terrible consequences of turning spy without looking to his
personal security quite as carefully as he looked to his golden
reward.  The shaven face, which I had pointed out at the Opera,
might have been covered by a beard in Pesca's time--his dark brown
hair might be a wig--his name was evidently a false one.  The
accident of time might have helped him as well--his immense
corpulence might have come with his later years.  There was every
reason why Pesca should not have known him again--every reason
also why he should have known Pesca, whose singular personal
appearance made a marked man of him, go where he might.

I have said that I felt certain of the purpose in the Count's mind
when he escaped us at the theatre.  How could I doubt it, when I
saw, with my own eyes, that he believed himself, in spite of the
change in his appearance, to have been recognised by Pesca, and to
be therefore in danger of his life? If I could get speech of him
that night, if I could show him that I, too knew of the mortal
peril in which he stood, what result would follow? Plainly this. 
One of us must be master of the situation--one of us must
inevitably be at the mercy of the other.

I owed it to myself to consider the chances against me before I
confronted them.  I owed it to my wife to do all that lay in my
power to lessen the risk.

The chances against me wanted no reckoning up--they were all
merged in one.  If the Count discovered, by my own avowal, that
the direct way to his safety lay through my life, he was probably
the last man in existence who would shrink from throwing me off my
guard and taking that way, when he had me alone within his reach. 
The only means of defence against him on which I could at all rely
to lessen the risk, presented themselves, after a little careful
thinking, clearly enough.  Before I made any personal
acknowledgment of my discovery in his presence, I must place the
discovery itself where it would be ready for instant use against
him, and safe from any attempt at suppression on his part.  If I
laid the mine under his feet before I approached him, and if I
left instructions with a third person to fire it on the expiration
of a certain time, unless directions to the contrary were
previously received under my own hand, or from my own lips--in
that event the Count's security was absolutely dependent upon
mine, and I might hold the vantage ground over him securely, even
in his own house.

This idea occurred to me when I was close to the new lodgings
which we had taken on returning from the sea-side.  I went in
without disturbing any one, by the help of my key.  A light was in
the hall, and I stole up with it to my workroom to make my
preparations, and absolutely to commit myself to an interview with
the Count, before either Laura or Marian could have the slightest
suspicion of what I intended to do.

A letter addressed to Pesca represented the surest measure of
precaution which it was now possible for me to take.  I wrote as
follows--

"The man whom I pointed out to you at the Opera is a member of the
Brotherhood, and has been false to his trust. Put both these
assertions to the test instantly.  You know the name he goes by in
England.  His address is No. 5 Forest Road, St. John's Wood.  On
the love you once bore me, use the power entrusted to you without
mercy and without delay against that man.  I have risked all and
lost all--and the forfeit of my failure has been paid with my
life."

I signed and dated these lines, enclosed them in an envelope, and
sealed it up.  On the outside I wrote this direction: "Keep the
enclosure unopened until nine o'clock to-morrow morning.  If you
do not hear from me, or see me, before that time, break the seal
when the clock strikes, and read the contents." I added my
initials, and protected the whole by enclosing it in a second
sealed envelope, addressed to Pesca at his lodgings.

Nothing remained to be done after this but to find the means of
sending my letter to its destination immediately.  I should then
have accomplished all that lay in my power.  If anything happened
to me in the Count's house, I had now provided for his answering
it with his life.

That the means of preventing his escape, under any circumstances
whatever, were at Pesca's disposal, if he chose to exert them, I
did not for an instant doubt.  The extraordinary anxiety which he
had expressed to remain unenlightened as to the Count's identity--
or, in other words, to be left uncertain enough about facts to
justify him to his own conscience in remaining passive--betrayed
plainly that the means of exercising the terrible justice of the
Brotherhood were ready to his hand, although, as a naturally
humane man, he had shrunk from plainly saying as much in my
presence.  The deadly certainty with which the vengeance of
foreign political societies can hunt down a traitor to the cause,
hide himself where he may, had been too often exemplified, even in
my superficial experience, to allow of any doubt.  Considering the
subject only as a reader of newspapers, cases recurred to my
memory, both in London and in Paris, of foreigners found stabbed
in the streets, whose assassins could never be traced--of bodies
and parts of bodies thrown into the Thames and the Seine, by hands
that could never be discovered--of deaths by secret violence which
could only be accounted for in one way.  I have disguised nothing
relating to myself in these pages, and I do not disguise here that
I believed I had written Count Fosco's death-warrant, if the fatal
emergency happened which authorised Pesca to open my enclosure.

I left my room to go down to the ground floor of the house, and
speak to the landlord about finding me a messenger.  He happened
to be ascending the stairs at the time, and we met on the landing. 
His son, a quick lad, was the messenger he proposed to me on
hearing what I wanted.  We had the boy upstairs, and I gave him
his directions.  He was to take the letter in a cab, to put it
into Professor Pesca's own hands, and to bring me back a line of
acknowledgment from that gentleman--returning in the cab, and
keeping it at the door for my use.  It was then nearly half-past
ten.  I calculated that the boy might be back in twenty minutes,
and that I might drive to St. John's Wood, on his return, in
twenty minutes more.

When the lad had departed on his errand I returned to my own room
for a little while, to put certain papers in order, so that they
might be easily found in case of the worst.  The key of the old-
fashioned bureau in which the papers were kept I sealed up, and
left it on my table, with Marian's name written on the outside of
the little packet.  This done, I went down-stairs to the sitting-
room, in which I expected to find Laura and Marian awaiting my
return from the Opera.  I felt my hand trembling for the first
time when I laid it on the lock of the door.

No one was in the room but Marian.  She was reading, and she
looked at her watch, in surprise, when I came in.

"How early you are back!" she said.  "You must have come away
before the Opera was over."

"Yes," I replied, "neither Pesca nor I waited for the end.  Where
is Laura?"

"She had one of her bad headaches this evening, and I advised her
to go to bed when we had done tea."

I left the room again on the pretext of wishing to see whether
Laura was asleep.  Marian's quick eyes were beginning to look
inquiringly at my face--Marian's quick instinct was beginning to
discover that I had something weighing on my mind.

When I entered the bedchamber, and softly approached the bedside
by the dim flicker of the night-lamp, my wife was asleep.

We had not been married quite a month yet.  If my heart was heavy,
if my resolution for a moment faltered again, when I looked at her
face turned faithfully to my pillow in her sleep--when I saw her
hand resting open on the coverlid, as if it was waiting
unconsciously for mine--surely there was some excuse for me? I
only allowed myself a few minutes to kneel down at the bedside,
and to look close at her--so close that her breath, as it came and
went, fluttered on my face.  I only touched her hand and her cheek
with my lips at parting.  She stirred in her sleep and murmured my
name, but without waking.  I lingered for an instant at the door
to look at her again.  "God bless and keep you, my darling!" I
whispered, and left her.

Marian was at the stairhead waiting for me.  She had a folded slip
of paper in her hand.

"The landlord's son has brought this for you," she said.  "He has
got a cab at the door--he says you ordered him to keep it at your
disposal."

"Quite right, Marian.  I want the cab--I am going out again."

I descended the stairs as I spoke, and looked into the sitting-
room to read the slip of paper by the light on the table.  It
contained these two sentences in Pesca's handwriting--

"Your letter is received.  If I don't see you before the time you
mention, I will break the seal when the clock strikes."

I placed the paper in my pocket-book, and made for the door. 
Marian met me on the threshold, and pushed me back into the room,
where the candle-light fell full on my face.  She held me by both
hands, and her eyes fastened searchingly on mine.

"I see!" she said, in a low eager whisper.  "You are trying the
last chance to-night."

"Yes, the last chance and the best," I whispered back.

"Not alone! Oh, Walter, for God's sake, not alone! Let me go with
you.  Don't refuse me because I'm only a woman.  I must go! I will
go! I'll wait outside in the cab!"

It was my turn now to hold HER.  She tried to break away from me
and get down first to the door.

"If you want to help me," I said, "stop here and sleep in my
wife's room to-night.  Only let me go away with my mind easy about
Laura, and I answer for everything else.  Come, Marian, give me a
kiss, and show that you have the courage to wait till I come
back."

I dared not allow her time to say a word more.  She tried to hold
me again.  I unclasped her hands, and was out of the room in a
moment.  The boy below heard me on the stairs, and opened the
hall-door.  I jumped into the cab before the driver could get off
the box.  "Forest Road, St. John's Wood," I called to him through
the front window.  "Double fare if you get there in a quarter of
an hour." "I'll do it, sir." I looked at my watch.  Eleven
o'clock.  Not a minute to lose.

The rapid motion of the cab, the sense that every instant now was
bringing me nearer to the Count, the conviction that I was
embarked at last, without let or hindrance, on my hazardous
enterprise, heated me into such a fever of excitement that I
shouted to the man to go faster and faster.  As we left the
streets, and crossed St. John's Wood Road, my impatience so
completely overpowered me that I stood up in the cab and stretched
my head out of the window, to see the end of the journey before we
reached it.  Just as a church clock in the distance struck the
quarter past, we turned into the Forest Road.  I stopped the
driver a little away from the Count's house, paid and dismissed
him, and walked on to the door.

As I approached the garden gate, I saw another person advancing
towards it also from the direction opposite to mine.  We met under
the gas lamp in the road, and looked at each other.  I instantly
recognised the light-haired foreigner with the scar on his cheek,
and I thought he recognised me.  He said nothing, and instead of
stopping at the house, as I did, he slowly walked on.  Was he in
the Forest Road by accident? Or had he followed the Count home
from the Opera?

I did not pursue those questions.  After waiting a little till the
foreigner had slowly passed out of sight, I rang the gate bell. 
It was then twenty minutes past eleven--late enough to make it
quite easy for the Count to get rid of me by the excuse that he
was in bed.

The only way of providing against this contingency was to send in
my name without asking any preliminary questions, and to let him
know, at the same time, that I had a serious motive for wishing to
see him at that late hour.  Accordingly, while I was waiting, I
took out my card and wrote under my name "On important business."
The maid-servant answered the door while I was writing the last
word in pencil, and asked me distrustfully what I "pleased to
want."

"Be so good as to take that to your master," I replied, giving her
the card.

I saw, by the girl's hesitation of manner, that if I had asked for
the Count in the first instance she would only have followed her
instructions by telling me he was not at home.  She was staggered
by the confidence with which I gave her the card.  After staring
at me, in great perturbation, she went back into the house with my
message, closing the door, and leaving me to wait in the garden.

In a minute or so she reappeared.  "Her master's compliments, and
would I be so obliging as to say what my business was?" "Take my
compliments back," I replied, "and say that the business cannot be
mentioned to any one but your master." She left me again, again
returned, and this time asked me to walk in.

I followed her at once.  In another moment I was inside the
Count's house.



VII


There was no lamp in the hall, but by the dim light of the kitchen
candle, which the girl had brought upstairs with her, I saw an
elderly lady steal noiselessly out of a back room on the ground
floor.  She cast one viperish look at me as I entered the hall,
but said nothing, and went slowly upstairs without returning my
bow.  My familiarity with Marian's journal sufficiently assured me
that the elderly lady was Madame Fosco.

The servant led me to the room which the Countess had just left. 
I entered it, and found myself face to face with the Count.

He was still in his evening dress, except his coat, which he had
thrown across a chair.  His shirt-sleeves were turned up at the
wrists, but no higher.  A carpet-bag was on one side of him, and a
box on the other.  Books, papers, and articles of wearing apparel
were scattered about the room.  On a table, at one side of the
door, stood the cage, so well known to me by description, which
contained his white mice.  The canaries and the cockatoo were
probably in some other room.  He was seated before the box,
packing it, when I went in, and rose with some papers in his hand
to receive me.  His face still betrayed plain traces of the shock
that had overwhelmed him at the Opera.  His fat cheeks hung loose,
his cold grey eyes were furtively vigilant, his voice, look, and
manner were all sharply suspicious alike, as he advanced a step to
meet me, and requested, with distant civility, that I would take a
chair.

"You come here on business, sir?" he said.  "I am at a loss to
know what that business can possibly he."

The unconcealed curiosity, with which he looked hard in my face
while he spoke, convinced me that I had passed unnoticed by him at
the Opera.  He had seen Pesca first, and from that moment till he
left the theatre he had evidently seen nothing else.  My name
would necessarily suggest to him that I had not come into his
house with other than a hostile purpose towards himself, but he
appeared to be utterly ignorant thus far of the real nature of my
errand.

"I am fortunate in finding you here to-night," I said.  "You seem
to be on the point of taking a journey?"

"Is your business connected with my journey?"

"In some degree."

"In what degree? Do you know where I am going to?"

"No.  I only know why you are leaving London."

He slipped by me with the quickness of thought, locked the door,
and put the key in his pocket.

"You and I, Mr. Hartright, are excellently well acquainted with
one another by reputation," he said.  "Did it, by any chance,
occur to you when you came to this house that I was not the sort
of man you could trifle with?"

"It did occur to me," I replied.  "And I have not come to trifle
with you.  I am here on a matter of life and death, and if that
door which you have locked was open at this moment, nothing you
could say or do would induce me to pass through it."

I walked farther into the room, and stood opposite to him on the
rug before the fireplace.  He drew a chair in front of the door,
and sat down on it, with his left arm resting on the table.  The
cage with the white mice was close to him, and the little
creatures scampered out of their sleeping-place as his heavy arm
shook the table, and peered at him through the gaps in the smartly
painted wires

"On a matter of life and death," he repeated to himself.  "Those
words are more serious, perhaps, than you think.  What do you
mean?"

"What I say."

The perspiration broke out thickly on his broad forehead.  His
left hand stole over the edge of the table.  There was a drawer in
it, with a lock, and the key was in the lock.  His finger and
thumb closed over the key, but did not turn it.

"So you know why I am leaving London?" he went on.  "Tell me the
reason, if you please." He turned the key, and unlocked the drawer
as he spoke.

"I can do better than that," I replied.  I can SHOW you the
reason, if you like."

"How can you show it?"

"You have got your coat off," I said.  "Roll up the shirt-sleeve
on your left arm, and you will see it there."

The same livid leaden change passed over his face which I had seen
pass over it at the theatre.  The deadly glitter in his eyes shone
steady and straight into mine.  He said nothing.  But his left
hand slowly opened the table-drawer, and softly slipped into it. 
The harsh grating noise of something heavy that he was moving
unseen to me sounded for a moment, then ceased.  The silence that
followed was so intense that the faint ticking nibble of the white
mice at their wires was distinctly audible where I stood.

My life hung by a thread, and I knew it.  At that final moment I
thought with HIS mind, I felt with HIS fingers--I was as certain
as if I had seen it of what he kept hidden from me in the drawer.

"Wait a little," I said.  "You have got the door locked--you see I
don't move--you see my hands are empty.  Wait a little.  I have
something more to say."

"You have said enough," he replied, with a sudden composure so
unnatural and so ghastly that it tried my nerves as no outbreak of
violence could have tried them.  "I want one moment for my own
thoughts, if you please.  Do you guess what I am thinking about?"

"Perhaps I do."

"I am thinking," he remarked quietly, "whether I shall add to the
disorder in this room by scattering your brains about the
fireplace."

If I had moved at that moment, I saw in his face that he would
have done it.

"I advise you to read two lines of writing which I have about me,"
I rejoined, "before you finally decide that question."

The proposal appeared to excite his curiosity.  He nodded his
head.  I took Pesca's acknowledgment of the receipt of my letter
out of my pocket-book, handed it to him at arm's length, and
returned to my former position in front of the fireplace.

He read the lines aloud: "Your letter is received.  If I don't
hear from you before the time you mention, I will break the seal
when the clock strikes."

Another man in his position would have needed some explanation of
those words--the Count felt no such necessity.  One reading of the
note showed him the precaution that I had taken as plainly as if
he had been present at the time when I adopted it.  The expression
of his face changed on the instant, and his hand came out of the
drawer empty.

"I don't lock up my drawer, Mr. Hartright," he said, "and I don't
say that I may not scatter your brains about the fireplace yet. 
But I am a just man even to my enemy, and I will acknowledge
beforehand that they are cleverer brains than I thought them. 
Come to the point, sir! You want something of me?"

"I do, and I mean to have it."

"On conditions?"

"On no conditions."

His hand dropped into the drawer again.

"Bah! we are travelling in a circle," he said, "and those clever
brains of yours are in danger again.  Your tone is deplorably
imprudent, sir--moderate it on the spot!  The risk of shooting you
on the place where you stand is less to me than the risk of
letting you out of this house, except on conditions that I dictate
and approve.  You have not got my lamented friend to deal with
now--you are face to face with Fosco! If the lives of twenty Mr.
Hartrights were the stepping-stones to my safety, over all those
stones I would go, sustained by my sublime indifference, self-
balanced by my impenetrable calm.  Respect me, if you love your
own life! I summon you to answer three questions before you open
your lips again.  Hear them--they are necessary to this interview. 
Answer them--they are necessary to ME."  He held up one finger of
his right hand.  "First question!" he said.  "You come here
possessed of information which may be true or may be false--where
did you get it?"

"I decline to tell you."

"No matter--I shall find out.  If that information is true--mind I
say, with the whole force of my resolution, if--you are making
your market of it here by treachery of your own or by treachery of
some other man.  I note that circumstance for future use in my
memory, which forgets nothing, and proceed." He held up another
finger.  "Second question! Those lines you invited me to read are
without signature.  Who wrote them?"

"A man whom I have every reason to depend on, and whom you have
every reason to fear."

My answer reached him to some purpose.  His left hand trembled
audibly in the drawer.

"How long do you give me," he asked, putting his third question in
a quieter tone, "before the clock strikes and the seal is broken?"

"Time enough for you to come to my terms," I replied.

"Give me a plainer answer, Mr. Hartright.  What hour is the clock
to strike?"

"Nine, to-morrow morning."

"Nine, to-morrow morning? Yes, yes--your trap is laid for me
before I can get my passport regulated and leave London.  It is
not earlier, I suppose? We will see about that presently--I can
keep you hostage here, and bargain with you to send for your
letter before I let you go.  In the meantime, be so good next as
to mention your terms."

"You shall hear them.  They are simple, and soon stated.  You know
whose interests I represent in coming here?"

He smiled with the most supreme composure, and carelessly waved
his right hand.

"I consent to hazard a guess," he said jeeringly.  "A lady's
interests, of course!"

"My Wife's interests."

He looked at me with the first honest expression that had crossed
his face in my presence--an expression of blank amazement.  I
could see that I sank in his estimation as a dangerous man from
that moment.  He shut up the drawer at once, folded his arms over
his breast, and listened to me with a smile of satirical 
attention.

"You are well enough aware," I went on, "of the course which my
inquiries have taken for many months past, to know that any
attempted denial of plain facts will be quite useless in my
presence.  You are guilty of an infamous conspiracy! And the gain
of a fortune of ten thousand pounds was your motive for it."

He said nothing.  But his face became overclouded suddenly by a
lowering anxiety.

"Keep your gain," I said.  (His face lightened again immediately,
and his eyes opened on me in wider and wider astonishment.) "I am
not here to disgrace myself by bargaining for money which has
passed through your hands, and which has been the price of a vile
crime

"Gently, Mr. Hartright.  Your moral clap-traps have an excellent
effect in England--keep them for yourself and your own countrymen,
if you please.  The ten thousand pounds was a legacy left to my
excellent wife by the late Mr. Fairlie.  Place the affair on those
grounds, and I will discuss it if you like.  To a man of my
sentiments, however, the subject is deplorably sordid.  I prefer
to pass it over.  I invite you to resume the discussion of your
terms.  What do you demand?"

"In the first place, I demand a full confession of the conspiracy,
written and signed in my presence by yourself."

He raised his finger again.  "One!" he said, checking me off with
the steady attention of a practical man.

"In the second place, I demand a plain proof, which does not
depend on your personal asseveration, of the date at which my wife
left Blackwater Park and travelled to London."

"So! so! you can lay your finger, I see, on the weak place," he
remarked composedly.  "Any more?"

"At present, no more."

"Good! you have mentioned your terms, now listen to mine.  The
responsibility to myself of admitting what you are pleased to call
the 'conspiracy' is less, perhaps, upon the whole, than the
responsibility of laying you dead on that hearthrug.  Let us say
that I meet your proposal--on my own conditions.  The statement
you demand of me shall be written, and the plain proof shall be
produced.  You call a letter from my late lamented friend
informing me of the day and hour of his wife's arrival in London,
written, signed, and dated by himself, a proof, I suppose? I can
give you this.  I can also send you to the man of whom I hired the
carriage to fetch my visitor from the railway, on the day when she
arrived--his order-book may help you to your date, even if his
coachman who drove me proves to be of no use.  These things I can
do, and will do, on conditions.  I recite them.  First condition!
Madame Fosco and I leave this house when and how we please,
without interference of any kind on your part.  Second condition!
You wait here, in company with me, to see my agent, who is coming
at seven o'clock in the morning to regulate my affairs.  You give
my agent a written order to the man who has got your sealed letter
to resign his possession of it.  You wait here till my agent
places that letter unopened in my hands, and you then allow me one
clear half-hour to leave the house--after which you resume your
own freedom of action and go where you please.  Third condition!
You give me the satisfaction of a gentleman for your intrusion
into my private affairs, and for the language you have allowed
yourself to use to me at this conference.  The time and place,
abroad, to be fixed in a letter from my hand when I am safe on the
Continent, and that letter to contain a strip of paper measuring
accurately the length of my sword.  Those are my terms.  Inform me
if you accept them--Yes or No."


The extraordinary mixture of prompt decision, far-sighted cunning,
and mountebank bravado in this speech, staggered me for a moment--
and only for a moment.  The one question to consider was, whether
I was justified or not in possessing myself of the means of
establishing Laura's identity at the cost of allowing the
scoundrel who had robbed her of it to escape me with impunity.  I
knew that the motive of securing the just recognition of my wife
in the birthplace from which she had been driven out as an
impostor, and of publicly erasing the lie that still profaned her
mother's tombstone, was far purer, in its freedom from all taint
of evil passion, than the vindictive motive which had mingled
itself with my purpose from the first.  And yet I cannot honestly
say that my own moral convictions were strong enough to decide the
struggle in me by themselves.  They were helped by my remembrance
of Sir Percival's death.  How awfully, at the last moment, had the
working of the retribution THERE been snatched from my feeble
hands! What right had I to decide, in my poor mortal ignorance of
the future, that this man, too, must escape with impunity because
he escaped ME? I thought of these things--perhaps with the
superstition inherent in my nature, perhaps with a sense worthier
of me than superstition.  It was hard, when I had fastened my hold
on him at last, to loosen it again of my own accord--but I forced
myself to make the sacrifice.  In plainer words, I determined to
be guided by the one higher motive of which I was certain, the
motive of serving the cause of Laura and the cause of Truth.


"I accept your conditions," I said.  "With one reservation on my
part."

"What reservation may that be?" he asked.

"It refers to the sealed letter," I answered.  "I require you to
destroy it unopened in my presence as soon as it is placed in your
hands."

My object in making this stipulation was simply to prevent him
from carrying away written evidence of the nature of my
communication with Pesca.  The fact of my communication he would
necessarily discover, when I gave the address to his agent in the
morning.  But he could make no use of it on his own unsupported
testimony--even if he really ventured to try the experiment--which
need excite in me the slightest apprehension on Pesca's account.

"I grant your reservation," he replied, after considering the
question gravely for a minute or two.  "It is not worth dispute--
the letter shall be destroyed when it comes into my hands."

He rose, as he spoke, from the chair in which he had been sitting
opposite to me up to this time.  With one effort he appeared to
free his mind from the whole pressure on it of the interview
between us thus far.  "Ouf!" he cried, stretching his arms
luxuriously, "the skirmish was hot while it lasted.  Take a seat,
Mr. Hartright.  We meet as mortal enemies here-after--let us, like
gallant gentlemen, exchange polite attentions in the meantime. 
Permit me to take the liberty of calling for my wife."

He unlocked and opened the door.  "Eleanor!" he called out in his
deep voice.  The lady of the viperish face came in "Madame Fosco--
Mr. Hartright," said the Count, introducing us with easy dignity. 
"My angel," he went on, addressing his wife, "will your labours of
packing up allow you time to make me some nice strong coffee? I
have writing business to transact with Mr. Hartright--and I
require the full possession of my intelligence to do justice to
myself."

Madame Fosco bowed her head twice--once sternly to me, once
submissively to her husband, and glided out of the room.

The Count walked to a writing-table near the window, opened his
desk, and took from it several quires of paper and a bundle of
quill pens.  He scattered the pens about the table, so that they
might lie ready in all directions to be taken up when wanted, and
then cut the paper into a heap of narrow slips, of the form used
by professional writers for the press.  "I shall make this a
remarkable document," he said, looking at me over his shoulder. 
"Habits of literary composition are perfectly familiar to me.  One
of the rarest of all the intellectual accomplishments that a man
can possess is the grand faculty of arranging his ideas.  Immense
privilege! I possess it.  Do you?"

He marched backwards and forwards in the room, until the coffee
appeared, humming to himself, and marking the places at which
obstacles occurred in the arrangement of his ideas, by striking
his forehead from time to time with the palm of his hand.  The
enormous audacity with which he seized on the situation in which I
placed him, and made it the pedestal on which his vanity mounted
for the one cherished purpose of self-display, mastered my
astonishment by main force.  Sincerely as I loathed the man, the
prodigious strength of his character, even in its most trivial
aspects, impressed me in spite of myself.

The coffee was brought in by Madame Fosco.  He kissed her hand in
grateful acknowledgment, and escorted her to the door; returned,
poured out a cup of coffee for himself, and took it to the
writing-table.

"May I offer you some coffee, Mr. Hartright?" he said, before he
sat down.

I declined.

"What! you think I shall poison you?" he said gaily.  "The English
intellect is sound, so far as it goes," he continued, seating
himself at the table; "but it has one grave defect--it is always
cautious in the wrong place."

He dipped his pen in the ink, placed the first slip of paper
before him with a thump of his hand on the desk, cleared his
throat, and began.  He wrote with great noise and rapidity, in so
large and bold a hand, and with such wide spaces between the
lines, that he reached the bottom of the slip in not more than two
minutes certainly from the time when he started at the top.  Each
slip as he finished it was paged, and tossed over his shoulder out
of his way on the floor.  When his first pen was worn out, THAT
went over his shoulder too, and he pounced on a second from the
supply scattered about the table.  Slip after slip, by dozens, by
fifties, by hundreds, flew over his shoulders on either side of
him till he had snowed himself up in paper all round his chair. 
Hour after hour passed--and there I sat watching, there he sat
writing.  He never stopped, except to sip his coffee, and when
that was exhausted, to smack his forehead from time to time.  One
o'clock struck, two, three, four--and still the slips flew about
all round him; still the untiring pen scraped its way ceaselessly
from top to bottom of the page, still the white chaos of paper
rose higher and higher all round his chair.  At four o'clock I
heard a sudden splutter of the pen, indicative of the flourish
with which he signed his name.  "Bravo!" he cried, springing to
his feet with the activity of a young man, and looking me straight
in the face with a smile of superb triumph.

"Done, Mr. Hartright I " he announced with a self-renovating thump
of his fist on his broad breast.  "Done, to my own profound
satisfaction--to YOUR profound astonishment, when you read what I
have written.  The subject is exhausted: the man--Fosco--is not. 
I proceed to the arrangement of my slips--to the revision of my
slips--to the reading of my slips--addressed emphatically to your
private ear.  Four o'clock has just struck.  Good! Arrangement,
revision, reading, from four to five.  Short snooze of restoration
for myself from five to six.  Final preparations from six to
seven.  Affair of agent and sealed letter from seven to eight.  At
eight, en route.  Behold the programme!"

He sat down cross-legged on the floor among his papers, strung
them together with a bodkin and a piece of string--revised them,
wrote all the titles and honours by which he was personally
distinguished at the head of the first page, and then read the
manuscript to me with loud theatrical emphasis and profuse
theatrical gesticulation.  The reader will have an opportunity,
ere long, of forming his own opinion of the document.  It will be
sufficient to mention here that it answered my purpose.

He next wrote me the address of the person from whom he had hired
the fly, and handed me Sir Percival's letter.  It was dated from
Hampshire on the 25th of July, and it announced the journey of
"Lady Glyde" to London on the 26th.  Thus, on the very day (the
25th) when the doctor's certificate declared that she had died in
St. John's Wood, she was alive, by Sir Percival's own showing, at
Blackwater--and, on the day after, she was to take a journey! When
the proof of that journey was obtained from the flyman, the
evidence would be complete.

"A quarter-past five," said the Count, looking at his watch. 
"Time for my restorative snooze.  I personally resemble Napoleon
the Great, as you may have remarked, Mr. Hartright--I also
resemble that immortal man in my power of commanding sleep at
will.  Excuse me one moment.  I will summon Madame Fosco, to keep
you from feeling dull."

Knowing as well as he did, that he was summoning Madame Fosco to
ensure my not leaving the house while he was asleep, I made no
reply, and occupied myself in tying up the papers which he had
placed in my possession.

The lady came in, cool, pale, and venomous as ever.  "Amuse Mr.
Hartright, my angel," said the Count.  He placed a chair for her,
kissed her hand for the second time, withdrew to a sofa, and, in
three minutes, was as peacefully and happily asleep as the most
virtuous man in existence.

Madame Fosco took a book from the table, sat down, and looked at
me, with the steady vindictive malice of a woman who never forgot
and never forgave.

"I have been listening to your conversation with my husband," she
said.  "If I had been in HIS place--I would have laid you dead on
the hearthrug."

With those words she opened her book, and never looked at me or
spoke to me from that time till the time when her husband woke.

He opened his eyes and rose from the sofa, accurately to an hour
from the time when he had gone to sleep.

"I feel infinitely refreshed," he remarked.  "Eleanor, my good
wife, are you all ready upstairs? That is well.  My little packing
here can be completed in ten minutes--my travelling-dress assumed
in ten minutes more.  What remains before the agent comes?" He
looked about the room, and noticed the cage with his white mice in
it.  "Ah!" he cried piteously, "a last laceration of my sympathies
still remains.  My innocent pets! my little cherished children!
what am I to do with them? For the present we are settled nowhere;
for the present we travel incessantly--the less baggage we carry
the better for ourselves.  My cockatoo, my canaries, and my little
mice--who will cherish them when their good Papa is gone?"

He walked about the room deep in thought.  He had not been at all
troubled about writing his confession, but he was visibly
perplexed and distressed about the far more important question of
the disposal of his pets.  After long consideration he suddenly
sat down again at the writing-table.

"An idea!" he exclaimed.  "I will offer my canaries and my
cockatoo to this vast Metropolis--my agent shall present them in
my name to the Zoological Gardens of London.  The Document that
describes them shall be drawn out on the spot."

He began to write, repeating the words as they flowed from his
pen.

"Number one.  Cockatoo of transcendent plumage: attraction, of
himself, to all visitors of taste.  Number two.  Canaries of
unrivalled vivacity and intelligence: worthy of the garden of
Eden, worthy also of the garden in the Regent's Park.  Homage to
British Zoology.  Offered by Fosco."

The pen spluttered again, and the flourish was attached to his
signature.

"Count! you have not included the mice," said Madame Fosco

He left the table, took her hand, and placed it on his heart.

"All human resolution, Eleanor," he said solemnly, "has its
limits.  MY limits are inscribed on that Document.  I cannot part
with my white mice.  Bear with me, my angel, and remove them to
their travelling cage upstairs."

"Admirable tenderness!" said Madame Fosco, admiring her husband,
with a last viperish look in my direction.  She took up the cage
carefully, and left the room.

The Count looked at his watch.  In spite of his resolute
assumption of composure, he was getting anxious for the agent's
arrival.  The candles had long since been extinguished, and the
sunlight of the new morning poured into the room.  It was not till
five minutes past seven that the gate bell rang, and the agent
made his appearance.  He was a foreigner with a dark beard.

"Mr. Hartright--Monsieur Rubelle," said the Count, introducing us. 
He took the agent (a foreign spy, in every line of his face, if
ever there was one yet) into a corner of the room, whispered some
directions to him, and then left us together.  "Monsieur Rubelle,"
as soon as we were alone, suggested with great politeness that I
should favour him with his instructions.  I wrote two lines to
Pesca, authorising him to deliver my sealed letter "to the
bearer," directed the note, and handed it to Monsieur Rubelle.

The agent waited with me till his employer returned, equipped in
travelling costume.  The Count examined the address of my letter
before he dismissed the agent.  "I thought so!" he said, turning
on me with a dark look, and altering again in his manner from that
moment.

He completed his packing, and then sat consulting a travelling
map, making entries in his pocket-book, and looking every now and
then impatiently at his watch.  Not another word, addressed to
myself, passed his lips.  The near approach of the hour for his
departure, and the proof he had seen of the communication
established between Pesca and myself, had plainly recalled his
whole attention to the measures that were necessary for securing
his escape.

A little before eight o'clock, Monsieur Rubelle came back with my
unopened letter in his hand.  The Count looked carefully at the
superscription and the seal, lit a candle, and burnt the letter. 
"I perform my promise," he said, "but this matter, Mr. Hartright,
shall not end here."

The agent had kept at the door the cab in which he had returned. 
He and the maid-servant now busied themselves in removing the
luggage.  Madame Fosco came downstairs, thickly veiled, with the
travelling cage of the white mice in her hand.  She neither spoke
to me nor looked towards me.  Her husband escorted her to the cab. 
"Follow me as far as the passage," he whispered in my ear; "I may
want to speak to you at the last moment."

I went out to the door, the agent standing below me in the front
garden.  The Count came back alone, and drew me a few steps inside
the passage.

"Remember the Third condition!" he whispered.  "You shall hear
from me, Mr. Hartright--I may claim from you the satisfaction of a
gentleman sooner than you think for." He caught my hand before I
was aware of him, and wrung it hard--then turned to the door,
stopped, and came back to me again.

"One word more," he said confidentially.  "When I last saw Miss
Halcombe, she looked thin and ill.  I am anxious about that
admirable woman.  Take care of her, sir! With my hand on my heart,
I solemnly implore you, take care of Miss Halcombe!"

Those were the last words he said to me before he squeezed his
huge body into the cab and drove off.

The agent and I waited at the door a few moments looking after
him.  While we were standing together, a second cab appeared from
a turning a little way down the road.  It followed the direction
previously taken by the Count's cab, and as it passed the house
and the open garden gate, a person inside looked at us out of the
window.  The stranger at the Opera again!--the foreigner with a
scar on his left cheek.


"You wait here with me, sir, for half an hour more!" said Monsieur
Rubelle.

"I do."

We returned to the sitting-room.  I was in no humour to speak to
the agent, or to allow him to speak to me.  I took out the papers
which the Count had placed in my hands, and read the terrible
story of the conspiracy told by the man who had planned and
perpetrated it.



THE STORY CONTINUED BY ISIDOR, OTTAVIO, BALDASSARE FOSCO

(Count of the Holy Roman Empire, Knight Grand Cross of the Order
of the Brazen Crown, Perpetual Arch-Master of the Rosicrucian
Masons of Mesopotamia; Attached (in Honorary Capacities) to
Societies Musical, Societies Medical, Societies Philosophical, and
Societies General Benevolent, throughout Europe; etc.  etc.  etc.)



THE COUNT'S NARRATIVE


In the summer of eighteen hundred and fifty I arrived in England,
charged with a delicate political mission from abroad. 
Confidential persons were semi-officially connected with me, whose
exertions I was authorised to direct, Monsieur and Madame Rubelle
being among the number.  Some weeks of spare time were at my
disposal, before I entered on my functions by establishing myself
in the suburbs of London.  Curiosity may stop here to ask for some
explanation of those functions on my part.  I entirely sympathise
with the request.  I also regret that diplomatic reserve forbids
me to comply with it.

I arranged to pass the preliminary period of repose, to which I
have just referred, in the superb mansion of my late lamented
friend, Sir Percival Glyde.  HE arrived from the Continent with
his wife.  I arrived from the Continent with MINE.  England is the
land of domestic happiness--how appropriately we entered it under
these domestic circumstances!

The bond of friendship which united Percival and myself was
strengthened, on this occasion, by a touching similarity in the
pecuniary position on his side and on mine.  We both wanted money. 
Immense necessity! Universal want! Is there a civilised human
being who does not feel for us? How insensible must that man be!
Or how rich!

I enter into no sordid particulars, in discussing this part of the
subject.  My mind recoils from them.  With a Roman austerity, I
show my empty purse and Percival's to the shrinking public gaze. 
Let us allow the deplorable fact to assert itself, once for all,
in that manner, and pass on.

We were received at the mansion by the magnificent creature who is
inscribed on my heart as "Marian," who is known in the colder
atmosphere of society as "Miss Halcombe."

Just Heaven! with what inconceivable rapidity I learnt to adore
that woman.  At sixty, I worshipped her with the volcanic ardour
of eighteen.  All the gold of my rich nature was poured hopelessly
at her feet.  My wife--poor angel!--my wife, who adores me, got
nothing but the shillings and the pennies.  Such is the World,
such Man, such Love.  What are we (I ask) but puppets in a show-
box? Oh, omnipotent Destiny, pull our strings gently! Dance us
mercifully off our miserable little stage!

The preceding lines, rightly understood, express an entire system
of philosophy.  It is mine.

I resume.


The domestic position at the commencement of our residence at
Blackwater Park has been drawn with amazing accuracy, with
profound mental insight, by the hand of Marian herself.  (Pass me
the intoxicating familiarity of mentioning this sublime creature
by her Christian name.) Accurate knowledge of the contents of her
journal--to which I obtained access by clandestine means,
unspeakably precious to me in the remembrance--warns my eager pen
from topics which this essentially exhaustive woman has already
made her own.

The interests--interests, breathless and immense!--with which I am
here concerned, begin with the deplorable calamity of Marian's
illness.

The situation at this period was emphatically a serious one. 
Large sums of money, due at a certain time, were wanted by
Percival (I say nothing of the modicum equally necessary to
myself), and the one source to look to for supplying them was the
fortune of his wife, of which not one farthing was at his disposal
until her death.  Bad so far, and worse still farther on.  My
lamented friend had private troubles of his own, into which the
delicacy of my disinterested attachment to him forbade me from
inquiring too curiously.  I knew nothing but that a woman, named
Anne Catherick, was hidden in the neighbourhood, that she was in
communication with Lady Glyde, and that the disclosure of a
secret, which would be the certain ruin of Percival, might be the
result.  He had told me himself that he was a lost man, unless his
wife was silenced, and unless Anne Catherick was found.  If he was
a lost man, what would become of our pecuniary interests?
Courageous as I am by nature, I absolutely trembled at the idea!

The whole force of my intelligence was now directed to the finding
of Anne Catherick.  Our money affairs, important as they were,
admitted of delay--but the necessity of discovering the woman
admitted of none.  I only knew her by description, as presenting
an extraordinary personal resemblance to Lady Glyde.  The
statement of this curious fact--intended merely to assist me in
identifying the person of whom we were in search--when coupled
with the additional information that Anne Catherick had escaped
from a mad-house, started the first immense conception in my mind,
which subsequently led to such amazing results.  That conception
involved nothing less than the complete transformation of two
separate identities.  Lady Glyde and Anne Catherick were to change
names, places, and destinies, the one with the other--the
prodigious consequences contemplated by the change being the gain
of thirty thousand pounds, and the eternal preservation of Sir
Percival's secret.

My instincts (which seldom err) suggested to me, on reviewing the
circumstances, that our invisible Anne would, sooner or later,
return to the boat-house at the Blackwater lake.  There I posted
myself, previously mentioning to Mrs. Michelson, the housekeeper,
that I might be found when wanted, immersed in study, in that
solitary place.  It is my rule never to make unnecessary
mysteries, and never to set people suspecting me for want of a
little seasonable candour on my part.  Mrs. Michelson believed in
me from first to last.  This ladylike person (widow of a
Protestant priest) overflowed with faith.  Touched by such
superfluity of simple confidence in a woman of her mature years, I
opened the ample reservoirs of my nature and absorbed it all.

I was rewarded for posting myself sentinel at the lake by the
appearance--not of Anne Catherick herself, but of the person in
charge of her.  This individual also overflowed with simple faith,
which I absorbed in myself, as in the case already mentioned.  I
leave her to describe the circumstances (if she has not done so
already) under which she introduced me to the object of her
maternal care.  When I first saw Anne Catherick she was asleep.  I
was electrified by the likeness between this unhappy woman and
Lady Glyde.  The details of the grand scheme which had suggested
themselves in outline only, up to that period, occurred to me, in
all their masterly combination, at the sight of the sleeping face. 
At the same time, my heart, always accessible to tender
influences, dissolved in tears at the spectacle of suffering
before me.  I instantly set myself to impart relief.  In other
words, I provided the necessary stimulant for strengthening Anne
Catherick to perform the journey to London.


The best years of my life have been passed in the ardent study of
medical and chemical science.  Chemistry especially has always had
irresistible attractions for me from the enormous, the illimitable
power which the knowledge of it confers.  Chemists--I assert it
emphatically--might sway, if they pleased, the destinies of
humanity.  Let me explain this before I go further.

Mind, they say, rules the world.  But what rules the mind? The
body (follow me closely here) lies at the mercy of the most
omnipotent of all potentates--the Chemist.  Give me--Fosco--
chemistry; and when Shakespeare has conceived Hamlet, and sits
down to execute the conception--with a few grains of powder
dropped into his daily food, I will reduce his mind, by the action
of his body, till his pen pours out the most abject drivel that
has ever degraded paper.  Under similar circumstances, revive me
the illustrious Newton.  I guarantee that when he sees the apple
fall he shall EAT IT, instead of discovering the principle of
gravitation.  Nero's dinner shall transform Nero into the mildest
of men before he has done digesting it, and the morning draught of
Alexander the Great shall make Alexander run for his life at the
first sight of the enemy the same afternoon.  On my sacred word of
honour it is lucky for Society that modern chemists are, by
incomprehensible good fortune, the most harmless of mankind.  The
mass are worthy fathers of families, who keep shops.  The few are
philosophers besotted with admiration for the sound of their own
lecturing voices, visionaries who waste their lives on fantastic
impossibilities, or quacks whose ambition soars no higher than our
corns.  Thus Society escapes, and the illimitable power of
Chemistry remains the slave of the most superficial and the most
insignificant ends.

Why this outburst? Why this withering eloquence?

Because my conduct has been misrepresented, because my motives
have been misunderstood.  It has been assumed that I used my vast
chemical resources against Anne Catherick, and that I would have
used them if I could against the magnificent Marian herself. 
Odious insinuations both! All my interests were concerned (as will
be seen presently) in the preservation of Anne Catherick's life. 
All my anxieties were concentrated on Marian's rescue from the
hands of the licensed imbecile who attended her, and who found my
advice confirmed from first to last by the physician from London. 
On two occasions only--both equally harmless to the individual on
whom I practised--did I summon to myself the assistance of
chemical knowledge.  On the first of the two, after following
Marian to the inn at Blackwater (studying, behind a convenient
waggon which hid me from her, the poetry of motion, as embodied in
her walk), I availed myself of the services of my invaluable wife,
to copy one and to intercept the other of two letters which my
adored enemy had entrusted to a discarded maid.  In this case, the
letters being in the bosom of the girl's dress, Madame Fosco could
only open them, read them, perform her instructions, seal them,
and put them back again by scientific assistance--which assistance
I rendered in a half-ounce bottle.  The second occasion, when the
same means were employed, was the occasion (to which I shall soon
refer) of Lady Glyde's arrival in London.  Never at any other time
was I indebted to my Art as distinguished from myself.  To all
other emergencies and complications my natural capacity for
grappling, single-handed, with circumstances, was invariably
equal.  I affirm the all-pervading intelligence of that capacity. 
At the expense of the Chemist I vindicate the Man.

Respect this outburst of generous indignation.  It has
inexpressibly relieved me.  En route! Let us proceed.


Having suggested to Mrs. Clement (or Clements, I am not sure
which) that the best method of keeping Anne out of Percival's
reach was to remove her to London--having found that my proposal
was eagerly received, and having appointed a day to meet the
travellers at the station and to see them leave it, I was at
liberty to return to the house and to confront the difficulties
which still remained to be met.

My first proceeding was to avail myself of the sublime devotion of
my wife.  I had arranged with Mrs. Clements that she should
communicate her London address, in Anne's interests, to Lady
Glyde.  But this was not enough.  Designing persons in my absence
might shake the simple confidence of Mrs. Clements, and she might
not write after all.  Who could I find capable of travelling to
London by the train she travelled by, and of privately seeing her
home? I asked myself this question.  The conjugal part of me
immediately answered--Madame Fosco.

After deciding on my wife's mission to London, I arranged that the
journey should serve a double purpose.  A nurse for the suffering
Marian, equally devoted to the patient and to myself, was a
necessity of my position.  One of the most eminently confidential
and capable women in existence was by good fortune at my disposal. 
I refer to that respectable matron, Madame Rubelle, to whom I
addressed a letter, at her residence in London, by the hands of my
wife.

On the appointed day Mrs. Clements and Anne Catherick met me at
the station.  I politely saw them off, I politely saw Madame Fosco
off by the same train.  The last thing at night my wife returned
to Blackwater, having followed her instructions with the most
unimpeachable accuracy.  She was accompanied by Madame Rubelle,
and she brought me the London address of Mrs. Clements.  After-
events proved this last precaution to have been unnecessary.  Mrs.
Clements punctually informed Lady Glyde of her place of abode. 
With a wary eye on future emergencies, I kept the letter.

The same day I had a brief interview with the doctor, at which I
protested, in the sacred interests of humanity, against his
treatment of Marian's case.  He was insolent, as all ignorant
people are.  I showed no resentment, I deferred quarrelling with
him till it was necessary to quarrel to some purpose.  My next
proceeding was to leave Blackwater myself.  I had my London
residence to take in anticipation of coming events.  I had also a
little business of the domestic sort to transact with Mr.
Frederick Fairlie.  I found the house I wanted in St. John's Wood. 
I found Mr. Fairlie at Limmeridge, Cumberland.

My own private familiarity with the nature of Marian's
correspondence had previously informed me that she had written to
Mr. Fairlie, proposing, as a relief to Lady Glyde's matrimonial
embarrassments, to take her on a visit to her uncle in Cumberland. 
This letter I had wisely allowed to reach its destination, feeling
at the time that it could do no harm, and might do good. I now
presented myself before Mr. Fairlie to support Marian's own
proposal--with certain modifications which, happily for the
success of my plans, were rendered really inevitable by her
illness.  It was necessary that Lady Glyde should leave Blackwater
alone, by her uncle's invitation, and that she should rest a night
on the journey at her aunt's house (the house I had in St. John's
Wood) by her uncle's express advice.  To achieve these results,
and to secure a note of invitation which could be shown to Lady
Glyde, were the objects of my visit to Mr. Fairlie.  When I have
mentioned that this gentleman was equally feeble in mind and body,
and that I let loose the whole force of my character on him, I
have said enough.  I came, saw, and conquered Fairlie.

On my return to Blackwater Park (with the letter of invitation) I
found that the doctor's imbecile treatment of Marian's case had
led to the most alarming results.  The fever had turned to typhus. 
Lady Glyde, on the day of my return, tried to force herself into
the room to nurse her sister.  She and I had no affinities of
sympathy--she had committed the unpardonable outrage on my
sensibilities of calling me a spy--she was a stumbling-block in my
way and in Percival's--but, for all that, my magnanimity forbade
me to put her in danger of infection with my own hand.  At the
same time I offered no hindrance to her putting herself in danger. 
If she had succeeded in doing so, the intricate knot which I was
slowly and patiently operating on might perhaps have been cut by
circumstances.  As it was, the doctor interfered and she was kept
out of the room.

I had myself previously recommended sending for advice to London. 
This course had been now taken.  The physician, on his arrival,
confirmed my view of the case.  The crisis was serious.  But we
had hope of our charming patient on the fifth day from the
appearance of the typhus.  I was only once absent from Blackwater
at this time--when I went to London by the morning train to make
the final arrangements at my house in St. John's Wood, to assure
myself by private inquiry that Mrs. Clements had not moved, and to
settle one or two little preliminary matters with the husband of
Madame Rubelle.  I returned at night.  Five days afterwards the
physician pronounced our interesting Marian to be out of all
danger, and to be in need of nothing but careful nursing.  This
was the time I had waited for.  Now that medical attendance was no
longer indispensable, I played the first move in the game by
asserting myself against the doctor.  He was one among many
witnesses in my way whom it was necessary to remove.  A lively
altercation between us (in which Percival, previously instructed
by me, refused to interfere) served the purpose in view.  I
descended on the miserable man in an irresistible avalanche of
indignation, and swept him from the house.

The servants were the next encumbrances to get rid of.  Again I
instructed Percival (whose moral courage required perpetual
stimulants), and Mrs. Michelson was amazed, one day, by hearing
from her master that the establishment was to be broken up.  We
cleared the house of all the servants but one, who was kept for
domestic purposes, and whose lumpish stupidity we could trust to
make no embarrassing discoveries.  When they were gone, nothing
remained but to relieve ourselves of Mrs. Michelson--a result
which was easily achieved by sending this amiable lady to find
lodgings for her mistress at the sea-side.

The circumstances were now exactly what they were required to be. 
Lady Glyde was confined to her room by nervous illness, and the
lumpish housemaid (I forget her name) was shut up there at night
in attendance on her mistress.  Marian, though fast recovering,
still kept her bed, with Mrs. Rubelle for nurse.  No other living
creatures but my wife, myself, and Percival were in the house. 
With all the chances thus in our favour I confronted the next
emergency, and played the second move in the game.

The object of the second move was to induce Lady Glyde to leave
Blackwater unaccompanied by her sister.  Unless we could persuade
her that Marian had gone on to Cumberland first, there was no
chance of removing her, of her own free will, from the house.  To
produce this necessary operation in her mind, we concealed our
interesting invalid in one of the uninhabited bedrooms at
Blackwater.  At the dead of night Madame Fosco, Madame Rubelle,
and myself (Percival not being cool enough to be trusted)
accomplished the concealment.  The scene was picturesque,
mysterious, dramatic in the highest degree.  By my directions the
bed had been made, in the morning, on a strong movable framework
of wood.  We had only to lift the framework gently at the head and
foot, and to transport our patient where we pleased, without
disturbing herself or her bed.  No chemical assistance was needed
or used in this case.  Our interesting Marian lay in the deep
repose of convalescence.  We placed the candles and opened the
doors beforehand.  I, in right of my great personal strength, took
the head of the framework--my wife and Madame Rubelle took the
foot.  I bore my share of that inestimably precious burden with a
manly tenderness, with a fatherly care.  Where is the modern
Rembrandt who could depict our midnight procession? Alas for the
Arts! alas for this most pictorial of subjects! The modern
Rembrandt is nowhere to be found.

The next morning my wife and I started for London, leaving Marian
secluded, in the uninhabited middle of the house, under care of
Madame Rubelle, who kindly consented to imprison herself with her
patient for two or three days.  Before taking our departure I gave
Percival Mr. Fairlie's letter of invitation to his niece
(instructing her to sleep on the journey to Cumberland at her
aunt's house), with directions to show it to Lady Glyde on hearing
from me.  I also obtained from him the address of the Asylum in
which Anne Catherick had been confined, and a letter to the
proprietor, announcing to that gentleman the return of his runaway
patient to medical care.

I had arranged, at my last visit to the metropolis, to have our
modest domestic establishment ready to receive us when we arrived
in London by the early train.  In consequence of this wise
precaution, we were enabled that same day to play the third move
in the game--the getting possession of Anne Catherick.

Dates are of importance here.  I combine in myself the opposite
characteristics of a Man of Sentiment and a Man of Business.  I
have all the dates at my fingers' ends.

On Wednesday, the 24th of July 1850, I sent my wife in a cab to
clear Mrs. Clements out of the way, in the first place.  A
supposed message from Lady Glyde in London was sufficient to
obtain this result.  Mrs. Clements was taken away in the cab, and
was left in the cab, while my wife (on pretence of purchasing
something at a shop) gave her the slip, and returned to receive
her expected visitor at our house in St. John's Wood.  It is
hardly necessary to add that the visitor had been described to the
servants as "Lady Glyde."

In the meanwhile I had followed in another cab, with a note for
Anne Catherick, merely mentioning that Lady Glyde intended to keep
Mrs. Clements to spend the day with her, and that she was to join
them under care of the good gentleman waiting outside, who had
already saved her from discovery in Hampshire by Sir Percival. 
The "good gentleman" sent in this note by a street boy, and paused
for results a door or two farther on.  At the moment when Anne 
appeared at the house door and closed it this excellent man had
the cab door open ready for her, absorbed her into the vehicle,
and drove off.

(Pass me, here, one exclamation in parenthesis.  How interesting
this is!)

On the way to Forest Road my companion showed no fear.  I can be
paternal--no man more so--when I please, and I was intensely
paternal on this occasion.  What titles I had to her confidence! I
had compounded the medicine which had done her good--I had warned
her of her danger from Sir Percival.  Perhaps I trusted too
implicitly to these titles--perhaps I underrated the keenness of
the lower instincts in persons of weak intellect--it is certain
that I neglected to prepare her sufficiently for a disappointment
on entering my house.  When I took her into the drawing-room--when
she saw no one present but Madame Fosco, who was a stranger to
her--she exhibited the most violent agitation; if she had scented
danger in the air, as a dog scents the presence of some creature
unseen, her alarm could not have displayed itself more suddenly
and more causelessly.  I interposed in vain.  The fear from which
she was suffering I might have soothed, but the serious heart-
disease, under which she laboured, was beyond the reach of all
moral palliatives.  To my unspeakable horror she was seized with
convulsions--a shock to the system, in her condition, which might
have laid her dead at any moment at our feet.

The nearest doctor was sent for, and was told that "Lady Glyde"
required his immediate services.  To my infinite relief, he was a
capable man.  I represented my visitor to him as a person of weak
intellect, and subject to delusions, and I arranged that no nurse
but my wife should watch in the sick-room.  The unhappy woman was
too ill, however, to cause any anxiety about what she might say. 
The one dread which now oppressed me was the dread that the false
Lady Glyde might die before the true Lady Glyde arrived in London.

I had written a note in the morning to Madame Rubelle, telling her
to join me at her husband's house on the evening of Friday the
26th, with another note to Percival, warning him to show his wife
her uncle's letter of invitation, to assert that Marian had gone
on before her, and to despatch her to town by the midday train, on
the 26th, also.  On reflection I had felt the necessity, in Anne
Catherick's state of health, of precipitating events, and of
having Lady Glyde at my disposal earlier than I had originally
contemplated.  What fresh directions, in the terrible uncertainty
of my position, could I now issue? I could do nothing but trust to
chance and the doctor.  My emotions expressed themselves in
pathetic apostrophes, which I was just self-possessed enough to
couple, in the hearing of other people, with the name of "Lady
Glyde." In all other respects Fosco, on that memorable day, was
Fosco shrouded in total eclipse.

She passed a bad night, she awoke worn out, but later in the day
she revived amazingly.  My elastic spirits revived with her.  I
could receive no answers from Percival and Madame Rubelle till the
morning of the next day, the 26th.  In anticipation of their
following my directions, which, accident apart, I knew they would
do, I went to secure a fly to fetch Lady Glyde from the railway,
directing it to be at my house on the 26th, at two o'clock.  After
seeing the order entered in the book, I went on to arrange matters
with Monsieur Rubelle.  I also procured the services of two
gentlemen who could furnish me with the necessary certificates of
lunacy.  One of them I knew personally--the other was known to
Monsieur Rubelle.  Both were men whose vigorous minds soared
superior to narrow scruples--both were labouring under temporary
embarrassments--both believed in ME.

It was past five o'clock in the afternoon before I returned from
the performance of these duties.  When I got back Anne Catherick
was dead.  Dead on the 25th, and Lady Glyde was not to arrive in
London till the 26th!

I was stunned.  Meditate on that.  Fosco stunned!

It was too late to retrace our steps.  Before my return the doctor
had officiously undertaken to save me all trouble by registering
the death, on the date when it happened, with his own hand.  My
grand scheme, unassailable hitherto, had its weak place now--no
efforts on my part could alter the fatal event of the 25th.  I
turned manfully to the future.  Percival's interests and mine
being still at stake, nothing was left but to play the game
through to the end.  I recalled my impenetrable calm--and played
it.

On the morning of the 26th Percival's letter reached me,
announcing his wife's arrival by the midday train.  Madame Rubelle
also wrote to say she would follow in the evening.  I started in
the fly, leaving the false Lady Glyde dead in the house, to
receive the true Lady Glyde on her arrival by the railway at three
o'clock.  Hidden under the seat of the carriage, I carried with me
all the clothes Anne Catherick had worn on coming into my house--
they were destined to assist the resurrection of the woman who was
dead in the person of the woman who was living.  What a situation!
I suggest it to the rising romance writers of England.  I offer
it, as totally new, to the worn-out dramatists of France.

Lady Glyde was at the station.  There was great crowding and
confusion, and more delay than I liked (in case any of her friends
had happened to be on the spot), in reclaiming her luggage.  Her
first questions, as we drove off, implored me to tell her news of
her sister.  I invented news of the most pacifying kind, assuring
her that she was about to see her sister at my house.  My house,
on this occasion only, was in the neighbourhood of Leicester
Square, and was in the occupation of Monsieur Rubelle, who
received us in the hall.

I took my visitor upstairs into a back room, the two medical
gentlemen being there in waiting on the floor beneath to see the
patient, and to give me their certificates.  After quieting Lady
Glyde by the necessary assurances about her sister, I introduced
my friends separately to her presence.  They performed the
formalities of the occasion briefly, intelligently,
conscientiously.  I entered the room again as soon as they had
left it, and at once precipitated events by a reference of the
alarming kind to "Miss Halcombe's" state of health.

Results followed as I had anticipated.  Lady Glyde became
frightened, and turned faint.  For the second time, and the last,
I called Science to my assistance.  A medicated glass of water and
a medicated bottle of smelling-salts relieved her of all further
embarrassment and alarm.  Additional applications later in the
evening procured her the inestimable blessing of a good night's
rest.  Madame Rubelle arrived in time to preside at Lady Glyde's
toilet.  Her own clothes were taken away from her at night, and
Anne Catherick's were put on her in the morning, with the
strictest regard to propriety, by the matronly hands of the good
Rubelle.  Throughout the day I kept our patient in a state of
partially-suspended consciousness, until the dexterous assistance
of my medical friends enabled me to procure the necessary order
rather earlier than I had ventured to hope.  That evening (the
evening of the 27th) Madame Rubelle and I took our revived "Anne
Catherick" to the Asylum.  She was received with great surprise,
but without suspicion, thanks to the order and certificates, to
Percival's letter, to the likeness, to the clothes, and to the
patient's own confused mental condition at the time.  I returned
at once to assist Madame Fosco in the preparations for the burial
of the False "Lady Glyde," having the clothes and luggage of the
true "Lady Glyde" in my possession.  They were afterwards sent to
Cumberland by the conveyance which was used for the funeral.  I
attended the funeral, with becoming dignity, attired in the
deepest mourning.


My narrative of these remarkable events, written under equally
remarkable circumstances, closes here.  The minor precautions
which I observed in communicating with Limmeridge House are
already known, so is the magnificent success of my enterprise, so
are the solid pecuniary results which followed it.  I have to
assert, with the whole force of my conviction, that the one weak
place in my scheme would never have been found out if the one weak
place in my heart had not been discovered first.  Nothing but my
fatal admiration for Marian restrained me from stepping in to my
own rescue when she effected her sister's escape.  I ran the risk,
and trusted in the complete destruction of Lady Glyde's identity. 
If either Marian or Mr. Hartright attempted to assert that
identity, they would publicly expose themselves to the imputation
of sustaining a rank deception, they would be distrusted and
discredited accordingly, and they would therefore be powerless to
place my interests or Percival's secret in jeopardy.  I committed
one error in trusting myself to such a blindfold calculation of
chances as this.  I committed another when Percival had paid the
penalty of his own obstinacy and violence, by granting Lady Glyde
a second reprieve from the mad-house, and allowing Mr. Hartright a
second chance of escaping me.  In brief, Fosco, at this serious
crisis, was untrue to himself.  Deplorable and uncharacteristic
fault! Behold the cause, in my heart--behold, in the image of
Marian Halcombe, the first and last weakness of Fosco's life!

At the ripe age of sixty, I make this unparalleled confession. 
Youths! I invoke your sympathy.  Maidens! I claim your tears.

A word more, and the attention of the reader (concentrated
breathlessly on myself) shall be released.

My own mental insight informs me that three inevitable questions
will be asked here by persons of inquiring minds.  They shall be
stated--they shall be answered.

First question.  What is the secret of Madame Fosco's unhesitating
devotion of herself to the fulfilment of my boldest wishes, to the
furtherance of my deepest plans? I might answer this by simply
referring to my own character, and by asking, in my turn, Where,
in the history of the world, has a man of my order ever been found
without a woman in the background self-immolated on the altar of
his life?  But I remember that I am writing in England, I remember
that I was married in England, and I ask if a woman's marriage
obligations in this country provide for her private opinion of her
husband's principles? No! They charge her unreservedly to love,
honour, and obey him.  That is exactly what my wife has done.  I
stand here on a supreme moral elevation, and I loftily assert her
accurate performance of her conjugal duties.  Silence, Calumny!
Your sympathy, Wives of England, for Madame Fosco!

Second question.  If Anne Catherick had not died when she did,
what should I have done? I should, in that case, have assisted
worn-out Nature in finding permanent repose.  I should have opened
the doors of the Prison of Life, and have extended to the captive
(incurably afflicted in mind and body both) a happy release.

Third question.  On a calm revision of all the circumstances--Is
my conduct worthy of any serious blame? Most emphatically, No!
Have I not carefully avoided exposing myself to the odium of
committing unnecessary crime? With my vast resources in chemistry,
I might have taken Lady Glyde's life.  At immense personal
sacrifice I followed the dictates of my own ingenuity, my own
humanity, my own caution, and took her identity instead.  Judge me
by what I might have done.  How comparatively innocent! how
indirectly virtuous I appear in what I really did!

I announced on beginning it that this narrative would be a
remarkable document.  It has entirely answered my expectations. 
Receive these fervid lines--my last legacy to the country I leave
for ever.  They are worthy of the occasion, and worthy of
                                      FOSCO.



THE STORY CONCLUDED BY WALTER HARTRIGHT


I

When I closed the last leaf of the Count's manuscript the half-
hour during which I had engaged to remain at Forest Road had
expired.  Monsieur Rubelle looked at his watch and bowed.  I rose
immediately, and left the agent in possession of the empty house. 
I never saw him again--I never heard more of him or of his wife. 
Out of the dark byways of villainy and deceit they had crawled
across our path--into the same byways they crawled back secretly
and were lost.

In a quarter of an hour after leaving Forest Road I was at home
again.

But few words sufficed to tell Laura and Marian how my desperate
venture had ended, and what the next event in our lives was likely
to be.  I left all details to be described later in the day, and
hastened back to St. John's Wood, to see the person of whom Count
Fosco had ordered the fly, when he went to meet Laura at the
station.

The address in my possession led me to some "livery stables,"
about a quarter of a mile distant from Forest Road.  The
proprietor proved to be a civil and respectable man.  When I
explained that an important family matter obliged me to ask him to
refer to his books for the purpose of ascertaining a date with
which the record of his business transactions might supply me, he
offered no objection to granting my request.  The book was
produced, and there, under the date of "July 26th, 1850," the
order was entered in these words--

"Brougham to Count Fosco, 5 Forest Road.  Two o'clock. (John
Owen)."

I found on inquiry that the name of "John Owen," attached to the
entry, referred to the man who had been employed to drive the fly. 
He was then at work in the stable-yard, and was sent for to see me
at my request.

"Do you remember driving a gentleman, in the month of July last,
from Number Five Forest Road to the Waterloo Bridge station?" I
asked.

"Well, sir," said the man, "I can't exactly say I do."

"Perhaps you remember the gentleman himself? Can you call to mind
driving a foreigner last summer--a tall gentleman and remarkably
fat?" The man's face brightened directly.

"I remember him, sir! The fattest gentleman as ever I see, and the
heaviest customer as ever I drove.  Yes, yes--I call him to mind,
sir! We DID go to the station, and it WAS from Forest Road.  There
was a parrot, or summat like it, screeching in the window.  The
gentleman was in a mortal hurry about the lady's luggage, and he
gave me a handsome present for looking sharp and getting the
boxes."

Getting the boxes! I recollected immediately that Laura's own
account of herself on her arrival in London described her luggage
as being collected for her by some person whom Count Fosco brought
with him to the station.  This was the man.

"Did you see the lady?" I asked.  "What did she look like? Was she
young or old?"

"Well, sir, what with the hurry and the crowd of people pushing
about, I can't rightly say what the lady looked like.  I can't
call nothing to mind about her that I know of excepting her name."

"You remember her name?"

"Yes, sir.  Her name was Lady Glyde."

"How do you come to remember that, when you have forgotten what
she looked like?"

The man smiled, and shifted his feet in some little embarrassment.

"Why, to tell you the truth, sir," he said, "I hadn't been long
married at that time, and my wife's name, before she changed it
for mine, was the same as the lady's--meaning the name of Glyde,
sir.  The lady mentioned it herself.  'Is your name on your boxes,
ma'am?' says I.  'Yes,' says she, 'my name is on my luggage--it is
Lady Glyde.' 'Come! ' I says to myself, 'I've a bad head for
gentlefolks' names in general--but THIS one comes like an old
friend, at any rate.' I can't say nothing about the time, sir, it
might be nigh on a year ago, or it mightn't.  But I can swear to
the stout gentleman, and swear to the lady's name."

There was no need that he should remember the time--the date was
positively established by his master's order-book.  I felt at once
that the means were now in my power of striking down the whole
conspiracy at a blow with the irresistible weapon of plain fact. 
Without a moment's hesitation, I took the proprietor of the livery
stables aside and told him what the real importance was of the
evidence of his order-book and the evidence of his driver.  An
arrangement to compensate him for the temporary loss of the man's
services was easily made, and a copy of the entry in the book was
taken by myself, and certified as true by the master's own
signature.  I left the livery stables, having settled that John
Owen was to hold himself at my disposal for the next three days,
or for a longer period if necessity required it.

I now had in my possession all the papers that I wanted--the
district registrar's own copy of the certificate of death, and Sir
Percival's dated letter to the Count, being safe in my pocket-
book.

With this written evidence about me, and with the coachman's
answers fresh in my memory, I next turned my steps, for the first
time since the beginning of all my inquiries, in the direction of
Mr. Kyrle's office.  One of my objects in paying him this second
visit was, necessarily, to tell him what I had done.  The other
was to warn him of my resolution to take my wife to Limmeridge the
next morning, and to have her publicly received and recognised in
her uncle's house.  I left it to Mr. Kyrle to decide under these
circumstances, and in Mr. Gilmore's absence, whether he was or was
not bound, as the family solicitor, to be present on that occasion
in the family interests.

I will say nothing of Mr. Kyrle's amazement, or of the terms in
which he expressed his opinion of my conduct from the first stage
of the investigation to the last.  It is only necessary to mention
that he at once decided on accompanying us to Cumberland.

We started the next morning by the early train.  Laura, Marian,
Mr. Kyrle, and myself in one carriage, and John Owen, with a clerk
from Mr. Kyrle's office, occupying places in another.  On reaching
the Limmeridge station we went first to the farmhouse at Todd's
Corner.  It was my firm determination that Laura should not enter
her uncle's house till she appeared there publicly recognised as
his niece.  I left Marian to settle the question of accommodation
with Mrs. Todd, as soon as the good woman had recovered from the
bewilderment of hearing what our errand was in Cumberland, and I
arranged with her husband that John Owen was to be committed to
the ready hospitality of the farm-servants.  These preliminaries
completed, Mr. Kyrle and I set forth together for Limmeridge
House.

I cannot write at any length of our interview with Mr. Fairlie,
for I cannot recall it to mind without feelings of impatience and
contempt, which make the scene, even in remembrance only, utterly
repulsive to me.  I prefer to record simply that I carried my
point.  Mr. Fairlie attempted to treat us on his customary plan. 
We passed without notice his polite insolence at the outset of the
interview.  We heard without sympathy the protestations with which
he tried next to persuade us that the disclosure of the conspiracy
had overwhelmed him.  He absolutely whined and whimpered at last
like a fretful child.  "How was he to know that his niece was
alive when he was told that she was dead? He would welcome dear
Laura with pleasure, if we would only allow him time to recover. 
Did we think he looked as if he wanted hurrying into his grave?
No.  Then, why hurry him?" He reiterated these remonstrances at
every available opportunity, until I checked them once for all, by
placing him firmly between two inevitable alternatives.  I gave
him his choice between doing his niece justice on my terms, or
facing the consequence of a public assertion of her existence in a
court of law.  Mr. Kyrle, to whom he turned for help, told him
plainly that he must decide the question then and there. 
Characteristically choosing the alternative which promised soonest
to release him from all personal anxiety, he announced with a
sudden outburst of energy, that he was not strong enough to bear
any more bullying, and that we might do as we pleased.

Mr. Kyrle and I at once went downstairs, and agreed upon a form of
letter which was to be sent round to the tenants who had attended
the false funeral, summoning them, in Mr. Fairlie's name, to
assemble in Limmeridge House on the next day but one.  An order 
referring to the same date was also written, directing a statuary
in Carlisle to send a man to Limmeridge churchyard for the purpose
of erasing an inscription--Mr. Kyrle, who had arranged to sleep in
the house, undertaking that Mr. Fairlie should hear these letters
read to him, and should sign them with his own hand.

I occupied the interval day at the farm in writing a plain
narrative of the conspiracy, and in adding to it a statement of
the practical contradiction which facts offered to the assertion
of Laura's death.  This I submitted to Mr. Kyrle before I read it
the next day to the assembled tenants.  We also arranged the form
in which the evidence should be presented at the close of the
reading.  After these matters were settled, Mr. Kyrle endeavoured
to turn the conversation next to Laura's affairs.  Knowing, and
desiring to know nothing of those affairs, and doubting whether he
would approve, as a man of business, of my conduct in relation to
my wife's life-interest in the legacy left to Madame Fosco, I
begged Mr. Kyrle to excuse me if I abstained from discussing the
subject.  It was connected, as I could truly tell him, with those
sorrows and troubles of the past which we never referred to among
ourselves, and which we instinctively shrank from discussing with
others.

My last labour, as the evening approached, was to obtain "The
Narrative of the Tombstone," by taking a copy of the false
inscription on the grave before it was erased.


The day came--the day when Laura once more entered the familiar
breakfast-room at Lummeridge House.  All the persons assembled
rose from their seats as Marian and I led her in.  A perceptible
shock of surprise, an audible murmur of interest ran through them,
at the sight of her face.  Mr. Fairlie was present (by my express
stipulation), with Mr. Kyrle by his side.  His valet stood behind
him with a smelling-bottle ready in one hand, and a white
handkerchief, saturated with eau-de-Cologne, in the other.

I opened the proceedings by publicly appealing to Mr. Fairlie to
say whether I appeared there with his authority and under his
express sanction.  He extended an arm, on either side, to Mr.
Kyrle and to his valet--was by them assisted to stand on his legs,
and then expressed himself in these terms: "Allow me to present
Mr. Hartright.  I am as great an invalid as ever, and he is so
very obliging as to speak for me.  The subject is dreadfully
embarrassing.  Please hear him, and don't make a noise!"  With
those words he slowly sank back again into the chair, and took
refuge in his scented pocket-handkerchief.

The disclosure of the conspiracy followed, after I had offered my
preliminary explanation, first of all, in the fewest and the
plainest words.  I was there present (I informed my hearers) to
declare, first, that my wife, then sitting by me, was the daughter
of the late Mr. Philip Fairlie; secondly, to prove by positive
facts, that the funeral which they had attended in Limmeridge 
churchyard was the funeral of another woman; thirdly, to give them
a plain account of how it had all happened. Without further
preface, I at once read the narrative of the conspiracy,
describing it in clear outline, and dwelling only upon the
pecuniary motive for it, in order to avoid complicating my
statement by unnecessary reference to Sir Percival's secret.  This
done, I reminded my audience of the date on the inscription in the
churchyard (the 25th), and confirmed its correctness by producing
the certificate of death.  I then read them Sir Percival's letter
of the 25th, announcing his wife's intended journey from Hampshire
to London on the 26th.  I next showed that she had taken that
journey, by the personal testimony of the driver of the fly, and I
proved that she had performed it on the appointed day, by the
order-book at the livery stables.  Marian then added her own
statement of the meeting between Laura and herself at the mad-
house, and of her sister's escape.  After which I closed the
proceedings by informing the persons present of Sir Percival's
death and of my marriage.

Mr. Kyrle rose when I resumed my seat, and declared, as the legal
adviser of the family, that my case was proved by the plainest
evidence he had ever heard in his life.  As he spoke those words,
I put my arm round Laura, and raised her so that she was plainly
visible to every one in the room.  "Are you all of the same
opinion?" I asked, advancing towards them a few steps, and
pointing to my wife.

The effect of the question was electrical.  Far down at the lower
end of the room one of the oldest tenants on the estate started to
his feet, and led the rest with him in an instant.  I see the man
now, with his honest brown face and his iron-grey hair, mounted on
the window-seat, waving his heavy riding-whip over his head, and
leading the cheers.  "There she is, alive and hearty--God bless
her! Gi' it tongue, lads! Gi' it tongue!" The shout that answered
him, reiterated again and again, was the sweetest music I ever
heard.  The labourers in the village and the boys from the school,
assembled on the lawn, caught up the cheering and echoed it back
on us.  The farmers' wives clustered round Laura, and struggled
which should be first to shake hands with her, and to implore her,
with the tears pouring over their own cheeks, to bear up bravely
and not to cry.  She was so completely overwhelmed, that I was
obliged to take her from them, and carry her to the door.  There I
gave her into Marian's care--Marian, who had never failed us yet,
whose courageous self-control did not fail us now.  Left by myself
at the door, I invited all the persons present (after thanking
them in Laura's name and mine) to follow me to the churchyard, and
see the false inscription struck off the tombstone with their own
eyes.

They all left the house, and all joined the throng of villagers
collected round the grave, where the statuary's man was waiting
for us.  In a breathless silence, the first sharp stroke of the
steel sounded on the marble.  Not a voice was heard--not a soul
moved, till those three words, "Laura, Lady Glyde," had vanished
from sight.  Then there was a great heave of relief among the
crowd, as if they felt that the last fetters of the conspiracy had
been struck off Laura herself, and the assembly slowly withdrew. 
It was late in the day before the whole inscription was erased. 
One line only was afterwards engraved in its place: "Anne
Catherick, July 25th, 1850."

I returned to Limmeridge House early enough in the evening to take
leave of Mr. Kyrle.  He and his clerk, and the driver of the fly,
went back to London by the night train.  On their departure an
insolent message was delivered to me from Mr. Fairlie--who had
been carried from the room in a shattered condition, when the
first outbreak of cheering answered my appeal to the tenantry. 
The message conveyed to us "Mr. Fairlie's best congratulations,"
and requested to know whether "we contemplated stopping in the
house." I sent back word that the only object for which we had
entered his doors was accomplished--that I contemplated stopping
in no man's house but my own--and that Mr. Fairlie need not
entertain the slightest apprehension of ever seeing us or hearing
from us again.  We went back to our friends at the farm to rest
that night, and the next morning--escorted to the station, with
the heartiest enthusiasm and good will, by the whole village and
by all the farmers in the neighbourhood--we returned to London.

As our view of the Cumberland hills faded in the distance, I
thought of the first disheartening circumstances under which the
long struggle that was now past and over had been pursued.  It was
strange to look back and to see, now, that the poverty which had
denied us all hope of assistance had been the indirect means of
our success, by forcing me to act for myself.  If we had been rich
enough to find legal help, what would have been the result? The
gain (on Mr. Kyrle's own showing) would have been more than
doubtful--the loss, judging by the plain test of events as they
had really happened, certain.  The law would never have obtained
me my interview with Mrs. Catherick.  The law would never have
made Pesca the means of forcing a confession from the Count.



II


Two more events remain to be added to the chain before it reaches
fairly from the outset of the story to the close.

While our new sense of freedom from the long oppression of the
past was still strange to us, I was sent for by the friend who had
given me my first employment in wood engraving, to receive from
him a fresh testimony of his regard for my welfare.  He had been
commissioned by his employers to go to Paris, and to examine for
them a fresh discovery in the practical application of his Art,
the merits of which they were anxious to ascertain.  His own
engagements had not allowed him leisure time to undertake the
errand, and he had most kindly suggested that it should be
transferred to me.  I could have no hesitation in thankfully
accepting the offer, for if I acquitted myself of my commission as
I hoped I should, the result would be a permanent engagement on
the illustrated newspaper, to which I was now only occasionally
attached.

I received my instructions and packed up for the journey the next
day.  On leaving Laura once more (under what changed
circumstances!) in her sister's care, a serious consideration
recurred to me, which had more than once crossed my wife's mind,
as well as my own, already--I mean the consideration of Marian's
future.  Had we any right to let our selfish affection accept the
devotion of all that generous life? Was it not our duty, our best
expression of gratitude, to forget ourselves, and to think only of
HER?  I tried to say this when we were alone for a moment, before
I went away.  She took my hand, and silenced me at the first
words.

"After all that we three have suffered together," she said "there
can be no parting between us till the last parting of all.  My
heart and my happiness, Walter, are with Laura and you.  Wait a
little till there are children's voices at your fireside.  I will
teach them to speak for me in THEIR language, and the first lesson
they say to their father and mother shall be--We can't spare our
aunt!"

My journey to Paris was not undertaken alone.  At the eleventh
hour Pesca decided that he would accompany me.  He had not
recovered his customary cheerfulness since the night at the Opera,
and he determined to try what a week's holiday would do to raise
his spirits.

I performed the errand entrusted to me, and drew out the necessary
report, on the fourth day from our arrival in Paris.  The fifth
day I arranged to devote to sight-seeing and amusements in Pesca's
company.

Our hotel had been too full to accommodate us both on the same
floor.  My room was on the second story, and Pesca's was above me,
on the third.  On the morning of the fifth day I went upstairs to
see if the Professor was ready to go out.  Just before I reached
the landing I saw his door opened from the inside--a long,
delicate, nervous hand (not my friend's hand certainly) held it
ajar.  At the same time I heard Pesca's voice saying eagerly, in
low tones, and in his own language--"I remember the name, but I
don't know the man.  You saw at the Opera he was so changed that I
could not recognise him.  I will forward the report--I can do no
more." "No more need be done," answered the second voice.  The
door opened wide, and the light-haired man with the scar on his
cheek--the man I had seen following Count Fosco's cab a week
before--came out.  He bowed as I drew aside to let him pass--his
face was fearfully pale--and he held fast by the banisters as he
descended the stairs.

I pushed open the door and entered Pesca's room.  He was crouched
up, in the strangest manner, in a corner of the sofa.  He seemed
to shrink from me when I approached him.

"Am I disturbing you?" I asked.  "I did not know you had a friend
with you till I saw him come out."

"No friend," said Pesca eagerly.  "I see him to-day for the first
time and the last."

"I am afraid he has brought you bad news?"

"Horrible news, Walter! Let us go back to London--I don't want to
stop here--I am sorry I ever came.  The misfortunes of my youth
are very hard upon me," he said, turning his face to the wall,
"very hard upon me in my later time.  I try to forget them--and
they will not forget ME!"

"We can't return, I am afraid, before the afternoon," I replied. 
"Would you like to come out with me in the meantime?"

"No, my friend, I will wait here.  But let us go back to-day--pray
let us go back."

I left him with the assurance that he should leave Paris that
afternoon.  We had arranged the evening before to ascend the
Cathedral of Notre Dame, with Victor Hugo's noble romance for our
guide.  There was nothing in the French capital that I was more
anxious to see, and I departed by myself for the church.

Approaching Notre Dame by the river-side, I passed on my way the
terrible dead-house of Paris--the Morgue.  A great crowd clamoured
and heaved round the door.  There was evidently something inside
which excited the popular curiosity, and fed the popular appetite
for horror.

I should have walked on to the church if the conversation of two
men and a woman on the outskirts of the crowd had not caught my
ear.  They had just come out from seeing the sight in the Morgue,
and the account they were giving of the dead body to their
neighbours described it as the corpse of a man--a man of immense
size, with a strange mark on his left arm.

The moment those words reached me I stopped and took my place with
the crowd going in.  Some dim foreshadowing of the truth had
crossed my mind when I heard Pesca's voice through the open door,
and when I saw the stranger's face as he passed me on the stairs
of the hotel.  Now the truth itself was revealed to me--revealed
in the chance words that had just reached my ears.  Other
vengeance than mine had followed that fated man from the theatre
to his own door--from his own door to his refuge in Paris.  Other
vengeance than mine had called him to the day of reckoning, and
had exacted from him the penalty of his life.  The moment when I
had pointed him out to Pesca at the theatre in the hearing of that
stranger by our side, who was looking for him too--was the moment
that sealed his doom.  I remembered the struggle in my own heart,
when he and I stood face to face--the struggle before I could let
him escape me--and shuddered as I recalled it.

Slowly, inch by inch, I pressed in with the crowd, moving nearer
and nearer to the great glass screen that parts the dead from the
living at the Morgue--nearer and nearer, till I was close behind
the front row of spectators, and could look in.

There he lay, unowned, unknown, exposed to the flippant curiosity
of a French mob! There was the dreadful end of that long life of
degraded ability and heartless crime! Hushed in the sublime repose
of death, the broad, firm, massive face and head fronted us so
grandly that the chattering Frenchwomen about me lifted their
hands in admiration, and cried in shrill chorus, "Ah, what a
handsome man!" The wound that had killed him had been struck with
a knife or dagger exactly over his heart.  No other traces of
violence appeared about the body except on the left arm, and
there, exactly in the place where I had seen the brand on Pesca's
arm, were two deep cuts in the shape of the letter T, which
entirely obliterated the mark of the Brotherhood.  His clothes,
hung above him, showed that he had been himself conscious of his
danger--they were clothes that had disguised him as a French
artisan.  For a few moments, but not for longer, I forced myself
to see these things through the glass screen.  I can write of them
at no greater length, for I saw no more.

The few facts in connection with his death which I subsequently
ascertained (partly from Pesca and partly from other sources), may
be stated here before the subject is dismissed from these pages.

His body was taken out of the Seine in the disguise which I have
described, nothing being found on him which revealed his name, his
rank, or his place of abode.  The hand that struck him was never
traced, and the circumstances under which he was killed were never
discovered.  I leave others to draw their own conclusions in
reference to the secret of the assassination as I have drawn mine. 
When I have intimated that the foreigner with the scar was a
member of the Brotherhood (admitted in Italy after Pesca's
departure from his native country), and when I have further added
that the two cuts, in the form of a T, on the left arm of the dead
man, signified the Italian word "Traditore," and showed that
justice had been done by the Brotherhood on a traitor, I have
contributed all that I know towards elucidating the mystery of
Count Fosco's death.

The body was identified the day after I had seen it by means of an
anonymous letter addressed to his wife.  He was buried by Madame
Fosco in the cemetery of Pere la Chaise.  Fresh funeral wreaths
continue to this day to be hung on the ornamental bronze railings
round the tomb by the Countess's own hand.  She lives in the
strictest retirement at Versailles.  Not long since she published
a biography of her deceased husband.  The work throws no light
whatever on the name that was really his own or on the secret
history of his life--it is almost entirely devoted to the praise
of his domestic virtues, the assertion of his rare abilities, and
the enumeration of the honours conferred on him.  The
circumstances attending his death are very briefly noticed, and
are summed up on the last page in this sentence--"His life was one
long assertion of the rights of the aristocracy and the sacred
principles of Order, and he died a martyr to his cause."



III


The summer and autumn passed after my return from Paris, and
brought no changes with them which need be noticed here.  We lived
so simply and quietly that the income which I was now steadily
earning sufficed for all our wants.

In the February of the new year our first child was born--a son. 
My mother and sister and Mrs. Vesey were our guests at the little
christening party, and Mrs. Clements was present to assist my wife
on the same occasion.  Marian was our boy's godmother, and Pesca
and Mr. Gilmore (the latter acting by proxy) were his godfathers. 
I may add here that when Mr. Gilmore returned to us a year later
he assisted the design of these pages, at my request, by writing
the Narrative which appears early in the story under his name, and
which, though first in order of precedence, was thus, in order of
time, the last that I received.

The only event in our lives which now remains to be recorded,
occurred when our little Walter was six months old.

At that time I was sent to Ireland to make sketches for certain
forthcoming illustrations in the newspaper to which I was
attached.  I was away for nearly a fortnight, corresponding
regularly with my wife and Marian, except during the last three
days of my absence, when my movements were too uncertain to enable
me to receive letters.  I performed the latter part of my journey
back at night, and when I reached home in the morning, to my utter
astonishment there was no one to receive me.  Laura and Marian and
the child had left the house on the day before my return.

A note from my wife, which was given to me by the servant, only
increased my surprise, by informing me that they had gone to
Limmeridge House.  Marian had prohibited any attempt at written
explanations--I was entreated to follow them the moment I came
back--complete enlightenment awaited me on my arrival in
Cumberland--and I was forbidden to feel the slightest anxiety in
the meantime.  There the note ended.  It was still early enough to
catch the morning train.  I reached Limmeridge House the same
afternoon.

My wife and Marian were both upstairs.  They had established
themselves (by way of completing my amazement) in the little room
which had been once assigned to me for a studio, when I was
employed on Mr. Fairlie's drawings.  On the very chair which I
used to occupy when I was at work Marian was sitting now, with the
child industriously sucking his coral upon her lap--while Laura
was standing by the well-remembered drawing-table which I had so
often used, with the little album that I had filled for her in
past times open under her hand.

"What in the name of heaven has brought you here?" I asked.  "Does
Mr. Fairlie know----?"

Marian suspended the question on my lips by telling me that Mr.
Fairlie was dead.  He had been struck by paralysis, and had never
rallied after the shock.  Mr. Kyrle had informed them of his
death, and had advised them to proceed immediately to Limmeridge
House.

Some dim perception of a great change dawned on my mind.  Laura
spoke before I had quite realised it.  She stole close to me to
enjoy the surprise which was still expressed in my face.

"My darling Walter," she said, "must we really account for our
boldness in coming here? I am afraid, love, I can only explain it
by breaking through our rule, and referring to the past."

"There is not the least necessity for doing anything of the kind,"
said Marian.  "We can be just as explicit, and much more
interesting, by referring to the future." She rose and held up the
child kicking and crowing in her arms.  "Do you know who this is,
Walter?" she asked, with bright tears of happiness gathering in
her eyes.

"Even MY bewilderment has its limits," I replied.  "I think I can
still answer for knowing my own child."

"Child!" she exclaimed, with all her easy gaiety of old times. 
"Do you talk in that familiar manner of one of the landed gentry
of England? Are you aware, when I present this illustrious baby to
your notice, in whose presence you stand? Evidently not! Let me
make two eminent personages known to one another: Mr. Walter
Hartright--THE HEIR OF LIMMERIDGE."


So she spoke.  In writing those last words, I have written all. 
The pen falters in my hand.  The long, happy labour of many months
is over.  Marian was the good angel of our lives--let Marian end
our Story.